summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authorRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-14 20:05:26 -0700
committerRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-14 20:05:26 -0700
commit7c453a331007e8a14533996506076283836385db (patch)
tree3ea5cf3757f53c1b1ba6f26578fa7e806abe43b4
initial commit of ebook 36273HEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--36273-0.txt6925
-rw-r--r--36273-0.zipbin0 -> 124183 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-8.txt6925
-rw-r--r--36273-8.zipbin0 -> 123061 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-h.zipbin0 -> 614592 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-h/36273-h.htm10720
-rw-r--r--36273-h/images/illus-083.jpgbin0 -> 98464 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-h/images/illus-157.jpgbin0 -> 84977 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-h/images/illus-177.jpgbin0 -> 89939 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-h/images/illus-cvr.jpgbin0 -> 131094 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273-h/images/illus-fpc.jpgbin0 -> 94108 bytes
-rw-r--r--36273.txt6925
-rw-r--r--36273.zipbin0 -> 123030 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
16 files changed, 31511 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/36273-0.txt b/36273-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c171acf
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,6925 @@
+Project Gutenberg's The Automobile Girls at Newport, by Laura Dent Crane
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Automobile Girls at Newport
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+Author: Laura Dent Crane
+
+Release Date: May 30, 2011 [EBook #36273]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration: “The Automobile Girls” Were Fairly Started.
+_Frontispiece._]
+
+
+
+
+ The Automobile Girls at Newport
+
+ OR
+
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+ By
+ LAURA DENT CRANE
+
+ Author of The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires, The
+ Automobile Girls Along the Hudson, Etc., Etc.
+
+ Illustrated
+
+ PHILADELPHIA
+ HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY
+
+
+
+
+ Copyright, 1910, by Howard E. Altemus
+
+
+
+
+ CONTENTS
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+ I. Barbara to the Rescue 7
+ II. Lost, Strayed or Stolen 16
+ III. Ruth’s Perfect Plan 30
+ IV. Mother’s Secret 39
+ V. The Glorious Start 47
+ VI. What Happened the First Day 59
+ VII. Showing Their Mettle 71
+ VIII. “For We Are Jolly Good Fellows!” 86
+ IX. Only Girls 93
+ X. Enter Gladys and Mr. Townsend 104
+ XI. Newport at Last 111
+ XII. A Week Later 121
+ XIII. The Night of the Ball 131
+ XIV. Barbara’s Secret 142
+ XV. Ruth in Danger 150
+ XVI. Help Arrives 162
+ XVII. The Fortune-Tellers 169
+ XVIII. A Word to the Wise 180
+ XIX. “Eyeology” 190
+ XX. Ruth Wakes Up! 204
+ XXI. The Capture of the Butterfly 213
+ XXII. The Tennis Tournament 224
+ XXIII. Brought to Bay 236
+ XXIV. Good-Bye to Newport 242
+
+
+
+
+THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I—BARBARA TO THE RESCUE
+
+
+“Pink hair ribbons!”
+
+Barbara Thurston’s brown, bright face seemed to twinkle all over, as she
+clinked a yellow coin on the marble top of the little sewing table.
+
+“Silk stockings!” chorused Mollie Thurston gleefully. “Wasn’t it the
+luckiest thing that the hotel people wanted so many berries this year!”
+And she, too, sent a gold piece spinning over the smooth surface. “But,
+perhaps, we won’t be invited after all,” she sighed.
+
+“Nonsense!” rejoined Barbara energetically. “When Grace Carter says
+she’ll fix a thing, you can wager she will. She’s known Ruth Stuart for
+three summers now, and she’s told us we’d be invited to Ruth’s party
+this year. I can read the invitations already. The only thing worrying
+me was what we’d wear. Now the strawberry crop has turned out so well,
+and mother’s a brick, and will let us use our money as we wish—I think
+we’re fixed. Then—who knows?”
+
+“I am sure Ruth Stuart’s lots of fun when you get to know her,”
+interrupted Mollie eagerly. “If Cousin Gladys wasn’t boarding at the
+hotel with her, we’d have met her long before. Isn’t Gladys a stuck-up
+goose? Never mind. We’ll have the laugh on her when she sees us at the
+party. Let’s be de-lighted to meet her. I should love to watch her when
+she is fussed!”
+
+“After all,” mused Barbara, thoughtfully, “her father was in partnership
+with papa. It’s mighty funny that uncle got all the money. I wonder——”
+She stopped playing with her gold piece and gazed thoughtfully out of
+the sitting room window at the hot, empty, yellow road that ran so near
+the tiny cottage.
+
+Barbara Thurston was sixteen, Mollie just two years younger, and nearly
+all their lives had been spent in that little cottage. John Thurston,
+the girls’ father, had died suddenly when Mollie was only three years
+old.
+
+He had been at that time in the wholesale clothing business with his
+wife’s brother, Ralph Le Baron, and was supposed to be a rich man. But
+when his affairs were settled up, his brother-in-law, the executor,
+announced that a very small interest in the business remained to Mrs.
+Thurston. He hinted, darkly, at stock speculation on her husband’s part,
+and poor Mrs. Thurston, overcome by grief, had not wanted to question
+deeply.
+
+She, herself, happened to own the little cottage, in Kingsbridge, in
+which she and her brother had lived as children. Acting on his advice,
+she settled there with her two little girls, and had remained ever
+since, subsisting on the small income her brother regularly transmitted
+to her from her dead husband’s tiny business interest. Le Baron and his
+wife, with their daughter, Gladys, usually spent the summer in
+Kingsbridge, at the one “summer hotel” in the place; but intercourse
+between the two families had come to be little sought on either side.
+Kingsbridge was a quiet little village in New Jersey, and, except for
+the summer visitors, there was little gayety. Gladys Le Baron,
+especially, had shown herself icily oblivious of the existence of her
+younger cousins, Barbara and Mollie.
+
+These two were delightful examples of self-reliant young America.
+Barbara, the elder, looked a regular “nut-brown maid,” with chestnut
+hair that never would “stay put,” and usually a mischievous twinkle in
+the brown eyes beneath the straying locks. But there was plenty of
+genuinely forceful energy stored away in her slim, well-knit young body,
+and her firm chin and broad forehead told both of determination and
+intelligence.
+
+Her sister, Mollie, was fair, with lovely curling blond hair, and a
+quaint drollery of speech that won her many friends. Both sisters had
+grown up quietly, helping their mother about the house, as they could
+afford no servant, going to the village school, and, when they wanted
+anything beyond the plainest necessities of life, earning it.
+
+This summer both had set their hearts on “really-truly” party clothes,
+not “hand-me-downs.” Their friend, Grace Carter, daughter of Squire
+Carter, the village dignitary, had promised them invitations to “the
+event of the season,” the party to be given by her friend Ruth Stuart, a
+rich Western girl who quite recently had come to spend her summer at
+Kingsbridge. And didn’t Ruth Stuart live at the same hotel with Gladys
+Le Baron, the snobbish cousin?
+
+To meet the enemy on her own ground, and to have the fun of a party
+besides, was certainly worth picking strawberries for, thought Barbara
+and Mollie. So they scoured the country round for the sweet wild ones
+the hotel visitors liked best. Now each of the girls was fingering
+gleefully her twenty-dollar gold-piece that meant many days’ work in the
+past, but pretty dresses in the future.
+
+The prospect was too alluring for Barbara to spend much time in
+wondering about the real “why” of their fallen fortunes, though the
+question had come to her before, and would again. Now she was ready to
+join Mollie in eager planning as to “just what they’d get.”
+
+“Go get a pencil and paper, Molliekins, and we’ll set it all down,” she
+laughed.
+
+Mollie went into the further room and Barbara waited, eyes
+absent-mindedly fixed on the yellow stretch of road.
+
+Suddenly she became conscious of a curious pounding. There was a queer,
+wild rhythm to it, and it seemed to be coming nearer and nearer.
+
+Barbara put her head out of the open window. She could see nothing but a
+cloud of dust far down the road. Yet the pounding sounded louder every
+moment.
+
+Then she knew. The noise came from the furious feet of runaway horses.
+And they were coming past the house with their helpless, unknown
+victims.
+
+What could Barbara do? Her mother was asleep upstairs and there was no
+man about the place. There was no other house near. Besides, the
+slightest delay might prove fatal.
+
+All this seemed to flash through Barbara’s brain in a second. She knew
+she must act. Swiftly and easily as a boy she vaulted the open window,
+pausing only to snatch a closed umbrella that leaned against the sill.
+How glad she was she had forgotten to put it away in the closet when she
+came in from the shower yesterday!
+
+In an instant the girl sped through the gate and out into the road,
+opening her umbrella as she ran.
+
+There she paused, squarely in front of the approaching dust cloud, very
+near now. She could hear the click of the stones, cast aside by the
+flying feet of the horses, and she caught a glimpse of two black heads,
+wild-eyed and foam-flecked, through the whirling dust.
+
+Barbara strained her eyes to locate hanging bridles. But meantime,
+swiftly and mechanically, she was opening and shutting the big black
+umbrella.
+
+“If they’ll only stop!” she murmured.
+
+And they did. Fear-crazed already, their legs trembling after a terrific
+run, the horses dared not seek encounter with that horrible bat-like
+creature that seemed to await them.
+
+Scarcely five feet away, their wild pace broke. They hesitated, and
+Barbara flung herself forward and seized the dangling bridles. For a
+moment she pulled on them with wrists of steel, but it was not
+necessary. The horses drooped their weary heads and gladly stood still.
+
+Then, and only then, Barbara glanced at the carriage and its occupants.
+
+It was an open four-seated carriage, and in it were Ruth Stuart, Grace
+Carter, Gladys Le Baron and a strange young man somewhat older than the
+rest of the party. The girls were leaning back, with closed eyes and
+white faces. The young man was staring straight ahead, with a blank
+expression, fear depicted on every feature.
+
+Barbara dared not leave the horses even now. “Mollie! Mollie!” she
+called.
+
+Mollie was already out of the house. From the window, terror-stricken,
+she had seen it all.
+
+“Get the girls out,” Barbara directed. “I can’t leave these brutes,
+though I guess they’re all right now.”
+
+In the meantime, Grace and Gladys had opened their eyes. Mollie now
+stood at the carriage step, her hand outstretched.
+
+As they recognized their rescuers, Grace’s pale face lit up. Even
+Gladys, for once, tried to summon a gracious and grateful smile.
+
+“We’re all right, Mollie,” spoke up Grace, “but I think Ruth has
+fainted. I’ll help you get her into the house.”
+
+Suddenly the young man started up. “I beg your pardon,” he remarked in a
+smooth, pleasantly-modulated voice, “but you really must let me help. I
+have been utterly helpless so far,” and his glance wandered admiringly
+and a trifle shamefacedly toward Barbara.
+
+In an instant, he had sprung over the wheel and gently half lifted, half
+dragged Ruth Stuart off the seat.
+
+As her feet touched the ground, she too opened her eyes, only to close
+them again with a shivering sigh. Grace was at her side in a moment.
+
+“Try to walk to the house, dear,” Grace urged. “It’s only a few steps.”
+
+Mollie took the place of the young man, and, between the two girls, Ruth
+stumbled to the gate.
+
+The young man stepped up to Barbara. “Can I help you?” he ventured,
+looking at the now quieted horses.
+
+But a cold voice sounded from the carriage, where Gladys still sat. “I
+think you might think a little about me, Harry,” she exclaimed.
+
+The young fellow bit his lip and hesitated.
+
+“Please,” broke in Barbara, “please take her to the house. I can’t get
+these horses and this carriage through the gate. It isn’t big enough.
+But I’ll hitch them to the fence and stay with them for a few minutes.
+You must need rest, all of you!”
+
+Harry Townsend bit his lip as he caught the sarcastic inflection in
+Barbara’s last sentence, but did as he was directed, and walked slowly
+toward the house with Gladys.
+
+Left to herself, Barbara led the horses, still attached to the carriage,
+toward the fence, and hitched them by the reins in a clever way all
+country girls know. “Good boys! Poor boys!” she murmured, petting them,
+for they were still shivering pitifully with fright.
+
+For several minutes she stood talking to them. Then Mollie’s anxious
+face appeared at the door, and in a moment she stood beside her sister.
+
+“What shall we do?” she asked. “Miss Stuart is feeling very ill, and
+wants to go home at once. She and all the others refuse to step foot
+into that carriage again—and I can’t blame them; but, you know, it’s two
+miles to the hotel, if it’s a step, and we haven’t a telephone. Grace
+says Ruth’s father would send the au-to-mo-bile,”—Mollie pronounced the
+word with reverent care—“but what’s the quickest way of getting the
+message to them? Mother suggests running over to Jim Trumbull’s and
+seeing if he’ll hitch up and drive to the hotel. But it’s half a mile to
+his place, and he’s very likely to be away anyhow. What do you——?”
+
+Barbara interrupted her decisively. “I’ll just drive those horses back
+to the hotel myself, Mollie Thurston,” she said calmly.
+
+“Barbara, you can’t! It’s risking your life!”
+
+“Nonsense! There isn’t an ounce of spirit left in the poor, frightened
+things. I guess I haven’t broken Jim Trumbull’s colts for him without
+knowing how to handle horses. You go tell Miss Stuart that her
+automobile will be here in two shakes of a lamb’s tail. And see,
+Mollie,” the twinkle shone in Barbara’s eyes, “of course they’ll give me
+a ride back in the auto!”
+
+Laughing at Mollie’s protests, the plucky girl untied the horses and
+turned them carefully.
+
+“Stand at their heads, just a minute,” she cheerfully directed. Then
+Barbara gathered up the reins and climbed up to the high seat.
+
+“Drop anchor, Mollie,” she called, and trotted slowly down the road
+behind the quieted blacks.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II—LOST, STRAYED OR STOLEN
+
+
+“Mollie Thurston, has Barbara driven off with those awful horses?”
+
+It was Grace Carter who spoke. She had reached the doorway of the
+cottage just in time to catch a glimpse of the departing equipage.
+
+Without waiting for a reply, she turned from the open door to the group
+inside just as Mollie rejoined them, exclaiming:
+
+“Barbara is driving the runaways to the hotel for the machine!”
+
+Mrs. Thurston started. She had been downstairs for some time helping to
+make the victims of the accident comfortable. She was a slim,
+sweet-faced little woman, whose entire world lay in her two lively young
+daughters, in whom she had unlimited faith.
+
+But, in a moment, she smiled and said, “I am not afraid to trust Barbara
+with anything.”
+
+Ruth Stuart’s lately pale face was glowing. “I think that is regularly
+splendid of her!” she exclaimed, with more animation than she had shown
+since she had left the carriage.
+
+“Oh, Barbara is used to taking care of herself,” Gladys Le Baron
+interposed with a supercilious smile.
+
+Mollie looked at her cousin a moment. “Yes,” she answered steadily, “we
+think it is a pretty good thing in our family.”
+
+Gladys flushed, and had no reply ready. Ruth looked surprised and Grace
+plunged into the breach.
+
+“Oh,” she tried to murmur off-handedly, “Barbara and Mollie and Gladys
+are cousins, you know.”
+
+“And you never——” Ruth turned to Gladys, then stopped and smiled. “Well,
+it’s awfully jolly to have met you all in this nice, informal way. Grace
+has often spoken of you,” she said.
+
+The girls had to laugh at this, so Ruth continued: “I’m well enough now
+to be proper and conventional, I suppose. I believe you know I’m Ruth
+Stuart. Mrs. Thurston, Mollie, have you met Gladys’s friend, Mr.
+Townsend?”
+
+The young man came out from the corner near the window, where he had
+been seated, and bowed gayly. Ruth nodded in a satisfied fashion.
+
+“There, doesn’t that finish it?” she sighed. “The rest of you are all
+acquainted, aren’t you? Now, won’t one of you, please tell me why those
+awful horses aren’t running still? I know some horrible white hay-caps
+started them, and Jones fell off the seat, and now we are here. Who
+stopped us?”
+
+Everybody turned to Ruth at once. “Why, Barbara stopped them,” Grace
+managed to say first. “Barbara——”
+
+A gay laugh sounded in the doorway, and Barbara herself appeared before
+them.
+
+“Now I’ve caught you!” she cried merrily, her bright eyes sweeping the
+circle. Then she turned to Ruth with a mock curtsey.
+
+“Your ladyship’s chariot waits,” she declaimed, then continuing in quick
+explanation: “You see, your driver was scarcely hurt and he rushed back
+to the hotel at once and sent the automobile along the road where he had
+seen the horses disappearing. Before I’d gone a quarter of a mile, I met
+the machine with the chauffeur, and doctor and Jones himself. We sent
+Jones back with the horses, though they weren’t bothering me a bit, and
+I came back in the automobile. How are you feeling?” and the bright
+voice softened sympathetically, as she noted Ruth’s pale cheeks.
+
+For answer the girl arose quickly, and held out both hands to Barbara.
+“You’re a brick,” she said simply. “I fainted, like a goose, and they’ve
+just told me what you did. I am so glad I know you, and I guess my
+father will be glad, too—not to say thankful! Now, please won’t you and
+your sister dine with us to-morrow? No? Make it lunch; then I’ll see you
+sooner. I won’t take no for an answer, because I have a very important
+plan. Dad decides as quickly as I do. So if you’ll only say yes—but I
+can’t tell you about it now. Perhaps, if I make you curious, you’ll be
+more interested when the time comes!” Ruth laughed mischievously.
+
+“What have you up your sleeve now, Ruth Stuart?” asked Grace, curiously.
+“I never saw such a girl as you are for chain-lightning projects!”
+
+“You’ll see,” laughed Ruth. “You’re in it too, you know. You must be one
+of my lunch party to-morrow. I know you and Mr. Townsend have another
+engagement, Gladys, so you will pardon my delivering my invitation
+before you. Now, I won’t say another word.
+
+“Come,” she continued, addressing the party, “we must be off at once. If
+the news of this runaway circulates through the hotel and reaches either
+your father or mine, Gladys, they’ll be wild with fright. Good-bye, Mrs.
+Thurston, and thank you. You’ve been awfully good to us. As for you
+two”—holding out her hands to Barbara and Mollie—“wait till tomorrow at
+lunch!”
+
+Drawing the two Thurston girls with her, she stepped outside the door
+and to the gate, the rest of the party following. The machine was
+waiting in the road, and out of it hurried the hotel doctor toward Ruth.
+
+“Aren’t you hurt, Miss Stuart?” he cried. “I would have come in, but
+Miss Thurston said she would go in first and see how you were.”
+
+“I’m perfectly well, doctor,” smiled Ruth. “It’s too bad you had to come
+way out here. I hope father will not hear you have been sent for!”
+
+She patted affectionately the nearest tire-rim of the big automobile.
+“Bless the ‘bubble’s’ heart,” she murmured. “He wouldn’t run away with
+his missus. Barbara, Mollie, this is my best friend, Mr. A. Bubble. I
+think you’ll get better acquainted with him before long. I wish you
+could come with me now, but I’m afraid neither you nor ‘Bubble’ would be
+quite comfortable. And you three must get along well together from the
+start.”
+
+The doctor helped Ruth into the big red touring car and Gladys and Grace
+followed. The two men and the chauffeur crowded together in the front
+seat.
+
+“Au revoir,” chorused the autoists, and “see you tomorrow,” nodded Ruth
+emphatically to the girls. Then, in a whirl of dust, the big machine
+sped out of sight.
+
+“Isn’t she a dear?” burst forth Mollie, as the sisters turned to go back
+to the house. “How her eyes shine when she talks! I wonder if I could do
+my hair that way. I was sure she’d be nice—but what do you suppose she
+means by that plan? Barbara, for heaven’s sake, how did you happen to
+think of that umbrella stunt? It was great, but you did look so
+funny—like a sort of desperate, feminine Darius Green with his flying
+machine! No wonder you stopped the horses!”
+
+“Oh, I heard of a man who stopped a stampede of cattle that way out West
+once,” Barbara answered abstractedly. There was a puzzled look on her
+face. “Mollie,” she said abruptly, as they entered the house, “you
+didn’t take our money with you, when you went into the bedroom for
+pencil and paper?”
+
+“Why, no,” replied Mollie wonderingly. “It must be over there on the
+table now. I remember I noticed it as I came into the room. I wondered,
+for a second, why you’d gone away and left it so near the open window.
+That was before I looked through the window and saw what you were doing.
+It must be there,” and Mollie hurried over to the window.
+
+The next moment she turned an astonished face to her sister. “Barbara!”
+she exclaimed, “it isn’t here, anywhere!” Indeed, the marble top of the
+little table was absolutely bare. There was no sign of either of the
+gold pieces.
+
+“Let’s look on the floor,” said Barbara, quietly. “One of our guests may
+have unconsciously brushed them off.”
+
+Both girls stopped and began a careful survey of the carpeted floor,
+under the table, and near the window. Their search was unrewarded.
+
+“Let’s look in the grass outside,” suggested Mollie. “You might have
+brushed them off as you went through the window.”
+
+“But didn’t you say you saw them on the table, when you came back into
+the room and found me gone?” queried Barbara, thoughtfully.
+
+“I was sure I did,” Mollie replied. “But sometimes one remembers
+imaginary things. And if the money had been in the room when I came in,
+it would be there now. I’ll ask mother——”
+
+“No, don’t,” said Barbara quickly; “at least, not yet.” Mrs. Thurston
+had gone into the kitchen directly after her return from the gate, and
+had heard none of the conversation. “There’s no need to worry mother
+about it now. Of course we must find it somewhere. Money doesn’t walk
+off by itself. We’ll go out and look in the grass under the window.”
+
+On hands and knees the girls worked through the closely cropped grass
+underneath the sitting room window. Not two days before, they themselves
+had clipped this bit of lawn with big shears, and it was so close that
+there seemed no possibility of anything being hidden in it. Certainly
+nothing was to be found. The girls even looked over the short path, and
+ground near it. “Your skirts might have switched those small things a
+long way,” observed Mollie, wisely. Yet, as before, the result
+was—nothing.
+
+Giving it up, at last, the girls sat down in a little garden seat at one
+side of the tiny yard, and looked at each other ruefully.
+
+“I am so glad I feel sure Miss Stuart will invite us to her party, now,”
+commented Mollie dryly. “Our new gowns and the pink hair ribbons and the
+silk stockings will be so awfully fetching! But where, where, where, by
+all that’s mysterious, can those double-eagles have flown?”
+
+Suddenly she looked curiously at her sister. “Barbara, you are thinking
+of something!” she exclaimed. “Have you any nameable idea?”
+
+“No,” said Barbara, quickly; “it isn’t nameable.”
+
+“All right; you never would talk when you didn’t want to,” complained
+Mollie. “And I know you want that money back as badly as I do. Tell you
+what—I’ll say the fairies’ charm. Don’t you remember the one the old
+gypsy woman taught us? Wish she were here to say it for us! She promised
+to do all sorts of things for me when I found her in the field with a
+sprained ankle and helped her back to camp. Why! why! Barbara, this is
+_uncanny_—she’s coming now!”
+
+In truth, down the road a queer little bent figure was seen approaching.
+“I know her,” continued Mollie eagerly, “by that funny combination of
+red and yellow handkerchiefs she wears on her head. Do let’s go and meet
+her and tell her—it can’t do any harm.”
+
+“What nonsense, Mollie!” laughed Barbara. But she followed her younger
+sister, who had already started down the road toward the quaint, little,
+gaudily-turbaned dame.
+
+Between them, the girls brought her into the yard, Mollie meanwhile
+busily explaining their predicament. “You’ll help us, won’t you, Granny
+Ann?” she coaxed childishly. “You said, that time that I helped you
+home, you’d always be near when I wanted you.”
+
+Granny Ann sat on the garden seat, looking gravely down at the
+half-laughing, half-serious girls huddled at her feet.
+
+“I knowed,” she began in a high, cracked voice, “I knowed my little fair
+one,” lightly touching Mollie’s curls, “would need me to-day. Far away I
+was, when I heard the shadow of her voice callin’ out to me—and miles I
+have traveled to reach her. Granny Ann is thirsty, and she has had no
+food since morning.” The old woman looked reproachfully at her
+listeners.
+
+Barbara’s eyes twinkled at Mollie’s rather crestfallen face, when the
+sybil voiced this most human request. But she said cheerily: “All right,
+Granny; supper isn’t ready yet, but I know mother’ll have something.”
+Then Barbara hurried into the house, the gypsy dame waiting solemnly
+until she reappeared, a moment later, with sandwiches, doughnuts and a
+big glass of milk.
+
+Granny Ann smiled, but she didn’t speak until the lunch had quite
+disappeared. Then the old woman rose impressively. “There’s one sure
+magic for fetching back money that has gone,” she declaimed. “Because
+you have been good to me, ‘Little Fair One,’ you and your sister, I will
+say the golden spell for you.” With her hands crossed, Granny Ann began
+to croon dreamily:
+
+ Gold is gladsome, gold is gay,
+ Here to-night and gone to-day,
+ Here to-day and gone to-morrow,
+ Guest of joy and host of sorrow.
+ Gold of mine that’s flitted far,
+ Forget me not, where’er you are.
+ Mine you are, as Pluto wrought you,
+ Mine you are, whoever’s sought you,
+ Come by sea or come by land—
+ Homeward fly into my hand!
+
+Three times Granny Ann repeated this. Then, with a queer dignity, oddly
+assorting with her variegated raiment, she turned to the girls. “It will
+return,” she said; “now, I must go to my own people.”
+
+“But I thought you said you came here for us by yourself!” protested
+Mollie.
+
+The gypsy dame drew herself up. “I travel not alone!” she said, stiffly.
+“Good-bye.”
+
+“Oh, good-bye, and thanks ever so much, Granny Ann!” cried both of the
+girls.
+
+But Granny Ann did not turn her head. Barbara looked at Mollie, her eyes
+dancing. “The blessed old fraud!” she teased; “her people decided to
+camp somewhere about, and she thought she’d come over for a call and a
+lunch, and whatever else she could get! I believe she actually expected
+us to cross her palm with silver for saying that little rhyme. But I
+wish I knew really——”
+
+All at once a faint chug-chug sounded in the distance. In a moment a big
+red touring car appeared, enveloped in dust. “Why, it looks like Ruth’s
+car!” exclaimed Mollie, excitedly. “Yes, I do believe that young man
+seated beside the chauffeur is the Mr. Townsend who was with them.
+Barbara——”
+
+But Barbara was walking quickly toward the gate. A moment later the
+automobile stopped before it, and Harry Townsend stepped out.
+
+“Miss Thurston,” he began, soberly, “have you lost any money?”
+
+“Oh, yes!” burst out Mollie, who was just behind, before Barbara could
+speak; “two twenty-dollar gold-pieces! We’ve hunted and hunted. We had
+them this afternoon——”
+
+“Then these must be yours,” said the young man, extending his hand to
+Barbara. In it were two golden double-eagles. “When the young ladies
+were getting out at the hotel these were found on the seat, and Miss
+Stuart was sure you had dropped them out of your pocket, Miss Thurston,
+during the few moments you were in the machine. I am very glad to be
+able to restore them to you.”
+
+“Yes,” said Barbara, “but I——” Then she stopped. “Thank you, Mr.
+Townsend,” she said, giving him a clear, direct glance. For some unknown
+reason the young man’s eyes wavered under it, and he climbed hurriedly
+into the automobile. “I am very glad,” he murmured again.
+
+“Miss Stuart expects you to-morrow,” he added quickly, and the machine
+backed round and hurried off.
+
+Barbara stood looking at it, the money still in her hand. But Mollie was
+laughing happily. Then she saw Barbara’s face. “Barbara, what is it,
+dear?” she demanded. “You look exactly as you did before Granny Ann
+appeared, and I asked you if you were thinking of something. What is it?
+Can’t you tell me?”
+
+Barbara shook her head. “It really isn’t anything, Molliekins. I did
+have an idea in my head, but I must be mistaken somehow. You are sure
+you saw the money on the table after I left the room? It must have been
+there, then, when the crowd from the automobile came in. I thought I saw
+some one standing near the table with one hand resting on it, when I
+came back and called out: ‘Now, I’ve caught you!’ But I must not think
+anything more about it. Please don’t ask me any questions. Let us just
+be glad we have the money back. It is queer, though. Mr. Townsend says
+the money was found on the seat. I wonder who found it, and whether it
+was found on the front or back seat? Let’s ask Grace. I don’t understand
+it. But he brought the money back, and he’s Miss Stuart’s friend. Of
+course we will keep quiet, you and I, Mollie, whether the money was
+lost, strayed or stolen!”
+
+“Well, I am sure, Barbara Thurston,” Mollie answered a little
+indignantly, “I am not likely to talk of what I know nothing about. If
+there is any mystery about the disappearance of that money, I am sure
+you have left me utterly in the dark.”
+
+“Don’t be cross,” said Barbara, putting her arm in Mollie’s. “But do you
+know if Mr. Townsend is a special friend of Gladys’s?”
+
+Mollie shook her head. “How should I know?” she said. “Let’s go in, it’s
+nearly dark.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III—RUTH’S PERFECT PLAN
+
+
+Wonderment over the mystery of the money, and excited anticipation of
+Ruth Stuart’s luncheon and “plan,” kept the Thurston girls from getting
+to sleep very early that night. They awoke bright and fresh next
+morning, nevertheless. Just before eleven they started on their two-mile
+tramp to the hotel. They were hardly out of sight of the house, however,
+when what should they see but the now familiar red car speeding toward
+them. “Look—yes, it is!” cried Mollie. “Ruth herself is making it go!”
+
+The young driver waved a free hand for a second, as she neared them,
+then wheeled in a broad turn and stopped. “I was so afraid you might
+have started,” she protested tactfully, “for it is such a fine morning
+for a nice leisurely walk. I was so anxious to see you that I simply
+couldn’t wait, and I told Dad I’d take the ‘bubble’ and spin out to meet
+you. Now, won’t you please hop in, and ride back with me?”
+
+The girls “hopped” with delighted celerity, and Ruth turned back to them
+for a moment. “I have reams to talk about,” she continued, “but, to tell
+you the truth, I want my father to be with us, when I begin. So, now, if
+you don’t mind, we’ll just ride.”
+
+Neither Mollie nor Barbara will ever forget their first ride. “I felt as
+if I had chartered my own private flying machine, and I was sure the
+angels were jealous,” Mollie confessed, naïvely, at lunch.
+
+They reached the hotel very quickly, and after a cosy chat on the
+private balcony belonging to Ruth’s tiny suite of rooms, found
+themselves seated around a little table in a cool, palm-shaded corner of
+the big dining-room. Between them, opposite Ruth, sat big, blue-eyed,
+open-hearted, Robert Stuart, Ruth’s “Dad.”
+
+Robert Stuart had made his fortune out West, in the mining country. That
+was how he started, anyway. For years, now, he had lived in Chicago,
+buying and selling real estate in the vicinity. There his wife had died,
+and there his eighteen-year-old daughter Ruth had spent nearly all her
+life. During the summers she had traveled more or less, and the last few
+years had frequently gone East. Her father’s sister, Aunt Sallie Stuart,
+had brought the girl up since her mother’s death, which had occurred
+when Ruth was a little girl. Aunt Sallie was not present at the
+luncheon, because of a bad headache. “Grace Carter has come over and is
+staying with her, like a dear,” Ruth explained. Later, if Auntie felt
+better, the girls were to go up to her room.
+
+Ruth, as has appeared, was an extremely impulsive young person.
+Fortunately, most of her impulses were inspired by a natural kindliness,
+and a cheerful, youthful energy, with a stratum of good common sense at
+bottom. There was apt to be method in her madness. Her “plan,” for
+instance, had long been her desire, but before she had never seen the
+way.
+
+Ruth couldn’t wait for the cold boullion to be taken off. “Father, I
+want to tell them now!” she exclaimed. After his cheerful, “Go ahead,
+daughter,” she burst out: “Barbara, Mollie, won’t you go on an
+automobile tour to Newport with Grace Carter and me, with Aunt Sallie
+for chaperon? Won’t you, can’t you come?”
+
+While the amazed girls could only look at her and at each other, she
+hurried on: “Oh, yes, you probably think I’m crazy. But I’m not. You see
+it’s like this: all my life I have longed to travel by myself; at least,
+with the people I want, not in a train, or a big crowded boat. Dad knows
+the feeling; it’s what makes him run away from Chicago, and get out on
+the prairies and ride and ride and ride! I’m a girl, so I can’t do that
+or lots of things. But I can run an automobile. For two years I have
+just been waiting to get the right crowd. Grace is a dear, but I wanted
+two more. The other girls I know are all right to meet at dances and to
+see now and then; but they’d collapse at the thought of starting off on
+a lark like this. You two—you’re different, I knew it the minute I saw
+you. Besides,” she continued, “Grace has been telling me things about
+you. I always know right off whether I like anybody, and it doesn’t take
+long to find out how much I like them. I like both of you a whole
+lot—and I know we will have a perfectly delightful trip if you will go
+with me. If you don’t, I simply can’t go—that’s all. It would be absurd
+setting off in that great machine with only Grace and Aunt Sallie to
+rattle around like two peas in a pod. Daddie understands, and he likes
+you just the way I do—I can see it in his eyes. So it’s just up to you!
+Do you like me a little bit—well, say enough to visit me in my
+automobile for a month or so? Oh, please say you do!”
+
+She stopped, her voice catching impulsively over the last words.
+Barbara’s eyes were shining. “I don’t believe we need to tell you that,”
+she said softly; “you must just know. But there’s mother. And we haven’t
+the money.”
+
+“Now that’s not fair,” Ruth broke in. “The money is out of the question
+altogether. You are my guests. Why, it’s you who will do me the favor,”
+she pleaded, as she caught the look of dissent on Barbara’s face.
+“Remember, if you fail me, I can’t have my trip at all—and I have been
+looking forward to it for two whole years. As for your mother, if she
+will consent to it, Dad and I have a beautiful plan, to keep her and Dad
+both from being lonely. Poor Dad is sick and tired of hotel cooking and
+I told him all about your dear little cottage and the dandy tea and
+cookies your mother makes, and—and—do you suppose your mother would let
+Dad take his meals with her while we are away? Then he won’t be too
+wretched living all alone up here. Also, you wouldn’t have to worry
+about your mother, nor would I have to worry about Dad. Aunt Sallie has
+been with him so long that I don’t know what he’d do all by himself. He
+could get on very well, if only your mother would look after him at
+meals, I know that.
+
+“Now I won’t say another word about it for the rest of our lunch. Then
+we’ll run in and call on Aunt Sallie. Afterward we will take the car out
+and see your mother, and get her to say yes! Then you’ll say it, too,
+won’t you? But don’t let’s spoil this good chicken salad, through
+worrying about it.”
+
+In a more or less complete, yet altogether happy silence, the luncheon
+was finished. Ruth and her father did not try to force their guests to
+talk, realizing that the girls would want to think. From the smiling
+glances the two Stuarts exchanged now and then it was evident they hoped
+the thinking would have a happy outcome.
+
+After the last course had been served, and the finger bowls, a sprig of
+rose geranium floating in each, had been pushed aside, Ruth said
+quietly: “Now we will go to see Aunt Sallie for a few minutes. Daddie,
+you’ll have the machine at the door?”
+
+The girls filed into the elevator, and soon were speeding down a long
+hall to Aunt Sallie’s suite, just across from Ruth’s. The latter knocked
+softly, and Grace Carter came to the door. “Yes, ever so much better,”
+Grace murmured, in reply to Ruth’s whispered inquiry. “She wants you to
+be sure to come in with your friends before they go. Yes; I am sure she
+would be glad to see them now.”
+
+As the girls entered the vestibule of the apartment, Grace gave
+Barbara’s hand a furtive squeeze, and whispered: “I’ll just never
+recover if you don’t come.” There was no chance for a reply, for a
+precise, though rather kindly voice called from the room beyond: “Ruth,
+please bring your friends in here.”
+
+With some trepidation the girls advanced toward “Aunt Sallie.” She was a
+somewhat stout woman, who reclined on a couch in a handsome violet
+negligée. She scanned the girls sharply for a moment, then in her
+carefully enunciated syllables, which contrasted oddly with her smooth,
+plump face, she said: “So you’re the young ladies who stop runaway
+horses! Well, I never could have done it when I was young. But I’m sure
+I am indebted to you, and I am happy to know you, my dears. I hope and
+trust, since my madcap niece is bound to take her trip, that you will
+come along to keep her company.”
+
+The girls smiled, and Ruth murmured to them: “You see, you really must
+come for the sake of my family!” Then Aunt Sallie stretched out two
+plump, jeweled hands and remarked: “I am sure I shall see a great deal
+of you very soon, my dears, and you will see all you want to of me. So,
+if you don’t mind, I’ll ask you to excuse me now, my head is so tired.”
+
+“She likes to take a cat-nap pretty often,” explained irreverent Ruth,
+as soon as they were safely outside the door. “But Aunt Sallie is a good
+sort, just the same, and the best possible dragon for our trip. Your
+mother needn’t be in the least afraid to trust you to her. Now for your
+mother,” Ruth added as the girls entered the elevator.
+
+In front of the broad piazza, the automobile waited on the driveway,
+with Mr. Stuart as chauffeur. “Pile in,” he smiled, and, in a trice, the
+girls were whirled homeward once more.
+
+There a mighty conference was held. At first, Mrs. Thurston simply
+gasped. Then she dumbly shook her head. Barbara and Mollie both
+protested that nothing would persuade them to leave their mother against
+her wishes. As Ruth said afterwards, “Daddie did the whole thing.” He
+explained to the girls, and to their mother, how brief the separation
+would be. To the mother he expatiated on the delights and educational
+value of such a trip. To the girls he hinted, delicately, that perhaps
+the little mother would get a bit of a rest, all by herself, for a few
+weeks, even with him to take care of. To all present Mr. Stuart enlarged
+upon the duty of charity toward him, a homeless vacation visitor,
+starving from eating only hotel food, and toward his daughter, a
+sisterless girl with a longing for friends. Though the Thurstons shook
+their heads, between smiles and tears, at the absurdity of these
+arguments, they finally said a grateful “yes.”
+
+“One really doesn’t need any clothes except veils and dusters for an
+automobile trip, and I have a big extra stock of those,” concluded Ruth.
+“I want to run up here for you people—let me see—to-day is Friday—next
+Monday morning. That’s such a nice day to start.”
+
+“Yes,” again cried Mollie and Barbara.
+
+The girls joined hands and made a low curtsey to Mrs. Thurston and Mr.
+Stuart. “Allow me to introduce you,” said Ruth in her most impressive
+voice, “to ‘The Automobile Girls’ on their way to Newport.”
+
+“Long may they flourish!” concluded Mr. Stuart, turning to the girls’
+mother. “I’ll come up with Ruth and help you start them off, Mrs.
+Thurston. Then, if I may, I will come back and have lunch with you later
+in the day.”
+
+“Till Monday!” called Ruth, and the machine whirled off.
+
+Barbara and Mollie watched it from the gate. “I wish—I wish I could do
+something for them,” mused Barbara, her chin sunk in her hand, her brown
+eyes showing that soft brightness that only came to them when she was
+greatly moved.
+
+How well she was to repay the Stuart kith and kin she could not then
+guess.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV—MOTHER’S SECRET
+
+
+Mollie danced into the kitchen, waving the feather duster. “I’m so
+happy, I can’t keep still!” she declared, waltzing in a circle around
+her mother and Barbara, who were in the kitchen washing the breakfast
+dishes.
+
+“It is just as well you don’t have to,” Mrs. Thurston laughed. “But,
+children, do be sensible a minute,” she urged, as Barbara joined in the
+dance, still polishing a breakfast tumbler. “I’ve been thinking, that
+going to Newport, if only to stay a few days, _does_ mean more clothes
+than automobile coats and motor veils.”
+
+“Now, you are not to worry, mother dearest,” interrupted Barbara, “or we
+won’t go a single step. Beside, have you forgotten the twenty-dollar
+gold-pieces? They are a fortune, two fortunes really.” Barbara had been
+doing some pretty deep thinking herself, on the clothes question, but it
+would never do to let her thoughts be known. As elder daughter she tried
+to save her mother from all the worries she could. “While there are no
+men around in the family, you’ll just have to pretend I’m older son
+instead of daughter,” she used to say. “When Mollie marries I’ll
+resign.”
+
+“I’m through dusting,” Mollie called from the dining-room. “This time I
+am surely going to get paper and pencil to put down what clothes we most
+need, if Barbara won’t stop any runaway horses while I am away.”
+
+Mollie’s golden head and Barbara’s tawny one bent anxiously over the
+paper.
+
+“Ruth’s such an impetuous dear! Starting off on our trip Monday does not
+give us time to get anything new. Mother, will you go in to town
+shopping for us, and then send the clothes on later? I suppose we shall
+be on the road some time. Ruth says we are to stop in any of the places
+we like, and see all the sights along the way,” continued Barbara.
+
+Gloves, ribbons, stockings, hair ribbons, and—oh, dear, yes! A pink sash
+for Bab and a blue one for Mollie. Forty dollars wasn’t such a fortune
+after all. Where was the money left over for the party dresses? Both
+girls looked a little crestfallen, but Barbara shook her head at Mollie
+as a signal not to say anything aloud.
+
+Mother had come into the open dining-room door and was watching the
+girls’ faces.
+
+“I’ve a secret,” Mrs. Thurston said, after a minute. “A beautiful secret
+that I have been keeping to myself for over a year, now. But I think
+to-day is the best time I can find to tell it.” Mrs. Thurston was
+fragile and blond, like Mollie, with a delicate color in her cheeks, and
+the sweetest smile in the world.
+
+“It’s a nice secret, mother, I can tell by your face.” Mollie put her
+arm around her mother and pulled her down in a chair, while she and Bab
+sat on either side of her. “Now, out with it!” they both cried.
+
+“Daughters,” Mrs. Thurston lowered her voice and spoke in a whisper,
+“upstairs, in my room in the back part of my desk is an old bank book.
+What do you think is pressed between the pages?” She paused a minute,
+and Mollie gave her arm a little shake. “In that book,” the mother
+continued, “are two fifty-dollar bills; one is labeled ‘Bab’ and the
+other is labeled ‘Baby.’” Mrs. Thurston still called her big,
+fourteen-year-old daughter “baby” when no one was near.
+
+Mollie and Barbara could only stare at each other, and at their mother
+in surprise.
+
+“Please, and where did they come from?” queried Barbara.
+
+“They came from nickels and dimes, and sometimes pennies,” Mrs. Thurston
+replied, as pleased and excited as the girls. “Only a week ago, I went
+to the bank and had the money changed into the two big bills. Oh, I’ve
+been saving some time. I saw my girls were growing up, and I imagined
+that, some day, something nice would happen—not just this, perhaps, but
+something equally exciting. So I wanted to be ready, and I am. I will
+get the prettiest clothes I can buy for the money, and I’ll have Miss
+Mattie, the seamstress, in to help me. When you arrive in the
+fashionable world of Newport, new outfits will be awaiting my two
+girls.”
+
+Mrs. Thurston’s face was radiant over the joys in store for her
+daughters, but Barbara’s eyes were full of tears. She knew what pinching
+and saving, what sacrifices the two banknotes meant.
+
+Soon Bab asked: “You don’t need me any more, do you, mother? Because, if
+you don’t, I am going up to look in the treasure chest. I want to find
+something to re-trim Mollie’s hat. The roses are so faded, on the one
+she is wearing, it will never do to wear with her nice spring suit.”
+
+There was a little attic over the cottage, and it almost belonged to
+Barbara. Up there she used to study her lessons, write poetry, and dream
+of the wonderful things she hoped to do in order to make mother and
+Mollie rich.
+
+Barbara skipped over to the trunk, where they kept odds and ends of
+faded finery, gifts from rich cousins who sent their cast-off clothes to
+the little girls. “This is like Pandora’s chest,” laughed Barbara to
+herself. “It looks as if everything, now, has gone out of it, except
+Hope.”
+
+Bump! bang! crash! the chandelier shivered over Mrs. Thurston and
+Mollie’s heads. Both started up with the one word, “Bab,” on their lips.
+It was impossible to know what she would attempt, or what would happen
+to her next.
+
+Just as they reached the foot of the attic steps an apologetic head
+appeared over the railing. “I am not hurt,” Bab’s voice explained. “I
+just tried to move the old bureau so I could see better, and I knocked
+over a trunk. I am so sorry, mother, but the trunk has broken open. It
+is that old one of yours. I know it made an awful racket!”
+
+“It does not matter, child,” Mrs. Thurston said in a relieved tone, when
+she saw what had actually happened. “Nothing matters, since you have not
+killed yourself.”
+
+She bent over her trunk. The old lock had been loosened by the fall, and
+the top had tumbled off. On the floor were a yellow roll of papers, and
+a quaint carved fan. Mrs. Thurston picked them up. The papers she
+dropped in the tray of the trunk, but the fan she kept in her hand.
+“This little fan,” she said, “I used at the last party your father and I
+attended together the week before we were married. I have kept it a long
+time, and I think it very beautiful.” She opened, with loving fingers, a
+fan of delicately-carved ivory, mounted in silver, and hung on a curious
+silver chain. “Your great-uncle brought it to me from China, when I was
+just your age, Mollie! It was given him by a viceroy, in recognition of
+a service rendered. Which of my daughters would like to take this fan to
+Newport?”
+
+Barbara shook her head, while Mollie looked at it with longing eyes. “I
+don’t believe either of us had better take it,” protested Bab, “you have
+kept it so carefully all this time.”
+
+But her mother said decidedly: “I saved it only for you girls. Here,
+Mollie, suppose you take it; we will find something else for Bab.”
+
+As Mollie and her mother lifted out the tray of the old trunk, Bab’s
+eyes caught sight of the roll of papers, and she picked them up.
+
+“Hello, hello!” a cheerful voice sounded from downstairs.
+
+“It’s Grace Carter,” said Mollie. “You don’t mind her coming up, do you,
+mother?”
+
+Grace was almost a third daughter at the little Thurston cottage. Her
+own home was big and dull! her mother was a stern, cold woman, and her
+two brothers were much older than Grace.
+
+“No,” said Mrs. Thurston, going on with her search.
+
+“I couldn’t keep away, chilluns,” apologized Grace as she came upstairs.
+“Mother told me I’d be dreadfully in the way, but I just had to talk
+about our trip. Isn’t it too splendid! You are not having secrets, are
+you?”
+
+“Not from you,” Mrs. Thurston said. “See what I have found for Bab.”
+Mrs. Thurston held out an open jewel-case. In it was a beautiful spray
+of pink coral, and a round coral pin.
+
+“I think, Bab, dear,” she said, “you are old enough, now, for such
+simple jewelry. I will buy you a white muslin, and you can wear this pin
+at your throat and the spray in your hair. Then, with a coral ribbon
+sash, who knows but you may be one of the belles of a Newport party?”
+
+Barbara flushed with pleasure over the gifts, but she looked so
+embarrassed at her mother’s compliment that Mollie and Grace both
+laughed.
+
+“I declare,” Grace said, “you have less vanity than any girl in the
+world. Oh, wasn’t it fortunate I discovered your money yesterday? Just
+as we all jumped out of the car I heard something clink, and picked up
+one of your twenty dollars. Harry Townsend said he found the other
+tucked away in the leather of the front seat.”
+
+“And I sat in the back seat all the time I was in the car,” reflected
+Barbara, under her breath.
+
+When a turquoise blue heart on a string of tiny beads had been added to
+Mollie’s “going-away” treasures, she and Grace went down stairs.
+
+Barbara still held the roll of papers in her hand and kept turning them
+over and over, trying to read the faded writing. She caught sight of her
+father’s signature. “Are these papers valuable?” she asked her mother.
+
+Mrs. Thurston sighed deeply as she answered: “They are old papers of
+your father’s. Put them away again. I never like to look at them. I
+found them in his business suit after he was dead. He had sent it to the
+tailor, and had forgotten all about it.” Mrs. Thurston took the papers
+from Barbara’s hand and put them back into her trunk.
+
+“Do you think they are valuable, mother?” persisted Barbara.
+
+“I don’t think so,” her mother concluded. “Your uncle told me he looked
+over all your father’s papers that were of any value.”
+
+After the two had mended the lock of the old trunk, and turned to leave
+the attic, Barbara was still thinking. “Dearest,” she said thoughtfully,
+“would you mind my going through those papers some time?” To herself Bab
+added: “I’d like to ask a clever business man, like Mr. Stuart, to
+explain them to me.”
+
+But Mrs. Thurston sighed as she said: “Oh, yes, you may look them over,
+some day, if you like. It won’t make any difference.”
+
+What difference it might make neither Mrs. Thurston or Barbara could
+then know.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V—THE GLORIOUS START
+
+
+Before daylight, on the great day, Mollie’s two arms encircled a sleepy
+Barbara, and a soft voice whispered in her ear: “It isn’t true, is it,
+Bab, that you and I, two insignificant little girls, who never could
+have conceived of anything so glorious, are off to-day for Newport,
+escorted by Ruth’s distinguished friend, ‘Mr. A. Bubble’?”
+
+Barbara was wide awake in a minute.
+
+“I suppose it’s true,” she said, “because it was last night, before we
+went to bed. Otherwise I would think we had both dreamed it.”
+
+The two girls talked in excited whispers. It wouldn’t do to waken mother
+any earlier than they must, for she was tired with their preparations,
+though her daughters had persuaded her to have a little country girl in
+to help with the work, now that she was to have so important a person as
+Mr. Stuart for “boarder.”
+
+But at seven o’clock it was mother who called:
+
+“Get up, girls. It is time for coffee and clothes, if you are to start
+off at ten as you promised. It will not do to keep Miss Stuart and the
+girls waiting. As for Mr. A. Bubble, I don’t believe he can stand still,
+even if he tries.”
+
+Aunt Sallie having called on Sunday afternoon, had waived ceremony and
+stayed to tea in the tiny cottage, so impressed was she with Mrs.
+Thurston’s quiet charm and gentle manners.
+
+The two girls hurried into their kimonos. Mother had suggested these
+garments for this morning, since they were to dress so soon afterwards
+in their “going away” clothes.
+
+By the time that Barbara and Mollie had put on their pretty brown and
+blue serge suits, with their dust coats over them, they heard strange
+noises on the front porch, mingled with giggles and whispers. Barbara
+was putting the sixth hat pin into her hat, and tying the motor veil so
+tightly under her chin that it choked her, when Mollie peeped out the
+front window.
+
+“It’s a surprise party, I do believe,” she whispered. “There’s Harold
+Smith, with a big bunch of pink roses. I know they are for you. The
+girls have little bundles in their hands. What fun! I didn’t know they
+had heard of our trip. How fast news _does_ fly around this village.”
+
+While Mollie and Barbara were saying their good-byes on their little
+veranda there was equal excitement at the big hotel.
+
+Before breakfast Ruth had gone out to the garage with her arm in her
+father’s.
+
+“I want to see with my own eyes, Dad,” she said, “that the machine is
+all right. Isn’t it well that I have a taste for mechanics, even though
+I am a girl? Suppose I hadn’t studied all those automobile books with
+you until I could say them backwards, and hadn’t helped you over all the
+accidents—you never would have let me go on this heavenly trip, would
+you? I am going to be as careful as can be, just to show you did right
+to trust me, also not to give Aunt Sallie a chance to say, ‘I told you
+so.’”
+
+Ruth had pretty, sunny, red-gold hair and big, gray-blue eyes. Though
+she wasn’t exactly a beauty, her face was so frank, and her coloring so
+fresh and lovely, many people thought her very good-looking.
+
+Mr. Stuart smiled at his daughter’s enthusiasm. “She’s ‘a chip of the
+old block,’” he said to himself. “She loves fun and adventure and
+‘getting there,’ like a man. I am not going to stand in her way.”
+
+Mr. Stuart was feeling rather nervous about the trip this morning, but
+he didn’t intend Ruth to know.
+
+To judge by the looks of the automobile, the chauffeur must have been up
+all night. The machinery was cleaned and oiled. The extra tires, in
+their dark red leather cases, were strapped to the sides of the car. A
+great box of extra rugs and wraps, rubber covers for the machine and
+mackintoshes in case of rain, was tied on the back. Between the seats
+was an open hamper for lunch, with an English tea service in one
+compartment, and cups, saucers, a teapot and a hot-water jug and alcohol
+lamp, all complete. The luncheon was to be sent down later from the
+hotel.
+
+“You are to take your meals at the inns along the way, when you prefer,”
+Mr. Stuart had explained, “but I don’t mean to have you run the risk of
+starving in case you are delayed, or an accident occurs. Be sure to take
+your picnic lunch along with you, when you start out each day. What you
+don’t eat, feed to the small boys along the road, who will insist on
+playing guide.”
+
+Aunt Sallie was the only one of the hotel party who enjoyed breakfast.
+Grace had driven over early, and was breakfasting with Ruth in order to
+save delay. Both the girls and Mr. Stuart were too excited to take much
+interest in their bacon and eggs, but Aunt Sallie ate with a resigned
+expression that seemed to say: “Perhaps this is my last meal on earth.”
+Yet, secretly, she was almost as delighted as were the girls in the
+prospect of the trip.
+
+“Now, Sallie, you are not to go if you don’t wish to,” Mr. Stuart had
+protested. “You must not let Ruth drag you into this trip against your
+will.”
+
+But all he could persuade his sister to answer was: “If Ruth is going on
+such an extraordinary excursion, then, at least, I shall be along to see
+that nothing worse happens to her.”
+
+Gladys Le Baron came into the dining-room, stopping in front of Ruth’s
+table. “You dear things,” she drawled in her most careful society
+manner, “how can you look so fresh so early in the morning? I hope you
+appreciate my getting up to see you off.” Gladys wore a lingerie frock
+more appropriate for a party than for the breakfast room.
+
+But Ruth answered good naturedly. “I do appreciate it, if it is such an
+effort for you. Did you know Mr. Townsend is going to ride over to the
+Thurston’s with us to see us start? He tells me you and he are both to
+be in Newport while we are there.”
+
+“Yes,” Gladys declared with more airs than before. “Mrs. Erwin has asked
+me to be one of the house-party she’s to have for her ball. She told me
+I could bring a friend along, and I have asked Mr. Townsend.”
+
+“Wonderful! We won’t expect you to associate with us!” laughed Grace.
+
+“Gladys,” Ruth asked, “would you like to drive over to Mrs. Thurston’s
+with us? Father is going, and the carriage will be there to bring him
+back.”
+
+“I would like to go,” murmured Gladys, “if I didn’t have on this old
+frock. I don’t know Mollie and Barbara very well, but I suppose I shall
+have to see a great deal of them, now you have taken them up. I wonder
+how they will behave at Newport? They have hardly been out of
+Kingsbridge before.”
+
+Grace and Ruth both looked angry, and Mr. Stuart broke in, quite curtly:
+“I am sure we can depend on their behaving becomingly, which is all that
+is necessary at Newport or any other place.” Ruth’s father was a
+business acquaintance of Gladys’s father, and had known her mother when
+the latter was a girl, but the airs of Mrs. Le Baron and her society
+daughter were too much for his western common sense. Only Aunt Sallie
+was impressed by their imposing manner.
+
+Ruth was very popular at the big summer hotel, and a number of the
+guests had assembled to see her off. But Ruth let her father run the car
+and sat quietly by his side. “You’ll turn over the command to me,
+captain, won’t you, when the trip really commences?” and she squeezed
+his arm with a little movement of affection.
+
+“Yes, lieutenant,” Mr. Stuart said quietly.
+
+“Oh, Miss Ruth,” called Mr. Townsend from the back seat, “do show all
+these people how you can handle your car!” But she only shook her head.
+
+“Goodness me, what are all those people doing on Mrs. Thurston’s porch?”
+Ruth asked, in alarm. “I hope nothing has happened.” But, as the car
+neared the quiet little house, which stood midway between the hotel and
+the New York high road, she saw the party of young people gathered on
+the front lawn.
+
+“It’s only their friends, come to say good-bye to them,” Harry
+volunteered. In answer to “What a bore!” from Gladys, he continued: “I
+don’t know why you should think it a bore. Miss Stuart enjoys her
+friends’s popularity.” Mr. Townsend had been trying, for several weeks,
+to make himself equally agreeable to Ruth and Gladys. They were both
+very wealthy, and it seemed wise to him to associate with rich people.
+But as Ruth was not easily impressed with what she called “just
+foolishness,” he had become very intimate with Gladys Le Baron.
+
+When Mr. Stuart tooted the horn to announce their approach to the
+cottage a chorus of tin horns answered him from Mrs. Thurston’s front
+garden. As the car drew up to the gate, the boys and girls began to
+sing, “See the Conquering Hero Comes,” while Barbara ran down to the car
+and Mollie urged her friends to be quieter. “I just don’t know what Miss
+Stuart and Mr. Stuart will think of us!” she blushingly remonstrated.
+
+But Aunt Sallie and Mr. Stuart were in for all the fun going this
+morning. Barbara was invited to call her seven friends who had come to
+give the girls a send-off, down to meet the occupants of the car. Even
+Gladys, as she was forced to get out of the automobile to let the other
+travelers in, was condescending enough to permit Harold Smith to assist
+her. Harold was an old friend of Barbara’s, and one of the cleverest
+boys in the village.
+
+Mr. Stuart went into the house for the suit cases and satchels, which
+were all the girls were to take with them, as they were to manage with
+as few clothes as possible. It had been arranged that extra luggage was
+to be expressed to them along the way.
+
+Barbara had caught Mollie storing away a sample package of cold cream
+among her most treasured possessions.
+
+“I am sure I don’t see why you should laugh so,” Mollie urged quite
+seriously. “It reads on the label ‘especially adapted for automobile
+travelers to remove dust and tan from the face after the drive.’ Aren’t
+we going to be automobile travelers?”
+
+“Sure and we a’ire,” said Bab, imitating the old Irish washerwoman, “and
+it shall put grease on its nose if it likes.”
+
+“Come, daughter,” said Mr. Stuart finally, as Ruth was trying to explain
+to a group of admiring boys the first principles of running an
+automobile. She talked as familiarly of an emergency brake and a
+steering wheel, of horse power and speed-transmission, as most girls
+talk of frills and furbelows.
+
+“It’s ten-thirty,” Mr. Stuart continued, “and, if this party is to be a
+strictly on time affair, you must be off! You couldn’t have a more
+wonderful day.”
+
+It was late in the month of June. The summer clouds were sailing
+overhead, great bubbles of white foam thrown up into the blue depth of
+the sky. The sun shone brightly and the whole atmosphere was perfumed
+with the bloom of the honeysuckle, that hung in yellow clusters from
+Mrs. Thurston’s porch.
+
+Barbara and Mollie flung their arms around their mother until she was
+completely enveloped in their embrace. Ruth kissed her father, and put
+her hand to her trim leather cap with a military salute. “It’s all
+right, captain,” she said; “I’ll bring my crew and good ship ‘Bubble’
+safely into port.”
+
+Aunt Sallie was anxious to be off. She could see that Mrs. Thurston was
+on the verge of tears at the thought of parting with her daughters.
+Still the young people were laughing and talking, and storing their
+little gifts under the seats in the car, as though they had all day
+before them.
+
+“Hurry, child,” Aunt Sallie urged, reaching out a hand to Mollie. “Jump
+up on the back seat with Grace and me. We will let Mistress Barbara sit
+with Ruth for the first of the journey.” Aunt Sallie was very imposing
+in a violet silk traveling coat, with a veil and hat of the same shade;
+indeed, Miss Sallie had a fancy for a “touch of lavender” in everything
+she wore. With her snow-white hair, and commanding appearance, she would
+add prestige to the party, Mollie thought, no matter how dusty and
+wind-blown the rest of them might appear.
+
+The girls hopped gayly in. Toot, toot, toot! the horn blew three times.
+Chug-chug-chug! and the great machine began to breathe with deep,
+muffled roars. Mr. Stuart gave the starting crank a strong turn, and the
+car slid gracefully along the road, red, blue, pink and violet motor
+veils floating behind in the breeze.
+
+“Here’s good luck to you!” shouted Harold Smith, and roses and flowers
+of every kind were flung after them. Mollie and Grace picked up those
+that fell into their laps, and turned to wave their hands and throw
+kisses for good-bye.
+
+“They look like a rainbow,” said Mr. Stuart, turning to Mrs. Thurston,
+who was no longer trying to hide her tears. Then he smiled at her
+gently. She was such a tiny, girlish-looking little woman, it was hard
+to think of her as the mother of two nearly grown-up daughters. “I
+expect,” he continued, “that that rainbow holds most of our promise of
+sunshine.”
+
+They were still watching the car!
+
+Down to the gate, at the furthest end of the road, a baby boy, chubby
+and fat, had crawled on two round, turned-in legs. There was something
+unusual going on down the street. He could hear strange noises, but,
+though he stuck his small nose through the fence, he was still unable to
+see. Just as Ruth’s car was almost in front of the house, open flew the
+stubborn old gate, and the child flung himself out in the middle of the
+road, just in front of the wonderful red thing he could see flying
+toward him. The baby was too young to understand the danger.
+
+From the watchers at Mrs. Thurston’s came a cry of horror. A thrill of
+terror passed through the occupants of the car. Ruth’s face turned
+white. Like a flash, she slowed a little, turned her steering wheel and
+with a wide sweep drove her motor to the far side of the road, then
+straight on out of the path of the wondering baby.
+
+Mr. Stuart’s, “Bravo, daughter!” was lost in his throat. But the little
+group of waiting friends gave three cheers for the girl chauffeur, which
+Ruth heard even at such a distance. Truly “The Automobile Girls” were
+fairly started on their adventures.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI—WHAT HAPPENED THE FIRST DAY
+
+
+The car flew along by sunny meadows and farms. New York was the first
+day’s goal.
+
+“Barbara,” Ruth said to her next-door neighbor, “you are hereby
+appointed royal geographer and guide-extraordinary to this party! Here
+is the route-book. It will be up to you to show us which roads we are to
+take. It is a pretty hard job, as I well know from experience; but then,
+honors come hard. You don’t need to worry to-day. I know this coast trip
+into New York as well as I know my A.B.C.‘s. I have often come along
+this way with father. Let’s have a perfectly beautiful time in New York.
+We’ll make Aunt Sallie chaperon us while we do the town, or, at least, a
+part of it. Have you ever been to a roof garden?”
+
+Barbara’s eyes danced. It didn’t sound quite right somehow—a roof
+garden—but then they were out for experiences, and Miss Sallie wouldn’t
+let them do anything really wrong.
+
+Ruth glanced out of the corner of her eye at Barbara. Miss Stuart was a
+good little chauffeur who never allowed her attention to be distracted
+from running her car, no matter what was being talked of around her, nor
+how much she was interested, but she couldn’t help laughing at Barbara’s
+expression; it told so plainly all that was going on inside her head.
+
+“I do assure you, Miss Barbara Thurston, that a roof garden may be a
+fairly respectable thing, quite well suited to entertaining, without
+shocking either Miss Sallie Stuart or her four charming protégées.” Ruth
+called back: “Aunt Sallie, will you take us up on the Waldorf roof
+to-night? You know we are going to stay at the Waldorf Hotel, girls.
+Father said we might enjoy the experience, and it would be all right
+with Aunt Sallie for chaperon.”
+
+Grace pinched Mollie’s arm to express her rapture, and that little
+maiden simply gasped with delight. It was Mollie, not Barbara, of the
+two sisters, who had the greatest yearning for wealth and society, and
+the beautiful clothes and wonderful people that she believed went along
+with it. Barbara was an out-door girl, who loved tennis and all the
+sports, and could swim like a fish. An artist who spent his summers at
+Kingsbridge, once called her a brown sea-gull, when he saw her lithe
+brown body dart off the great pier to dive deep into the water.
+
+Aunt Sallie had been taking a brief cat-nap, before Ruth’s question, and
+awakened in high good humor. “Why, yes, children,” she answered, “it
+will be very pleasant to go up on the roof to-night, after we have had
+our baths and our dinners. I am quite disposed to let you do just what
+you like, so long as you behave yourselves.”
+
+Grace Carter pressed Aunt Sallie’s fat hand, as a message of thanks.
+Grace was Aunt Sallie’s favorite among Ruth’s friends. “She is a quiet,
+lady-like girl, who does not do unexpected things that get on one’s
+nerves,” Miss Sallie had once explained to Ruth. “Now, Aunt Sallie,”
+Ruth had protested, “I know I do get on your nerves sometimes, but you
+know you need me to stir you up. Think how dull you would be without
+me!” And Aunt Sallie had answered, with unexpected feeling: “I would be
+very dull, indeed, my dear.”
+
+The girls were full of their plans for the evening.
+
+“That is why Ruth told us each to put a muslin dress in our suit cases!
+Ruth, are you going to think up a fresh surprise every day! It’s just
+too splendid!” Mollie spoke in a tone of such fervent emotion that
+everyone in the car laughed.
+
+“I don’t suppose I can manage a surprise every day, Molliekins,” Ruth
+called back over her shoulder, “but I mean to think up as many as I
+possibly can. We are going to have the time of our lives, you know, and
+something must happen to make it.”
+
+All this time the car had been flying faster than the girls could talk.
+“This is ‘going some,’” commented Ruth, laughing.
+
+When they came into Lakewood Ruth slowed up, as she had promised her
+father not to go any faster than the law allowed. “I cross my heart and
+body, Dad,” she had said. “Think of four lovely maidens and their
+handsome duenna languishing in jail instead of flying along the road to
+Newport. Honest Injun! father, I’ll read every automobile sign from here
+to Jehosaphat, if we ever decide to travel that way.”
+
+In Lakewood, Ruth drove her car around the wonderful pine shaded lake.
+
+“It’s a winter resort,” she explained to her companions. “Nearly all the
+cottages and hotels are closed in the summer, but I wanted you to have a
+smell of the pines. It will give you strength for the rest of the trip.”
+
+Silence fell on the party as they skimmed out of Lakewood. After so much
+excitement it was pleasant to look at things without having to talk.
+
+Mollie had begun, once in a while, to tap the lunch basket with her
+foot. The fresh air and the long ride had made her desperately hungry.
+She really couldn’t remember having eaten any breakfast in the
+excitement of getting off. But nobody said f-o-o-d! She felt she was the
+youngest member of the party and should not make suggestions before Miss
+Sallie.
+
+Ruth turned into a narrow lane; a sign post pointed the way to a
+deserted village.
+
+“Oh, dear me!” sighed Mollie to herself. “Why are we going to a deserted
+village, just as we are dying of hunger!”
+
+Ruth said never a word. She passed some tumble-down old cottages of a
+century ago, then an old iron foundry, and drew up with a great flourish
+before an old stone house, green with moss and ivy and fragrant with a
+“lovely” odor of cooking! There were little tables set out on the lawn
+and on the old-fashioned veranda, and soon the party was reveling in
+lunch.
+
+“I didn’t know food could be so heavenly,” whispered Mollie in Bab’s
+ear, when they were back in the car, for Grace had begged for a seat by
+the chauffeur for the afternoon trip.
+
+Soon Ruth left the country behind, and came out on the sea-coast road
+that ran through Long Branch, Deal Beach, Monmouth and Seabright.
+
+From carriages and other automobiles, and along the promenades, everyone
+smiled at the crimson car full of happy, laughing girls.
+
+Ruth was driving in her best fashion, making all the speed she could,
+with the thought of town fifty miles or more ahead. “It is a sight to
+see,” quoth Barbara, “the way the fairy princess handles her chariot of
+fire.”
+
+It was a little after four o’clock when the car boarded the Staten
+Island ferry and finally crossed to the New York shore.
+
+“You see, Bab,” Mollie said, trying to stuff her curls under her motor
+cap and to rub the dust from her rosy cheeks with a tiny pocket
+handkerchief as they sped up Broadway, “I might be dreadfully
+embarrassed arriving at the Waldorf looking the way I do, if I were not
+in a motor car, but riding in an automobile makes one feel so awfully
+swell that nothing matters. Isn’t it lovely just to feel important for
+once? You know it is, Bab, and you needn’t say no! It’s silly to
+pretend.”
+
+Miss Sallie was again on the border of slumberland, so that Mollie and
+Barbara could have their low-voiced talk.
+
+“Does Ruth know I have never even been to New York before?” asked
+Mollie. “I hope I won’t seem very green about things. You must tell me
+if I do, Bab.”
+
+But Bab only laughed and shook her head. “You are a foolish baby,” she
+said.
+
+Two respectful porters at the Waldorf helped a dusty, crumpled party out
+of the big red touring car.
+
+The girls, a little dazed, followed Miss Sallie through a maze of palms
+and servants in livery, with handsomely dressed people strolling through
+the halls, until their suite of rooms, which Mr. Stuart had engaged by
+telegraph a few days before, was reached.
+
+The three rooms adjoined, only separated by white tile bathrooms. Miss
+Sallie, naturally, had a room to herself, and it was decided that Ruth
+and Grace were to sleep together, leaving the sisters to themselves.
+
+“Isn’t it too beautiful!” sighed Mollie, standing in the midst of their
+luxurious chamber, gazing around at the single brass beds, with their
+rose-colored draperies, and the ivory-striped satin wall paper,
+garlanded in pink flowers. Ruth and Grace were equally fine in a room
+decorated in blue, and, even in the Waldorf, Miss Sallie’s taste seemed
+to have been consulted, as her room was in her favorite violet shade.
+
+In some mysterious way the crumpled muslin dresses were taken downstairs
+by a maid, and came back smooth and fresh. Even Miss Sallie’s elaborate
+chiffon gown looked as though it had just come home from the modiste’s.
+
+“O Ruth! Ruth!” Mollie exclaimed, as the four girls made their way to
+the dining-room, Miss Sallie in the lead, “I didn’t know there could be
+such a magnificent place in the world as this. I don’t know what I can
+ever do to repay you, except to love you and be grateful my whole life
+long.”
+
+“Well, I am sure that is all the gratitude I should ever want, Mollie,”
+laughed Ruth. “But wait until you see the houses at Newport.”
+
+All eyes near the door turned to see the little automobile party enter
+the “palm room.” Miss Sallie swept ahead in her black lace and chiffon,
+looking very handsome and impressive. Barbara and Grace came next;
+Barbara with her red-brown hair breaking into willful curves and waves,
+her big brown eyes glowing with pleasure, and the deep red showing in
+her olive cheeks; Grace with her look of refinement and gentle dignity.
+The blond maidens came in last. Ruth’s bright gold hair and fresh
+coloring showed to best advantage in a dainty white muslin and lace
+frock. She was half a head taller than dainty Mollie, who looked like a
+flower with her yellow curls gathered in a soft cluster at the back of
+her neck and tied with a black velvet ribbon.
+
+On the Waldorf roof, Miss Stuart and the girls sat under an orange tree,
+hung in some mysterious way with golden oranges. The whole place was
+decorated with palms and evergreens and beautiful flowers. The soft,
+shaded yellow lights rivaled the moonlight that glowed above.
+
+“It’s like the enchanted garden in the French fairy story, isn’t it,
+Miss Sallie? Where the flowers and fruits bloomed all the year round?”
+whispered Barbara, who sat next their chaperon.
+
+Miss Sallie smiled very kindly at her enthusiasm.
+
+“I expect it is, but I am afraid I have forgotten the story. It has been
+a long time, remember, Barbara, since fairies and I have had much to say
+to each other.”
+
+Barbara blushed. “Oh, I am not so young as all that, Miss Sallie; but I
+have never forgotten the fairy tales I read when I was a little girl.
+Though I must confess I liked boys’ stories better. I just love
+adventures!” And Barbara’s eyes shone. In a little while the music
+commenced, and she forgot everything but that.
+
+Mollie was differently occupied. What she liked best was to gaze around
+her at the women in their jewels and wonderful gowns.
+
+Just across from her on the other side of the aisle was a rarely
+beautiful woman in a white lace gown, with a string of pearls round her
+throat, and a pearl and diamond butterfly that glowed and sparkled in
+her hair.
+
+Mollie was so fascinated by her beauty that she couldn’t help watching
+this stranger, and even overhearing a little of her conversation. “It
+isn’t exactly eavesdropping,” Mollie apologized to herself, “because I
+don’t know them and they can never possibly know me.” So nobody noticed,
+but Mollie, that when the woman gave a laughing toss of her head in
+answer to some question from her husband, who sat back of her, that the
+beautiful, jeweled butterfly slipped softly out of her hair, fell into
+the softer lace folds of her gown and then down—down—to the floor!
+
+The little girl waited half a minute. No one else had noticed the loss.
+At any time an usher might come down the aisle and crush the exquisite
+jewel. Mollie forgot herself and her shyness. If it had been Barbara she
+would not have minded, but Mollie was timid before strangers. She
+slipped quietly across the aisle and picked up the butterfly.
+
+“I beg your pardon,” her soft voice explained, “but I saw this fall from
+your hair, and, as you did not notice it, I was afraid it might be
+crushed.”
+
+The lovely woman turned in surprise. It is just as well to call her “the
+lovely lady,” now, for that was Mollie’s name for her ever afterwards.
+
+“My dear,” she said, “I am very grateful to you. How could I have failed
+to see it? I am especially obliged to you, because I am very fond of
+this ornament.”
+
+Mollie blushed rosy-red, as the people close to them had observed what
+had happened and were watching her. As she tried to slip over to her
+seat, the lady reached out and gave the child’s hand a gentle squeeze of
+thanks, glancing across as she did so to see what friends the little
+girl was with, and so caught Ruth Stuart’s eye.
+
+The intermission came at this minute.
+
+“Why, Ruth Stuart!” Mollie, to her surprise, heard her friend’s name
+called in a low voice, and Ruth came across to them.
+
+“It’s Mrs. Cartwright,” she said. “I am so pleased! I didn’t suppose you
+would remember me.”
+
+“Of course I remember you, Ruth,” Mrs. Cartwright protested. “It has
+been only two years since I saw you at my own wedding in Chicago. My
+memory is surely longer than that. Isn’t that your aunt, Miss Stuart?”
+Mrs. Cartwright moved across the aisle to speak to Miss Sallie and to
+introduce her husband. When they had shaken hands, Mrs. Cartwright
+asked: “May I know what you are doing in this part of the world at this
+season?”
+
+“I am playing chaperon to my madcap niece and her three friends, who are
+doing an automobile trip to Newport without a man. Ruth is her own
+chauffeur,” Miss Sallie explained, laughing.
+
+“How jolly of you, Ruth, and how clever! I am so glad you are going to
+Newport. Did you know my summer place is down there? I am only in town
+for a day or two. My husband had to come on business and I am with him.
+We shall be motoring home, soon, and may pass you if you are to take
+things slowly. Why not join me at New Haven? My husband’s brother is a
+junior at Yale, and we’ve promised to stop there for a day. There is a
+dance on at Alumni Hall. I’d be too popular for words if I could take
+you four pretty girls along with me!”
+
+Ruth turned to her aunt with glowing eyes. “We did want to see the
+college dreadfully,” she said. “I have never seen a big Eastern
+university. We didn’t dream of knowing anybody who would show us around.
+Wouldn’t it be too much for you to have us all on your hands?”
+
+“Certainly not,” said Mrs. Cartwright, “but a most decided pleasure. I
+shall meet you in New Haven, say, day after to-morrow, and I’ll
+telegraph to-night to my brother, whose name is Donald Cartwright, by
+the way, to expect us.”
+
+The music was about to begin again, but, before Mrs. Cartwright went
+over to her seat, she put her hand on Mollie’s curls. “I must see this
+little girl often at Newport. Then I can thank her better for saving my
+lovely butterfly for me. I hope to make all of you have a beautiful
+time.” She put the jewel into her hair again, and Mollie looked at it
+thoughtfully. She was to know it again some day, under stranger
+circumstances.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII—SHOWING THEIR METTLE
+
+
+“Girls!” Aunt Sallie said solemnly next morning, as Mr. Cartwright and
+two footmen helped her into the motor car, while Barbara, Grace and
+Mollie stood around holding her extra veils, her magazines and
+pocketbook. “I feel, in my bones, that it is going to rain to-day. I
+think we had better stay in town.”
+
+“Oh, Aunt Sallie!” Ruth’s hand was already on the spark of her steering
+wheel, and she was bouncing up and down on her seat in her impatience to
+be off. “It’s simply a splendid day! Look at the sun!” She leaned over
+to Mr. Cartwright. “Do say something to cheer Aunt Sallie up. If she
+loses her nerve now, we’ll never have our trip.”
+
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright both reassured her. “The paper says clear
+weather and light winds, Miss Stuart. You’ll have a beautiful day of it.
+Remember we shall meet you in New Haven to-morrow, and you have promised
+to wait for us.”
+
+Aunt Sallie settled herself resignedly into her violet cushions, holding
+her smelling bottle to her nose. “Very well, young people, have it your
+own way,” she relented. “But, mark my words, it will rain before night.
+I have a shoulderblade that is a better weather prophet than all your
+bureaus.”
+
+“You’re much too handsome a woman,” laughed Ruth, the other girls
+joining her, “to talk like Katisha, in the ‘Mikado,’ who had the famous
+shoulderblade that people came miles to see.”
+
+Ruth was steering her car through Fifth Avenue, so Aunt Sallie merely
+smiled at her own expense, adding: “You’re a very disrespectful niece,
+Ruth.”
+
+“I’d get on my knees to apologize, Auntie,” declared Ruth, “only there
+isn’t room, and we’d certainly be run into, if I did.”
+
+Barbara was poring over the route book. Her duty as guide to the
+automobile party really began to-day, and she was studying every inch of
+the road map. What would she do if they were lost?
+
+“You may look up from that book just once in every fifteen minutes,
+Guide Thurston,” Ruth said, pretending to be serious over Barbara’s
+worried look. “We promise not to eat you if you do get us a little out
+of our way. The roads are well posted. What shall we do if we meet some
+bandits?”
+
+“Leave them to me,” boasted Barbara. “I suppose it’s my fate to play man
+of the party.”
+
+“And what of the chauffeur?” Ruth protested. “I wonder what any of us
+could do if we got into danger.”
+
+The day was apparently lovely. The girls were in the wildest spirits.
+
+“I never believed until this minute,” announced Mollie, “that we were
+actually going on the trip to Newport. I felt every moment something
+would happen to stop us. I even dreamed, last night, that we met a great
+giant in the road, and he roared at us, ‘I never allow red motor cars
+with brass trimmings to pass along this road!’ Ruth wouldn’t pay the
+least attention to him, but kept straight ahead, until he picked up the
+car and started to pitch us over in a ditch. Then Ruth cried: ‘Hold on
+there! If you won’t let a red car pass, I’ll go back to town and have
+mine painted green. I must have my trip.’ Just as she turned around and
+started back, I woke up. Wasn’t it awful?”
+
+“You are a goose,” said Grace, rather nervously. “It isn’t a sign of
+anything, is it? You ought not to tell your dreams after breakfast. You
+may make them come true.”
+
+Barbara and Ruth both shouted with laughter, for Mollie answered just as
+seriously: “You’re wrong, Grace; it’s telling dreams before breakfast
+that makes them come true. I was particularly careful to wait.”
+
+The car passed swiftly through the town in the early morning. Soon the
+spires and towers of the city were no longer visible.
+
+“Hurrah for the Boston Post Road!” sang Barbara, as the car swung into
+the famous old highway.
+
+“And hurrah for Barbara for discovering it!” teased Ruth. “Now, clear
+the track, fellow autoists and slow coach drivers! We know where we’re
+going, and we’re on the way!”
+
+It had been decided to make a straight trip through to New Haven, and to
+wait there for Mrs. Cartwright. Miss Sallie had insisted on some rest,
+and the girls were wild to see the college—and the college men.
+
+“It will be sure enough sport,” Ruth confided, “to have one dance with
+all the partners needed to go round.” Men were as scarce at the
+Kingsbridge Hotel as they were in other summer resorts, and Ruth was
+tired of Harry Townsend and his kind, who liked to stay around the
+hotel, making eyes at all the girls they saw.
+
+“Yes,” said Barbara thoughtfully, “it will be fun. Yet, Ruth, suppose we
+are sticks and no one dances with us?” Barbara didn’t like the thought
+of being a wall-flower. Ruth laughed and quickly replied, “Oh, Mrs.
+Cartwright is awfully jolly and popular, so we will have plenty of
+invitations to dance.”
+
+“Ruth,” said Miss Sallie, a little after noon, when they had passed,
+without a hitch, through a number of beautiful Connecticut towns, and
+were speeding along an open road, with a view of the waters of Long
+Island Sound to the right of them, “I have not looked at my watch
+lately, but I’ve an impression I am hungry. As long as we have made up
+our minds to eat the luncheon the hotel has put up for us, why not stop
+along the road here, and have a picnic?”
+
+“Good for you, Aunt Sallie!” said Grace, emphatically. “This is a beauty
+place. Ruth can leave the car right here, and we can go up under that
+elm and make tea. What larks!”
+
+The girls all piled out, carrying the big lunch hamper between them. On
+the stump of an old tree the alcohol lamp was set up and tea was quickly
+brewed. Then the girls formed a circle on the ground, while Miss Sallie,
+from her throne of violet silk pillows, gave directions about setting
+the lunch table.
+
+No one noticed how the time passed. No one could notice, all were having
+such a jolly time; even Miss Sallie was now in excellent spirits. She
+had been in Newport several times before, and the girls were full of
+questions.
+
+Mollie leaned her head against Miss Sallie’s knee, so intimate had she
+grown in a day and a half with that awe-inspiring person. “Is it true,”
+she inquired in a voice of reverence, “that every person who lives in
+Newport is a millionaire?”
+
+“And are the streets paved with gold, Miss Sallie?” queried Grace. She
+was Mollie’s special friend, and fond of teasing her. “I read that the
+water at Bailey’s Beach is perfumed every morning before the ladies go
+in bathing, and that all the fish that come from near there taste like
+cologne.”
+
+Miss Sallie laughed. “There are some people at Newport who are not
+summer people,” she explained. “You must remember that it is an old New
+England town, and there are thousands of people who live there the year
+around. My brother has persuaded some old friends of ours, who used to
+be very wealthy when I was a girl, to take us to board with them. There
+are very few hotels.”
+
+Several times during their talk Ruth’s eyes had wandered a little
+anxiously to the sky above them. Every now and then the shadows darkened
+under the old elm where they were eating their luncheon, bringing a
+sudden coolness to the summer atmosphere.
+
+“Aunt Sallie made me nervous about the weather with that story of her
+shoulderblade,” Ruth argued with herself. So she was the first to say:
+“Come, we had better be off. What a lot of time we’ve wasted!”
+
+“No hurry, Ruth,” Aunt Sallie answered, placidly. “New Haven is no great
+distance. We shall be there before dark.”
+
+It was fully half after two before the automobile girls had gathered up
+their belongings and were again comfortably disposed in the car.
+
+“It certainly is great, Ruth, the way you crank up your own car,” Grace
+declared. “It must take an awful lot of strength, doesn’t it?”
+
+“Yes,” admitted Ruth, as she jumped back into her automobile and the car
+plunged on ahead. “But I’ve a strong right arm. I don’t row and play
+tennis for nothing. Father says it takes skill and courage, as well as
+strength, to drive a car. I hope I’m not boasting; it’s only that father
+believes girls should attempt to do things as well as boys. Girls could
+do a lot more if they tried harder. ‘Sometimes,’ Dad says, ‘gumption
+counts for more than brute force.’”
+
+“Whew, Ruth! You talk like a suffragette,” objected Grace.
+
+“Well, maybe I am one,” said Ruth. “I’m from the West, where they raise
+strong-minded women. What do you say, Barbara?”
+
+“I don’t know,” replied Barbara. “I would not like to go to war, and I’m
+awfully afraid I’d run from a burglar in the dark.”
+
+“Who’d have thought Barbara would confess to being a coward?” Grace
+broke in, just to see what Bab would say. But Bab wouldn’t answer. “I
+don’t know what I would do,” she ended.
+
+“Anyhow,” said Miss Ruth, from her position of dignity on the
+chauffeur’s seat, “I should be allowed to vote on laws for motor cars,
+as long as I can run a machine without a man.”
+
+“My dear Ruth,” interposed Miss Sallie at last, “I beg of you, don’t
+vote in my lifetime. Girls, in my day, would never have dreamed of such
+a thing.”
+
+“Oh, well, Auntie,” answered Ruth, “I wouldn’t worry about it now. Who
+knows when I may have a chance to vote?”
+
+Ruth was worried by the clouds overhead, so she ran her machine at full
+speed. It took some time and ingenuity to make their way through
+Bridgeport, a big, bustling town with crowded streets. By this time the
+clouds had lifted, and, for the next hour, Ruth forgot the rain. She and
+Barbara were having a serious talk on the front seat. Mollie and Grace,
+with their arms around each other, were almost as quiet as Aunt Sallie;
+indeed, they were more so, for that good soul was gently snoring.
+
+“If we should have any adventures, Bab,” said Ruth, “I wonder if we’d be
+equal to them? I’ll wager you would be. Father says that when people are
+not too sure of themselves before a thing happens, they are likely to be
+brave at the critical minute.”
+
+The car was going down a hill with a steep incline. Ruth’s hand was on
+the brake. Biff! Biff! Bang! Bang! A cannon ball seemed to have exploded
+under them. Miss Sallie sat up very straight, with an expression of
+great dignity; Grace and Mollie gave little screams, and Barbara looked
+as though she were willing to be defended if anything very dreadful had
+happened.
+
+Only Ruth dared laugh. “You’re not killed, girls,” she said. “You might
+as well get used to that racket; it happens to the best regulated motor
+cars. It is only a bursted tire; but it might have been kind enough to
+have happened in town, instead of on this deserted country road. Oh,
+dear me!” she next ejaculated, for, before she could stop her car, it
+had skidded, and the front wheel was imbedded in a deep hole in the
+road.
+
+“Get out, please,” Ruth ordered. “Grace, will you find a stone for me? I
+must try to brace this wheel. Did I say something about skill, instead
+of strength, and not needing a man?” Ruth had taken off her coat and
+rolled up her sleeves in a business-like fashion.
+
+“I have helped father with a punctured tire before.” She tugged at the
+old tire, which hung limp and useless by this time. She was talking very
+cheerfully, though Aunt Sallie’s woeful expression would have made any
+girl nervous. At the same time dark clouds had begun to appear overhead.
+
+“You’d better get out the rain things,” Ruth conceded. “I can’t get this
+fixed very soon. Queer no one passes along this way. It’s a lonesome
+kind of road. I wonder if we are off the main track?”
+
+“It is a country lane, not a main road. I saw that at once,” said Miss
+Sallie.
+
+“Then why didn’t you tell us, Aunt Sallie?”
+
+“My eyes were closed to avoid the dust,” replied Aunt Sallie firmly.
+
+Poor Ruth had a task on her hands. If only the car had not skidded into
+that ugly hole, she could have managed; but it was impossible for her,
+with the help of all the girls, to lift the car enough to slip the new
+tire over the rim.
+
+Mollie and Grace were taking Miss Sallie a little walk through the woods
+at the side of the road to try to make the time pass and to give Ruth a
+chance. Grace had winked at her slyly as they departed.
+
+“Barbara,” Ruth said finally, in tragic tones, “I’m in a fix and I might
+as well confess it. I know it all comes of my boasting that I didn’t
+need a man. My kingdom for one just for a few minutes! Do you suppose
+there is a farmhouse near where we could find some one to help me get
+this wheel out of the rut? I’d surrender this job to a man with
+pleasure.”
+
+“I don’t believe we are on the right road, Ruth, dear.” Barbara felt so
+responsible that she was almost in tears. Ominous thunder clouds were
+rolling overhead, and Bab tried not to notice the large splash of rain
+that had fallen on her nose.
+
+“Don’t worry Bab, dear,” urged Ruth. “I should have looked out for the
+road, too. It can’t be helped.”
+
+“But I am going to help. You can just rely on that,” announced Barbara,
+shaking her brown curls defiantly. She had taken off her hat in the
+exertion of trying to help Ruth. “We passed a sleepy-looking old farm a
+little way back, but I am going to wake it up!”
+
+She heard Miss Sallie and the girls returning to the shelter of the car,
+for the rain had suddenly come down in torrents. Down the road sped Bab,
+shaking her head like a little brown Shetland pony.
+
+Miss Sallie was in the depths of despair.
+
+“Child,” she said sternly to Ruth, “get into the car out of that mud. We
+will remain here, under the shelter of the covers until morning. Then,
+if we are alive, I myself will walk to the nearest town and telegraph
+your father. We will take the next train back to New York.” Miss Sallie
+spoke with the extreme severity due to a rheumatic shoulder that had
+been disregarded.
+
+“Please let me keep on trying, Aunt Sallie,” pleaded Ruth. “I’ll get the
+tire on, or some one will come along to help me. I am so sorry, for I
+know it is all my fault.”
+
+“Never mind, Ruth; but you are to come into this car.” And Ruth, covered
+with mud, was obliged to give in.
+
+“Where, I should like to know,” demanded Miss Sallie, “is Barbara?”
+
+Through the rain they could hear the patter, patter of a horse’s hoofs.
+
+[Illustration: On Came Barbara, Riding Bareback.]
+
+“Cheer up, Ruth, dear,” whispered Grace. “What difference does a little
+rain make? Here is some one coming along the road!”
+
+Ruth’s eyes were full of tears; Aunt Sallie’s threat to stop their trip
+was more than she could bear; but she was soon smiling.
+
+“Why, Barbara Thurston,” the girls called out together, “it can’t be
+you!” On came Barbara, riding bareback astride an old horse, the
+animal’s big feet clattering, its mane and tail soaked with rain.
+
+“Great heavens!” said Miss Sallie, and closed her eyes.
+
+Barbara rode up to the automobile, her hand clasped tightly in the
+horse’s mane.
+
+“I’m as right as can be, Miss Sallie. I went back to that sleepy old
+farm, knocked and knocked for help, and called and called, but nobody
+would answer. Just as I gave up all hope, old Dobbin came to the porch
+and neighed, as if inquiring what I was doing on his premises. Like a
+flash I put out my hand, as though to pat him, grabbed him by the mane,
+hopped up here, and now you see the best lady bareback rider from
+Rinkhem’s Circus. I led you into this mess; now I’m going to get you
+out. I shall ride old Dobbin into town and come back with help.” Bab
+declaimed this, ending out of breath.
+
+“Never mind, Miss Sallie,” Mollie explained, seeing her consternation.
+“Bab never rode any other way than bareback when she was a little girl.
+Do let her go!”
+
+“Very well; but she may be arrested as a horse thief. That is all I have
+to say in the matter.” Miss Sallie sank back on her cushions, but
+Barbara had clattered off before she could be forbidden to go. She
+caught the words, “horse thief,” as she rode as fast as old Dobbin would
+carry her.
+
+“It’s Barbara to the rescue again!” Ruth shouted after her.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII—“FOR WE ARE JOLLY GOOD FELLOWS!”
+
+
+“Suppose I should be arrested!” thought Barbara uncomfortably. “It would
+be distinctly unpleasant to be hauled off to jail, while Aunt Sallie and
+the girls remain stuck in the mud, not knowing my fate, and helpless to
+save me! I may meet old Dobbin’s owner at any minute!”
+
+It was after six o’clock, and, because of the heavy storm, was almost
+dusk. Barbara had decided to go to the end of the lane and find the main
+road to New Haven, hoping to sooner discover help in that direction.
+
+Before long she came to a fork in the road. By riding close to the
+sign-post she found a hand pointing: “Nine Miles to New Haven.” On she
+sped through the mud and rain, slipping and sliding on the horse’s back,
+but still holding tight to his mane.
+
+“Stop! Hello, there! Why, Mirandy, if that ain’t my own hoss, and that
+girl astride it running off as fast as she can! Hello! Stop!” The farmer
+lashed the horse hitched to his rickety old buggy, and dashed after
+Barbara, who had ridden past without noticing them. “Stop, thief!”
+
+Down to her wet toes sank Barbara’s heart. The worst she had feared had
+happened. If only she had seen their buggy in time to stop first and ask
+their help. Now, rushing by them, how could she explain? Horse thief,
+indeed.
+
+“Oh, please,” she said, her voice not quite steady, “I am not exactly
+running away with your horse; I am only going for help! My friends——”
+
+The farmer grabbed the horse savagely by the mane. “Come on,” he said.
+“You can tell your story at the nearest police station. I ain’t got time
+fer sech foolishness. What I see, I see with my own eyes. You’re plain
+running away with my hoss!”
+
+“John,” pleaded the farmer’s wife, “you might listen to the young lady.”
+
+But Barbara’s looks were against her. The rain had beaten her hair down
+over her eyes. Her clothes were wet and covered with mud from trying to
+help Ruth. What could she do? Barbara was frightened, but she kept a
+cool head. “I’ll just let the old man haul me before the nearest
+magistrate. I expect _he’ll_ listen to me!” She was shivering, but she
+knew that to think bravely helped to keep up one’s courage. “If only it
+were not so awful for Aunt Sallie and the girls to be waiting there, I
+could stand my part,” murmured Bab.
+
+For fifteen minutes captors and girl jogged on. Only the old man talked,
+savagely, under his breath. He wanted to get home to his farmhouse and
+supper, but this made him only the more determined to punish Barbara.
+
+“I suppose we’ll take all night to get to town at this rate,” she
+thought miserably.
+
+ For we are jolly good fellows, For we are jolly good fellows!
+
+Barbara could hear the ring of the gay song and the distant whirr of a
+motor car coming down the road. If only she could attract someone’s
+attention and make them listen to her! She could now see the lights of
+the automobile bearing down upon them.
+
+Like a flash, before the farmer could guess what she was doing, Barbara
+whirled around on old Dobbin’s back, and sat backwards. She put one hand
+to her lips. “Oh, stop! Stop, please!” she cried, looking like a gypsy,
+with her rain-blown hair and brown cheeks, which were crimson with
+blushes at her awkward position.
+
+On account of the rain, and the oncoming darkness, the car was going
+slowly. At the end of one of the choruses the song stopped half a
+second. One of the young fellows in the car caught sight of Barbara,
+evidently being dragged along by the irate farmer and his wife.
+
+“Hark! Stop! Look! Listen! Methinks, I see a female in distress,” the
+young man called out.
+
+The car stopped almost beside the buggy, and one of the boys in the car
+roared with laughter at Barbara’s appearance, but the friend nearest him
+gave a warning prod.
+
+“Hold on there!” called the first young man. “Where are you dragging
+this young lady against her will?”
+
+“She’s a hoss thief!” said the old man sullenly.
+
+“I am no such thing,” answered Barbara indignantly. Then, without any
+warning, Barbara threw back her head and laughed until the tears ran
+down her cheeks, mingling with the rain. It was absurdly funny, she
+sitting backwards on an old horse, one hand in his mane, and the farmer
+pulling them along with a rope. What must she look like to these boys?
+Barbara saw they were gentlemen, and knew she had nothing more to fear.
+
+“Do please listen, while I tell my story. I am not a horse thief! I’ve
+some friends up the road, stuck in the mud with a broken tire in their
+automobile. I saw this old horse in the farm-yard, and I borrowed or
+rented him, and started for help. The old man wouldn’t let me explain.
+Won’t you,” she looked appealingly at the four boys in their motor car,
+“please go back and help my friends?”
+
+“Every man of us!” uttered one of the young fellows, springing up in his
+car. “And we’ll drag this old tartar behind us with his own rope! We’ll
+buy your old horse from you, if this young lady wants him as a
+souvenir.”
+
+It was the farmer’s turn to be frightened.
+
+“I am sure I beg your pardon, miss,” he said, humbly enough now. His
+wife was in tears.
+
+“Oh, never mind him,” urged Barbara. “Please go on back as fast as you
+can to my friends. You’ll find them up the lane to the left. I’ll ride
+the old horse back to the farm, and settle things and join you later.”
+
+“Excuse me, Miss Paul Revere,” disputed a tall, dark boy with a pair of
+laughing blue eyes that made him oddly handsome, “you’ll do no such
+thing. Kindly turn over that fiery steed to me, take my seat in the car
+and show these knights-errant the way to the ladies in distress. I want
+to prove to you that a fellow can ride bareback as well as a girl can.”
+
+But the farmer was anxious to get out of trouble.
+
+“I’ll just lead the hoss back myself,” he said. “No charge at all,
+miss.” Evidently afraid of trouble, the farmer made a hurried start
+homeward, and was soon lost to view, while Barbara rode back to her
+friends with help.
+
+In ten minutes two motor cars were making their way into New Haven. The
+passengers had changed places. Ruth sat contentedly with her hands
+folded in her lap, by the side of a masculine chauffeur, who had
+introduced himself as Hugh Post, and turned out to be the roommate, at
+college, of Mrs. Cartwright’s brother, Donald. Barbara, wrapped in
+steamer rugs, sat beside the boy with the dark hair and blue eyes, whom
+Miss Sallie had recognized as Ralph Ewing, son of the friends with whom
+they expected to board at Newport.
+
+It was arranged that Barbara and Ruth were to sleep together the first
+night at New Haven. The truth was, they wanted to talk things over, and
+there were no connecting doors between the three rooms. The hotel was an
+old one, and the rooms were big and dreary. They were connected by a
+narrow private hall, opening into the main hall by a single door, just
+opposite Ruth’s and Barbara’s room. The automobile girls were in a
+distant wing of the hotel, but the accommodations were the best that
+could be found.
+
+Miss Sallie bade their rescuers a prompt farewell on arrival at the
+hotel. “We shall be delighted to see you again in the morning,” she
+said, “but we are too used up for anything more to-night.”
+
+Barbara was promptly put to bed. She was not even allowed to go down to
+supper with the other girls, but lay snuggled in heavy covers, eating
+from a tray by her bed. Once or twice she thought she heard light
+footfalls outside in the main hall, but she had noticed a window that
+opened on a fire escape, and supposed that one of the hotel guests had
+walked down the corridor to look out of this window.
+
+In a short time Ruth came back and reported that the automobile girls,
+including Miss Sallie, were ready for bed.
+
+“I am not a bit sleepy. Are you?” Ruth asked Barbara. “I will just jump
+in here with you, so we can talk better. We’ve certainly had enough
+adventures for one day!”
+
+“Oh, no!” replied Barbara; “I feel quite wide awake.” Five minutes later
+both girls were fast asleep.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX—ONLY GIRLS
+
+
+Barbara and Ruth both awoke with a feeling that a light had flashed over
+their faces, but neither of them spoke nor moved. How long they had
+slept they could not know. It seemed almost morning, but not a ray of
+daylight came through the closed blinds.
+
+Across the room the flash shone for an instant, then darted on like a
+will-o’-the-wisp. Both girls dimly saw the outline of a man crouching in
+the shadow along the wall. His hand slid cautiously up the sides of the
+bureau, fingering, for a moment, the toilet articles on the dresser.
+Then the search-light for an instant darted along the mantel and turned
+to the bed again. The girls were nearly fainting with terror. Ruth
+remembered that, for once, she had locked her money and her jewels in
+her trunk.
+
+The man stood absolutely still and listened. Not a sound!
+
+So quiet lay both girls that neither one knew the other had wakened.
+
+The man continued his search, but plainly this was not the room he
+sought. Still moving, his feet making absolutely no sound, the dark
+figure with the lantern crept out of the girls’ room, to the front of
+the corridor, and turned down the narrow, private hallway.
+
+“Aunt Sallie!” Ruth thought with a gasp. She had said she would leave
+her door open, so she might hear if the girls called her in the night.
+And Aunt Sallie carried a large sum of money for the expenses of the
+trip, and her own jewelry as well.
+
+It may be that Ruth made a sound, anyway Barbara knew that her roommate
+was awake. Both had the same thought at just the same instant.
+
+Noiselessly, without a word, on bare feet, both girls sped down the hall
+to Miss Sallie’s open door. What they would do when they got there
+neither of them knew. It was time for action, not for thought! At the
+open door they paused and knelt in the shadow. Black darkness was about
+them, save in Aunt Sallie’s room, where a dark lantern flashed its
+uncanny light. The girls were alert in every faculty. Now they could see
+more distinctly the form of the man who carried the lantern. He was of
+medium height and slender. Over his face he wore a black mask through
+which gleamed his eyes, narrowed to two fine points of steel.
+
+Should the girls cry out? The man was armed and it might mean death to
+Aunt Sallie or themselves.
+
+Evidently the burglar meant to make a thorough search of the room before
+he went to the bed, where, he guessed, the valuables were probably kept;
+but he must know first. The room was bare of treasure. He walked
+cautiously to where Miss Sallie still slept in complete unconsciousness,
+this time holding his lantern down, that its light should not waken the
+sleeping woman.
+
+As he drew near her Ruth could bear the suspense no longer. She saw him
+drag out a bag from under Miss Sallie’s head and could not refrain from
+uttering a low cry. It was enough. The man dashed the lantern to the
+ground and made a rush for the door.
+
+There was no time for Ruth and Barbara to plan. They were only girls;
+but as the man ran toward them in the darkness, striking out fiercely,
+Barbara seized one of his legs, Ruth the other. Together, the three of
+them went down in the blackness. The girls had not the robber’s
+strength, but they had taken him by surprise and they meant to fight it
+out.
+
+He kicked violently to free himself, then turned and tore at Barbara’s
+hands, but she clung to him. He raised the butt end of his pistol and
+struck with all his force. As the blow fell with a terrific thud,
+Barbara relaxed her hold, and tumbled over in the darkness.
+
+By this time Miss Sallie realized what was happening. Yet, in the
+darkness, she could only cry for help, and moan: “Let him alone, girls!
+Let him go!”
+
+With one leg free it seemed a simple task to get away. The noises were
+arousing the sleeping hotel guests. Another minute, and the burglar knew
+that he would be lost! With a violent wrench he tore himself away, and
+started down the hall, Ruth after him. If she could delay him a few
+seconds help would come!
+
+The outside door leading from their private hall into the main one was
+nearly closed; in reaching to open it there was a second’s delay. Ruth
+flung herself forward, caught the man’s coat and clung desperately, but
+the burglar was too clever for her. In less than a second he slipped out
+of his coat, ran quickly to the window leading to the fire escape, and
+was gone! When assistance arrived, Ruth was standing in the front hall
+holding a man’s coat in her hand.
+
+“Oh, come!” she said in horror. “A light, please! Aunt Sallie has been
+robbed, and I am afraid Barbara has been killed!”
+
+Ten or twelve people came running down the hall. The hotel proprietor
+and several servants made for the fire escape. Grace and Mollie, clad in
+kimonos, had joined Ruth in the hall, and were shaking with terror.
+Neither of them had spoken a word, but Grace silently handed Ruth her
+bath robe.
+
+They turned and the three girls followed the rescuers, who were
+hastening toward Aunt Sallie’s room. That elderly woman had already
+risen, struck a light and was in her kimono.
+
+Barbara was leaning against a chair, white as a sheet, but unhurt!
+
+“O Bab!” said Ruth, flying toward her, forgetting everything else in her
+relief, “I thought you were killed!”
+
+“I thought so, too,” nodded Barbara, calmly smiling, as she reached for
+one of the blankets and wrapped herself in its folds, “but I wasn’t.
+When the burglar raised the end of his pistol to strike me, I knew what
+was coming and ducked. He struck the side of the chair, and I tumbled
+over under it.”
+
+The hotel proprietor came into the room carrying a chamois bag.
+
+“Madam,” he asked, “is this your property? I found it outside here.
+Evidently the man dropped it in trying to make his escape. I cannot
+understand what has happened. The hotel is securely locked. The fire
+escape goes down into a closed court. The man could not have made his
+way down five stories, without being seen when we reached the window. It
+is incredible!”
+
+By this time the halls were swarming with frightened visitors.
+
+Grace had gone out to speak to them, and came in holding the burglar’s
+coat in her hand. “How curious!” she said, handing the garment to the
+proprietor. “This is a gentleman’s coat. I can tell by the lining and
+the whole appearance of it. It was not worn by a common thief!”
+
+“Ruth, my child, and Barbara,” said Aunt Sallie, when everyone had left
+their apartments, “I shall never forgive you!”
+
+“Why not, Aunt Sallie?” both girls exclaimed, at once.
+
+“Because, my dears, you didn’t just scream and let the wretch escape at
+once. In my day girls would never have behaved as you did!”
+
+“But, Aunt Sallie,” protested Ruth, “the jewels and money are both safe,
+and neither Barbara nor I am hurt. I don’t see how we could have done
+any better, even in your day.”
+
+“Kiss me,” said Aunt Sallie, “and go back to bed at once. It is nearly
+morning.”
+
+When Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright drew up in front of the New Haven hotel, at
+a little after two o’clock next day, they found Miss Sallie and the four
+girls surrounded by a circle of college boys. With them stood a
+policeman.
+
+“What has happened?” said Mrs. Cartwright in astonishment, jumping out
+of her car, as Donald Cartwright, Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing came down to
+meet her. “Are those my girls, to whom I am to introduce you to-day?”
+
+“Goodness!” demanded Hugh. “Did you think we would wait twelve hours for
+an introduction! Do come and hear all that has happened.”
+
+Miss Stuart, looking a good deal shaken by her adventures, came forward
+to meet Mrs. Cartwright. “Listen!” she said dramatically, for Barbara
+was talking to the policeman.
+
+“No, we would neither of us know him, because neither my friend nor I
+ever saw him before. It was dark and he was masked. But he was
+slight—not a big, rough kind of man—and his hands were soft, but strong
+as steel. I don’t believe,” she leaned over and whispered, “he could
+have been a servant, or an ordinary burglar.”
+
+“We have discovered, miss, that no entrance was made from the outside.
+Any guests who left the hotel this morning will be followed and
+examined. The chief will report to you later,” the policeman said, with
+a low bow to Miss Sallie.
+
+“Well, is this the way you see a nice, quiet, old college town?” Mrs.
+Cartwright inquired. “I suppose you mean to take the next train for
+home.”
+
+“No such thing!” retorted Ruth, smiling, and looking as bright and fresh
+as ever. “We don’t mind a few weeny adventures, do we, Aunt Sallie?”
+
+Miss Sallie held up her hands in horror. “Weeny adventures! What shall
+we expect next! However, I’ve promised the girls to go on. I think we
+need the trip, now, more than ever, and I want to ask Mr. Cartwright to
+keep the matter as quiet as possible. I do not wish my brother to know.”
+
+“Do please come on,” said Hugh Post, turning to Ruth. “We are going,” he
+explained, “out to the athletic grounds in our motor cars. The girls
+came to see the university, and we haven’t shown them a blooming thing.”
+
+“We are going to the dance to-night, just the same,” announced Mollie to
+Mrs. Cartwright. “Aunt Sallie is to rest this afternoon, so she will be
+equal to it. We wouldn’t miss it for anything.”
+
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright joined the party, and, in a few minutes, the two
+motor cars had covered the two miles between the college campus and the
+thirty acres Yale devotes to college sports. The visitors saw the
+athletic grounds thoroughly; here the football champions of the world
+had been trained, and there was the baseball diamond.
+
+“Ralph’s the crack oarsman of the lot,” said Donald Cartwright;
+“but—great Scott! We can’t show these girls anything, after the way they
+tackled the burglar last night.”
+
+“We’ll get up a regatta in your honor, if you’ll come again next year,
+Miss Thurston,” said Ralph.
+
+Barbara only laughed at him. “Look out,” she warned. “I may make you
+keep your promise.”
+
+“Barbara,” said Mollie that night, as they were getting ready for the
+dance which was to take place in the Old Alumni Hall, “are you sure you
+feel well enough for the ball to-night?”
+
+“Nonsense, child, why shouldn’t I? I feel as fine as a fiddle. It isn’t
+doing things that uses one up, even tackling a burglar; it is thinking
+about them. Ruth and I didn’t have any time to think about our burglar.”
+
+“Well,” said Mollie, a little wistfully, smoothing the folds of her
+muslin dress, “I don’t believe I am as anxious to go to the dance as I
+thought I was. Does this dress look _very_ shabby? I wouldn’t go, now,
+only it seems kind of hateful of me to refuse Mrs. Cartwright’s
+invitation.”
+
+“Now, Molliekins,” Barbara answered quite seriously, “it’s your dress,
+isn’t it? Of course, I have thought about mine, too. These are just
+simple muslins that we have worn before; but, when we left home, we
+neither of us dreamed we would go to a party in them. Let’s just make
+the best of things. Anyhow, I’ve made up my mind to one thing, and I
+wish you would, too. You and I must not worry about being poor while we
+are on this trip. Let us not pretend that we are rich, because everybody
+we meet seems to be. Ruth knows we are poor, knows about our little
+cottage and not keeping a servant, and she doesn’t mind. I don’t believe
+really nice people care whether young girls are rich or poor, if they
+happen to like them. I don’t mean to preach.” Barbara put her arm around
+Mollie and waltzed her around the room. “Let us pretend we are both
+Cinderellas before the arrival of the fairy godmother.”
+
+Mollie didn’t answer; but she tucked some pink roses in her belt. “It
+doesn’t really matter about me, anyway,” she decided. “I can’t expect
+these grown-up boys to dance with me. I will just stay by Miss Sallie.”
+
+“All right, little Miss Wall-flower,” laughed Bab, as she pinned on a
+knot of blue that Ralph Ewing had asked her to wear, as a tribute to the
+Yale colors.
+
+It was Mollie, after all, who was the belle of the party. Perhaps this
+was because the other girls whispered to their partners that Mollie was
+afraid nobody would dance with her; or, perhaps, because she was the
+youngest, and the best dancer among them all.
+
+“I am going to take this little lady under my special protection at
+Newport,” Mrs. Cartwright said to Miss Stuart, late that evening. “I
+don’t mean my ‘butterfly girl’ to be losing her beauty sleep.”
+
+Mollie looked at her “lovely lady” with eyes as blue as myrtle blossoms.
+Mrs. Cartwright was so exquisite, so young and so wealthy, she seemed to
+Mollie to have stepped out of a book.
+
+Miss Sallie was vainly trying to collect her four charges all at once,
+in order to take them home.
+
+“Aunt Sallie,” Hugh Post said roguishly, as that lady made a last
+determined stand, and gathered her girls together, “you know, from your
+experience yesterday, that Miss Ruth can’t handle a motor car, even
+though she can tackle a burglar. So we are going to follow you in my
+automobile to-morrow and see that you get to New London all right.”
+
+“Oh, no, you’re not,” protested Ruth. “This I will have you know is an
+automobile girls’ excursion and nary a man allowed.”
+
+“This one time, kindly permit us to follow you at a respectful distance,
+won’t you?” Hugh urged. “It’s only a short trip to New London. To tell
+you the truth, the governor’s yacht is over there and I hope to be able
+to persuade you to go aboard. It is not disrespectful of me, Miss
+Stuart, to speak so of my father; he was once governor of the state, and
+he rather likes to be reminded of it. Mother has a number of friends on
+board the yacht, and we shall be cruising up to Newport in a few days. I
+think it would be jolly for father and mother to know you.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X—ENTER GLADYS AND MR. TOWNSEND
+
+
+“Why, Gladys Le Baron, this is a surprise!” gayly said Grace Carter next
+afternoon, when the two parties of girls and men had left their
+automobiles and had come aboard Governor Post’s yacht, the “Penguin,”
+that lay just outside the New London harbor.
+
+Grace was awaiting her turn to be introduced to her host and hostess,
+when she spied Gladys, in a pale blue flannel suit and a cream felt hat,
+strolling down the deck, looking very much at home.
+
+“How ever did _you_ get here?” queried Grace, smiling.
+
+Gladys gave Grace’s cheek an affected peck with her lips.
+
+“I have a better right to ask that question of you,” Gladys pouted,
+“only I am not surprised. Harry Townsend came over from New London,
+yesterday, and told me you had arrived the night before. He went over
+with Hugh for the dance, but I didn’t feel like going, so he came back
+early yesterday morning. I am amazed Hugh did not speak of it to you.”
+
+“Oh, Mr. Post didn’t know we had ever heard of Harry Townsend, or you
+either. We met most unexpectedly, and we had plenty of excitement of our
+own. I must tell you about it.”
+
+At this moment, Hugh came over for Grace to introduce her to his mother.
+
+“This is Miss Carter, mother,” he said. “Will you introduce her to Mrs.
+Erwin and father? She seems to know Gladys already.”
+
+Harry Townsend had seen the newcomers, and came forward to speak to them
+with his most charming manner.
+
+“Say, Townsend,” challenged Hugh, “what made you run away from us? We
+thought, of course, you’d stay over for the dance. Thought that was your
+plan in going over to New Haven.”
+
+Harry turned to Miss Stuart. “I heard of your arrival in New Haven, the
+other evening,” he said. “The fellows told me of your experiences; but I
+got away from the hotel too early next morning to pay my respects.”
+
+“Then you didn’t hear of the burglar, did you?” queried Hugh.
+
+In spite of Miss Sallie’s protestations the whole story had to be gone
+over again.
+
+Barbara was talking to Ralph Ewing and had not looked at Harry Townsend
+during the conversation, until he came over to speak to her.
+
+“I have half an idea, Miss Thurston,” he said, “that you do not like me,
+and I am sorry. I was looking forward to our having good times together
+at Newport, as I am to be Mrs. Erwin’s guest, with your cousin Miss Le
+Baron. Mrs. Post asked us on for the yacht trip a day or two sooner than
+we expected. We are all going up to Newport together.”
+
+“Mr. Townsend,” said Barbara, her usually laughing, brown eyes now
+steadfast and serious, “I wonder why you think I do not like you?”
+
+“Miss Stuart,” begged Mrs. Post, after the governor had conducted the
+party over his trim little craft, “you must stay and dine with us on
+board the yacht to-night. I refuse to take no for an answer. I wish I
+could keep you over until morning, but unfortunately the yacht is too
+small.”
+
+Miss Sallie protested. No; they couldn’t think of it. They had come
+aboard only for a call, and must get back to their hotel before night.
+But Hugh swept all her arguments aside. He was an adored only son, and
+accustomed to having his own way. To tell the truth, Miss Sallie was not
+averse to the idea of staying; it was pleasant to be meeting Newporters
+in advance. Miss Stuart was a woman who thought much of appearances, and
+of this world’s goods, and their new acquaintances seemed to have plenty
+of both.
+
+“It’s an ill wind,” she thought to herself, “and I must say, for my
+young niece, that she has a habit of falling on her feet.”
+
+But aloud Miss Sallie accepted the invitation with much decorum.
+
+On the deck aft, where the young people had gathered, there was much
+laughter.
+
+Gladys was really pleased to see Ruth. As for her cousins, they were a
+bore, but she had no idea of being openly rude to them. She simply meant
+to ignore them.
+
+It was not easy to disregard two such popular girls. Barbara and Mollie
+seemed to be well able to get on without her patronage. Barbara was
+already smiling and chattering with Governor Post, while the boys
+described her mad ride of two days before.
+
+“Father,” said Hugh, “I forgot to introduce you to Miss Thurston by her
+proper title, ‘Miss Paul Revere.’”
+
+“Harry,” asked Gladys, as they stood on the outside of the circle,
+“don’t you think it is disgusting the way that forward cousin of mine
+always manages to put herself before the public?”
+
+“Well,” said Mr. Townsend—was there a little admiration in his
+tone?—“she seems to have plenty of grit.”
+
+It was really Mollie, not Barbara, who saw through Gladys’s treatment of
+them. Barbara was too open-hearted and boyish to notice a slight, unless
+it was very marked.
+
+Gladys had asked Ruth and Grace to her stateroom, and Mrs. Post had put
+the other two girls into her unoccupied guest chamber. It was a little
+gem of a stateroom, upholstered in pale green to relieve the glare from
+the water.
+
+“Bab,” Mollie chuckled, rubbing her cheeks until they were pink, “do you
+remember the story of ‘The Water Baby’?”
+
+“Yes,” Bab answered absently; “I do, after a fashion. But why do you
+ask? You haven’t turned into a water baby, have you, just because you
+are on board a yacht for the first time in your life?”
+
+“No,” laughed Mollie. “I was thinking of the story in it of the salmon
+and the trout. Have you forgotten it?”
+
+“Of course I have,” admitted Barbara.
+
+Mollie chuckled gleefully. “Our high and mighty cousin, Gladys, reminds
+me very much of the salmon, who thought the trout a very common fish,
+and disliked him all the more because he was a relation. Feel like a
+trout, Bab?”
+
+“Not at all, Mollie; but do hurry and go out on deck. That young
+freshman, who came down in the automobile with us to amuse you, is
+wandering around outside, looking frightened to death. You must go and
+talk to him.”
+
+As Barbara stepped into the big salon, which was fitted up like a
+library, she saw one of the young men disappear quickly through the open
+door. Bab went over to their wraps, which they had dropped in a heap on
+a couch when they boarded the yacht, and selected her own jacket. Ruth’s
+pocketbook was in full view among their belongings, and Bab covered it
+over before she went on deck.
+
+Before dinner ended the moon had risen, the pale crescent hanging like a
+slender jewel in the sky.
+
+Barbara was standing alone, for a second, when Mrs. Erwin approached
+her.
+
+“Pardon me, dear,” she said, “but did you or your sister see a small pin
+on the dressing table of the guest room, when you went in there before
+dinner? I have misplaced a ruby and diamond circle of no great value. I
+went into the guest chamber this morning, while the maid was cleaning my
+room, and I thought perhaps I had laid it down in there.”
+
+“No,” said Bab, frowning. It did seem curious how losses were following
+them! “I didn’t look, although it was probably there. I am most
+unobservant. I will ask my sister.”
+
+“No, no,” said Mrs. Erwin, hastily; “please don’t. I shall probably find
+it again. I don’t want Mrs. Post to hear.”
+
+The next morning, when Grace and Ruth were donning their best motor
+veils and coats, Ruth suddenly looked surprised and began to search
+hurriedly through her pocketbook.
+
+“Grace,” she said, “I can’t find fifty dollars. I am sure I had it
+yesterday, because I looked carefully after that wretched burglar had
+gone, though I knew all my money was safe in my trunk. Now it’s gone!”
+
+Ruth turned her pocketbook upside down. “Don’t tell Aunt Sallie,
+please,” she begged. “I don’t know what she would say to have this item
+added to our adventures.”
+
+Miss Sallie’s voice was heard calling from the next room.
+
+“Girls, are we or are we not, going to Newport to-day? I, for my part,
+wish to spend no more time on the way!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI—NEWPORT AT LAST!
+
+
+The automobile girls were in a flutter of excitement. Another half hour,
+and they would arrive in Newport!
+
+“Ruth,” said Miss Sallie, “slow up this car a little! Before we enter
+Newport, I must see to my appearance. To think of all I have gone
+through since I left Kingsbridge!” Miss Sallie took out a small hand
+mirror, thoughtfully surveying her own unwrinkled face. “What will you
+children get me into before we are through with this trip?”
+
+Ruth slowed down obediently.
+
+“Open my bag, Mollie,” said Miss Sallie, decidedly, “and you, Grace,
+look under the seat for my other hat. We shall probably arrive in
+Newport at five o’clock, the hour for the fashionable parade. I, at
+least, shall do what I can to give our car an appearance of gentility. I
+advise you children to do the same.”
+
+“Would you like a little cold cream, Miss Sallie, to wipe off your
+face?” Mollie spoke timidly, remembering how Barbara had laughed at her.
+
+“Certainly I should, my child, and very intelligent of you to have
+brought it along.”
+
+“Well,” said Ruth, “if you must ‘fix up,’ and I am to take a party of
+belles and beauties into Newport, instead of true lovers of sport, there
+are lots of new veils under my seat. Bab, take them out and pass them
+around. Only the chauffeur shall be dusty and dilapidated enough to look
+the part.”
+
+Behold their dream had come true! The automobile girls were at last in
+Newport, watching the summer parade!
+
+Ruth, at the expected hour, turned her car, with a great flourish, into
+Bellevue Avenue, Newport’s most fashionable thoroughfare. For a few
+minutes the girls beheld a long procession of carriages and automobiles;
+a little later, they swung round a corner and stopped in front of a
+beautiful old Colonial house, with a wide veranda running around three
+sides of it, and a hospitably open front door.
+
+Miss Sallie descended first, to be greeted by Ralph’s mother, who was
+expecting them.
+
+“I don’t like her. She’s not a bit like Ralph,” thought Barbara. Then
+she gave herself an inward shake. “There, Barbara, you know what mother
+would say to you about your sudden prejudices!”
+
+Mrs. Ewing, who had been a great beauty in her day, looked as though
+life had disagreed with her.
+
+Barbara had wondered how a private home could accommodate so many
+people, never having seen a handsome old New England house, but their
+three rooms occupied only half of one side of the long hall on the
+second floor. “And they think they are poor!” smiled Bab, to herself, as
+she looked admiringly at the handsome furniture. “I wonder what they
+would think of our little five-room cottage.”
+
+“I want some clean clothes before anything else,” sighed dainty Mollie,
+standing before a mirror, gazing with disdain at her own appearance. “I
+believe I have one clean shirtwaist left, but I must still wear this
+dusty old skirt.”
+
+But Ruth was staggering into the room under an immense box.
+
+“Fifteen dollars express charges, mum; not a cent less! Them’s my
+orders. And extry for carrying the box upstairs. It ain’t my business.
+I’m too accommodating I am! Where shall I put it down, mum?”
+
+Ruth dropped the heavy bundle on the bed; she couldn’t carry it a moment
+longer.
+
+“Why, Ruth Stuart!” said Mollie, dancing with glee. “It’s some clothes
+for us! How did mother get them here in such a hurry? Oh, joy! oh,
+rapture! I was just fussing about having to wear this old suit
+to-night.”
+
+Bab was tugging at the heavy cords.
+
+“Foolish Bab!” scoffed Ruth. “You’ll never get it open that way,” and
+she cut the cord in a business-like fashion with a little knife she
+always carried.
+
+“Now I’ll run away and leave you,” Ruth continued. “Grace is calling
+that it is time for my bath. Your turn next. I’ll see the pretty things
+when I come back.”
+
+Ruth would like to have stayed to see the girls open the box, but she
+had an instinctive feeling that they would prefer to be alone.
+
+“Here’s a letter from mother. Let’s read that first,” said Bab.
+
+Inside the letter lay two crisp ten-dollar bills!
+
+“I have had a windfall, children,” the letter read, “through the
+kindness of Mr. Stuart. He told me that some of my old stock that I
+thought of no value was paying a dividend again. Curiously, your Uncle
+Ralph had not mentioned it to me; but, when I wrote and told him of Mr.
+Stuart’s advice, he sent it to me at once. So here’s a little spending
+money. And oh, my darlings, I hope you will like your new clothes! Mr.
+Stuart is so kind to me, I am not lonely,” the letter ended, “so have
+the best time you possibly can. I shall send your trunk to-morrow with
+your summer muslins and underwear.”
+
+“Mollie mine, don’t tear the paper in that fashion,” remonstrated
+Barbara. “Let me open the box. Behold and see!” She held up two dainty
+organdie frocks, delicate and airy. Mollie’s gown was white, with little
+butterfly medallions of embroidery and lace sprinkled over it.
+
+“Mollie, Mollie! How could mother have guessed your new name was ‘the
+butterfly girl’? Isn’t it too lovely!” Bab almost forgot to look at her
+own frock, so enraptured was she with her sister’s.
+
+But Barbara’s frock was just as charming, and as well suited to her. A
+circle of pink wild roses outlined the hem and encircled the yoke, which
+was of delicate pink tulle.
+
+Mollie was rummaging with impatient fingers. “Party capes, I do
+declare—the very newest style! I never reached the point of expecting
+capes even in my wildest dreams. See, yours is all white, and mine has a
+pale blue lining with a dear little ‘blue riding hood cap.’ Oh, won’t I
+be charming?” murmured Mollie, putting the cape over her shoulders and
+pirouetting before the mirror. “Surely no sensible wolf would want to
+eat me up!”
+
+Two light flannel suits, one of cream color for Bab, and a pin-stripe of
+blue and white for Mollie, completed the glories of the box.
+
+“Now,” said Bab, “what more can we want, for tennis, for rowing, for
+yachting, for driving? Are there any more entertainments that the rich
+enjoy, Mollie? Because, if there are, I should like to mention them.”
+
+ Oh, the girls will all declare,
+ When they see me on the square—
+ Here comes a millionaire,
+ Mollie darling!
+
+“What do you think of that for poetry made while you wait? You don’t
+half appreciate my talents, Miss Mollie Thurston,” ended Bab, with a
+final hug.
+
+“Hurry, children,” called Miss Sallie, appearing at their door. “You
+know we are to meet Mrs. Cartwright at the Casino to-night. She wants to
+introduce us to the place where a large part of Newport’s gayety
+occurs.”
+
+“What is the ‘Casino’?” whispered Mollie, when Miss Sallie had
+disappeared.
+
+“Oh, it’s only a big club, where you play tennis and have dances, and
+any sort of entertainments. Nearly all the nicest people in Newport
+belong to it. Mrs. Cartwright says we’ll have most of our fun over
+there.”
+
+Bab put her arm round her sister, as they walked downstairs.
+
+“Mollie,” she said, “I have the queerest feeling. I am so happy, it
+frightens me. I never had such a good time before. I wonder how it will
+all turn out?”
+
+Barbara could not guess that there were to be tears for her, as well as
+joys, at Newport. It was as well she did not know, or her pleasure would
+have been marred.
+
+The girls finished dinner as quickly as possible.
+
+“There’s time for a stroll on the cliffs, isn’t there, before eight?”
+inquired Ruth. “Do you feel equal to exercise, Aunt Sallie? Everyone
+takes the cliff walk the first thing after arrival in Newport.”
+
+“Certainly,” Miss Sallie agreed. “I suppose I can manage it, though I
+have ridden so far that I may have lost the use of my limbs. However, I
+can sit down if I grow tired, and you children can go on without me.
+It’s perfectly safe, isn’t it, Mrs. Ewing?”
+
+“Oh, yes,” Mrs. Ewing replied; “though it looks fairly dangerous, the
+cliffs are so high, the highest on the Atlantic Coast from Cape Ann to
+Yucatan. But very few accidents have occurred there—so far.”
+
+Ruth and Barbara led the way. They could hear the sea booming and
+pounding below them. From the edge of the cliff they looked down a
+hundred feet at the sea, washing in on the level stretch of beach.
+
+Ruth shivered and turned pale. “Oh,” she shuddered, “it makes me
+horribly nervous! I am ashamed of it, so I don’t often mention it, but I
+simply can’t look down from great heights. It even makes me a little
+sick to look out of a high window, and I’m a miserable climber, I get so
+dizzy. Let us go back. Do you mind, Bab?”
+
+“No, Ruth,” Bab answered. “I suppose I am a tomboy; I used to play hare
+and hounds with the boys at school, and I learned to climb like a goat
+over the rocks at Kingsbridge; but these Newport cliffs are a different
+matter.”
+
+Barbara’s powers were to be tested, but neither she nor Ruth thought
+anything more of their talk. Miss Sallie and the other two girls had
+joined them, and they made their way along the narrow, winding path that
+dipped in hollows and curves, and stretched for two miles ahead of them.
+
+“How hard it is,” said Miss Sallie, “to tell which view is the more
+beautiful!”
+
+On the inland side of the cliffs, beautiful, shaded lawns, luxuriant
+with flowers, ran down to the edge of the path. Set in their midst were
+the marble palaces of Newport’s millionaires. Toward the sea, great
+points of land jutted out into the harbor, where the water was violet
+with the shadows of the closing day.
+
+“Miss Stuart! Miss Stuart!” Aunt Sallie heard a gay voice calling her.
+
+Running across the lawn, and waving her scarf at them, came Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+
+“Were you coming to see me first?” she asked.
+
+Miss Stuart confessed that she had not the shadow of an idea which house
+belonged to Mrs. Cartwright.
+
+“You must see it for a minute, since you are already here,” urged Mrs.
+Cartwright, and led the way up the graveled path to her veranda.
+
+“Mollie,” she said, addressing the young girl, “I think it is peculiarly
+appropriate for my butterfly girl to be introduced to my piazza. It is
+made to look like a Japanese teahouse,” she explained to Miss Sallie.
+
+The sides of Mrs. Cartwright’s veranda were of heavy Japanese paper
+stretched on bamboo poles which opened and closed at will. The paper had
+been painted by a famous Japanese artist to represent springtime in
+Japan. There were whole rows of cherry trees in full blossom, with
+little Japanese children playing beneath them. Opposite this scene was
+another painting—a marshy lake, surrounded by queer Japanese birds.
+
+The veranda was lighted by a hundred tiny shaded lamps. Japanese matting
+covered the floor, while the tea tables were set with tea services
+bought in old Japan. The girls had never seen anything so lovely.
+
+“You are officially invited to have tea with me here, any or every
+afternoon you are in Newport. Now I will run and get Mr. Cartwright,”
+added their hostess, “and we will go over to the Casino.”
+
+Outside, the Casino looked like a rambling, old Dutch mansion, with
+peaked gables and overhanging eaves.
+
+“We’ve a Dutch house, English lawns and a French chef,” Mr. Cartwright
+laughingly explained to Miss Sallie as they entered.
+
+“And we’ve dozens of tennis courts,” added Mrs. Cartwright. “We are
+working dreadfully hard, now, for the tournament that is to take place
+in a few weeks. It is really the social event of the whole year at
+Newport. Is there a star player among you girls? Why not enter the
+tournament and compete for the championship? We are to have a special
+match game, this year, played by the young people. Let us keep these
+tennis courts busy for a while. You’ll come over, too, Miss Stuart,
+won’t you, and play bridge while we work. Or you’ll work at bridge,
+while we play tennis. Perhaps you think that is the way I should have
+put it.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII—A WEEK LATER
+
+
+“Barbara, I wouldn’t play tennis with Gladys and Harry Townsend, if I
+were you,” said Mollie to her sister, one morning a week later. “They
+were horrid to you yesterday. Didn’t you notice, when you called to Hugh
+and Ruth that their last ball had gone over the line, Gladys just
+shrugged her shoulders, and gave a sneery kind of smile to that Townsend
+fellow, and he lifted his eyebrows! Is your score the best, or Ruth’s? I
+know you’re both ahead of Gladys and Grace. I am sure Gladys doesn’t
+play a bit better than I do; so she needn’t have been so high and
+mighty.”
+
+Mollie shrugged her dainty shoulders. “You see, she told me, the first
+day she arrived, that, of course, I didn’t play in the class with the
+others, so you had just the right eight for the two courts—four girls
+and four men.”
+
+“Why, Mollie!” Bab looked surprised. “I thought you said you didn’t want
+to play. You can take my place any time.”
+
+Mollie smiled. “No,” she answered; “I don’t want to play. It’s not that.
+But it annoys me when you let Gladys Le Baron, cousin or no cousin, snub
+us all the time, and you not notice it. Ralph certainly wouldn’t like to
+have me play with him now, when you’re in for a match game.”
+
+“Mollie,” said Bab, tying her tennis shoe, “I _do_ notice how rude
+Gladys is. She left me standing all alone the other afternoon, when Ruth
+and Grace had gone into the club house to speak to Aunt Sallie. Friends
+of Gladys’s came up, and she deliberately turned her back on me and
+didn’t introduce me. I felt so out of it! Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin soon
+joined them, and they shook hands with me. I found the other people were
+some guests who had come down for Mrs. Erwin’s ball, next week, and were
+staying at her house.
+
+“I know,” she continued, “Gladys is furious that we are invited to the
+dance. Mrs. Erwin was so cordial and nice. She said, right before me,
+that though the ball was a grown-up affair, she knew Gladys would want
+her cousins and friends, and she had invited us on her account. Wasn’t
+it funny? Miss Gladys couldn’t say a word. Goodness knows, _she_ doesn’t
+want us. She has been lording it over us, for days, because she and
+Harry were to be the only very young people invited. Gladys imagines
+herself a woman of society, and is in reality merely a foolish little
+girl,” said Barbara. Then she added reflectively: “Miss Sallie says we
+are all too young to ‘go out,’ and she doubts the propriety of allowing
+us to attend Mrs. Erwin’s ball. Last night she told Ruth she had almost
+decided against our going. Ruth championed our cause on the strength of
+the shortness of our stay in Newport, also that we should be permitted
+to go as a special favor to our hostess. You know Miss Sallie hates to
+refuse Ruth anything. Consequently we will be ‘among those present’ at
+Mrs. Erwin’s ball whether Miss Gladys approves or not.”
+
+“I just wish I could tell my lovely Mrs. Cartwright how mean Gladys is,”
+said Mollie. “She would not ask her to her charity fair.”
+
+“Please don’t say anything, Mollie,” pleaded Barbara, taking her tennis
+racquet from the bed. She had already answered Ralph’s impatient whistle
+from the garden below. “It won’t do any good for us to be horrid to
+Gladys in return; it will only make us seem as hateful as she is. Things
+will come around, somehow. I don’t mind her—so very much.”
+
+“Well, I do,” answered Mollie. “But you haven’t told me how your score
+and Ruth’s stand.”
+
+“Oh, I think we are pretty nearly even.” Barbara was half way out the
+door. “Be careful, Molliekins,” she urged, “if you go rowing with that
+freshman this afternoon. Why do you want to know about Ruth’s score and
+mine? It’s a week before the game, and anything may happen before then.
+We all play pretty evenly; Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing, too.”
+
+“Oh, I didn’t mean anything, Bab,” Mollie said, thoughtfully. “Only
+Ruth’s awfully anxious to play in the tournament. She’s just crazy about
+it.”
+
+“Of course she is, child. So are we all, for that matter,” answered Bab.
+“You don’t mean——”
+
+“I don’t mean a single thing, Bab Thurston!” said Mollie, a little
+indignantly.
+
+“Yes, I am coming, at last, Ralph,” Barbara sang softly over the
+banisters. She had not overcome her awe of Mrs. Ewing. Ralph’s mother
+was by no means pleased with the idea that her adored Ralph preferred
+Barbara to any of the other girls.
+
+“It’s like Ralph,” she complained to his father, “to pick out the
+poorest girl of the lot, when the rich ones are so much more charming. A
+great way for him to retrieve the family fortunes!”
+
+“We will hope,” said Ralph’s father quietly, “that Ralph will not try to
+restore our fortunes by marrying for money.”
+
+As Barbara walked down to meet Ralph she looked grave, and her face was
+flushed. Ruth _did_ want to play in the tournament, but so did she, for
+that matter! Could she resign in Ruth’s favor? Then Barbara laughed to
+herself. “Catch a girl like Ruth letting me give up to her! I wonder if
+it would be fair of me to disappoint Ralph?”
+
+“Come on, Miss Day-dreamer,” ordered Ralph, hurrying her along. “The
+others have been waiting for us for fifteen minutes down at the Casino
+courts. Do you know that there is a party on for the afternoon? Ruth and
+Hugh are to pile as many of us as they can into their motor cars, and
+take us ten miles out the Ocean Drive. We are to stop at Mrs. Duffy’s
+English tea place on our way back.”
+
+Bab was certainly not playing in good form today. She even missed one of
+Gladys’s serves, which were usually too soft to count. When the
+morning’s practice was over, Ruth’s and Hugh’s score was two points
+ahead.
+
+“Who is going to play in the tournament from these courts?” asked Mrs.
+Cartwright, crossing the lawn, her tennis racquet swinging in her hand.
+Mollie was close beside her, also “that freshman,” who followed Mollie
+wherever she went.
+
+“Bab,” answered Ruth, coming up to smile at Mrs. Cartwright, who was
+looking prettier than usual in her tennis blouse of pale pink madras
+with a linen skirt of the same shade.
+
+“What a funny Gladys!” Mrs. Cartwright laughed as the other girls joined
+her. “You are following our latest Newport fad, are you not, of having
+your head wrapped in a chiffon veil while you play tennis. You look like
+a Turkish girl, with only your eyes peeping out.”
+
+Gladys had tied up her head in a pale blue chiffon veil, with a fetching
+bow just over the ear. The other women who were playing on the courts,
+with the exception of Mrs. Cartwright and the automobile girls, were
+draped in the same fashion.
+
+“That suggests a game to me,” continued Mrs. Cartwright. “You must come
+to my veranda some night and we will play it. It is called ‘eyeology.’ I
+won’t tell you anything more about it now. Just you wait! But to go back
+to my first question. Then I am to enter Barbara for the tournament?”
+
+“I should say not, Mrs. Cartwright,” said Barbara, who was standing
+near. This time she would not let Ruth speak.
+
+“Ruth is certainly the best player among us,” drawled Gladys; “she and
+Mr. Post; but,” she went on in insinuating tones, “you know there are
+strange things that can happen in tennis!”
+
+“If you mean, Gladys, that I cheated the other day,” broke out Barbara
+fiercely, “I simply won’t bear it! I know it is horrid of me to make a
+scene,” she turned to Ruth with her eyes full of tears, “but this is the
+second time.”
+
+“Please don’t get excited, Miss Thurston,” cried Gladys scornfully. “I
+have not said you cheated. It looks a little bit like a case of guilty
+conscience.”
+
+Harry Townsend smiled knowingly.
+
+Bab, nearly in tears, couldn’t answer, but Ralph and Hugh Post both
+protested indignantly.
+
+“Please don’t discuss a thing of this kind here,” said Mrs. Cartwright,
+angrily. “We don’t allow quarreling on the Casino courts. I am surprised
+at you, Barbara. You were accused of nothing.”
+
+Mollie’s eyes were black, instead of their usual lovely blue. She was
+very indignant, but she was always more of a diplomat than Barbara.
+
+“Lovely lady,” she said, putting her hand in Mrs. Cartwright’s as they
+moved away, “Gladys did mean that Bab cheated. This is the second time
+she has said it. Wouldn’t you answer back if you were accused of not
+playing fair with your very best friend?”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright gave Mollie’s hand a squeeze. “Tell Barbara I am sorry
+if I was too hard on her, but I don’t like scenes!”
+
+“I wish I could get an excuse to pummel that Harry Townsend!” muttered
+Ralph indignantly to Hugh, when the girls had gone home. “I can’t take
+it out on Gladys, for she’s a girl. That Townsend fellow’s nothing but a
+sneak. He just stands round and smiles and says nothing, until he puts
+me in a rage!”
+
+“Oh, don’t fight, Ralph,” Hugh protested. “I hate that Townsend man,
+though, as much as you do. He is too infernally polite, for one thing,
+and he walks on his tiptoes. He comes right up behind you, and you never
+know where he is until he speaks. I believe he wears rubber soles on his
+shoes!”
+
+That afternoon, when the automobile parties had finished drinking their
+tea, Barbara asked Ralph to take a little walk with her in the woods.
+She wanted to ask him something.
+
+“Ralph,” she began, “if I should fall down in my tennis, in the next few
+days, would you and Hugh play a test game to see which of you is the
+better man to help Ruth out in the tournament?”
+
+Ralph shook his head. “No,” he answered. “You are not losing your nerve,
+are you, Bab? Ruth and Hugh are wonderfully good players, but we are as
+good as the rest of ’em. I’ll take my chances with you.”
+
+“Would you be very, very much disappointed if we lost?”
+
+“Oh, yes,” said Ralph, cheerily, “but I could bear it all right.” He
+looked hard at Barbara for a minute. Then he said: “Go ahead, Barbara; I
+think I understand. I am game. And I’ll never breathe it to a soul. Hugh
+and Ruth would never forgive us, if they found out!”
+
+“Well, Ralph,” said Barbara, “I don’t think there’s going to be any
+reason for my trying to let Ruth win; she’s a better player than I am,
+and she will win anyhow, but, in case she shouldn’t, Ruth has been a
+perfect dear to Mollie and me!”
+
+“Gladys,” said Ruth that night, when the young people were having an
+informal dance at the Casino, “I shall never forgive you for accusing
+Barbara of cheating, as you did today. Barbara is perfectly incapable of
+cheating. I can’t understand why you don’t like her.”
+
+Ruth’s frank face clouded. She was incapable of understanding the petty
+meannesses in Gladys’s nature.
+
+“Mr. Townsend and I thought differently concerning Miss Thurston,”
+Gladys replied, “but I have made no accusations, and will make none. You
+will find things out for yourself, though, when it is too late!”
+
+Mollie was very sympathetic with Barbara that night. Things had not been
+going well with Bab for several days; she had an unfortunate habit of
+speaking her mind without thinking, and this trait had gotten her into
+trouble with Miss Sallie several times. That lady had a profound respect
+for the rich, while Barbara had been heard to say that some of the most
+fashionable ideas of Newport were “just nonsense.”
+
+“Bab,” comforted Mollie, “Mrs. Cartwright told me to say she was sorry
+she had been cross to you. She wants you to be the gypsy fortune-teller
+at her bazaar. She says you are very clever, and would do it better than
+anyone else; besides, she thinks no one would know you. She has lots of
+gypsy things to dress up in.”
+
+“I would much rather be a waitress, like you girls,” Bab declared.
+
+“But you will do what Mrs. Cartwright wants you to, won’t you?” urged
+Mollie.
+
+“I’ll see,” said Bab.
+
+The automobile girls were seeing Newport indeed! Mrs. Erwin and Mrs.
+Cartwright were both leaders in society. The girls had not only been
+invited to Mrs. Erwin’s ball, but to the big dance which took place
+after the tennis tournament, and Mrs. Cartwright was arranging for a
+Charity Fair, which was to be the most original entertainment of the
+Newport season.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII—THE NIGHT OF THE BALL
+
+
+“Yes, Hugh,” Barbara said, as the last strains of the Merry Widow waltz
+died away, “I should like to rest here a minute.” Barbara sank down on
+the low, rose-colored divan shaded by magnificent palms in Mrs. Erwin’s
+conservatory. “I would love an ice, too,” she added.
+
+It was the night of Mrs. Erwin’s famous white and gold ball, long
+remembered in the history of splendid entertainments in Newport.
+
+Barbara truly wanted a minute to think. She had come to the ball under
+Miss Sallie’s excellent chaperonage, early in the evening, and had been
+dancing hard ever since. The little girl from Kingsbridge, who had never
+before seen anything finer than a village entertainment, felt almost
+overcome by the splendor and magnificence of everything about her.
+
+Mrs. Erwin’s ballroom was built out from the side of her handsome villa
+like a Greek portico. The conservatory joined it at one end, forming an
+inner triangular court. This court was filled with rare trees which
+threw their branches out over a miniature artificial lake. The guests
+could pass from the ballroom into this open garden, or they could enter
+it through the conservatory.
+
+The walls of the wonderful ballroom were covered with a white silk
+brocade, and on this night Mrs. Erwin had allowed only yellow flowers to
+be used as decorations. Great bowls of yellow roses perfumed the air,
+and golden orchids looked like troops of butterflies just poising before
+they took flight.
+
+“Now I know,” said Mollie, with a catch in her breath, as she first came
+into the magnificent ballroom, “what King Midas’s garden must have
+looked like, when he went round and caressed all the flowers in it with
+the golden touch.”
+
+“Clever Mollie!” laughed Ruth. “I expect it is the golden touch that has
+been round this ballroom, or the touch of golden dollars, anyway.”
+
+Mollie blushed. “I didn’t mean that,” she said.
+
+Barbara leaned her head against the rose-colored cushion, just the color
+of the jeweled spray in her hair; she was wearing the coral jewelry her
+mother had given her. Fortunately the two girls had saved their best
+party dresses for this ball, having been content to wear their summer
+muslins at the informal dances at the Casino.
+
+Barbara, in her dainty pink flowered organdie, with her cheeks flushed
+to match it in color, resembled a lovely wild rose.
+
+Curiously enough, amid all this elegance, Bab felt a little homesick.
+She kept thinking of her mother and the little cottage.
+
+“It’s a wonderful experience for Mollie and me,” she said to herself. “I
+hope I can tell mother exactly what it looks like. I am sure fairyland
+can’t be half so gorgeous; fairies wear only dewdrops for jewels; but
+here, I believe, there must be nearly all the jewels in the world.”
+
+Barbara did not know how big the world really is, nor how many people
+and jewels, both real and paste, there are in it. After all, artificial
+people are no better than paste jewels!
+
+Earlier in the evening Mollie and Barbara had stood with their hands
+tight together, watching the men and women enter the great reception
+room to speak to their host and hostess.
+
+“Diamonds,” whispered Mollie to Bab, “seem as plentiful as the
+strawberries we gathered for the hotel people this summer. We didn’t
+dream, then, that we were coming to Newport! Isn’t my Mrs. Cartwright
+the most beautiful of them all?” wound up the loyal child.
+
+Mrs. Cartwright wore a white satin gown, with a diamond star in the
+tulle of her bodice. In her hair was a spray of diamonds, mounted to
+look like a single stalk of lilies of the valley, each jewel hanging
+from the slender stem like a tiny floweret.
+
+The conservatory was almost empty while Bab rested and waited.
+
+During the intermission in the dance nearly all the guests had wandered
+into the dining-room or into the moonlit garden.
+
+Barbara realized that she was almost completely hidden by the great palm
+trees that formed an arch over her head and drooped their long arms down
+over her. She had crept into this seat in order that she might see
+without being seen.
+
+Yet in spite of the quiet, Barbara was not resting. Her heart was
+beating fast with the excitement of this wonderful evening, and her tiny
+feet in the pink silk slippers still kept time to the last waltz she had
+danced with Hugh.
+
+The conservatory door, leading into the garden, was open. Barbara saw
+Mrs. Post, Governor Post, Harry Townsend and a woman in a gold-colored
+brocade enter the conservatory and stop to talk for a few minutes. They
+had not noticed Barbara nor did she feel it was quite proper to
+interrupt them, as she did not know the strange woman who was with them.
+
+Governor Post bowed in military fashion to the ladies.
+
+“Now,” he said, “I’ll go, and leave the young man to do the
+entertaining. We old fellows must make ourselves useful when our
+ornamental days are over. Mr. Townsend will look after you here, and I
+shall find a waiter and have him bring you something to eat.”
+
+Barbara saw Harry Townsend talking in his most impressive manner to the
+two women.
+
+“It is curious,” Bab thought, to herself, “what a society man Harry
+Townsend is. Gladys says he is only twenty-two. I wonder where he comes
+from. Nobody seems to know. Oh, yes; Gladys said he was educated in
+Paris. She met him on shipboard.”
+
+The little girl from her green bower was an interested watcher. It was
+fascinating to be able to see all that was going on, without being seen.
+Bab sat as quiet as a mouse, taking no part in the conversation.
+
+Mrs. Post was a handsome woman of about fifty, who looked rather stern
+to the girls; but Hugh assured them that she was “dead easy,” once you
+got on the right side of her. Her husband was a prominent lawyer in
+Washington, and their winters were usually spent in the capital.
+
+Mrs. Post’s gown was nearly covered by a long, light-colored chiffon
+wrap, with a high collar lined with a curious ornamental embroidery.
+
+“Harry,” she said, turning to the young man with her, “it is warm in
+here with these tropical plants; will you be kind enough to remove my
+wrap?”
+
+The conservatory was dimly lighted. Barbara sat in the shadow. Between
+her and the party she was watching was a central row of flowers and
+evergreens, dividing the long room into two aisles.
+
+She saw Harry rise and lean over Mrs. Post, who only half rose from her
+chair. Deftly and with wonderful ease and swiftness, Townsend undid the
+clasp at her throat; but, for a moment, the embroidery from the collar
+seemed to have caught in her hair.
+
+Barbara’s eyes grew wide and staring with surprise. As the coat slipped
+back from Mrs. Post’s shoulders, she saw a string like a tiny green
+serpent glide with magic smoothness and swiftness from her throat, and
+drop into the shrubbery back of her, or—into Harry Townsend’s hand?
+
+What should she do? Announce that she had seen her string of emeralds
+disappear? Mrs. Post was talking and laughing gayly with her friend in
+the gold-colored dress. Harry was smiling quietly by them. Barbara
+rubbed her eyes. Surely she was mistaken. She had been dazzled by the
+wonderful sights she had seen that night. While she hesitated her
+opportunity passed.
+
+Governor Post returned, saying to his wife: “Come, my dear, I have found
+Miss Stuart and a friend. They have a table out in the garden, and want
+us to join them.”
+
+Mrs. Post again drew her wrap over her shoulders and turned to leave the
+conservatory. As she rose she saw Barbara.
+
+“You there, my child?” she said in a friendly way. “Why didn’t you speak
+to me?”
+
+Barbara could only answer her stupidly. “I was waiting for Hugh.”
+
+When Hugh returned he found Barbara looking as pale as though she had
+just seen a ghost.
+
+“What’s the matter?” he asked at once. “Are you ill?”
+
+But Bab shook her head. “I’ll go find Miss Stuart,” the young man
+suggested.
+
+“You’ll do no such thing, Hugh!” Barbara had recovered her breath.
+“There’s nothing much the matter with me—at least, I am not sure whether
+I ought to tell you.”
+
+“Bab and Hugh! Well, I like this!” Grace’s voice sounded from the
+doorway, as she and Donald Cartwright came in, followed by Ruth and
+Ralph. “Here you two have run away by yourselves, when we promised to
+stick together this evening, in order to keep up each other’s courage.
+You ought to see Gladys! She’s as angry as can he, and is wandering
+round with Mollie and the freshman. Harry has been gone somewhere for a
+long time, and she has no partner for the next dance.”
+
+“Are you sick, Bab?” inquired Ruth. She, too, noticed that Bab was
+unusually pale. Before she received an answer, Governor and Mrs. Post
+came into the conservatory, followed by Harry Townsend, Miss Stuart and
+the woman in yellow.
+
+“You are just the fellow I want to see, Hugh,” said his father, so
+quietly that no one except those near him could hear. “Your mother has
+lost her emerald necklace, and she thought she had it on when she was
+last in here. We don’t want to create any excitement, or to let Mrs.
+Erwin or the servants know until we have made a thorough search. She
+very probably dropped it among these flowers. Lock the door out there,
+will you? Miss Carter, you and Donald, please keep guard at the other
+door while these young people help me look.”
+
+“I thought——” said Barbara.
+
+“Why, you were in here, child, when we were. You were on the other side
+of these evergreens,” said Mrs. Post. “What did you say?”
+
+“I thought it might be in these evergreens,” Barbara finished, lamely,
+getting down on her knees to assist in the search. Dared she speak of
+what she thought she had seen? Dared she speak with no evidence but her
+own word? Could she have been in error? First, she would look with the
+others.
+
+Every palm, every flower, every inch of space was carefully gone over.
+No sign of the missing emeralds!
+
+“Did anyone enter the conservatory after I left, Miss Thurston?”
+inquired Mrs. Post coldly. She was worried by the loss of her jewels,
+which were of great value, as well as annoyed by the excitement she was
+causing.
+
+“Nobody came in,” Bab said, “only Hugh.”
+
+“I am exceedingly sorry,” the governor said at last, “but Mrs. Erwin
+will have to be notified. The jewels were either lost or stolen, and
+must be found. If the servants find the necklace a liberal reward will
+induce them to return it.”
+
+The older people left the conservatory.
+
+Just as the younger ones turned to leave, Barbara, whose strange
+expression had not escaped the sharp eyes of Ruth, laid her hand on
+Hugh’s arm.
+
+“Ask Harry Townsend to stay here a minute with us, won’t you please,
+Hugh?” said Barbara hoarsely.
+
+“Say, Townsend,” Hugh called, “come back a moment. I want to speak to
+you. Or, rather, Miss Thurston does.”
+
+“Mr. Townsend,” said Barbara, her face pale as death, “did you not see
+Mrs. Post’s necklace when you took off her wrap in here?”
+
+“No,” said Harry quietly. “Did you?”
+
+“Ask him, Hugh,” said Barbara, desperately, “to show you what he has in
+his pockets!”
+
+“Oh, say, Barbara!” Hugh answered. “I can’t do that. It’s a little too
+much.”
+
+But Ralph stepped forward. “We don’t know what Miss Thurston means, but
+she most certainly doesn’t mean to insult Mr. Townsend unnecessarily.
+Why, then, should he mind turning out his pockets? Here Hugh,” Ralph
+turned, “search me first. Then Mr. Townsend won’t object to the selfsame
+process.”
+
+Hugh’s face was crimson, but he looked through Ralph’s pockets in a
+gingerly fashion.
+
+When he finished Harry Townsend turned quietly to Barbara. “I don’t know
+why you wish to insult me,” he said to her, “but I am perfectly willing
+to have Mr. Post search me. You were the only person in the conservatory
+after the jewels were lost!”
+
+Hugh started his search.
+
+Barbara leaned sick and faint against her chair, expecting every moment
+to see Hugh draw the jewels forth. She kept her eyes averted while Harry
+turned his pockets wrong side out and finally opened his vest.
+
+“Barbara,” said Hugh, coldly, and Bab turned around. “We owe Mr.
+Townsend an apology. He is certainly no thief!”
+
+The jewels were nowhere to be found.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV—BARBARA’S SECRET
+
+
+“Bab, Bab! What is the matter with you!” cried Mollie, for Barbara had
+thrown herself on the bed after their return from the ball, bursting
+into a torrent of tears.
+
+“Oh, I don’t know,” sobbed Bab. “I must be wrong, or crazy, or
+something. Yet how can people doubt their own eyes?”
+
+Mollie stopped spreading out her butterfly dress, in which she had
+looked so pretty at the party, and flung her arms round her sister.
+
+“Just tell me what is the matter, dear! Has anyone hurt your feelings?
+If it’s that Gladys Le Baron I’ll certainly get even with her!”
+
+But Bab didn’t answer.
+
+“I’m going to call Ruth,” said Mollie. “I don’t want to waken Aunt
+Sallie, but you seemed queer all the way home from the ball.”
+
+Bab sat up, when Ruth came in, and dried her eyes.
+
+“I am so sorry you feel so badly, Barbara, dear,” said Ruth, “but, of
+course, it was a wretched mistake for you to have made. Let’s try to
+forget that horrid scene. Some servant will pick up the necklace in the
+morning, and return it to Mrs. Post. Hugh and I have decided that it
+will be wise for those of us who were in the conservatory just at the
+last not to speak of what happened. You will forgive us, Mollie, dear,
+won’t you, if we don’t tell even you?”
+
+“No, I won’t!” cried Mollie, stamping her little slippered foot. “Bab
+can’t have secrets that make her cry—not from her own sister. And I
+don’t see, anyway, what Bab has to do with Mrs. Post having lost her
+emerald necklace. If you think the loss is a secret, you’re wrong,
+because everybody in the ballroom was whispering it about half an hour
+afterwards. I heard of it from a perfect stranger!”
+
+“Mollie,” said Ruth quietly, “will you please do me a favor? Don’t ask
+Barbara to tell you what happened that has worried her. It was nothing
+but an unfortunate mistake, and will all blow over in the morning.”
+
+“Very well, Ruth,” agreed Mollie. “I won’t ask. But I am not a baby, and
+I am very sure it would be better if I were told.”
+
+Thus poor Bab had no one in whom to confide, and had to bear her ugly
+secret all alone.
+
+Ruth kissed her good night, saying: “Cheer up, silly girl, and sleep
+late as you can in the morning. You know, it’s to be the last day of our
+tennis practice, and you are going to beat me tomorrow!”
+
+Ruth tiptoed over to Mollie, who was undressing in silence. “Mistress
+Mollie,” she said, “forgive me; do, please, like a dear. Talking about
+horrid things only makes them _horrider_!”
+
+Ruth, in the depths of her heart, thought that Barbara had been most
+unwise in her hinted accusation of Harry Townsend. For Bab’s sake she
+thought it best for everyone to forget what had happened. It was a fault
+in Ruth’s nature that she loved only pleasant things, and would often
+give up, even when she knew she was right, in order not to make trouble.
+
+The next morning a Barbara of heavy eyes and white cheeks joined the
+players on the tennis court.
+
+Plainly Harry had confided what had happened to Gladys, for she did not
+speak to Bab as she came up to her, but tossed her head and bit her
+lips. Gladys said nothing, however, for Harry had made her promise she
+would not breathe what he had told her.
+
+As for Mr. Townsend, he treated Barbara with cold politeness. But
+Barbara was beginning to have her eyes opened. “If I am right about
+him,” she thought to herself, “then I shall have to be very careful. I
+believe he is more clever than any of us dream!”
+
+It was Hugh whose manner was most constrained. He could not forgive the
+scene of the night before, in which he had been forced to take an
+unwilling part. Not until Ruth called him over to her, and gave him a
+lecture, did he beg Bab’s pardon, and ask that they all forget the
+experience of the night before.
+
+“Come on!” he called, cheerily, to the group of tennis players. “It’s do
+or die to-day—the last test day for us. It will show us who is to
+represent our crowd at the tournament. The girl and the fellow who can
+beat all the rest of us stand a good chance of winning the silver cup.
+Mrs. Cartwright says she has been closely following the game of the star
+players and she thinks we have them beaten to a finish. Come on, Ruth,
+let’s show ’em that we’re out for blood!”
+
+Swish! Barbara’s ball flew over the net and curved toward the ground at
+Hugh’s left. Not too swiftly for that young gentleman; while Ruth’s
+heart gave a jump of apprehension, Hugh made a left-hand swing with his
+racquet and sent the ball whizzing back.
+
+“Fifteen!” Ralph called out, in a bored tone. He had failed in his
+return.
+
+The battle raged all morning.
+
+Grace and Donald Cartwright, Gladys and Mr. Townsend were soon out of
+the running. When they had finished they sank gratefully on the ground,
+to watch the others play.
+
+The field was thus left to Barbara and Ralph, to Ruth and Hugh. The sets
+stood even, and two more games would decide.
+
+A small crowd of visitors stood around the court. Mrs. Cartwright,
+having finished her own game, came over to look on. Miss Sallie was
+trying to be impartial, but she was really deeply interested in Ruth’s
+success. Mrs. Erwin, Mrs. Post, the governor, all their friends, were
+lined up to behold the battle.
+
+A subdued discussion of the lost emeralds had been going on at the
+Casino all morning. After a thorough search of every inch of Mrs.
+Erwin’s house and grounds, there was still no sign of the jewels; but
+Governor Post and Mrs. Erwin had made every effort to have the scandal
+of the necklace hushed up. They had seen the Newport detectives, and had
+telegraphed to New York for two experts to be sent down to handle the
+case. In the meantime they had been advised not to talk.
+
+Now the only upright person, who could have given them any information
+had, for just a little while, forgotten all about it. Whatever Barbara
+did she did with her whole heart. Today she played tennis.
+
+“Ralph,” Hugh called, “remember, now, it’s two straight games to finish
+the way we stand!”
+
+There was no more conversation. Even the watchers held their breath. The
+referee sat on the ground, rapidly calling out the
+score—“forty—thirty—deuce!”
+
+“Is this game to go on forever?” Miss Sallie inquired, plaintively. “My
+girls will be wholly worn out.”
+
+“Advantage in!” shouted the referee.
+
+Ralph sprang forward for his ball; his foot slipped. Barbara, who had
+been expecting him to return it, was not ready.
+
+“Game!”
+
+Ruth and Hugh shook hands with each other. But Hugh called over: “Say,
+Ralph, was this game all right? You turned your ankle, didn’t you?”
+
+“Surely I did,” said Ralph. “I was an idiot, but it is your game just
+the same. I’ll make it up next time, Barbara—see if I don’t!”
+
+“My dear Ruth,” said Miss Sallie, “I cannot permit it. You will be
+exhausted.”
+
+“Here, Barbara,” said Mollie, “do try to get your breath, and let me fix
+up your hair.”
+
+“No prinking!” Ralph called out. “This is business, ladies!”
+
+The good old Casino courts never saw a finer tennis battle. Ralph and
+Bab played as though they had forgotten their talk in the woods that day
+when they had tea at Mrs. Duffy’s. Ruth and Hugh were foeman worthy of
+their best steel.
+
+The game stood forty-all, and it was Bab’s serve. Bab’s serves were what
+made her tennis remarkable. They were as swift and straight and true as
+a boy’s.
+
+Hugh stood ready waiting. Barbara caught a look in Ruth’s face, on the
+other side of the net. Her big blue eyes, frank and clear as a baby’s,
+were glowing with interest, with hope, with ambition! Like a flash the
+thought of all Ruth had done for them came into Bab’s mind. Did it
+weaken the force of her drive? Or was it because her mind was
+distracted? The ball fell just inside the net on her own side.
+
+“Try again, partner mine!” shouted Ralph, “show ’em what you’re made
+of!”
+
+This time Barbara was plainly nervous. She felt that nearly all the
+friends around them wanted Ruth to win. They would be delighted, of
+course, with her success and kind to her, but open-hearted and
+open-handed Ruth was the favorite with them all; at least, Bab thought
+so.
+
+With returning courage, Bab hit her last ball a hard blow. It rose high
+in the air! Hugh sprang on his tiptoes to receive it and gave a mighty
+shout. The ball had fallen outside the line.
+
+Ralph and Barbara were the first to congratulate the victors. Barbara
+cleared the net with a bound, forgetting both her age and her audience.
+
+“There, Ruth, you and Hugh are the best players that ever happened!”
+Barbara spoke with a glowing face. Then she turned to Ralph: “I lost the
+game for you,” she said. “I am so sorry.”
+
+“Oh, no, you didn’t, my lady,” said Ralph. “I lost the game before this
+one, so we’re even.”
+
+An admiring circle had formed around Ruth and Hugh.
+
+“Your father will be delighted, I know, child,” said Miss Sallie.
+
+“I haven’t won the cup yet, Auntie,” protested Ruth.
+
+“But you must, child,” said Mrs. Cartwright, smiling. “I am betting on
+you and Hugh in the tournament, and you mustn’t make me lose my box of
+candy.”
+
+“Barbara,” said Ralph, shyly, as they walked off toward home a little
+later, “I don’t like to ask you, but did you mean to miss those last
+serves?”
+
+Barbara shook her head. “No,” she said, “I don’t think I meant to. I
+don’t know. But they were the best players, weren’t they, Ralph?”
+
+“Certainly,” Ralph answered.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV—RUTH IN DANGER
+
+
+Hugh, looking much embarrassed, came up early next morning to see Ruth.
+
+“I have an invitation to deliver to you, Ruth, but I am rather ashamed
+to do it, for I am afraid you will be angry. Mother told me to come over
+and ask Miss Stuart and yourself and the girls—except Barbara—to come
+out with us for the day on the yacht.”
+
+“Why, Hugh Post!” cried Ruth. “What do you mean?”
+
+“Well, it’s like this,” Hugh said, desperately; “mother told me to
+explain to you exactly how things stand, so you will not think her rude.
+You see, mother is visiting Mrs. Erwin, and of course Mrs. Erwin,
+Gladys, and her devoted Harry Townsend have to go along on the yacht
+with us. Well, Gladys told mother that neither she nor Mr. Townsend
+could go if Barbara went. Gladys would not tell mother why, and, as you
+told me to keep that scene in the conservatory a secret, I didn’t know
+what it was wisest for me to do.”
+
+“Thank you,” Ruth answered; “but tell your mother that none of us can
+accept.”
+
+“O Ruth!” exclaimed Hugh. “I am fearfully disappointed, and mother I
+know will be angry.”
+
+“I am afraid I don’t care, Hugh,” was Ruth’s reply. “I don’t like your
+mother’s inviting any of us, if she had to leave Bab out.”
+
+As Hugh turned to leave the front porch, where he had found Ruth alone,
+she called after him: “Wait a minute, please. I don’t know what to tell
+Aunt Sallie. Your mother will be sure to speak to her of her invitation,
+and Auntie will think I should have let her refuse for herself. Oh, I
+know!”
+
+Ruth’s face cleared. “I will go tell Aunt Sallie that she and Grace and
+Mollie are asked. I’ll stay with my dear Bab,” she finished a little
+defiantly. “If I am also left out of the party, no one will think
+anything of it.”
+
+“Oh, I say, Ruth,” Hugh urged, “please come.”
+
+“Sorry,” she said, shaking her head decidedly.
+
+“I expect you’re right,” Hugh replied.
+
+Miss Sallie, Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post’s invitation with
+pleasure. As Mrs. Post’s yacht was small, they did not think it strange
+that the other two girls were left out.
+
+How angry Mollie would have been, had she guessed the truth. Not a step
+would she have gone. As it was, she begged Barbara to go in her place.
+
+But Bab was too clever. She understood what had happened, and was glad
+to be left out of the party. She put her arm around Ruth’s waist,
+whispering coaxingly: “Do go along with the others, old story-teller.
+You know you were asked.”
+
+Ruth shook her head decidedly. “Not on your life,” she slangily
+retorted. Fortunately, Miss Sallie did not hear her.
+
+“What shall we do this afternoon, Bab?” inquired Ruth after luncheon.
+“Suppose you and I go for a long walk?”
+
+“Don’t think I am a lazy good-for-nothing, Ruth,” Barbara begged, “but I
+have a little headache, and I must write to mother. Mollie and I have
+been neglecting her shamefully of late. I haven’t even written her about
+the wonderful ball.”
+
+“Are you going to tell her what happened, Bab?” Ruth inquired.
+
+“I suppose so,” sighed Bab. She was half inclined to discuss the
+unfortunate affair with Ruth, but changed her mind.
+
+“Well, Bab,” Ruth declared, “I shall go for the walk ‘all by my
+lonesomes.’ I’ll be back in time for dinner. The others are to dine on
+the yacht, so we need not look for them until bedtime. I think I’ll take
+the cliff walk, for the sea is so splendid to-day.”
+
+Left alone, Barbara got out her writing materials and sat down by the
+window, but she did not begin to write.
+
+“I wonder,” she asked herself, “why we have been mixed up in burglaries
+ever since Ruth began talking about our trip to Newport? First, our poor
+little twenty-dollar gold-pieces disappear; then we have that dreadful
+robber at New Haven. Now Mrs. Post’s emerald necklace is stolen! It
+could not all have been Mr. Townsend!” Barbara sat with her hands
+clenched.
+
+“If it is true,” she went on, “and I saw the necklace disappear with my
+own eyes, then we have another Raffles to deal with. Mr. Raffles, the
+second! I believe I am the only person that suspects him. Well, Mr.
+Harry Townsend!” Barbara’s red lips tightened, “you are successful now,
+but we shall see whose wits are better, yours or mine!”
+
+Barbara’s face turned a deep crimson. “I understood. He wanted to
+suggest I was the thief. Only he didn’t dare to accuse me openly the
+other night. I won’t tell mother,” Barbara at last decided. “I’ll just
+watch—and wait!”
+
+Barbara wrote her mother a long, happy letter, without a hint of the
+troubles she began to feel closing in on her. Then she straightened her
+own and Mollie’s bureau drawers and arranged their clothes in the two
+closets. Still Ruth did not come.
+
+Twice Barbara went into her room. It was half past five—six—Mrs. Ewing’s
+early dinner was served at half after six.
+
+“Mrs. Ewing,” Barbara said, knocking timidly at her door. “Have you seen
+anything of Ruth? She has been gone such a long time that I am worried
+about her.”
+
+But Mrs. Ewing knew nothing of her.
+
+“I believe I’ll go to meet her,” said Barbara, “and hurry her along. She
+must be on her way home.” Ralph was on the yacht with Hugh, or Barbara
+would have asked him to accompany her.
+
+For the first half mile along the cliff walk Barbara strolled slowly,
+expecting every moment to see Ruth hurrying along. As the walk dipped
+down into hollows and rose again in the high places, it was difficult to
+see any distance ahead.
+
+The walk was entirely deserted, and Bab’s heart commenced to beat faster
+as the darkness began to gather.
+
+“I suppose,” thought Barbara, “Ruth has gone somewhere to make a visit,
+and has stayed late without thinking. She’s probably at home, now,
+waiting for me, so I’ll get the scolding from Mrs. Ewing for being late
+to dinner. I believe I’ll go on back home.” Barbara actually turned and
+started in the opposite direction.
+
+Something within her seemed to call: “Bab! Bab!” The voice was so urgent
+she was frightened. “Ruth needs you,” it seemed to say.
+
+Bab began calling aloud, “Ruth! Ruth!” Her voice sounded high and shrill
+in her own ears; but only the echo answered her, and the noise of the
+waves pounding against the shore. She could see the distant lights in
+the houses along the way, but Barbara dared not stop to ask for help
+while that inner voice urged her on.
+
+Barbara was running, now, along the narrow, difficult path. “O Ruth,
+dear Ruth!” she cried. “Why don’t you answer me? Are you anywhere,
+needing me?” She heard a low sound and stopped. Nothing but her own
+imagination! There were always queer noises along the cliff shore, where
+the water swirled into little eddies and gurgled out again.
+
+Barbara waited. She heard nothing more, so she plunged on. Suddenly she
+drew back with a gasp of horror. Part of the cliff walk had disappeared!
+Where a bridge of stone had spanned a narrow chasm there was a terrible,
+yawning hole. Jutting out their vicious arms were rocks, rocks, forming
+a sheer drop of seventy feet to the beach below.
+
+Involuntarily, Barbara had flung herself down on her hands and knees to
+keep from falling over into the abyss.
+
+“Ruth couldn’t have,” she thought. “No, no!” But hark! Was that again
+the low moaning sound of the waters? Barbara lay flat on the rocks,
+stretching her head over the embankment. There, in a cleft between two
+great rocks, fifteen feet below her, a dark object hung!
+
+“Ruth! Ruth!” Bab called, her voice coming from her throat in a hoarse
+cry. Again she heard the faint moan. This time she knew the sound. It
+was Ruth! What could she do? Run for help? Any second, Bab realized,
+Ruth’s strength might fail, and she would let go her grasp. Barbara
+could not bear to think of the horrible end.
+
+As far as she could see, Ruth’s feet rested on a narrow ledge of rock,
+while she clung with her hands to a cliff that jutted out overhead.
+“Ruth! Ruth!” Barbara called again, but this time her voice was clear
+and strong. “It is Bab! Do you understand? Hold on a little longer. I am
+coming.”
+
+Swiftly a prayer came into Barbara’s mind: “Lord, show me the way.” Yet
+even while she prayed she acted. “Help, help!” Bab called out.
+
+[Illustration: Barbara Lay Flat on the Rocks.]
+
+She tore off the long woolen shawl which she had wrapped round her when
+she came out to seek Ruth. With hands that seemed to gain a superhuman
+strength Bab tore it into three, four strips. She dared not make the
+strips narrower for fear they would not hold. Then she took off her
+skirt of light wool and wrenched it into broad bands. How, Barbara never
+knew. She felt that the power was given her.
+
+Growing out from a rock between Bab and the moaning figure on the cliff
+below was a small tree, its roots deeply imbedded in the hard soil. Ruth
+had evidently reached out to grasp this tree as the cliff bridge gave
+way beneath her feet; but, missing it, her feet had touched a ledge of
+rock and she had flung out her arms and clasped the stone above her. How
+much longer would her failing strength serve her?
+
+Bab again lay down and measured the length of her queer rope. She found
+that by reaching the tree she could tie the rope to it and it would then
+be long enough to extend to Ruth. Removing her shoes, Barbara slowly,
+and with infinite caution, crawled down the jagged rocks, clinging with
+her hands and toes. Finally she arrived at the tree, and fastened her
+rope securely around it, only to find it dangled just above Ruth’s head.
+Yet what was the use? If Ruth for an instant let go the rock to which
+she clung her feet would slip from the ledge, and Bab’s poor woolen
+strings could never hold her.
+
+But Barbara understood this. She was face to face with the great moment
+of her life, and, though she was only a simple country girl, neither her
+brains nor her strength failed her.
+
+Did she stop at the tree after the rope was tied? No! Still clinging,
+sliding, her hands bruised and bleeding, Barbara was making her way to
+where Ruth hung. Bab had said truly that she could climb. Never had a
+girl a better opportunity to prove her boast! There were moments when
+she believed she could not go on. Then the thought of Ruth renewed her
+courage.
+
+Just above Ruth’s head, on the left side of her, was a great boulder
+with a curved, smooth surface. It was to this rock Bab made her way. She
+was so close to Ruth now that she could lean over and touch her.
+“Courage, dear,” she whispered, and she thought she saw Ruth’s pale lips
+smile. She had not fainted; for this, Barbara was grateful.
+
+When Barbara was a little girl her mother had been ashamed of her tomboy
+ways; but she had given in, with a gentle sigh, when Bab grew and
+flourished by playing boys’ games, by learning various boyish arts;
+among them was the knack of tying a sailor knot.
+
+Edging closer and closer to Ruth she managed to reach out and catch hold
+of the rope she had fastened to the tree. With one hand on her own rock,
+with the other she drew the cord about Ruth, fastening it firmly under
+her arms. The rope was not strong enough to draw Ruth up to safety, but
+it would steady her should her hands give way.
+
+Somehow, in some way, Barbara must get further help.
+
+Now that her first duty was over, she began to call loudly: “Help,
+help!” Her shouts roused Ruth, who joined feebly in the cry. No sound
+answered them. Only the seagulls swept over them, uttering their hoarse
+call.
+
+Barbara felt her own strength going. She tried to crawl up the slippery
+rock again, but her power was gone. She, too, felt herself—slipping,
+slipping! With one wild cry she caught at her rock, and all was still!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI—HELP ARRIVES
+
+
+Mr. Cartwright was dining alone on his Japanese veranda, as his wife was
+with the yachting party, and was not expected to dinner.
+
+Jones, the butler, came in softly, placing the soup in front of his
+master. As he put down the plate his hand shook. Surely he heard a cry!
+
+At the same moment Mr. Cartwright started up. “Jones, what was that?”
+They both stood still. There was no further sound.
+
+“Must ’ave been children playing, sir,” suggested Jones, and Mr.
+Cartwright continued his dinner.
+
+“Help, help!” The sound came from afar off, loud and shrill. This time
+there was no mistake.
+
+“Coming!” Mr. Cartwright shouted. “Coming!” As he ran across the lawn,
+closely followed by Jones, he snatched a heavy coil of rope left by the
+workmen who had been swinging hammocks and arranging for Mrs.
+Cartwright’s outdoor bazaar.
+
+“Call again, if you can,” Mr. Cartwright yelled. Faintly, a voice seemed
+to come up out of the earth. “Help, help! Oh, please!”
+
+Mr. Cartwright caught the direction of the voice, and ran along the
+cliffs. In a moment he espied the fallen bridge and guessed what had
+happened; then he and Jones saw the two girls in their perilous
+position.
+
+Leaning over, he called: “Can you hear me?”
+
+Bab answered, “Yes.”
+
+“Then keep still,” shouted Mr. Cartwright, “and I’ll have you up here in
+a moment.”
+
+Quickly he knotted the rope around Jones’s waist; then, some yards
+farther on, he tied it round his own. “Go back,” he said to his butler,
+“and lie down.” Jones was large and heavy; Mr. Cartwright was a tall
+man, thin, but strong.
+
+Slowly he lowered himself to the tree where Bab had tied her poor rope,
+and flung an improvised lasso over to Bab. “Not me,” said Barbara,
+forgetting her grammar. “Ruth first.”
+
+“Can she climb with the help of the rope?” asked their rescuer.
+
+Ruth had not spoken, but she opened her eyes, gave a shudder and
+fainted.
+
+Like a flash Bab had thrown the lasso over her shoulders, and Ruth hung
+swaying in the air! Fortunately her feet were still on the ledge of the
+rock. Mr. Cartwright caught his rope round the tree, at the same time
+calling to Jones, “Throw me another coil!” He then clambered down and
+half carried, half dragged the fainting Ruth to the top of the cliff.
+
+Once above, he dropped his burden, and again flung the lasso over the
+edge of the rocks to Barbara, who, crawling and being pulled by turns,
+came up in safety. When she had reached the top, and stood by the side
+of the fainting Ruth, Bab’s courage deserted her, and she burst into
+tears.
+
+“Get the young ladies to the house at once,” ordered Mr. Cartwright, far
+more frightened than he had been while playing rescuer.
+
+How fared the yachting party? They did not have a good day. Hugh was in
+a bad humor because Ruth had not come; Ralph missed Barbara, and, try as
+they might to avoid it, the conversation would drift back to the lost
+emeralds.
+
+“I shall never understand it,” said Mrs. Erwin to Aunt Sallie, in
+subdued tones. “The detectives say they have made a thorough search of
+my servants’ quarters, have watched their movements ever since the night
+of the theft, and they can find none of them of whom they are even
+suspicious. They do say”—this time Mrs. Erwin dropped her voice to a
+whisper, for the woman who was with Mrs. Post at the time of the robbery
+was approaching them—“they say that the burglar was probably—one of the
+guests!”
+
+This woman, who had worn a gold-colored brocade, was an American, who
+had married a Frenchman, but her husband was supposed to have been dead
+several years. She had come to Newport, this season, with letters of
+introduction, and was already very popular.
+
+“Do you know,” she inquired, “where Miss Le Baron and Mr. Townsend are?
+No one has seen them recently.”
+
+“Oh,” laughed Mrs. Erwin, “we leave those two young people alone. I
+believe they have an affair of their own. Have you known Mr. Townsend
+before this meeting?”
+
+“Oh, no,” replied the woman, in a curious tone; “at least, I have met
+him once or twice. I can’t say I know him.”
+
+“Ladies,” Governor Post said, coming up to them, “I believe I will cheat
+you of part of your sail today. There are ugly clouds gathering, and I
+think it better to put into harbor. We can go ashore, or not, as we feel
+inclined.”
+
+As the yacht neared the shore, Miss Sallie grew restless. It was the
+first time since the beginning of their trip that she had been separated
+from any of her girls. As soon as dinner was over she begged Governor
+Post to put herself, Grace and Mollie ashore. Immediately the rest of
+the party agreed to disembark with her.
+
+Ralph and the two girls followed Aunt Sallie home. For once, she hurried
+on before them, urged by a kind of foreboding.
+
+She found Mrs. Ewing, white and frightened, walking up and down in front
+of her gate. Mr. Ewing and the maids had left the house, half an hour
+before, to search for the lost girls.
+
+Thoughtlessly Mrs. Ewing rushed up to Miss Stuart. “Have Ruth and
+Barbara joined you?” she asked.
+
+“Why, no,” replied the two girls in amazement. Ralph stared in surprise;
+but Miss Sallie spoke firmly. “Tell me, at once, what has happened.” In
+the midst of real danger Miss Stuart was a different woman, as Mr.
+Stuart well knew when he allowed her to chaperon the automobile girls.
+
+Mrs. Ewing had nothing to tell. All she knew was that the girls had gone
+out for a long walk, and, at eight o’clock, had not come back.
+
+“Come with me, Ralph,” Miss Sallie demanded. Grace and Mollie followed
+them.
+
+“Don’t be frightened, Mollie,” Grace begged, trying to talk cheerfully,
+though she was trembling violently. “Rely upon Ruth and Bab to get
+safely out of a scrape.”
+
+Just as they reached the end of the street that turned into the cliff
+walk, Miss Sallie espied a servant of the Cartwrights running in their
+direction. “Stop him!” she commanded Ralph.
+
+“Sure, mum, I am to tell you,” the gardener’s boy said, “the young
+ladies was not killed.”
+
+“Not killed!” the girls cried, in horror. Ralph took hold of Mollie’s
+hand.
+
+“That is what I was to say, mum,” said the boy, evidently much excited.
+“They is not much hurt and will be home soon.”
+
+“Take me to them, at once,” ordered Miss Sallie, asking no further
+questions. The gardener’s boy led the way.
+
+When the party arrived, Mrs. Cartwright, still in her yachting suit, ran
+out to meet them. Ruth came to the door, walking a little stiffly.
+Barbara followed her, and straightway begged Mollie not to cry.
+
+“It’s all over, silly little Mollie,” she whispered, “and neither Ruth
+nor I am hurt. We are just a little scratched, and very dirty, and we
+want to go to bed.”
+
+“Mr. Cartwright has already had the doctor in to see us, Auntie,” said
+Ruth. “He is in the drawing room now. We have no broken bones or
+strains, though my shoulders ache rather badly.”
+
+Mollie and Grace were both crying, just because there was nothing, now,
+for them to cry about.
+
+Miss Sallie made Ruth sit down again, as her niece was almost too weak
+to stand. After listening in silence to Ruth’s story, Aunt Sallie held
+out her hand to Mr. Cartwright. “My brother and I can never thank you,
+and I shall not attempt it. Ruth means all our world.” Then she turned
+to Barbara, and gathered her in her arms. “My child,” she said, “you are
+the bravest girl I ever knew.” Miss Stuart choked, and could say no
+more.
+
+“Do you remember, Bab,” asked Mollie, when Barbara was safe in her own
+bed, “how once you said you would one day repay Ruth and Mr. Stuart for
+their kindness to us? Well, I think, and I know they will think, that
+you have kept your promise. Yes; I’m going to let her go to sleep, Miss
+Sallie,” Mollie called back, in answer to Miss Stuart’s remonstrance.
+
+Ruth and Barbara were utterly worn out, and had been put into warm baths
+and rubbed down with alcohol. “I am not even going to give two such
+sensible girls doses of aromatic spirits of ammonia,” declared the
+doctor, who had driven over from Mrs. Cartwright’s with them and had
+seen the girls safely in bed. “They will be all right in a day or two,”
+he assured Miss Sallie, “as soon as they get over the nervous shock.”
+
+It took six telegrams to Mr. Stuart and Mrs. Thurston to persuade them
+the girls were unhurt and able to remain in Newport.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII—THE FORTUNE-TELLERS
+
+
+“My dears,” said Mrs. Cartwright, two days after the accident, coming
+into the sitting-room, where Ruth and Bab were idling, “I suppose you
+know that you are the heroines of Newport. No one is talking about
+anything but your accident. You have almost put the jewel robbery out of
+our minds. How do you feel this morning?”
+
+“Oh, as fit as anything,” smiled Ruth, though she still looked a little
+pale. “I have just written a long letter to father, to assure him that I
+shall be well enough to play in the tournament next week.”
+
+“That is fine,” declared Mrs. Cartwright. “And you, Bab?”
+
+“There never was much the matter with me,” Bab answered.
+
+“Then you are just the girls I am looking for,” said Mrs. Cartwright,
+clapping her hands. “You know, I asked you, Bab, to play gypsy
+fortune-teller at my bazaar; now I want to ask Ruth to join you.
+Everyone thinks you are both laid up from your accident, and no one will
+suspect who you are. The plans for the bazaar are going splendidly. I
+think I shall make lots of money for my poor sailors. I shall have it as
+simple and attractive as I can—a real country fair, with booths and
+lemonade stands. I am going to give these jaded Newport people a taste
+of the simple life. Do say you will help me.”
+
+Both girls shook their heads. “We do not know how to tell fortunes,”
+they protested.
+
+“Oh, it’s only fun,” argued Mrs. Cartwright. “You can make up any
+foolishness you like as you go along. I’ll show you how to run the
+cards, as they call it. Has either of you ever seen anyone do it?”
+
+Bab confessed she had watched “Granny Ann.” Suddenly she left her chair,
+and came hobbling over to Mrs. Cartwright, saying, in Granny Ann’s own
+high-pitched, whining voice: “Lovely lady, would you know the future,
+grave or gay, cross my hand with a silver piece and list to what I say.”
+
+Gravely, Mrs. Cartwright extracted a dollar from her silver purse, and
+made the gypsy sign on Bab’s outstretched hand. Barbara immediately told
+her such a nonsensical fortune, in a perfectly grave voice, that she and
+Ruth both screamed with laughter.
+
+“You’ll do, Bab,” said Mrs. Cartwright. “Won’t you join her, Ruth?”
+
+“Well,” said Ruth, “I never desert Mrs. Micawber these days, or, to put
+it plainly, Miss Bab Thurston. So I’m game.”
+
+“Thursday, then, remember, and this is Tuesday,” said Mrs. Cartwright.
+“I am the busiest woman in Newport, so I must run away now. You should
+see my house and lawn. They are full of workmen. The fair is to begin
+promptly at four, and will last until midnight. We shall have dancing on
+the lawn, but I want you girls and a few friends to come into the house
+after supper. When you finish playing fortune-tellers you can slip up to
+my room and dress. Nobody must guess, when you come down, that you have
+not just arrived. Now, I positively must be off. Tell Mollie and Grace I
+am depending on them to act as waitresses. Gladys isn’t willing to help.
+She wants all her time for Harry Townsend.”
+
+“Ruth,” said Aunt Sallie, the afternoon of the bazaar, “I really cannot
+permit you to go anywhere, looking as you do, even if you are wearing a
+disguise. You are too horrible!”
+
+“Come and see Barbara,” Grace called from the next room. “I am sure she
+must look worse. Why,” she asked, laughing, “do you and Ruth want to
+disguise yourselves as such dreadful-looking gypsies. You might just as
+easily have arranged to look like young and charming ones.”
+
+“Oh, no,” said Bab. “We want to look like the real thing, not like stage
+gypsies.” Barbara had arranged to appear as much like “Granny Ann” as
+she possibly could. A red and yellow handkerchief was bound around her
+head almost to her eyebrows, her face was stained to a deep brown, with
+lines and heavy seams drawn over it; even her hands were made up to look
+old and weather beaten.
+
+“Remember, you have never seen nor heard of these extraordinary
+fortune-tellers before,” warned Ruth. “And don’t forget, Barbara and
+Ruth are at home at Mrs. Ewing’s, but they may feel well enough to come
+to the fair in the evening.” Ruth caught Bab’s arm, and together they
+made a low curtsey.
+
+“Beautiful ones,” Ruth went on, pointing to Miss Sallie, who was looking
+handsome in a gown of pale gray crêpe, with a violet hat and sunshade,
+and to Mollie and Grace, who were dressed like Swiss peasant girls,
+“your fortunes I would like to tell before you go to the Fair. Easy it
+is for my wise eyes to perceive that you will be the belles and beauties
+of the entertainment. Now, farewell!”
+
+The “gypsies” were to drive over early to Mrs. Cartwright’s in a closed
+carriage. Ralph was to take Miss Sallie, Grace and Mollie in the motor
+car later on.
+
+“Granny Ann” and “old Meg” slipped inside the gypsy tent before any of
+the guests had arrived at the bazaar. They had gazed in wonder at Mrs.
+Cartwright’s beautiful lawn, changed to look like a country fair. It was
+hung with bunting and flags, and had small tables and chairs under the
+trees; also a May-pole strung with long streamers of different colored
+ribbons. Mrs. Cartwright had planned a May-pole dance as one of the
+chief features of the afternoon, and Mollie and Grace were both to take
+part.
+
+For the gypsies, life was a serious matter. The tent was divided by a
+red curtain; on a low wooden table burned a round iron pot filled with
+charcoal and curious odorous herbs; a pack of dirty cards lay near it.
+“The cards must be dirty,” argued Ruth, “or no one would believe we were
+the real thing in gypsies.” Two rough stools stood by the table, and the
+only daylight shone through the tent flap. On the other side of the
+curtain, Mrs. Cartwright had been kinder to her gypsies. Here were a
+wicker couch and big chairs, where they could rest and talk; also a
+table for refreshments, “for,” laughed Mrs. Cartwright, as she left the
+tent to welcome her first guests, “I have always heard that gypsies are
+a particularly hungry race of people.”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright’s fair was a huge success. The most fashionable “set” in
+Newport were present, entering into the spirit of the occasion with
+great zest.
+
+Gladys and Harry Townsend were seen everywhere together; but to-day
+there was often a third person with them, the Countess Bertouche, the
+woman of the gold-colored brocade, but lately introduced in Newport
+society.
+
+“I believe Gladys is engaged to Harry Townsend,” whispered Grace to
+Mollie, when she had observed Harry bending over Miss Le Baron and
+talking to her in a more devoted manner than usual.
+
+“Well,” retorted pretty Mollie, with a toss of her head, “I am sure I do
+not envy either one of them.”
+
+All afternoon the gypsy tent had been flooded with visitors. Barbara and
+Ruth had the time of their lives. No one recognized the two automobile
+girls in the aged crones who mumbled and told strange fortunes in hoarse
+tones.
+
+It was growing late, and the gypsy tent was for the time deserted. Ruth
+was resting on the couch in the back of the tent, while Bab sat near
+her, talking over their experiences of the afternoon.
+
+Suddenly the tent flap opened, and Grace and Mollie rushed in. Before
+either of them spoke, they turned and fastened the flap down again
+securely, so no one could enter without their knowing it.
+
+“What’s the matter?” asked Ruth and Bab at once, for it was plain to see
+their visitors were greatly excited.
+
+Grace and Mollie started talking together. “Mrs. Cartwright’s diamond
+butterfly——” then they both stopped. “Are you sure no one can hear?
+Mollie, you tell,” finished Grace.
+
+“The butterfly has gone, vanished right off Mrs. Cartwright’s frock,
+this afternoon, while she was talking to her visitors. You know, she
+changed the ornament she wore in her hair into a brooch. She showed it
+to me early this afternoon, when I first came, and now—it is gone! I
+tell you, girls, there’s a thief among these Newport people. I think it,
+and so does Mrs. Cartwright, and ever so many others. Promise you’ll
+never tell,” went on Mollie, “but there are two detectives here watching
+all the guests! I’d like to find the thief myself. I’d know Mrs.
+Cartwright’s butterfly anywhere.”
+
+There were noises at the tent door.
+
+Barbara heard Gladys’s high, querulous voice, saying, coquettishly: “I
+don’t want my fortune told, Harry. I would much rather you told it to me
+any way.” But Mr. Townsend insisted.
+
+“Fly, girls—do, please! They are coming in!” said Barbara. “No; you
+can’t get out, but you must stay perfectly still behind this curtain,
+and not breathe a single word.”
+
+It was almost entirely dark in the gypsy tent, the only light coming
+from the burning pot of fire on the table. Barbara stooped low, when she
+opened the door to allow Harry, Gladys and the Countess Bertouche to
+come in.
+
+“It groweth late,” Bab began, croakingly. “Evil may come. No good
+fortunes fall between dusk and darkness. Beware!”
+
+Gladys shuddered. “Let’s not go in,” she urged.
+
+But Harry Townsend only laughed. “Don’t let the old hag frighten you,”
+he retorted, lightly. “Here,” he turned to the gypsy and spoke in a
+voice no one of the girls had ever heard him use, “here, you old
+swindler, speak out! What kind of fate do you read for me in the stars?”
+
+Barbara picked up the pack of dirty cards, and began to shuffle them
+slowly. An idea was revolving in her head. Dared she do it? But Barbara
+was a girl who was not easily daunted.
+
+[Illustration: Harry Townsend’s Face Grew Livid.]
+
+After a minute of silence she shook her head. “What I see I dare not
+reveal,” she whined. “All black, dark, dark mystery!”
+
+“Oh, stuff!” jeered Mr. Townsend. “Don’t try that dodge on me. Tell what
+you know.”
+
+Barbara flung down the cards and blew three puffs into the smouldering
+pot of fire. Ashes and tiny flames shot up from it. She started back,
+then pointing a finger, she hissed: “Something is moving toward you,
+curving and coiling and twisting round you. Mercy!” she cried. “It is a
+green snake, and its fangs have struck into your soul!”
+
+Harry Townsend’s face grew livid. In a moment the look of youth vanished
+from his face, his lips turned blue, and his eyes narrowed to two fine
+points.
+
+The Countess Bertouche came forward. “Harry,” she said, “come away. You
+forget yourself. Don’t listen to such nonsense.”
+
+“Harry!” thought Gladys to herself, angrily. “She certainly presumes on
+a short acquaintance! Harry, indeed!”
+
+But Barbara had not finished.
+
+“Stay!” she said, holding up a warning finger. “Another messenger
+appears. It is a beautiful, bright thing, sparkling and darting toward
+you. Why,” she added, quickly, “it is lighting on your coat. It has
+flown inside—a beautiful butterfly, born of summer time and flowers.
+Or”—this time Barbara leaned over and whispered in his ear—“or it may be
+made of diamonds and come from a jeweler’s shop.”
+
+For an instant, Harry Townsend’s hand flew to his vest pocket. He rose,
+saying quietly to his companions: “Come away from here. Did you ever see
+such a stupid old fraud? A snake and a butterfly—a curious fortune
+indeed!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII—A WORD TO THE WISE
+
+
+Barbara’s suspicion was now a certainty. Another person might not have
+been much wiser from Harry Townsend’s behavior during the telling of his
+fortune. But Barbara’s eyes were keen. The thief the detectives were
+seeking, the “Raffles” who was bowing and smiling his way through
+Newport society was none other than “Harry Townsend.” How to prove it?
+That was another matter.
+
+“Bab,” said the other girls, appearing on her side of the tent, “what a
+string of nonsense you did put off on poor Harry Townsend. What on earth
+made you tell him about a butterfly and a snake? I suppose you had
+butterfly on the brain, since we had just told you of the robbery.”
+
+“That is true,” assented Bab.
+
+“Ruth!” Barbara turned to her quickly. “I am tired of my job. I want to
+quit this fortune-telling business at once. Let’s desert and go up to
+Mrs. Cartwright’s room and change our clothes. Do hurry!” she urged, a
+little impatiently.
+
+“Oh, all right, Bab,” Ruth agreed. She stared at Barbara curiously. What
+had come over her friend? Harry Townsend always seemed to have such a
+strange effect upon her.
+
+Barbara was thinking. How could she find the detectives, to tell them of
+her suspicions, while Harry Townsend still had in his pocket the jewel
+he had stolen?
+
+“I want to ask you something, Mollie,” Bab announced, as the girls
+started for the house. “You’ll excuse a family secret, won’t you?” she
+asked of Grace and Ruth. “Mollie,” Bab whispered, “don’t speak out loud.
+Do you think you can discover who the two detectives are, and let me
+know as soon as I come downstairs? Don’t ask questions, please; only, I
+must know.”
+
+Mollie shut her lips close together. “Yes, I’ll find out for you,” she
+promised.
+
+Half an hour later, as the guests were being served with supper under
+the trees, Ruth and Barbara made their appearance.
+
+“We just couldn’t keep away any longer,” they explained to their
+friends. “Oh, yes, we are feeling perfectly well again.”
+
+Barbara called Mrs. Cartwright aside for a minute. “Is it true,” she
+asked, “that your diamond butterfly has disappeared?”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright’s face clouded. “Yes,” she replied. “It has gone within
+the last hour or so. I had it fastened here on my dress with a long pin.
+If it was stolen by a guest, which I am coming to believe, then it was
+not such a difficult theft. I have been leaning over, laughing and
+talking, and any light-fingered—woman—or man—could easily have taken it
+out of my dress.”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright shivered and turned pale, as she looked at the gay
+parties of people out on her lawn. “Isn’t it dreadful,” she said,
+plaintively, “to think that there may be a thief right over there among
+all my friends! But run along, now, child, and enjoy yourself. You and
+Ruth were the success of the afternoon. Everyone has asked me where I
+found my clever gypsies.”
+
+Barbara wandered off alone. Before she had gone more than a few steps,
+Ralph Ewing joined her. “Please don’t come with me, Ralph,” she begged.
+“I want to find Mollie.”
+
+“Well, why should that prevent my coming along, too?” Ralph asked. “I’d
+like to find Mollie myself. She hasn’t paid the slightest attention to
+me all afternoon.”
+
+“I don’t want to be horrid, Ralph,” Barbara protested, nervously, “but
+please let me find her by myself.”
+
+“Oh, certainly,” assented Ralph, walking quickly away.
+
+Over by one of the lemonade stands that had been deserted at supper time
+Bab found Mollie.
+
+“Bab,” she said, pulling her sister to one side, “do you see that tall,
+blond man, with the little, curly mustache? He is one of the detectives.
+I can’t find out where the other one is.”
+
+A little later Ralph Ewing, who was still strolling around by himself,
+felt his face flush, partly with wounded pride, partly with anger.
+Barbara was not talking to Mollie. She was standing some distance off
+from the other guests, having an earnest conversation with a man whom
+Ralph knew to be a stranger in Newport.
+
+Ralph was too proud to linger near them, since Bab had said so plainly
+she wanted none of his society. If he could have heard what she was
+saying he would have been even more horrified.
+
+“Yes,” Barbara promised, “if you will come somewhere near us, when we
+are all together, this evening, I will give you a signal to show you the
+man I mean. His name is Townsend. He looks very young, is slender and is
+of medium height. Suppose, when you see us, I bow my head slowly in the
+direction of the man I mean? If you understand me, you can return my
+bow. Can you search him before he leaves the grounds?”
+
+“No, miss.” The detective shook his head. “It would be impossible. He
+hasn’t the jewel on him now. If he’s the man we think he is, he is too
+smooth for that. He must have a confederate. If we search him here, and
+find no proof of his guilt, he will know all about us and our
+suspicions. Can’t you see, then, he would just clear out and leave us
+here to whistle for our pains?”
+
+“Yes, I see,” said Bab.
+
+“Thank you, miss, for telling us,” the detective continued. “I must say
+that emerald story sounds like the real thing. You’ve only guessed about
+the butterfly theft; but I think you’ve guessed right. Now we must go
+easy. If there is a Raffles, here in Newport, he is out for more
+plunder. He’ll make another bold attempt, and that will be our chance.”
+
+“Well, I must go on back now to my friends,” murmured Barbara, uneasily.
+It seemed strange to be taken into confidence by the detective, as
+though she were in the same line of business. “I suppose you and the
+other detective can manage, now, to secure the thief. I would rather not
+have anything more to do with the matter.” Barbara gave a little shiver
+of repulsion.
+
+“Oh, now, young lady,” protested the detective, “you mustn’t go back on
+us, just as the game commences. To catch a society thief we must have
+help from the inside. The best detective in the service can’t get on
+without it.”
+
+“Where have you been, Bab?” inquired Miss Sallie, anxiously, when
+Barbara joined her friends a few minutes later. “I was beginning to get
+uneasy about you. Mrs. Cartwright wants us to come into the house for an
+informal dance. Do you feel well enough to go? I don’t think you look
+very well, child.”
+
+Harry Townsend and Gladys came up at this minute. Harry had promised to
+take Miss Stuart indoors to watch the dancing. There was a curious,
+restless look in the man’s eyes, but his manners were as charming as
+ever.
+
+This was Barbara’s chance. She lagged behind the others, and bowed her
+head slowly in the direction of Miss Sallie’s escort. A strange, blond
+man, with a curly light mustache, standing some distance off, returned
+her bow.
+
+All evening Ralph did not come near Barbara. He devoted himself to
+Grace, who was wise enough to guess that Bab and Ralph must have had a
+quarrel. But Barbara did not understand. Not having realized that Ralph
+had felt snubbed when she dismissed him a little while before, she
+supposed he had grown tired of her.
+
+To tell the truth, Barbara was dull. All the merry, sparkling fun had
+gone out of her for this one evening. Whether she danced, or talked or
+rested quietly, she saw Harry Townsend’s face as it had looked at her
+for a single minute in the gypsy tent. “I am not a coward,” thought
+Barbara, “but I shall have to be careful if he discovers I was the gypsy
+who told his fortune this afternoon.”
+
+Barbara was right.
+
+Harry Townsend knew there was just one person in Newport who suspected
+him of being a thief; this person must be put out of the way. The fine
+Raffles preferred not to use violence, but at any cost he must win.
+
+Harry Townsend had not recognized Bab in the gypsy tent, which served,
+for the time, to avert his suspicions from her. He believed she had only
+arrived, when he met her with Miss Stuart late in the evening. Then who
+was the gypsy? Either Barbara had seen her, some time in the afternoon,
+and told her the story of the necklace, or there was some one else who
+believed he had had a part in the robberies. He must find out.
+
+“Gladys,” Harry Townsend said, “don’t let us dance all evening. I have
+not had any kind of chance to talk to you alone. Come out on the veranda
+with me, won’t you?”
+
+Gladys and Harry seated themselves on the front porch, whence they could
+look through an open window at the dancers.
+
+“Do you know Mrs. Cartwright very intimately, Gladys?” inquired Mr.
+Townsend.
+
+“Oh, no,” returned Gladys, pettishly. If Harry Townsend had brought her
+out on the veranda to talk about Mrs. Cartwright, then she might as well
+have stayed indoors. “Why do you ask?”
+
+Harry Townsend frowned, then put his hands before his eyes. Gladys was
+so silly. She had served to introduce him to her friends at Newport.
+Now, if he could only make her useful in other ways!
+
+“Are you angry?” Gladys asked after a moment, “What is it that you want
+to know about Mrs. Cartwright?”
+
+“Oh, I don’t want to know anything about Mrs. Cartwright at all, Gladys.
+I am sorry I spoke of it, if the subject offends you. But I did feel a
+little curious to know where she got hold of the gypsies she had in the
+tent this afternoon. I thought you would be interested.”
+
+“I am interested, Harry,” declared Gladys. She was only a spoiled child,
+and could not help showing it. “But I am not a favorite of Mrs.
+Cartwright’s. It’s my delightful cousins that she adores—Mollie and Bab.
+I can ask one of them to inquire.”
+
+“Oh, no,” drawled Harry, “it is not of enough importance for that.”
+
+For the next half hour Harry devoted himself to the whims of Gladys. He
+could see Barbara through the window, looking pale and tired. This gave
+all the more reason for believing that she had not recovered from the
+shock of her experience on the cliffs.
+
+The cleverest man will sometimes make a false move. Harry Townsend was
+tired of Gladys, weary of her whims and foolishness. Besides, she had
+served his purpose; he was almost through with her.
+
+“Shall we take a walk, Gladys?” he asked.
+
+As they walked down the path toward the cliff, this up-to-date Raffles,
+whose fingers were more agile than a magician’s, pressed Gladys’s hand
+for a moment. At the same instant, he slipped her jeweled bracelet into
+his pocket. “I don’t want the bauble,” he said to himself, “but she
+might as well be punished for not doing what I ask her.”
+
+At the same moment a blond man stepped out from among the bushes and
+asked Harry for a light for his cigarette.
+
+Miss Stuart and her girls were saying good-night to Mrs. Cartwright.
+Hugh Post and Ralph were to escort them home. As Barbara came down the
+steps with her wraps on, some one touched her on the arm.
+
+“Miss,” the detective whispered, “I know the man you pointed out to me;
+but I have got to see you again. Tell me how we can manage it.”
+
+“Oh,” said Barbara, hopelessly, “I don’t know. Miss Sallie will be so
+angry!”
+
+“You can’t quit us now,” the detective urged. “Why not come out in the
+morning, before any of your folks are up.”
+
+“Yes,” agreed Barbara, quickly. She didn’t have time to refuse. Miss
+Sallie was coming toward her, and looked in surprise at Barbara’s
+strange companion. “Come on, child,” she said, “it is time you and Ruth
+were both in bed.”
+
+“Down the street, two turnings to the right,” Barbara heard a voice
+behind her whisper, as she turned away.
+
+Gladys was crying, as she made her way to Miss Stuart for comfort. “Miss
+Stuart,” she said, “I have lost my pearl bracelet. Mother told me it was
+too handsome for me to wear. Now she’ll be angry with me. I didn’t think
+it mattered if I wore it this one time. It was large, I suppose, and it
+slipped off my hand somewhere.”
+
+“Never mind, Gladys,” advised Harry Townsend, coming up to her. “If it
+is stolen, the thief is sure to be caught.”
+
+“Why do you stare at us so, Barbara?” demanded Gladys, angrily. “I am
+sure you look all eyes.”
+
+“I beg your pardon,” murmured Barbara.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX—“EYEOLOGY”
+
+
+All night long Bab tossed and tumbled in her bed. Should she keep her
+appointment with the detective? About daylight she fell asleep and
+wakened with her mind fully made up. Whatever the danger, she was in for
+it now. A clever thief was abroad in Newport; circumstances had led to
+her discovering him; well, she would do what she could to bring him to
+bay.
+
+At six o’clock Barbara slipped quietly out of bed, without awaking
+Mollie, and stole noiselessly through the deserted halls of Mrs. Ewing’s
+great house. Not even the servants were about.
+
+At the appointed place she found waiting for her two detectives instead
+of one.
+
+“We’re wise to the thief,” said the larger, blond man, to whom Barbara
+had talked yesterday. “I never had my eyes off of him last night, after
+you pointed him out to me. I saw him slip a bracelet from a young lady’s
+arm out in the garden, just as coolly as you’d shake hands with a
+person. But it was no time to make a row then. I never let him know that
+I saw him. The fellow would have had a thousand excuses to make. I could
+see he was on pretty intimate terms with the young lady.”
+
+“The truth is, miss,” interrupted the other detective, whom Bab saw for
+the first time this morning, “we think you have given us the clue to a
+pretty clever customer. We’ve been looking for him before. He’s known to
+the service as ‘The Boy Raffles.’ We tried to catch him two years ago
+when he played this same game at Saratoga. But he got off to Europe
+without our ever finding the goods on him. So you see, this time we’ve
+got to nail him. My partner and I,” the wiry little dark man pointed to
+the big blond one, “have been talking matters over and we believe this
+here ‘Raffles’ has got what we detectives call a ‘confed’ with him—some
+one who receives the stolen goods. So that’s why we want to ask your
+help. Have you any idea of anyone who could be playing the game along
+with him? We think he is giving the jewels to some one to keep in hiding
+for him. The gems have not been sent out of town, and we have made a
+thorough search of Mrs. Erwin’s house, where Townsend is staying. There
+is nothing there.”
+
+“Could the young lady I saw him in the garden with last night be a
+partner of his?” asked the blond detective.
+
+“Oh, my goodness, no!” cried Barbara, in horror. “She is my cousin,
+Gladys Le Baron.”
+
+“Now, that’s just it, miss. You can see we need some one like you, who’s
+on the inside, to keep us off the wrong track. Can you suggest anyone
+else?”
+
+Barbara was silent. Then she shook her head. “I don’t know of anyone
+now,” she said. “You’ll have to give me time to think and watch.”
+
+“All right, miss, and thank you. You can write a note to this address if
+you have anything to communicate.” One of the men handed her a card with
+the number of a Newport boarding house on it. “My name is Burton,” said
+the big man, “and my assistant is Rowley. We both came up from the New
+York office, and we’re at your service, miss.”
+
+On the way home Barbara tried to make up her mind whether she ought to
+tell Miss Sallie what she was doing.
+
+“I don’t think it best to tell her now,” she concluded. “She would only
+be worried and frightened to death. What is the good? Miss Sallie would
+be sure to think that girls did not hunt for jewel thieves in her day.
+And she’d probably think they ought not to hunt for them in my day,”
+Barbara confessed to herself, honestly. “I’ll just wait a while, and see
+how things develop. Now I am in this detective business, I might as well
+confess to myself that it is very interesting.”
+
+Barbara walked slowly. “I wish Ruth would find out how things are
+going,” she thought to herself. “She is so shrewd and she already
+guesses I have something on my mind. But Ruth was so positive I was
+wrong about Harry Townsend, at Mrs. Erwin’s ball, that she would
+probably think I was wrong again. So the female detective will pursue
+her lonely way for a little while longer—and then, I just must tell some
+one,” Bab ended.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls were coming down-stairs to breakfast, when Bab
+entered at the front door. Miss Stuart was plainly displeased with
+Barbara’s explanation. “I couldn’t sleep very well, Miss Sallie,” said
+Barbara, “and I went out for a walk.” “That is partly true,” she
+reflected, “but half truths are not far from story-telling.”
+
+“Well, I must ask you, Bab,” said Miss Sallie, in firm tones, “not to
+leave the house again in the morning, unless some one is with you. I was
+most uneasy.”
+
+“Didn’t Mollie give you the note I left on the bureau to explain where I
+had gone?” inquired Bab.
+
+“Mollie did not see the note until we were almost ready to come
+downstairs. Naturally, we did not understand your absence.”
+
+“I am so sorry, Miss Sallie,” cried Bab. “I never will do it again.”
+
+Barbara was beginning to understand Miss Sallie better since Ruth’s
+accident. She knew that her cold exterior hid a very warm heart.
+
+As for Miss Sallie, she finally smiled on Bab and gave her a forgiving
+kiss. “I could forgive Bab anything,” she thought to herself, “after her
+wonderful heroism in saving Ruth. I suppose I have to expect a girl of
+so much spirit to do erratic things sometimes.”
+
+Ralph kept his eyes lowered when he said good morning and hardly spoke
+during breakfast.
+
+“Ralph is out of sorts,” his mother complained, “but, man-like, he won’t
+tell what is the matter with him.”
+
+“Perhaps you are tired from the party last night, Ralph?” suggested
+Mollie. Then Ralph laughed a mirthless laugh. “No, I am not tired,
+Mollie,” he replied.
+
+Yet all through breakfast he did not once speak to Bab.
+
+“Remember,” said Grace, “that our crowd and just a few other people are
+invited over to Mrs. Cartwright’s to-night. She is going to have a porch
+party, and we are to play the famous game ‘eyeology’ that she was
+talking of to Gladys the other day. Do you know what she means?”
+
+Nobody at the table had ever heard of it.
+
+“I begged Donald to tell me,” Grace added, “but he declares he is as
+much in the dark about it as the rest of us, and Mrs. Cartwright simply
+says, ‘wait and see!’”
+
+“I suppose,” said Miss Sallie, “that you children never intend to rest
+again. I should think that Mrs. Cartwright would be perfectly used up
+from so much entertaining.”
+
+“O Aunt Sallie,” pleaded Grace, “we shall rest well enough when we are
+back in sleepy old Kingsbridge. There is too much doing in Newport. And,
+you know, we’ve only about a week longer to stay. What a wonderful time
+we have had!”
+
+“Let’s see what we have ahead of us,” pondered Mollie. “The only
+especially big things we know about are the tennis tourney and the ball
+after it. Then Miss Ruth Stuart and Mr. Hugh Post are to win a silver
+cup, in order to spread more luster upon the reputation of the
+automobile girls at Newport. Bab helped pull Ruth out of an abyss! The
+two girls held up a burglar! Ruth is a famous tennis champion! Only you
+and I are no good, Grace. What can we do for our country?” finished
+Mollie.
+
+“Nothing at all, dear!” laughed Miss Sallie, and the rest of the party.
+“Much as I admire these two clever lassies, I am very glad to have my
+other two girls of a more peaceful and quiet variety, or my hair would
+certainly turn whiter than it is now, if that were possible.” Miss
+Stuart touched her snow-white hair, which was very handsome with her
+delicate skin and bright color.
+
+“Now I insist,” she said, “that you girls have a quiet day if you are
+going out again this evening.”
+
+“May I have a row on the bay with Ralph?” asked Barbara. “Have you
+forgotten, Ralph, that you invited me several days ago?”
+
+“I am sorry, Barbara,” Ralph answered, quietly, “but I had forgotten it.
+If you will excuse me, I have something else on hand for today that I
+must attend to. Perhaps you will go with me some other time,” he
+proposed, without any enthusiasm.
+
+“All right, Ralph,” Bab nodded. “Of course, I do not mind. We did not
+have a real engagement, anyway.” “He won’t let me make up with him,” Bab
+thought. “I wonder why he is so angry?”
+
+At five o’clock Barbara came down on the veranda, dressed for the
+evening. She spied Ralph walking alone down the garden path, which was
+arched with trellises of crimson and pink rambler roses. There were
+several seats along the walk, and it had formed a favorite retreat for
+the girls ever since they had arrived at Mrs. Ewing’s home.
+
+Perhaps another girl than Barbara would not have tried again to make
+friends with Ralph, after his refusal to take her boating in the
+morning; but Bab was so open-hearted and sincere that she could not bear
+a misunderstanding. She was fond of Ralph, he had been kind to her, and
+his manner toward her had changed so suddenly that she felt she must
+have done something to wound him. Bab did offend people, sometimes, with
+her quick speeches and thoughtlessness, but she was always ready to say
+she was wrong and to make amends.
+
+“Ralph!” she called. “Ralph!” The boy was obliged to stop and turn
+round, as Barbara was hurrying after him.
+
+“I want to talk to you, please,” she said, coaxingly. “You are not too
+angry with me to let me speak to you, are you?”
+
+“I have not said I was angry with you, Miss Thurston,” replied Ralph.
+
+“Now, Ralph!” Barbara put her hand lightly on his sleeve. “You know you
+don’t call me Miss Thurston. We decided weeks ago it was silly for us to
+call each other Miss and Mister when we were such intimate friends. I
+want you to do me a favor. Will you take me over to Mrs. Cartwright’s
+to-night? Donald and his guest, ‘the freshman,’ are coming for Grace and
+Mollie. Ruth, of course, is going over with Hugh, and I could go with
+them, but I want to talk to you. I can’t say what I have to say to you
+now, because already the girls are calling me. Please say you will take
+me.”
+
+Barbara’s eyes were so pretty and pleading that Ralph felt his anger
+already melting. Yet Ralph’s feeling toward Barbara was not only anger.
+It was a much more serious thing, a growing sense of distrust. But he
+answered: “Of course, Bab, I shall be delighted to take you.”
+
+Barbara and Ralph let the rest of their friends start ahead of them.
+They wanted to have their walk alone.
+
+Miss Sallie had pleaded fatigue, and remained at home. “Besides,
+children,” she explained, “I am much too old to take any further
+interest in games, ‘eyeology,’ or any other ‘ology.’”
+
+Ralph and Barbara walked in silence down the street for several minutes.
+Then Bab spoke. “Tell me, Ralph, what is the matter? If you were angry
+with a man you would tell him what the trouble was, if he asked you. It
+is not fair not to be open with me because I am a girl. If you think you
+are being more polite to me by not telling me why you are angry, then I
+don’t agree with you. I think you are acting a whole lot worse.”
+
+Ralph continued to go on in moody silence.
+
+“All right, then, Ralph,” said Barbara; “I can’t ask you any more
+questions, or beg your pardon, when I don’t know what I have done to
+offend you. Only I am sorry.”
+
+“Oh, it isn’t that you have offended me, Bab,” Ralph burst out. “Do you
+suppose I would act like such a bear if you had just thrown me down, or
+some little thing like that, when we have been such jolly good friends
+before? I didn’t like your sending me off yesterday, when you went to
+look for Mollie, because—because——”
+
+“Go on, Ralph,” insisted Barbara.
+
+“Very well, then, Bab; I was angry and hurt because, if you did join
+Mollie, you couldn’t have stayed with her a minute. I saw you, just
+afterwards, holding a long conversation with a strange man.”
+
+“Well, Ralph,” argued Bab, “was that such a dreadful offense? I am sure
+I should not have been angry with you, if you had talked to any number
+of strange women.” Bab’s eyes were twinkling. She had made up her mind
+that she wanted a confidant. Here was Ralph, the best one she could
+have.
+
+“That’s not all,” Ralph continued, “I did not mean to be an
+eavesdropper, but I was standing just behind you and I could not help
+overhearing that strange man make an appointment to meet you this
+morning. Say, Bab,” Ralph turned toward her, all his anger gone, “don’t
+do things like meeting that man this morning without telling. It’s not
+nice, and I’ve thought you the nicest, most straightforward girl I ever
+knew. If there is anything between you and that fellow, why should it be
+a secret? A girl can’t afford to have secrets, except with other girls.”
+
+“But I want to have a secret with _you_, Ralph,” rejoined Barbara. “Now
+listen, while I tell you everything. I have never talked to you about
+the scene in the conservatory, the night of Mrs. Erwin’s ball, though I
+did appreciate what you did to help me out when I made that strange
+request of Harry Townsend. I was not crazy. I saw Harry Townsend steal
+Mrs. Post’s emerald necklace. Ralph,” Barbara’s voice was now so low
+that he had to bend over to hear her, “Harry Townsend is not what the
+people here think him. He is a professional thief, and a dangerous one.”
+
+“Whew!” whistled Ralph. “What did you say?”
+
+Then Barbara told him the story of the three thefts, from the beginning,
+and her own part in discovering them. “The detectives are on the lookout
+now, Ralph,” she added, “but they want me to keep a watch from the
+inside.”
+
+“Well, you are a clever one, Bab!” declared Ralph. “Look here, I am glad
+you told me this. I appreciate it a whole lot, and I will not mention it
+to anyone until you tell me I may. But, remember one thing. I shall be
+on the watch, too, and it’s Miss Barbara Thurston I’ll be watching. That
+Townsend is a dangerous rogue. I’ve known there was something crooked
+about him from the first. Oh, it’s easy to say that, now, after what you
+have told me. I am not pretending I knew his special game. Only I knew
+he was not our sort. He is a whole lot older than he pretends to be, for
+one thing.”
+
+“Ralph,” sighed Barbara, “do you think there is any way I could warn
+Gladys against Harry Townsend?”
+
+Ralph shook his head. “Not any way that I know of. She would just snub
+you hard, if you tried. Even if you dared to tell her the truth she
+would go right off and tell that Townsend fellow. She’s been pretty
+hateful to you, Bab. I don’t see why you should care.”
+
+“Oh, but I do care,” retorted Bab. “She has been horrid and stuck up,
+but she hasn’t done Mollie and me any real harm, and she is my cousin.
+Her father is my mother’s brother. Uncle Ralph has never been very fond
+of us, nor has he come to see us very much, but he looks after mother’s
+money. I don’t suppose,” wound up Barbara, thoughtfully, “he would do us
+any wrong. I shouldn’t like Gladys to get into trouble.”
+
+“What has kept you children so long?” asked Grace, as Ralph and Barbara
+appeared on Mrs. Cartwright’s veranda. Then she squeezed Bab’s hand and
+whispered, so no one else could hear, “Made it up, Bab?” Barbara nodded,
+“yes.”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright was heard speaking. “Sit down, everyone, over there
+where Jones has placed the chairs for us. Professor Cartwright,” she
+bowed to show she meant herself, “will now explain to his pupils, or his
+guests, the principles of the science of ‘eyeology.’ Human character is
+expressed in the human eye—our love, our hate, our ambitions,
+everything. But can we read the characters of people about us as we look
+into their eyes? No! Why not? Because the rest of the face confuses our
+attention. Instead of the steadfast beacon of the eye, we see the nose,
+the mouth, the hair, all the other features, and so we fail to
+understand the story the eye would tell us if it were alone. To-night I
+intend to instruct you in the proper understanding of ‘eyeology.’”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright changed to her usual manner of speaking. “Don’t you
+think it would be amusing to make a test? Here Ruth,” laughed the
+hostess, “be my first pupil. Go into the drawing-room and wait there
+until I send for you. I want to find out how many of your friends you
+will know, when you see only their eyes.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX—RUTH WAKES UP!
+
+
+A curious sight met Ruth’s gaze when she was invited to return to the
+veranda.
+
+“Goodness!” she laughed. “It is just as well I am not afraid of ghosts.
+I’ve come upon a whole army of them all at once!”
+
+Mrs. Cartwright had the porch darkened, except for a single row of
+bright lights. Her visitors stood with their backs against the wall, a
+sheet drawn up on a level with their eyes. Another white cloth covered
+their heads, drawn down so low over their foreheads that even the
+eyebrows were concealed. By standing on books and stools the eyes were
+all on a level.
+
+“No giggling,” said Mrs. Cartwright severely to the ghostly set in front
+of her, “or Ruth can guess who you are by the tones of your voices.”
+
+Ruth looked confused. No signs of her friends remained, save a long row
+of shining eyes, black, blue, brown and gray, even the color being hard
+to distinguish in the artificial light.
+
+“Now, mademoiselle,” said Mrs. Cartwright, still speaking in the voice
+of a professor, “behold before you an opportunity to prove your skill in
+the remarkable science of ‘eyeology.’ I have a piece of paper and a
+pencil in my hand. As you gaze into each pair of eyes, you are to reveal
+that person’s identity. I will write the names down as you tell them to
+me. When you have gone through the whole list, the curtain shall be
+lifted. Then we shall discover how many of your friends you know by the
+character of their eyes. After Ruth has finished, anyone else who wishes
+may try his or her skill.”
+
+“My dear Mrs. Cartwright,” said Ruth, laughing and peering in front of
+her, “I tell you, right now, that I shall not guess a single name
+correctly. To tell the truth, I never saw any of these eyes before. It’s
+horrid to have them all staring and blinking at me. I am frightened at
+them all! Besides, I can’t see. May I have a candle and hold it up in
+front of each person as I pass along?”
+
+“Yes,” said Mrs. Cartwright; “only kindly keep at a safe distance. We
+don’t want to burn up any of our ghosts.”
+
+Ruth started down the line. She had the privilege of staring as long and
+as hard as she liked into each pair of eyes.
+
+The company was strangely silent. They were really interested in the
+idea, and knew that any talking would spoil the whole experiment.
+
+“I’ve mixed the babies up, Ruth,” said Mrs. Cartwright, “so you needn’t
+think you can guess anyone by his choice of a next-door neighbor. No
+social preferences have been allowed in this game.”
+
+Ruth tried the first pair of eyes. She looked at them intently. Then she
+turned round to Mrs. Cartwright. “I am sure I never saw those eyes
+before. You have introduced some stranger since I left the porch.”
+
+“There is not a person here whom you do not know well,” Mrs. Cartwright
+assured her. “Don’t try to slip out of your task.”
+
+Ruth kept staring. The eyes in front of her drooped, and soft, curling
+lashes for an instant swept over them. A little wistful look lay in the
+depths of them, when the lids lifted. “Why, it’s Molliekins! How absurd
+of me not to know her! I was about to guess Ralph!”
+
+Mistress Ruth must have guessed wrongly next time, for there was a burst
+of laughter, afterwards, that made the white sheets shake.
+
+“Be quiet,” warned Mrs. Cartwright sternly.
+
+So Ruth passed on down the line. There were about twenty people in the
+game, but Ruth knew all of them very well. Sometimes her guesses were
+right, sometimes they were wrong. Once or twice she had to confess
+herself beaten, and “gave up” with a shake of her head at Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+
+Ruth had nearly finished her task. Only a few more pairs of eyes
+remained to be investigated.
+
+“Well, I am nearly through,” she said gayly. “If anyone thinks I have
+had an easy time of it, he has only to take my place and try the next
+turn. No more mistakes now, for Ruth Stuart! Who is my next victim?”
+Ruth held her candle above her head and looked up.
+
+Gleaming at her through the darkness lit by the flare from her
+candle-light was a pair of eyes that were strangely familiar.
+
+Ruth stared at them. They belonged to none of the friends she knew—yet,
+somewhere, she had seen them before.
+
+Ruth looked and looked. The eyes shifted and narrowed. Ruth still held
+her candle aloft; but she had forgotten where she was. Where had she
+seen those eyes before?
+
+“Look straight ahead of you,” said Mrs. Cartwright to the gleaming eyes,
+“how can Ruth guess when your eyes are closed?” But again the eyes
+shifted.
+
+“I am going to find out to whom those eyes belong, if I stay here all
+night,” said Ruth, speaking to herself.
+
+The eyes glinted, narrowed and shone like two fine points of steel.
+
+“Oh!” said Ruth. She staggered a little and the candle shook in her
+hand. “I thought I knew those eyes, but I don’t. I must be mistaken. I
+beg your pardon, Mrs. Cartwright,” said Ruth, “but I am tired. I don’t
+think I can go on. Will some one take my place?”
+
+Ruth’s expression was so peculiar that Mrs. Cartwright came up to her.
+“You foolish child!” she said, putting her hand on Ruth’s shoulder, “I
+believe this game is making you nervous. Who is it sitting there with
+the eyes that Ruth remembers, yet will not reveal to us?” she called.
+
+“Harry Townsend, Harry Townsend!” the people sitting closest to him
+answered.
+
+“Harry,” said Mrs. Cartwright, “you come and take Ruth’s place. Let’s
+see if you are a better ‘eyeologist’ than she is.”
+
+Before Harry Townsend had slipped out from under his strange covering,
+Ruth turned to Mrs. Cartwright. “Excuse me for a minute,” she begged.
+“My labors as an optician have used me up. I will be back in a little
+while.”
+
+Barbara crept from under the sheet, and, without speaking to anyone, ran
+after Ruth, who was on her way upstairs to Mrs. Cartwright’s boudoir.
+
+“Ruth, dear, what on earth has happened to you? Are you sick?” asked
+Barbara.
+
+“Oh, I am worse than sick, Bab!” muttered Ruth, with a shudder. “Don’t
+ask me to talk until we get upstairs.”
+
+The girls closed the dressing-room door.
+
+“I must be wrong, Bab, yet I don’t believe I am. I saw to-night the same
+eyes that glared at us from behind a black mask the time of that
+horrible burglary at New Haven, when, for a little while, I thought you
+were killed. I have never said much about it. I wanted to forget and I
+wanted everyone else to forget it, but those eyes have followed me
+everywhere since. To-night——”
+
+Bab took Ruth’s hand.
+
+“Oh, Bab,” groaned Ruth, “what does it mean? I saw those eyes again
+to-night and they were Harry Townsend’s. I wanted to scream right out:
+‘Burglar! robber!’ But I could not make a scene. I came upstairs, hardly
+knowing how I reached here.”
+
+One of the maids knocked at the door. “Do the young ladies wish
+anything? Mrs. Cartwright sent me up to inquire,” she said.
+
+“Nothing at all. Tell her we are all right, and will be down in a few
+minutes.”
+
+“Ruth,” said Barbara, “I want to tell you something. If I do, can you
+pretend that nothing has happened, and be perfectly composed for the
+rest of the evening? Now don’t say ‘yes’ unless you feel sure.”
+
+Ruth looked straight at Barbara, “Yes; tell me what it is,” she urged.
+“I am beginning to guess.”
+
+“The eyes you saw to-night were Harry Townsend’s, and he is a burglar
+and a thief. I did not know he was the robber at New Haven; I have only
+suspected it. Now I feel sure, and you recognized him to-night. He is a
+more dangerous character than I had thought, and he must not know that
+you suspect him.”
+
+“He shall know nothing from me,” said Ruth, coolly. Her color had come
+back, now that she knew the truth. “It was only the shock that unnerved
+me. Why haven’t you told me before, Bab?”
+
+“I was afraid you’d ask me that, Ruth, dear, and I want to explain. You
+see, I have believed Harry Townsend a thief ever since I saw him, with
+my own eyes, take the necklace from Mrs. Post’s neck at Mrs. Erwin’s
+ball; but you were positive I was wrong, and asked me not to talk about
+it. So I didn’t know what to do. I have only watched and waited.
+To-night I told Ralph what I knew.”
+
+Barbara then explained to Ruth the whole story, and the part the
+detectives had asked her to play in Townsend’s apprehension. “What shall
+I do, Ruth?” she ended.
+
+“Come on downstairs, Bab,” said Ruth. “Some one may suspect us if we
+don’t. Do, Bab. We are going on to play the game, just as you have been
+playing it by yourself. We will say nothing, but we will do some hard
+thinking; and, when the time comes, we shall act! To tell you the truth,
+if you will never betray me to Aunt Sallie, I think playing detective
+beats nearly any fun I know.”
+
+“Eyeology” was no longer amusing the guests when the two girls came
+downstairs; indeed, the company had scattered and was talking in
+separate groups. Ruth and Bab joined Mollie and Grace, who were standing
+near Mrs. Post and their new acquaintance, the Countess Bertouche.
+
+“Girls,” asked Mrs. Post, “would you like to join the Countess Bertouche
+and myself Saturday afternoon? We are going to explore old Newport; the
+old town is well worth seeing. The countess tells me this is her first
+visit to Newport, so, before she goes back to Paris, I want her to see
+that we have a little of the dignity that age gives.
+
+“Why,” and Mrs. Post turned smilingly to the little group, “Newport
+boasts even a haunted house! It is not occupied, and I have the
+privilege of showing you over it. A story has been written about the old
+mansion. Here a young woman lived who loved an officer in Rochambeau’s
+fleet, when the gallant French sailor came over to these shores. But the
+sailor loved and sailed away, never to return. So the lady pined and
+died; but her presence still haunts the old house. You can feel her
+approaching you by a sudden perfume of mignonette. After we see all the
+sights of the town, we shall go to the old house at about dusk, so that
+we may have a better chance to discover the ‘spirit lady.’”
+
+Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post’s invitation with enthusiasm.
+Barbara and Ruth had to decline regretfully.
+
+“You see, Mrs. Post,” Barbara explained, “Ruth and Hugh have to practice
+their tennis, every hour they can manage, until the tournament on
+Monday. Ruth has become a little out of practice since her accident, and
+must work hard at her game for the next few days. Ralph and I have
+promised to help by furnishing the opposition.”
+
+“You’ll excuse Mollie and me from playing audience, won’t you, Ruth?”
+asked Grace. “We are going home so soon after the tournament is over
+that we can’t resist Mrs. Post’s invitation.”
+
+“Barbara,” said Ruth, coming into Bab’s room, just as that young woman
+was about to step into bed, “can you imagine anyone whom Harry Townsend
+can be using as a confederate?”
+
+“Sh-sh!” warned Bab. “Here comes Mollie. Don’t say anything. I haven’t
+the faintest idea.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI—THE CAPTURE OF THE BUTTERFLY
+
+
+Harry Townsend was not aware of the chain of suspicion that was
+tightening around him; but he was too clever not to use every
+precaution. Once or twice he had come across the small, dark detective
+who was making investigations in Mrs. Erwin’s house—the large, blond
+man, named Burton, had kept in the background—but knowing that the
+servants had been under suspicion, he supposed that the search was being
+made on their account. He knew of no act of his own that could possibly
+implicate him in the robberies. He came and went among Mrs. Erwin’s
+guests, and was on a friendly footing with their most fashionable
+friends at Newport. He had seen no one else during his visit, as the
+whole world was privileged to know.
+
+The only act that the detective, Rowley, was able to report to his
+superior was that Mr. Townsend mailed his own letters. In Mrs. Erwin’s
+household it was the custom of her guests to place all their mail in a
+bag, which the butler sent to the postoffice at regular hours; but Mr.
+Townsend preferred to mail his own letters. This act occasioned no
+comment. Other guests, writing important business letters, had done the
+same thing.
+
+“And Townsend has mailed only letters,” continued Rowley in making his
+report. “Not a single package, even of the smallest size, has gone out
+through the postoffice. The jewels are still in Newport.”
+
+Mr. Townsend had already begun to discuss with his hostess the
+possibility of his soon having to leave her charming home. “I have
+presumed on your hospitality too long,” he said to Mrs. Erwin, several
+times. “When the famous Casino ball is over I must be getting back to
+New York.”
+
+To Gladys he explained: “My dear Gladys, my holiday time must end some
+day. I shall be able to see you often when you go back to Kingsbridge. I
+am going into a broker’s office as soon as I get back to New York. I
+have been loafing around in Europe for the last two years, but I have
+decided that, even if a fellow has money enough to make him fairly
+comfortable, work is the thing for the true American!”
+
+To-day Harry Townsend walked to the post-office alone. He carried three
+letters. One of them was to a steamship company engaging passage to
+Naples for “John Brown.” The steamer was due to sail the following
+Wednesday. The other two letters had New York addresses. When they
+arrived at their first destination, they were to be remailed to other
+addresses. A tall, blond man, who happened to be lounging in the
+postoffice at the time Mr. Townsend entered it, observed that the young
+gentleman was anxious to know when the letters would be delivered in the
+city.
+
+The letters posted, Townsend walked over to the Casino courts, where Bab
+and Ruth were playing tennis. He had promised Gladys to join her there.
+He still had some investigations he desired to make. But he walked
+slowly. Clever fingers must be directed by a clever brain, whether their
+work be good or evil. No matter how well he knew he could depend on his
+wonderful fingers to do their share of the work, the “boy Raffles”
+always thought out carefully the plan of his theft before he tried to
+execute it.
+
+On Monday night, at the Casino tournament ball, he planned to make his
+final theft. This accomplished, he could leave Newport feeling he had
+reaped a rich harvest, even in the summer season, when harvests are not
+supposed to be gathered.
+
+Harry Townsend, alias half a dozen other names, had seen the jewel he
+most coveted for his final effort. It was a diamond tiara belonging to
+one of the richest and most prominent women in Newport. His schemes were
+carefully laid. He was waiting for Monday night.
+
+At about three o’clock, on this same Saturday afternoon, Mrs. Post and
+the Countess Bertouche stopped in a small automobile for Grace and
+Mollie. They had no one with them except the chauffeur.
+
+It took them some time to drive through the old town of Newport. The
+ladies descended at the old Trinity church, to investigate it, and the
+girls were much interested in the ancient jail. There, they were told,
+was once kept a woman prisoner who complained because she had no lock on
+her door.
+
+Mollie and Grace were not ardent sightseers. It was really the thought
+of the haunted house that had brought them on their pilgrimage. But Mrs.
+Post and the countess insisted on poking their way down the Long Wharf,
+with its rows of sailors’ houses and junk shops. Both girls were
+dreadfully bored, and secretly longed to be on the tennis courts with
+Bab and Ruth. Yet the thought of the haunted house buoyed them up.
+
+Mrs. Post was a collector. If you have ever traveled with one, you will
+understand that it means hours and hours of looking through dirt and
+trash in order to run across one treasure that a collector regards as
+“an antique.”
+
+Even when Mrs. Post was through with her search she decided that it was
+not yet sufficiently late for them to visit the haunted house. “I told
+the caretaker not to meet us there until a quarter of seven. We shall
+want only a few minutes to go through the old place; but, of course, we
+must see it under conditions as romantic as possible.” Mrs. Post then
+ordered the chauffeur to take them for a drive before driving them to
+the haunted house.
+
+Mollie and Grace were unusually quiet, so they noticed that the Countess
+Bertouche had little to say during the afternoon. She seemed tired and
+nervous. When Mrs. Post asked her questions about her life abroad, after
+she married, the countess replied in as few words as possible.
+
+At exactly the appointed time the automobile delivered its passengers
+before the door of the house they sought. It was an old, gray,
+Revolutionary mansion, three stories high, with a sloping roof and small
+windows with diamond-latticed panes. It was quite dark when the girls
+entered the ghostly mansion, following Mrs. Post and the countess, who
+were led by a one-eyed old caretaker carrying a smoky lamp. There was
+just enough daylight shining through the windows to see one’s way about,
+but the corners of the vast old house were full of terrifying shadows.
+
+“Let us not stay too long, Mrs. Post,” urged the countess. “I am not
+fond of ghosts, and I am tired.” But Mrs. Post was the kind of
+sight-seer who goes on to the end, no matter who lags behind. She led
+the party up the winding steps, peering into each room as they went
+along. The house was kept furnished with a few rickety pieces of old
+furniture.
+
+When they reached the second floor, the caretaker announced that the
+middle bedroom was the sleeping apartment of the haunted lady. The
+little party searched it curiously. There was no sign of the ghostly
+inhabitant; no perfume of mignonette.
+
+“I don’t see anything unusual about this room,” said the countess,
+suppressing a sigh, “except that it has the most comfortable chair in
+the house. I shall sit here and rest while you take the two girls over
+the other part of the building.”
+
+The three left her. The woman dropped into a chair, and a worn, nervous
+look crossed her face.
+
+As Mollie ascended the attic stairs behind Grace she called out, “If you
+will excuse me, Mrs. Post, I shall go down and join the countess.”
+
+An imp of mischief had entered Mollie. Wrapped up in her handkerchief,
+carefully concealed in her purse bag, was a handful of mignonette, which
+she had gathered from Mrs. Ewing’s garden only that morning. Mollie
+meant to impersonate the “spirit lady.” Suddenly she had decided that
+the countess was the best one upon whom she could try her joke.
+
+Creeping down the stairs as quietly as a mouse, Mollie stole into the
+back room, adjoining the one where the countess sat. Had she looked in,
+she would hardly have played her naughty trick. The woman who sat there
+was a very different person from the gay society lady they had been
+meeting everywhere in the last few weeks. This woman looked weary and
+frightened. But Mollie was thinking only of mischief.
+
+Silently she took the mignonette out of her bag and crushed it in her
+hand. There was a sudden fragrance all about her. Then she slipped her
+hand slyly through the open doorway and dropped her bunch of mignonette
+into the room where the countess was sitting. There was no response. The
+countess had not detected the odor of the flowers and Mollie was deeply
+disappointed.
+
+Faintly, however, the countess began to be aware of the fragrance of a
+subtle perfume; but she was thinking too deeply of other things to be
+conscious of what it was. Besides, the growing darkness was making her
+nervous.
+
+Mollie gave up in despair. Her effort with the mignonette had plainly
+proved a failure. The countess refused to be frightened by the
+suggestion of the ghost.
+
+“Countess!” said Mollie, appearing suddenly in the open doorway. She
+certainly expected no result from this simple action; but the countess,
+who thought she was entirely alone, was dreadfully startled. She rose,
+with a short scream of surprise, and started forward. Her foot catching
+in a worn old rug, she stumbled. Mollie was by her side in a second,
+trying to help her to rise.
+
+“I am so sorry to have frightened you!” the child said penitently. “Wait
+a minute, you have dropped something.” Mollie picked up a square chamois
+skin bag. In her excitement and embarrassment she caught hold of the
+wrong end of it. Out of it tumbled a purse, and—Mollie saw it as plainly
+as could be, though it was nearly dark in the room—Mrs. Cartwright’s
+diamond butterfly!
+
+“Child!” said the countess, angrily. “See what your nonsense has done!
+This is the bag that I wear under my dress to carry my money and jewels.
+It is always securely fastened. I suppose, falling as I did, I must have
+broken the catch.” She picked up the things quickly and thrust them into
+her bag. It was so dark in the room she supposed Mollie had not seen
+them. Then, holding the bag tightly in her hand, she went on downstairs,
+Mollie after her, and joined Grace and Mrs. Post, who had preceded them
+to the automobile.
+
+“Well, did anyone see the ghost?” asked Mrs. Post. “You, Mollie, my
+child, look as if you had seen something.”
+
+“Oh, no,” denied Mollie; “but I am afraid I frightened the countess. I
+threw some mignonette in the room, trying to make her think I was the
+ghost, but she didn’t notice it. Then, when I spoke to her to tell her
+it was time to come downstairs, she was dreadfully startled.”
+
+Mrs. Post ordered the chauffeur to drive home first, as she and the
+countess had a dinner engagement; the two girls being later taken to
+Mrs. Ewing’s.
+
+The two women had barely left the car before Mollie put her lips near
+Grace’s ear and whispered: “Grace Carter, the Countess Bertouche has
+stolen Mrs. Cartwright’s butterfly! I saw it with my own eyes. She
+dropped it out of a bag on the floor, when she fell down.”
+
+“Goose!” smiled Grace. “What are you talking about? Don’t you suppose a
+countess may have a jeweled butterfly of her own?”
+
+“Not like that one,” retorted Mollie, firmly. “I would know it among a
+thousand. You needn’t believe me, but it’s as true as that my name is
+Mollie Thurston. I am going to tell Ruth and Bab, as soon as I get home.
+I know they will believe me.”
+
+“I do believe you, only I am so dumfounded I can’t take it in,” said
+Grace.
+
+“What on earth is the matter with you, Mollie?” asked Bab of her sister,
+as soon as they had finished dinner. “You look awfully excited.”
+
+“Bab,” whispered Mollie, “call Ruth and Grace right away. Don’t let
+anyone else come. Let’s go down to the end of the garden. I have
+something I must tell you, this minute!”
+
+Grace had already found Ruth, and the two came hurrying along. “No,
+Ralph,” ordered Grace, “you can’t come. This is strictly a girl’s
+party.”
+
+“Bab,” began Mollie, “you will believe me, won’t you? I do know what I
+am talking about. This afternoon I saw the Countess Bertouche with Mrs.
+Cartwright’s diamond butterfly. She dropped it, right before my eyes,
+out of the same kind of bag that Miss Sallie uses to keep her jewelry
+in. What can it mean?”
+
+“Ruth!” gasped Bab. “Bab!” uttered Ruth.
+
+The two girls looked at each other in silence. Then Bab exclaimed: “It
+took my Mollie to make the discovery, after all!”
+
+“What are you talking about, Barbara Thurston? What discovery have I
+made?” demanded Mollie.
+
+“Ruth, do you think I had better tell the girls?” asked Bab.
+
+Ruth nodded, and Barbara related the principal facts of the jewel
+robbery. She also told the girls that she and Ruth suspected that Harry
+Townsend had been the robber who frightened them at New Haven. “You
+remember,” Bab continued, “he was a guest at the hotel the same night we
+were, and left early the next morning. If he had one of the rooms under
+us, he could have climbed down the fire escape and into his own room
+before anyone could discover him.”
+
+But Bab kept to herself that she and Ruth were expecting another
+burglary, and that she, Bab, was to play a part in bringing the thief to
+bay. Mollie and Grace would both be terribly frightened at the thought,
+but it was just as well that they knew enough not to be surprised at
+what was to follow.
+
+Barbara went upstairs and wrote a note to the address in Newport that
+the detectives had given to her. It told the story just recited by
+Mollie.
+
+“Ralph,” requested Barbara, sauntering slowly through the hall, “will
+you mail this at once with your own hands? Little Mollie has done the
+deed, after all. She has found the woman who receives Harry Townsend’s
+stolen goods!”
+
+Ralph took the letter with an exclamation of surprise and hurried off to
+the post.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII—THE TENNIS TOURNAMENT
+
+
+The girls were dressing for the tennis tournament. The games were to
+begin at noon, and continue until six o’clock. Three hours later the
+annual tennis ball took place at the Casino.
+
+“You know, Ruth,” said Bab, fixing a pin in her friend’s collar, as they
+stood before the mirror, “that the really most important thing in our
+whole stay at Newport is your winning the silver cup in the tournament
+to-day.”
+
+“Oh!” cried Ruth. “Don’t be quite so energetic, Bab. You jabbed that pin
+right into my neck. I believe I am going to win. I can’t imagine a good
+soldier going into battle with the idea that he is going to be beaten.
+Why, an idea like that would take all the fight out of a man, or a girl
+either, for that matter. No, Hugh and I are going to do everything we
+possibly can to come out winners. But, if we do, Bab, Hugh and I will
+think we owe it to you and Ralph. You have been such trumps about
+keeping us up to the mark with your fine playing.”
+
+“Nonsense, Ruth!” retorted Bab, decidedly. “All Ralph and I ask this
+afternoon is a chance to do some shouting for the winners. What time is
+the tourney on for the ‘eighteen-year-olds’?”
+
+“Just after lunch; about two o’clock, I believe. Bab, are you nervous
+about to-night?” Ruth asked. “Do you think there is going to be a scene
+at the ball? The detectives will be watching Mr. Townsend closely. They
+suspect that he means to make another big attempt, don’t they?”
+
+“I really don’t know, Ruth,” Barbara answered. “I had a short note from
+Mr. Burton this morning. I meant to show it to you, but I did not have a
+chance. It simply said: ‘Thanks. The game is ours. Keep a sharp
+lookout!’ But I want to forget the whole burglary business to-day.
+Tennis is the only really important thing. Hurrah for Miss Ruth Stuart,
+the famous girl champion!” cried Barbara, then suddenly sobered down.
+The two girls had been in the wildest spirits all day. Indeed, Miss
+Sallie had sent them into the same room to dress, in order to get rid of
+them.
+
+“What is the matter, Bab?” said Ruth, turning round to look into her
+friend’s face.
+
+“I’ve a confession to make to you. In my heart of hearts, way down
+underneath, I am kind of sneakingly sorry for Harry Townsend. I know he
+is a rogue and everything that’s wicked. When I think of him in that way
+I am not sorry for him a bit. Then the thought comes of the man who has
+been around with us for weeks, playing tennis with us and going to our
+parties, and I can’t quite take it in.”
+
+“I know just what you mean, Bab,” replied Ruth, reflectively. “Don’t you
+think it must be the same idea as Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde? Everyone has
+a good and a bad side. We can’t help being sorry for the good part of a
+person, when the evil gets ahead of it. But, then, you and I have never
+really liked even the good side of Harry Townsend much. So I wonder why
+we both feel sorry.”
+
+“It’s the woman in us, I suppose,” sighed Bab.
+
+“Ruth, come in here and let me see how you look,” called Miss Sallie.
+She had sent up to New York for a special tennis costume for Ruth. The
+suit was a light-weight white serge skirt with an embroidered blouse of
+handkerchief linen, and the only color was Ruth’s pale blue necktie and
+the snood on her hair, which was carefully braided and securely fastened
+to the back of her head.
+
+Gowns were an important part of tournament days; indeed, the New York
+Horse Show seldom shows more elaborate dressing than does the annual
+tennis tournament at the Newport Casino.
+
+Mollie and Barbara were the proud owners of two new gowns made by their
+mother for this special occasion. Bab’s frock was a simple yellow
+dimity, and she wore a big white hat with a wreath of yellow roses round
+it.
+
+“You’re a baby blue, Mollie, aren’t you?” asked Grace standing and
+admiring her little friend. Grace had on a lingerie frock of lavender
+muslin and lace, and a big hat trimmed in lavender plumes.
+
+“Well,” said Mollie, making her a low bow, “lucky am I to be dressed in
+blue, if it means I may sit near so lovely a person as you. Fortunately,
+lavender and blue make a pretty color combination.”
+
+Miss Stuart had a box for the tennis tournament.
+
+When she and the girls entered it, they found it nearly filled with
+roses. There were no cards except a single one inscribed: “For the
+Automobile Girls,” for Miss Sallie was as much an automobile girl as any
+of the others. The girls selected the bunches of flowers that seemed
+most suited to their costumes. Miss Sallie and Grace immediately decided
+on the white roses, Mollie chose the pink ones, looking in her pale blue
+dress and hat like a little Dresden shepherdess.
+
+In some one’s garden a yellow rose bush of the old-fashioned kind must
+have bloomed for Bab. “Why!” uttered Miss Sallie, holding up Bab’s
+flowers, from which streamed a long yellow satin bow, “I have not seen
+these little yellow garden roses since I was a girl. See how they open
+out their hearts to everyone! Is that like you, Bab? Be careful how you
+hold them,” teased Miss Sallie; “they have a few thorns underneath, and
+must be gently handled.”
+
+Ruth half suspected Hugh had been the anonymous giver of the flowers, as
+soon as she discovered her own bunch. They formed a big ball of pale
+blue hydrangeas, tied with Ruth’s especial shade of blue ribbon.
+
+“See!” said Ruth, laughing, and holding them up for the other girls to
+admire. “Hugh was not discouraged by the fact that blue flowers are so
+hard to find. I wouldn’t have dreamed that hydrangeas could look so
+lovely, except on the bush.”
+
+Ruth sat in the front of the box, waiting for her name to be called for
+her tennis match. She was one of the most popular visitors in Newport;
+nearly everyone who passed her box stopped to wish good luck to her and
+to Hugh.
+
+“I have seen a good many sights, in my day,” said Miss Sallie, gazing
+around through her lorgnette, “but never one more beautiful than this.”
+
+The grass of the wide lawns was so perfectly trimmed that it looked like
+a carpet of moss. Over the green there swept a crowd of laughing, happy
+people, the women in frocks of every delicate color. Even the sober note
+that men’s clothes generally make in a gay throng was missing to-day,
+for the boys, young and old, wore white flannels and light shirts that
+rivaled the dresses of the girls in the brightness of their hues.
+
+Tier upon tier of seats rose up around the tennis courts; before the
+first game was called every one was filled.
+
+“Give me my smelling salts, Grace,” said Miss Sallie, when Ruth and Hugh
+were called out to commence their game. “I shall not look at them until
+the set is over.”
+
+“O Miss Sallie!” declared Ralph, who had quietly slipped into Ruth’s
+place next Barbara. “I am ashamed of you for not having more courage. I
+am certain they will win. We shall have two silver cups in this box in
+the next hour or so.”
+
+Over the heads of the great crowd Barbara could see the Countess
+Bertouche. She was standing near Mr. and Mrs. Erwin’s box, in which sat
+Governor and Mrs. Post, Gladys and Harry Townsend.
+
+For the first time in her acquaintance with them, Barbara saw Harry
+Townsend leave his seat and walk across the lawn with the countess.
+Evidently she had made some request of him. Not far off Barbara could
+also see a tall, blond man, with a curly, light mustache, who followed
+the pair with his eyes and then moved nonchalantly in their direction.
+
+But Harry Townsend was back with his friends in a minute. He had only
+taken the countess to her place, so that she need not be alone in the
+crowd.
+
+Ruth and Hugh were easy winners. They had no such tennis battle as they
+fought the day they earned the right to represent their crowd over the
+heads of Ralph and Barbara.
+
+“Hurrah! Hurrah! Hurrah!” shouted the crowd.
+
+Ruth and Hugh were standing near each other in front of the judges’
+stand, where the prizes were awarded.
+
+With a low bow, Mr. Cartwright presented Ruth with a beautiful silver
+cup and to Hugh another of the same kind. On the outside of each cup was
+engraved a design of two racquets crossing each other, with the word
+“champion” below.
+
+Barbara and Ruth had given up all their interest and thought to the
+tennis match during the day; but Ruth having won her cup, both girls’
+minds turned to the jewel robbery.
+
+Except for the note Bab had received in the morning, she had had no sign
+nor signal from the two detectives. The Countess Bertouche, apparently
+as calm and undisturbed as any of the other guests, had been an
+interested watcher of the tournament.
+
+The girls were late in arriving at the ball. Miss Stuart had insisted on
+their resting an hour after dinner, and the affair was in full swing
+when they entered the beautiful Casino ballroom.
+
+“You’re just in time for the barn dance, all of you,” called Mrs.
+Cartwright. “We are going to be informal for the next half hour, at
+least. Come, Ruth, I insist on you and Hugh leading off. You are our
+special tennis champions. Wasn’t it hard luck that I didn’t win, when my
+husband was a judge?”
+
+“Miss Thurston,” said Harry Townsend, turning suddenly to Barbara,
+“won’t you dance with me?”
+
+Barbara’s hands turned cold as ice and her cheeks suddenly flamed. She
+hated to dance with a man whom she knew to be of the character of Harry
+Townsend. Yet how could she refuse?
+
+He looked at her coolly, and Bab saw a mocking smile curl the corners of
+his lips. But he was as smooth and courteous as usual.
+
+“He is the prince of actors,” thought Bab. “I was a goose to let him see
+how I felt. I will show him that I know how to act as well as he does,
+when I am forced to it.”
+
+Barbara accepted the invitation quietly. They took their places with the
+two long rows of dancers extending down the whole length of the great
+ballroom.
+
+The barn dance, with its merry, unconventional movement, its swinging
+music and grace, was generally the greatest joy to Bab. But tonight, in
+spite of her pretense at acting, her feet lagged. She dared not look
+into the face of her partner. He was as gay and debonair as usual.
+
+When the dance was over, Townsend asked Bab to walk out on the lawn with
+him.
+
+As Ruth saw Harry and Barbara walk out at the door, she turned suddenly
+to the stranger with whom she was talking. “Will you,” she said to him,
+“tell Ralph Ewing I would like to speak to him at once? I want to tell
+him something that is very important. Please forgive my asking you, but
+I must see him. I will wait right here until you find him.” It was
+five—ten minutes, before Ralph was found.
+
+Harry Townsend meant to discover what Barbara Thurston knew. She was a
+young girl, still at school. He was a man approaching thirty, with a
+record behind him of nearly ten years of successful villainy.
+
+Would Barbara betray herself? Would she “give the game away?”
+
+“Miss Thurston,” began Harry Townsend, politely, “as I shall be going
+away from Newport very soon, I want to have a talk with you. I must
+confess, that, since the night of Mrs. Erwin’s ball, I have been very
+angry with you. No high-minded man could endure the suggestion you made
+against my honor, when you asked Hugh Post to search me, so soon after
+his mother’s jewels had disappeared. But time has passed, and I do not
+now feel so wounded. Before I go away, would you mind telling me why you
+made such an accusation against me?”
+
+“Mr. Townsend,” said Barbara, biting her lips, but keeping cool and
+collected, “is it necessary for you to ask me why I made such an
+accusation? If it is, then, I beg your pardon. The jewels were not in
+your possession, certainly, when the search was made. I own I was most
+unwise.”
+
+“Then you withdraw the accusation?” Townsend was puzzled. He had
+expected Barbara to defy him, to insist he had stolen the jewels, that
+she had seen him in the act of doing it. He was wise enough to know
+that, if he could once make her angry, she would betray what she knew.
+He had still to discover who the gypsy was that had so strangely
+revealed to him her knowledge of his crimes.
+
+Barbara’s heart was beating like a sledgehammer.
+
+There was a slight movement in the nearby shrubbery. Harry Townsend
+wheeled like a flash. Barbara turned at the same instant. It was only a
+stranger who had wandered across the lawn and mistaken the path, but
+Barbara knew that his presence there meant eternal vigilance.
+
+“O Mr. Townsend,” she said, “the music is commencing. I would rather
+return to the ballroom. I have an engagement for this dance.”
+
+Harry Townsend realized he must manage to entice Barbara to a more
+secluded part of the Casino grounds before he could have a satisfactory
+talk with her.
+
+“No,” he said, “we will not go back yet, I want to talk to you. We must
+understand each other better, before the night is over. Come!” He spoke
+in a voice as cold and hard as ice and took Barbara by the wrist.
+
+Barbara could not jerk away or call for help. She decided it was best to
+follow him.
+
+“You are not running away, are you, Miss Thurston?” It was Ralph’s voice
+calling. “I am sure Mr. Townsend will excuse you, as you have a previous
+engagement with me.”
+
+“Oh, certainly,” said Harry Townsend, pleasantly, “sorry as I am to lose
+Miss Thurston’s society.” As Barbara and Ralph walked away, he bit his
+lips savagely. Then he decided to follow the tall man he had seen moving
+about in the shrubbery. It might be that the man suspected something.
+But Townsend found him ten minutes later in the smoking-room, quietly
+moving around among the men.
+
+“Bab,” Ruth had a chance to whisper to her later in the evening, “is it
+all right with you? I was desperately frightened when I saw you
+disappear outside with Harry Townsend. Have you noticed something?”
+
+“What?” said Bab, gazing searchingly about her.
+
+“Only,” Ruth answered, “that the Countess Bertouche is not here this
+evening.”
+
+Both realized that the first card in the game had been played.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII—BROUGHT TO BAY
+
+
+One other person had noticed, with even greater interest than had Ruth
+and Bab, that the Countess Bertouche had failed to appear at the ball.
+That person was the jewel thief, Harry Townsend. He was filled with a
+silent rage. How dared she fail him this night of all others?
+
+All the fellow’s plans were carefully laid. The woman with the jewels he
+coveted sat in the ballroom; large and slow witted, she would not be
+quick either to discover her loss or to raise an alarm. And Harry
+Townsend was on friendly terms with her. Once she decided to leave the
+brightly lighted halls for the darkness of the grounds outside, lifting
+the tiara would be an easy matter. But Townsend never kept the jewels he
+stole in his possession ten minutes after their theft. How was he to get
+rid of them to-night?
+
+It was after midnight. Many of the guests had withdrawn to the veranda;
+the lawns were filled with people walking about. Now Harry Townsend
+stood back of a row of lights that cast a deep shadow. He was talking to
+some acquaintances. The women were elegantly gowned, and one of them
+wore a beautiful diamond tiara.
+
+Bab was standing alone in the door of the girls’ dressing-room. Miss
+Sallie had called her in, after supper, to smooth her hair. The other
+girls had been with her, but they had returned to join the dancers. Bab
+was resting and thinking. Mollie and Grace knew nothing of what she and
+Ruth had on their minds. The younger girls knew that Harry Townsend and
+the Countess Bertouche were suspected as thieves, but they did not know
+that the detectives were on the alert, and that the arrest might come
+to-night.
+
+Barbara was wondering if she ought to tell Gladys Le Baron what she
+knew. After all, Gladys was her cousin; and, as she had told Ralph, the
+other day, Bab felt that there ought to be a certain loyalty among
+people of the same blood, even when they were not fond of one another.
+
+To-night Gladys Le Baron had been more conspicuous with Harry Townsend
+than ever before. Not only was she seen with him constantly, but she
+wore an air of conscious pride, as if to say, “See what a prize I have
+won!”
+
+Gladys had passed Bab two or three times during the evening, but had
+pretended not to see her. Now she was coming in at the dressing-room
+door.
+
+“Gladys,” said Bab, timidly.
+
+Gladys turned to her haughtily. “I would rather,” she said, “that you
+did not speak to me. We cannot have much to say to each other. Harry
+Townsend told me”—Gladys spoke so passionately and with such deep anger
+in her tones that Barbara stared at her aghast—“of the accusation you
+made against him. He made me promise not to speak of it, but I will
+speak of it to you. I want you to know that I shall never forgive you as
+long as I live, and that I shall get even with you some day. You are
+jealous and envious of me because we have more money, and because Harry
+Townsend likes me. I want you never to talk to me.”
+
+“O Gladys!” said Barbara. She was angry and hurt, but she was more
+frightened by the real feeling her cousin showed. Did she care for Mr.
+Townsend so much? Gladys was nearly eighteen, and Bab knew that ever
+since she was a girl of fourteen she had been brought up to think she
+was a young lady.
+
+“Gladys,” said Bab, firmly, “listen to me! Be quiet. I cannot tell you
+what I wish to say in this ballroom, to-night, among all these people,
+but I have something to tell you that you simply must know. Do you
+understand? Come to my house in the morning, and don’t fail.” Barbara’s
+tones were so new and commanding that Gladys could only stare at her in
+silent amazement.
+
+“Yes,” she said, meekly; “I will come.”
+
+Bab’s eyes were burning, and her cheeks stung with the shame of the
+scene between herself and Gladys. In order to be alone in the fresh air,
+she slipped out of the dressing-room door which opened into a side yard.
+This yard had a double hedge of althea bushes which led into the back
+part of the Casino grounds. At the same instant that Bab left the
+dressing-room door, a man passed her on the other side of the hedge. He
+was going into the back part of the garden.
+
+The show grounds of the Casino were in a central court. In the rear,
+back of the kitchens, was a long arbor covered with heavy grapevines.
+The man Bab followed slipped into this arbor.
+
+When Barbara glanced into it a second later—she dared not move quickly,
+for fear of making a noise—there was no human figure in sight. “He has
+gone on down through the arbor and slipped over the fence,” she thought
+to herself.
+
+She was feeling her way along, trying to keep in the center path. The
+night was dark, and there were few stars overhead.
+
+Suddenly, Bab gave a little shriek of terror and started back. Crouching
+in the darkness was a man. His back was turned to Barbara, and, if the
+darkness was not deceiving her, he was digging in the earth.
+
+But Barbara’s shriek roused him. “You, again!” he cried. He leaped at
+her, and, before she could call for help, his hand covered her mouth,
+and her head was pressed back.
+
+“Don’t make a noise,” another voice said quietly. “My instructions were
+not to make a scene.”
+
+Townsend felt his own arms seized and drawn down to his sides. The big,
+blond man, who had interrupted his tête-à-tête with Barbara earlier in
+the evening, was again by his side. A smaller, dark man stood near him.
+
+“Well, we have got you this time with the goods on you, or pretty close
+to you,” said the smaller detective, striking a match and looking down
+at his feet. Just near where they stood, only partially concealed by the
+dirt, which had been hastily dug up, something brilliant flashed and
+sparkled.
+
+“Did you think, Mr. Townsend,” laughed Detective Burton quietly, “that
+you were the only clever person in Newport? These jewels you have just
+stolen are hardly worth the risk you ran. You might get about
+twenty-five dollars for the lot. I suppose you didn’t know, since it has
+become the fashion to have a jewel thief in Newport, it has also become
+the fashion to wear paste jewels.” The man held the tiara in his hand.
+“But I will restore them to the rightful owner,” he said. “Mrs. Oliver
+informed me they were gone, two minutes after you slipped them out of
+her hair.”
+
+Townsend had not spoken. “Don’t,” he now said, with a shudder, “put
+those handcuffs on my hands. I will go quietly. I see the game is
+up—thanks to you!” He turned to Barbara with a snarl. But Ruth and Ralph
+were standing close by her side.
+
+Barbara was much shaken and frightened by her encounter, but she tried
+to summon a little of her old spirit. “You do me too much honor, Mr.
+Townsend,” she answered quietly.
+
+“Where is the Countess Bertouche?” asked Townsend stolidly.
+
+“She is ready to leave Newport with you to-night. Only we persuaded her
+to get ready a little earlier; indeed, we called upon her this
+afternoon, while she was at the tournament, and were waiting for her
+when she got back. She had two or three little trinkets in her
+possession, which she was holding for you, that we wished to return to
+their rightful owners. The lady will be able to travel as soon as you
+are. We think it best not to have any excitement in Newport. By the
+way,” went on the detective—the three young people were listening
+breathlessly—“the lady is not such a cool customer as you are. She
+confessed that she was not a countess, but a poor newspaper woman out of
+a job, whom you enticed down here to help you. She explained that you
+had been mailing letters of instruction to her by sending them on to New
+York and having them remailed to her here. A poor business it has been
+for both of you, I am thinking.”
+
+“Ruth,” said Barbara, quickly, “it’s too awful! Let us go back to Miss
+Sallie!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV—GOOD-BYE TO NEWPORT
+
+
+Early next morning Ruth and Barbara made full confession to Miss Sallie.
+Mollie and Grace were not surprised, for they had been told enough of
+the circumstances to expect the outcome. But imagine Miss Sallie!
+
+“You mean to tell me, Ruth and Bab,” she gasped, dropping limply into
+the nearest chair, “that Harry Townsend is the jewel thief, the Newport
+Raffles? Why, you girls have walked with him, talked with him, played
+tennis with him! And Barbara has suspected him all the time! My
+heavens!” she wailed, in despair. “Did it never dawn on you, Barbara,
+that you might have been killed?”
+
+Miss Stuart was overcome. “Ruth Stuart, my own niece, do you mean to
+tell me that you lately discovered that ‘this Townsend’ was the thief
+who tried to rob us in New Haven? Why was I not told at once? But then,
+I am grateful I was not. And you, Mollie, fourteen-year-old Mollie, you
+found out this wretch’s accomplice, and discovered Mrs. Cartwright’s
+stolen butterfly! I never would have thought it of you!”
+
+“But I didn’t mean to, Miss Sallie. It was all an accident. I am awfully
+sorry for that poor woman,” answered Mollie.
+
+“Nonsense, child!” said Miss Sallie. “I am grateful enough that such
+dangerous people are out of the way.”
+
+The girls were standing in a circle round her. “Come to my arms,” she
+demanded of Grace. “Thank heavens, child, you have not turned detective,
+and can be relied on to keep me company!”
+
+“But it was just as much Grace’s fault as it was mine that I discovered
+the butterfly,” argued Mollie, who could not see that Miss Sallie was
+joking. “She was with me when I found it out.” Everyone joined in the
+laugh at Mollie’s expense.
+
+“Some one to see you in the library, miss,” announced Susan, the parlor
+maid. “She says she’d like to see you alone, first, and she’d rather not
+give her name.”
+
+“Then you are not to go one step, Barbara Thurston,” said Miss Stuart in
+the voice the girls knew had to be obeyed. “There is no telling who it
+is waiting for you, nor what her intentions may be toward you. You’d go
+if you thought you’d be murdered the next minute. I never saw a girl
+like you. I will go myself,” announced Miss Sallie.
+
+“Oh, no,” said the girls, all pulling together at her skirts.
+
+Miss Sallie had to pause. “If you think, young ladies,” she said,
+calmly, “that, because I have not unearthed a jewel robber, nor attacked
+a burglar in the dark, I am therefore more of a coward than a parcel of
+silly girls, you are vastly mistaken. Let go of me!” Miss Sallie marched
+majestically forward.
+
+“Susan, _I_ will go down.”
+
+“Oh, no’m,” pleaded Susan, giggling. She had no idea what all the fuss
+was about, but she knew it was most unnecessary. “Please’m, let me
+whisper to you. It’s only that Miss Gladys Le Baron, but I promised not
+to give her name. I am sure she means no harm, miss. She looks like she
+was worried and had been crying a bit, ma’am.”
+
+“It is all right, Barbara,” said Miss Sallie. “From what Susan tells me
+you may go downstairs alone.”
+
+Bab had not the faintest idea who could be waiting for her. In all the
+excitement, she had entirely forgotten that she had told Gladys Le Baron
+to come to see her this morning without fail. As soon as she opened the
+library door, she remembered. “Good morning,” she said, coldly.
+
+But Gladys flung her arms about her neck and burst into a torrent of
+tears. “I know it all, all!” she said. “Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin called
+me into their rooms last night, and told me everything. I had expected
+Harry Townsend to take me home from the ball, and, when he didn’t put in
+his appearance, I was so angry and behaved so badly Mrs. Post said I had
+to be told at once. Mrs. Erwin wanted to wait until morning. O Bab, I
+didn’t sleep a wink last night!”
+
+“I am sorry,” said Bab, but she didn’t really show a great deal of
+feeling.
+
+“Bab,” Gladys went on, “I simply can’t believe it! And to think you knew
+it almost all the time! Mrs. Post says I have to believe it, now,
+because the whole story is out. She says she was completely deceived,
+too, and can understand why I thought Townsend was a gentleman. Father
+seemed to think he was all right. He told us all about his being an
+orphan, and who his rich relations were. Mrs. Erwin is so good. She just
+says she is sorry for me, and hasn’t uttered a word of blame. Only
+think, I brought that dreadful wretch to her house, and I am responsible
+for all the trouble! O Barbara, I can never face it!” Gladys wiped her
+eyes again with her handkerchief, which was already wet with her tears.
+
+“I want to go home to mother to-day, but Mrs. Erwin says I have to stay
+with her a little while longer. She says that, if I rush right off now,
+if I disappear the very same day Harry Townsend and that woman leave,
+people will believe there is more between us than there really is. There
+wasn’t anything exactly serious, though I did like him. I am sure I
+shall never hold up my head again.”
+
+“I wanted to warn you sooner, Gladys; believe me, I did,” answered
+Barbara; “but I knew you wouldn’t listen to me, and would not believe a
+word I said.”
+
+“I know, Barbara,” said Gladys, humbly. “I have been a horrid stuck-up
+goose. I know, now, if you hadn’t seen him steal the necklace at Mrs.
+Erwin’s, we might never have found out who the thief was. Then I don’t
+know what dreadful thing might have happened to me, if I had gone on
+seeing him and never understood his true nature. Do you think he could
+have stolen my bracelet?”
+
+“I know he did,” Bab answered.
+
+“The horrid, hateful thing!” cried Gladys, with a fresh burst of tears.
+“Barbara, I want to ask you a favor. Will you beg Ruth to let me go back
+to Kingsbridge in the automobile with you? I suppose I ask you because I
+have been more hateful to you than to anyone else. I know if you will
+forgive me the other girls will. Ruth will do anything you ask her.”
+
+“But I can’t ask Ruth such a favor as that, Gladys,” argued Barbara.
+“There wouldn’t be room in the car, for one thing.”
+
+“Oh, I could sit on the little seat and I would be as nice and give as
+little trouble as I possibly could, if you will only ask her. I somehow
+feel that if you girls will stick by me, now, other people will not
+think so badly of me. They will know I have been a goose, and have been
+dreadfully deceived by Harry Townsend, but they’ll understand that I
+never meant any wrong, and am not really bad. You see, Bab, you and
+Mollie are my cousins. Everyone is sure to find out you helped to expose
+the awful villain; so, if I am seen with you now, it will show that you
+take my part, and that you knew I had only been deceived.”
+
+“Don’t you think it is a good deal to ask of me, Gladys?” said Barbara,
+speaking very slowly. She was thinking of every snub, every cruel thrust
+Gladys had given her since they were children.
+
+Gladys did not answer at first. Then she shook her head, and rose to go.
+“Yes, Barbara,” she said; “I know I don’t deserve a bit of kindness at
+your hands. I have been perfectly hateful to you, always. Good-bye.”
+
+“Oh, stay, Gladys,” begged Bab, penitent in an instant. “I didn’t mean
+that. Of course we will all stand by you. Indeed, I shall ask Ruth if
+you may go back in the automobile with us, and I am sure, if Miss Stuart
+thinks there is room enough, Ruth will be delighted to have you. She is
+always the dearest, most generous girl in the world,” said Bab, her face
+glowing with the enthusiasm she always felt in speaking of Ruth.
+
+“Now,” she continued, “do come on upstairs and take off your hat. You
+must stay to lunch with us. Oh, no; you needn’t be afraid of Miss
+Stuart. She won’t be unkind to you; she’s a perfect dear! She’ll just be
+awfully sorry for you, when you tell her how badly you feel. Come on,
+Gladys.” Bab took hold of her hand.
+
+“Won’t you call Ruth down first?” urged Gladys. “I feel too much ashamed
+to go right on up there among all of you.”
+
+Ruth and Bab, between them, persuaded Gladys to go to their rooms. To
+their surprise, Mistress Mollie was the one to be appeased. She was not
+so ready to kiss and make up as Bab had been, yet even Mollie’s “hard”
+little heart softened when she saw what a changed and chastened Gladys
+the girls brought upstairs with them.
+
+“You’ll see I am going to be different,” Gladys said to Bab, “and if
+ever there’s a chance for me to prove how I appreciate your being so
+kind to me now, I shall do it. Of course, I don’t expect you to have
+much faith in me yet.”
+
+“Miss Barbara Thurston is requested to spend her last day in Newport as
+the guest of honor of Governor and Mrs. Post on board their yacht, the
+‘Penguin,’ which is at this instant awaiting her answer outside in
+Narragansett Bay,” said Ruth, with a flourish of a letter she held in
+her hand and a low bow to Barbara.
+
+“Goose!” shot Barbara at Ruth. “But are we all invited for a sail? How
+jolly!”
+
+“I am no goose, madam,” retorted Ruth. “I mean what I say. Read this.”
+
+She handed Barbara a letter which Miss Stuart had received from Mrs.
+Post only a few minutes before, and which read:
+
+ My Dear Miss Stuart,
+
+ We want, in some quiet fashion, to show our appreciation of, and
+ thanks to, the little girl who so patiently and cleverly kept her own
+ counsel, and so materially aided in the discovery of the jewel thief.
+ I feel that I did not do her justice. Governor Post and I both believe
+ that it is to her wit and courage that I owe the return of my emerald
+ necklace. I have talked matters over with Hugh, and, with your
+ consent, I should like to give a luncheon, in her honor, on board the
+ yacht at one o’clock to-morrow. We will spend the afternoon sailing in
+ the bay. Only our intimate friends will be invited and we feel that no
+ party could be complete, at Newport, without the presence of “The
+ Automobile Girls.”
+
+ Faithfully yours,
+ Katherine Post.
+
+
+“What larks!” cried Barbara, blushing with pleasure. “Has Miss Sallie
+said we could go?”
+
+“Certainly she has,” rejoined Ruth. “I told Hugh so at once.”
+
+ Columbia, the gem of the ocean,
+ The home of the brave and the free,
+ The shrine of each patriot’s devotion——
+
+The young people were in the bow of the yacht when the music commenced.
+“Why, Hugh,” Bab whispered to him in an undertone, “have we a band on
+board? How perfectly delightful!”
+
+“Young Miss America,” Hugh answered, “you needn’t think, for one minute,
+that this party on the ‘Penguin’ is going to enjoy any ordinary
+entertainment to-day. The band is not half. Just you wait, and see all
+the remarkable things that are to take place on this blessed boat
+excursion.”
+
+Earlier in the day, when Ruth and Grace first came aboard, they passed
+through the salon on their way to the upper deck. Grace caught hold of
+Ruth’s sleeve and drew her back to whisper to her: “Has it ever occurred
+to you that Harry Townsend might have stolen your fifty dollars that
+disappeared after we spent our first day on the yacht? I have been
+thinking that he must have been dreadfully hard up, or he never would
+have tried the robbery at New Haven, or have stolen such a small sum
+from you afterwards.”
+
+“Yes, I have thought about it,” said Ruth, shaking her head, with a
+forlorn gesture. “Isn’t it too dreadful? Let’s forget all about him
+to-day.”
+
+The luncheon was announced promptly at one.
+
+“‘The Automobile Girls,’ including Miss Sallie, will kindly stay on deck
+until they are summoned,” called Mrs. Post, sweeping on ahead, followed
+by her other guests.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls waited in some excitement. The sun was shining
+gayly on the deck of the little ship, which sailed through the water
+like a white bird. All the flags were flying in Barbara’s honor, as the
+governor explained, when she came on board.
+
+Suddenly Hugh’s smiling face appeared at the open door. “Come in, now,”
+he requested.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls marched into the long salon dining-room, while
+the band played “Liberty Bell.”
+
+In the center of the luncheon table, raised on a moss-covered stand, was
+a miniature automobile. In it sat five dolls wearing automobile veils of
+different colors and long dust coats. Two of the dolls were blondes, the
+other two were brunettes. But the stateliest and handsomest doll of the
+lot had soft, white hair and reclined against a violet cushion. A pale
+blue flag flew over the car. It bore the inscription: “The Automobile
+Girls—Long May They Flourish!”
+
+At either end of the table stood Hugh’s and Ruth’s silver cups, won at
+the tennis tournament.
+
+As Miss Sallie and the four girls took their places, Hugh raised one
+cup, his mother the other. “We will drink from these loving cups,” he
+said, “to the health of our guests of honor, ‘The Automobile Girls.’” He
+then passed the cups, filled with a fruit punch, around the table.
+
+At the close of the luncheon, Hugh again rose to his feet.
+
+“Ladies and gentlemen,” he announced, “I am going to make a speech.”
+
+“Don’t do it, Hugh,” laughed Ralph.
+
+“All right, Ralph,” said Hugh; “I won’t. Barbara,” Hugh leaned over to
+attract her attention, and Barbara turned a rosy red, “here’s a souvenir
+of Newport for you. I guess it’s a gift from us all.” He motioned to his
+friends around the table and handed to Bab a small green velvet box.
+“For the girl who is always on the watch,” he ended.
+
+Barbara’s eyes were full of tears. They came partly from embarrassment,
+but most of all from pleasure. Inside the velvet case was a tiny gold
+watch, set in a circle of small emeralds.
+
+But Mollie was calling Bab to look at her gift. Mrs. Cartwright, who sat
+next her favorite of the girls, had pinned a little, pearl butterfly in
+the lace yoke of Mollie’s gown. Ruth and Grace were each rejoicing in
+their gifts, silver pins representing tennis racquets, their souvenirs
+of the luncheon and their month’s stay in Newport.
+
+“It has been just too lovely!” said Mollie to Mrs. Post, as she bade her
+good-night. “Yes, we start for home the first thing in the morning. In a
+few days there will be no more ‘Automobile Girls,’” she ended with a
+sigh.
+
+“Oh,” said Ruth, laughing and coming up beside her, “who knows? You
+never can tell! Good-bye, everyone,” she said, taking hold of Bab’s
+hand. “We have had the time of our lives, just as we hoped we would.
+Till we meet again,” she finished with a smile.
+
+The four girls ran down the gangplank and rejoined Miss Sallie.
+
+As many of our readers will guess, the return to Kingsbridge did not
+bring an end to the adventures of the natural and charming girls in
+their automobile. Further adventures and a host of new things remain to
+be told, but these must be deferred for narration in the next volume,
+which will be entitled, “The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires; or, The
+Ghost of Lost Man’s Trail.”
+
+
+ [The End]
+
+ * * * * *
+
+HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY’S
+
+Best and Least Expensive
+
+Books for Boys and Girls
+
+The Motor Boat Club Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The keynote of these books is manliness. The stories are wonderfully
+entertaining, and they are at the same time sound and wholesome. No boy
+will willingly lay down an unfinished book in this series.
+
+ 1 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB OF THE KENNEBEC; Or,
+ The Secret of Smugglers’ Island.
+ 2 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AT NANTUCKET; Or, The
+ Mystery of the Dunstan Heir.
+ 3 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB OFF LONG ISLAND; Or, A
+ Daring Marine Game at Racing Speed.
+ 4 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AND THE WIRELESS; Or,
+ The Dot, Dash and Dare Cruise.
+ 5 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB IN FLORIDA; Or, Laying
+ the Ghost of Alligator Swamp.
+ 6 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AT THE GOLDEN GATE;
+ Or, A Thrilling Capture in the Great Fog.
+ 7 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB ON THE GREAT LAKES;
+ Or, The Flying Dutchman of the Big Fresh Water.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+Sold by all booksellers or sent postpaid on receipt of price.
+
+Henry Altemus Company
+
+1326-1336 Vine Street, Philadelphia
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Battleship Boys Series
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+These stories throb with the life of young Americans on to-day’s huge
+drab Dreadnaughts.
+
+ 1 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS AT SEA; Or, Two Apprentices
+ in Uncle Sam’s Navy.
+ 2 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS’ FIRST STEP UPWARD; Or,
+ Winning Their Grades as Petty Officers.
+ 3 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN FOREIGN SERVICE; Or,
+ Earning New Ratings in European Seas.
+ 4 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN THE TROPICS; Or, Upholding
+ the American Flag in a Honduras Revolution.
+ 5 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS UNDER FIRE; Or, The Dash for
+ the Besieged Kam Shau Mission.
+ 6 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN THE WARDROOM; Or,
+ Winning their Commissions as Line Officers.
+ 7 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS WITH THE ADRIATIC CHASERS;
+ Or, Blocking the Path of the Undersea Raiders.
+ 8 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS’ SKY PATROL; Or, Fighting
+ the Hun from Above the Clouds.
+
+Price, $1.00 each
+
+
+The Range and Grange Hustlers
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+Have you any idea of the excitements, the glories of life on great
+ranches in the West? Any bright boy will “devour” the books of this
+series, once he has made a start with the first volume.
+
+ 1 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS ON THE RANCH;
+ Or, The Boy Shepherds of the Great Divide.
+ 2 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS’ GREATEST ROUND-UP;
+ Or, Pitting Their Wits Against a Packers’ Combine.
+ 3 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS ON THE PLAINS;
+ Or, Following the Steam Plows Across the Prairie.
+ 4 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS AT CHICAGO;
+ Or, The Conspiracy of the Wheat Pit.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Submarine Boys Series
+
+By VICTOR G. DURHAM
+
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS ON DUTY;
+ Or, Life on a Diving Torpedo Boat.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS’ TRIAL TRIP;
+ Or, “Making Good” as Young Experts.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE MIDDIES;
+ Or, The Prize Detail at Annapolis.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE SPIES;
+ Or, Dodging the Sharks of the Deep.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS’ LIGHTNING CRUISE;
+ Or, The Young Kings of the Deep.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS FOR THE FLAG;
+ Or, Deeding Their Lives to Uncle Sam.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE SMUGGLERS;
+ Or, Breaking Up the New Jersey Customs Frauds.
+
+
+Grace Harlowe Overseas Series
+
+ GRACE HARLOWE OVERSEAS.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE RED CROSS IN FRANCE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE MARINES AT CHATEAU THIERRY.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE AMERICAN ARMY IN THE ARGONNE.
+
+
+The College Girls Series
+
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S FIRST YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S SECOND YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S THIRD YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S FOURTH YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S RETURN TO OVERTON CAMPUS.
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S PROBLEM.
+ GRACE HARLOWE’S GOLDEN SUMMER.
+
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid on receipt
+of only $1.00 each.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Pony Rider Boys Series
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+These tales may be aptly described the best books for boys and girls.
+
+ 1 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE ROCKIES;
+ Or, The Secret of the Lost Claim.
+ 2 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN TEXAS;
+ Or, The Veiled Riddle of the Plains.
+ 3 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN MONTANA;
+ Or, The Mystery of the Old Custer Trail.
+ 4 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE OZARKS;
+ Or, The Secret of Ruby Mountain.
+ 5 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE ALKALI;
+ Or, Finding a Key to the Desert Maze.
+ 6 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN NEW MEXICO;
+ Or, The End of the Silver Trail.
+ 7 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE GRAND CANYON;
+ Or, The Mystery of Bright Angel Gulch.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Boys of Steel Series
+
+By JAMES R. MEARS
+
+Each book presents a vivid picture of this great industry. Each story is
+full of adventure and fascination.
+
+ 1 THE IRON BOYS IN THE MINES;
+ Or, Starting at the Bottom of the Shaft.
+ 2 THE IRON BOYS AS FOREMEN;
+ Or, Heading the Diamond Drill Shift.
+ 3 THE IRON BOYS ON THE ORE BOATS;
+ Or, Roughing It on the Great Lakes.
+ 4 THE IRON BOYS IN THE STEEL MILLS;
+ Or, Beginning Anew in the Cinder Pits.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Madge Morton Books
+
+By AMY D. V. CHALMERS
+
+ 1 MADGE MORTON—CAPTAIN OF THE MERRY MAID.
+ 2 MADGE MORTON’S SECRET.
+ 3 MADGE MORTON’S TRUST.
+ 4 MADGE MORTON’S VICTORY.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+West Point Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The principal characters in these narratives are manly, young Americans
+whose doings will inspire all boy readers.
+
+ 1 DICK PRESCOTT’S FIRST YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Two Chums in the Cadet Gray.
+ 2 DICK PRESCOTT’S SECOND YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Finding the Glory of the Soldier’s Life.
+ 3 DICK PRESCOTT’S THIRD YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Standing Firm for Flag and Honor.
+ 4 DICK PRESCOTT’S FOURTH YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Ready to Drop the Gray for Shoulder Straps.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+Annapolis Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The Spirit of the new Navy is delightfully and truthfully depicted in
+these volumes.
+
+ 1 DAVE DARRIN’S FIRST YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or, Two
+ Plebe Midshipmen at the U. S. Naval Academy.
+ 2 DAVE DARRIN’S SECOND YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or,
+ Two Midshipmen as Naval Academy “Youngsters.”
+ 3 DAVE DARRIN’S THIRD YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or, Leaders
+ of the Second Class Midshipmen.
+ 4 DAVE DARRIN’S FOURTH YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or,
+ Headed for Graduation and the Big Cruise.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Young Engineers Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The heroes of these stories are known to readers of the High School Boys
+Series. In this new series Tom Reade and Harry Hazelton prove worthy of
+all the traditions of Dick & Co.
+
+ 1 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN COLORADO; Or, At Railroad
+ Building in Earnest.
+ 2 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN ARIZONA; Or, Laying Tracks
+ on the “Man-Killer” Quicksand.
+ 3 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN NEVADA; Or, Seeking Fortune
+ on the Turn of a Pick.
+ 4 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN MEXICO; Or, Fighting the
+ Mine Swindlers.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Boys of the Army Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+These books breathe the life and spirit of the United States Army of
+to-day, and the life, just as it is, is described by a master pen.
+
+ 1 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS IN THE RANKS; Or, Two Recruits
+ in the United States Army.
+ 2 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS ON FIELD DUTY; Or, Winning
+ Corporal’s Chevrons.
+ 3 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS AS SERGEANTS; Or, Handling
+ Their First Real Commands.
+ 4 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS IN THE PHILIPPINES; Or, Following
+ the Flag Against the Moros.
+ 6 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS AS LIEUTENANTS; Or, Serving
+ Old Glory as Line Officers.
+ 7 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS WITH PERSHING; Or, Dick Prescott
+ at Grips with the Boche.
+ 8 UNCLE SAM’S BOYS SMASH THE GERMANS; Or, Winding
+ Up the Great War.
+
+
+Dave Darrin Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+ 1 DAVE DARRIN AT VERA CRUZ;
+ Or, Fighting With the U. S. Navy in Mexico.
+ 2 DAVE DARRIN ON MEDITERRANEAN SERVICE.
+ 3 DAVE DARRIN’S SOUTH AMERICAN CRUISE.
+ 4 DAVE DARRIN ON THE ASIATIC STATION.
+ 5 DAVE DARRIN AND THE GERMAN SUBMARINES.
+ 6 DAVE DARRIN AFTER THE MINE LAYERS;
+ Or, Hitting the Enemy a Hard Naval Blow.
+
+
+The Meadow-Brook Girls Series
+
+By JANET ALDRIDGE
+
+ 1 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS UNDER CANVAS.
+ 2 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS ACROSS COUNTRY.
+ 3 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS AFLOAT.
+ 4 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS IN THE HILLS.
+ 5 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS BY THE SEA.
+ 6 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS ON THE TENNIS COURTS.
+
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid on receipt
+of only $1.00 each.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+High School Boys Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+In this series of bright, crisp books a new note has been struck.
+
+Boys of every age under sixty will be interested in these fascinating
+volumes.
+
+ 1 THE HIGH SCHOOL FRESHMEN; Or, Dick & Co.’s First
+ Year Pranks and Sports.
+ 2 THE HIGH SCHOOL PITCHER; Or, Dick & Co. on the
+ Gridley Diamond.
+ 3 THE HIGH SCHOOL LEFT END; Or, Dick & Co. Grilling on
+ the Football Gridiron.
+ 4 THE HIGH SCHOOL CAPTAIN OF THE TEAM; Or, Dick &
+ Co. Leading the Athletic Vanguard.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+Grammar School Boys Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+This series of stories, based on the actual doings of grammar school
+boys, comes near to the heart of the average American boy.
+
+ 1 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS OF GRIDLEY;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Start Things Moving.
+ 2 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS SNOWBOUND;
+ Or, Dick & Co. at Winter Sports.
+ 3 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS IN THE WOODS;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Trail Fun and Knowledge.
+ 4 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS IN SUMMER ATHLETICS;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Make Their Fame Secure.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+High School Boys’ Vacation Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+“Give us more Dick Prescott books!”
+
+This has been the burden of the cry from young readers of the country
+over. Almost numberless letters have been received by the publishers,
+making this eager demand; for Dick Prescott, Dave Darrin, Tom Reade, and
+the other members of Dick & Co. are the most popular high school boys in
+the land. Boys will alternately thrill and chuckle when reading these
+splendid narratives.
+
+ 1 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS’ CANOE CLUB; Or, Dick & Co.‘s
+ Rivals on Lake Pleasant.
+ 2 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS IN SUMMER CAMP; Or, The
+ Dick Prescott Six Training for the Gridley Eleven.
+ 3 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS’ FISHING TRIP; Or, Dick & Co.
+ in the Wilderness.
+ 4 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS’ TRAINING HIKE; Or, Dick &
+ Co. Making Themselves “Hard as Nails.”
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The Circus Boys Series
+
+By EDGAR B. P. DARLINGTON
+
+Mr. Darlington’s books breathe forth every phase of an intensely
+interesting and exciting life.
+
+ 1 THE CIRCUS BOYS ON THE FLYING RINGS; Or, Making
+ the Start in the Sawdust Life.
+ 2 THE CIRCUS BOYS ACROSS THE CONTINENT; Or, Winning
+ New Laurels on the Tanbark.
+ 3 THE CIRCUS BOYS IN DIXIE LAND; Or, Winning the
+ Plaudits of the Sunny South.
+ 4 THE CIRCUS BOYS ON THE MISSISSIPPI; Or, Afloat with
+ the Big Show on the Big River.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The High School Girls Series
+
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+
+These breezy stories of the American High School Girl take the reader
+fairly by storm.
+
+ 1 GRACE HARLOWE’S PLEBE YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Merry Doings of the Oakdale Freshman Girls.
+ 2 GRACE HARLOWE’S SOPHOMORE YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Record of the Girl Chums in Work and Athletics.
+ 3 GRACE HARLOWE’S JUNIOR YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, Fast Friends in the Sororities.
+ 4 GRACE HARLOWE’S SENIOR YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Parting of the Ways.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Automobile Girls Series
+
+By LAURA DENT CRANE
+
+No girl’s library—no family book-case can be considered at all complete
+unless it contains these sparkling twentieth-century books.
+
+ 1 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT;
+ Or, Watching the Summer Parade.
+ 2 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS IN THE BERKSHIRES;
+ Or, The Ghost of Lost Man’s Trail.
+ 3 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS ALONG THE HUDSON;
+ Or, Fighting Fire in Sleepy Hollow.
+ 4 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT CHICAGO;
+ Or, Winning Out Against Heavy Odds.
+ 5 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT PALM BEACH;
+ Or, Proving Their Mettle Under Southern Skies.
+ 6 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT WASHINGTON;
+ Or, Checkmating the Plots of Foreign Spies.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Automobile Girls at Newport, by
+Laura Dent Crane
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+***** This file should be named 36273-0.txt or 36273-0.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/6/2/7/36273/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/36273-0.zip b/36273-0.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6d1c565
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-0.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-8.txt b/36273-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..e8068b4
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,6925 @@
+Project Gutenberg's The Automobile Girls at Newport, by Laura Dent Crane
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Automobile Girls at Newport
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+Author: Laura Dent Crane
+
+Release Date: May 30, 2011 [EBook #36273]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration: "The Automobile Girls" Were Fairly Started.
+_Frontispiece._]
+
+
+
+
+ The Automobile Girls at Newport
+
+ OR
+
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+ By
+ LAURA DENT CRANE
+
+ Author of The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires, The
+ Automobile Girls Along the Hudson, Etc., Etc.
+
+ Illustrated
+
+ PHILADELPHIA
+ HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY
+
+
+
+
+ Copyright, 1910, by Howard E. Altemus
+
+
+
+
+ CONTENTS
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+ I. Barbara to the Rescue 7
+ II. Lost, Strayed or Stolen 16
+ III. Ruth's Perfect Plan 30
+ IV. Mother's Secret 39
+ V. The Glorious Start 47
+ VI. What Happened the First Day 59
+ VII. Showing Their Mettle 71
+ VIII. "For We Are Jolly Good Fellows!" 86
+ IX. Only Girls 93
+ X. Enter Gladys and Mr. Townsend 104
+ XI. Newport at Last 111
+ XII. A Week Later 121
+ XIII. The Night of the Ball 131
+ XIV. Barbara's Secret 142
+ XV. Ruth in Danger 150
+ XVI. Help Arrives 162
+ XVII. The Fortune-Tellers 169
+ XVIII. A Word to the Wise 180
+ XIX. "Eyeology" 190
+ XX. Ruth Wakes Up! 204
+ XXI. The Capture of the Butterfly 213
+ XXII. The Tennis Tournament 224
+ XXIII. Brought to Bay 236
+ XXIV. Good-Bye to Newport 242
+
+
+
+
+THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I--BARBARA TO THE RESCUE
+
+
+"Pink hair ribbons!"
+
+Barbara Thurston's brown, bright face seemed to twinkle all over, as she
+clinked a yellow coin on the marble top of the little sewing table.
+
+"Silk stockings!" chorused Mollie Thurston gleefully. "Wasn't it the
+luckiest thing that the hotel people wanted so many berries this year!"
+And she, too, sent a gold piece spinning over the smooth surface. "But,
+perhaps, we won't be invited after all," she sighed.
+
+"Nonsense!" rejoined Barbara energetically. "When Grace Carter says
+she'll fix a thing, you can wager she will. She's known Ruth Stuart for
+three summers now, and she's told us we'd be invited to Ruth's party
+this year. I can read the invitations already. The only thing worrying
+me was what we'd wear. Now the strawberry crop has turned out so well,
+and mother's a brick, and will let us use our money as we wish--I think
+we're fixed. Then--who knows?"
+
+"I am sure Ruth Stuart's lots of fun when you get to know her,"
+interrupted Mollie eagerly. "If Cousin Gladys wasn't boarding at the
+hotel with her, we'd have met her long before. Isn't Gladys a stuck-up
+goose? Never mind. We'll have the laugh on her when she sees us at the
+party. Let's be de-lighted to meet her. I should love to watch her when
+she is fussed!"
+
+"After all," mused Barbara, thoughtfully, "her father was in partnership
+with papa. It's mighty funny that uncle got all the money. I wonder----"
+She stopped playing with her gold piece and gazed thoughtfully out of
+the sitting room window at the hot, empty, yellow road that ran so near
+the tiny cottage.
+
+Barbara Thurston was sixteen, Mollie just two years younger, and nearly
+all their lives had been spent in that little cottage. John Thurston,
+the girls' father, had died suddenly when Mollie was only three years
+old.
+
+He had been at that time in the wholesale clothing business with his
+wife's brother, Ralph Le Baron, and was supposed to be a rich man. But
+when his affairs were settled up, his brother-in-law, the executor,
+announced that a very small interest in the business remained to Mrs.
+Thurston. He hinted, darkly, at stock speculation on her husband's part,
+and poor Mrs. Thurston, overcome by grief, had not wanted to question
+deeply.
+
+She, herself, happened to own the little cottage, in Kingsbridge, in
+which she and her brother had lived as children. Acting on his advice,
+she settled there with her two little girls, and had remained ever
+since, subsisting on the small income her brother regularly transmitted
+to her from her dead husband's tiny business interest. Le Baron and his
+wife, with their daughter, Gladys, usually spent the summer in
+Kingsbridge, at the one "summer hotel" in the place; but intercourse
+between the two families had come to be little sought on either side.
+Kingsbridge was a quiet little village in New Jersey, and, except for
+the summer visitors, there was little gayety. Gladys Le Baron,
+especially, had shown herself icily oblivious of the existence of her
+younger cousins, Barbara and Mollie.
+
+These two were delightful examples of self-reliant young America.
+Barbara, the elder, looked a regular "nut-brown maid," with chestnut
+hair that never would "stay put," and usually a mischievous twinkle in
+the brown eyes beneath the straying locks. But there was plenty of
+genuinely forceful energy stored away in her slim, well-knit young body,
+and her firm chin and broad forehead told both of determination and
+intelligence.
+
+Her sister, Mollie, was fair, with lovely curling blond hair, and a
+quaint drollery of speech that won her many friends. Both sisters had
+grown up quietly, helping their mother about the house, as they could
+afford no servant, going to the village school, and, when they wanted
+anything beyond the plainest necessities of life, earning it.
+
+This summer both had set their hearts on "really-truly" party clothes,
+not "hand-me-downs." Their friend, Grace Carter, daughter of Squire
+Carter, the village dignitary, had promised them invitations to "the
+event of the season," the party to be given by her friend Ruth Stuart, a
+rich Western girl who quite recently had come to spend her summer at
+Kingsbridge. And didn't Ruth Stuart live at the same hotel with Gladys
+Le Baron, the snobbish cousin?
+
+To meet the enemy on her own ground, and to have the fun of a party
+besides, was certainly worth picking strawberries for, thought Barbara
+and Mollie. So they scoured the country round for the sweet wild ones
+the hotel visitors liked best. Now each of the girls was fingering
+gleefully her twenty-dollar gold-piece that meant many days' work in the
+past, but pretty dresses in the future.
+
+The prospect was too alluring for Barbara to spend much time in
+wondering about the real "why" of their fallen fortunes, though the
+question had come to her before, and would again. Now she was ready to
+join Mollie in eager planning as to "just what they'd get."
+
+"Go get a pencil and paper, Molliekins, and we'll set it all down," she
+laughed.
+
+Mollie went into the further room and Barbara waited, eyes
+absent-mindedly fixed on the yellow stretch of road.
+
+Suddenly she became conscious of a curious pounding. There was a queer,
+wild rhythm to it, and it seemed to be coming nearer and nearer.
+
+Barbara put her head out of the open window. She could see nothing but a
+cloud of dust far down the road. Yet the pounding sounded louder every
+moment.
+
+Then she knew. The noise came from the furious feet of runaway horses.
+And they were coming past the house with their helpless, unknown
+victims.
+
+What could Barbara do? Her mother was asleep upstairs and there was no
+man about the place. There was no other house near. Besides, the
+slightest delay might prove fatal.
+
+All this seemed to flash through Barbara's brain in a second. She knew
+she must act. Swiftly and easily as a boy she vaulted the open window,
+pausing only to snatch a closed umbrella that leaned against the sill.
+How glad she was she had forgotten to put it away in the closet when she
+came in from the shower yesterday!
+
+In an instant the girl sped through the gate and out into the road,
+opening her umbrella as she ran.
+
+There she paused, squarely in front of the approaching dust cloud, very
+near now. She could hear the click of the stones, cast aside by the
+flying feet of the horses, and she caught a glimpse of two black heads,
+wild-eyed and foam-flecked, through the whirling dust.
+
+Barbara strained her eyes to locate hanging bridles. But meantime,
+swiftly and mechanically, she was opening and shutting the big black
+umbrella.
+
+"If they'll only stop!" she murmured.
+
+And they did. Fear-crazed already, their legs trembling after a terrific
+run, the horses dared not seek encounter with that horrible bat-like
+creature that seemed to await them.
+
+Scarcely five feet away, their wild pace broke. They hesitated, and
+Barbara flung herself forward and seized the dangling bridles. For a
+moment she pulled on them with wrists of steel, but it was not
+necessary. The horses drooped their weary heads and gladly stood still.
+
+Then, and only then, Barbara glanced at the carriage and its occupants.
+
+It was an open four-seated carriage, and in it were Ruth Stuart, Grace
+Carter, Gladys Le Baron and a strange young man somewhat older than the
+rest of the party. The girls were leaning back, with closed eyes and
+white faces. The young man was staring straight ahead, with a blank
+expression, fear depicted on every feature.
+
+Barbara dared not leave the horses even now. "Mollie! Mollie!" she
+called.
+
+Mollie was already out of the house. From the window, terror-stricken,
+she had seen it all.
+
+"Get the girls out," Barbara directed. "I can't leave these brutes,
+though I guess they're all right now."
+
+In the meantime, Grace and Gladys had opened their eyes. Mollie now
+stood at the carriage step, her hand outstretched.
+
+As they recognized their rescuers, Grace's pale face lit up. Even
+Gladys, for once, tried to summon a gracious and grateful smile.
+
+"We're all right, Mollie," spoke up Grace, "but I think Ruth has
+fainted. I'll help you get her into the house."
+
+Suddenly the young man started up. "I beg your pardon," he remarked in a
+smooth, pleasantly-modulated voice, "but you really must let me help. I
+have been utterly helpless so far," and his glance wandered admiringly
+and a trifle shamefacedly toward Barbara.
+
+In an instant, he had sprung over the wheel and gently half lifted, half
+dragged Ruth Stuart off the seat.
+
+As her feet touched the ground, she too opened her eyes, only to close
+them again with a shivering sigh. Grace was at her side in a moment.
+
+"Try to walk to the house, dear," Grace urged. "It's only a few steps."
+
+Mollie took the place of the young man, and, between the two girls, Ruth
+stumbled to the gate.
+
+The young man stepped up to Barbara. "Can I help you?" he ventured,
+looking at the now quieted horses.
+
+But a cold voice sounded from the carriage, where Gladys still sat. "I
+think you might think a little about me, Harry," she exclaimed.
+
+The young fellow bit his lip and hesitated.
+
+"Please," broke in Barbara, "please take her to the house. I can't get
+these horses and this carriage through the gate. It isn't big enough.
+But I'll hitch them to the fence and stay with them for a few minutes.
+You must need rest, all of you!"
+
+Harry Townsend bit his lip as he caught the sarcastic inflection in
+Barbara's last sentence, but did as he was directed, and walked slowly
+toward the house with Gladys.
+
+Left to herself, Barbara led the horses, still attached to the carriage,
+toward the fence, and hitched them by the reins in a clever way all
+country girls know. "Good boys! Poor boys!" she murmured, petting them,
+for they were still shivering pitifully with fright.
+
+For several minutes she stood talking to them. Then Mollie's anxious
+face appeared at the door, and in a moment she stood beside her sister.
+
+"What shall we do?" she asked. "Miss Stuart is feeling very ill, and
+wants to go home at once. She and all the others refuse to step foot
+into that carriage again--and I can't blame them; but, you know, it's two
+miles to the hotel, if it's a step, and we haven't a telephone. Grace
+says Ruth's father would send the au-to-mo-bile,"--Mollie pronounced the
+word with reverent care--"but what's the quickest way of getting the
+message to them? Mother suggests running over to Jim Trumbull's and
+seeing if he'll hitch up and drive to the hotel. But it's half a mile to
+his place, and he's very likely to be away anyhow. What do you----?"
+
+Barbara interrupted her decisively. "I'll just drive those horses back
+to the hotel myself, Mollie Thurston," she said calmly.
+
+"Barbara, you can't! It's risking your life!"
+
+"Nonsense! There isn't an ounce of spirit left in the poor, frightened
+things. I guess I haven't broken Jim Trumbull's colts for him without
+knowing how to handle horses. You go tell Miss Stuart that her
+automobile will be here in two shakes of a lamb's tail. And see,
+Mollie," the twinkle shone in Barbara's eyes, "of course they'll give me
+a ride back in the auto!"
+
+Laughing at Mollie's protests, the plucky girl untied the horses and
+turned them carefully.
+
+"Stand at their heads, just a minute," she cheerfully directed. Then
+Barbara gathered up the reins and climbed up to the high seat.
+
+"Drop anchor, Mollie," she called, and trotted slowly down the road
+behind the quieted blacks.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II--LOST, STRAYED OR STOLEN
+
+
+"Mollie Thurston, has Barbara driven off with those awful horses?"
+
+It was Grace Carter who spoke. She had reached the doorway of the
+cottage just in time to catch a glimpse of the departing equipage.
+
+Without waiting for a reply, she turned from the open door to the group
+inside just as Mollie rejoined them, exclaiming:
+
+"Barbara is driving the runaways to the hotel for the machine!"
+
+Mrs. Thurston started. She had been downstairs for some time helping to
+make the victims of the accident comfortable. She was a slim,
+sweet-faced little woman, whose entire world lay in her two lively young
+daughters, in whom she had unlimited faith.
+
+But, in a moment, she smiled and said, "I am not afraid to trust Barbara
+with anything."
+
+Ruth Stuart's lately pale face was glowing. "I think that is regularly
+splendid of her!" she exclaimed, with more animation than she had shown
+since she had left the carriage.
+
+"Oh, Barbara is used to taking care of herself," Gladys Le Baron
+interposed with a supercilious smile.
+
+Mollie looked at her cousin a moment. "Yes," she answered steadily, "we
+think it is a pretty good thing in our family."
+
+Gladys flushed, and had no reply ready. Ruth looked surprised and Grace
+plunged into the breach.
+
+"Oh," she tried to murmur off-handedly, "Barbara and Mollie and Gladys
+are cousins, you know."
+
+"And you never----" Ruth turned to Gladys, then stopped and smiled. "Well,
+it's awfully jolly to have met you all in this nice, informal way. Grace
+has often spoken of you," she said.
+
+The girls had to laugh at this, so Ruth continued: "I'm well enough now
+to be proper and conventional, I suppose. I believe you know I'm Ruth
+Stuart. Mrs. Thurston, Mollie, have you met Gladys's friend, Mr.
+Townsend?"
+
+The young man came out from the corner near the window, where he had
+been seated, and bowed gayly. Ruth nodded in a satisfied fashion.
+
+"There, doesn't that finish it?" she sighed. "The rest of you are all
+acquainted, aren't you? Now, won't one of you, please tell me why those
+awful horses aren't running still? I know some horrible white hay-caps
+started them, and Jones fell off the seat, and now we are here. Who
+stopped us?"
+
+Everybody turned to Ruth at once. "Why, Barbara stopped them," Grace
+managed to say first. "Barbara----"
+
+A gay laugh sounded in the doorway, and Barbara herself appeared before
+them.
+
+"Now I've caught you!" she cried merrily, her bright eyes sweeping the
+circle. Then she turned to Ruth with a mock curtsey.
+
+"Your ladyship's chariot waits," she declaimed, then continuing in quick
+explanation: "You see, your driver was scarcely hurt and he rushed back
+to the hotel at once and sent the automobile along the road where he had
+seen the horses disappearing. Before I'd gone a quarter of a mile, I met
+the machine with the chauffeur, and doctor and Jones himself. We sent
+Jones back with the horses, though they weren't bothering me a bit, and
+I came back in the automobile. How are you feeling?" and the bright
+voice softened sympathetically, as she noted Ruth's pale cheeks.
+
+For answer the girl arose quickly, and held out both hands to Barbara.
+"You're a brick," she said simply. "I fainted, like a goose, and they've
+just told me what you did. I am so glad I know you, and I guess my
+father will be glad, too--not to say thankful! Now, please won't you and
+your sister dine with us to-morrow? No? Make it lunch; then I'll see you
+sooner. I won't take no for an answer, because I have a very important
+plan. Dad decides as quickly as I do. So if you'll only say yes--but I
+can't tell you about it now. Perhaps, if I make you curious, you'll be
+more interested when the time comes!" Ruth laughed mischievously.
+
+"What have you up your sleeve now, Ruth Stuart?" asked Grace, curiously.
+"I never saw such a girl as you are for chain-lightning projects!"
+
+"You'll see," laughed Ruth. "You're in it too, you know. You must be one
+of my lunch party to-morrow. I know you and Mr. Townsend have another
+engagement, Gladys, so you will pardon my delivering my invitation
+before you. Now, I won't say another word.
+
+"Come," she continued, addressing the party, "we must be off at once. If
+the news of this runaway circulates through the hotel and reaches either
+your father or mine, Gladys, they'll be wild with fright. Good-bye, Mrs.
+Thurston, and thank you. You've been awfully good to us. As for you
+two"--holding out her hands to Barbara and Mollie--"wait till tomorrow at
+lunch!"
+
+Drawing the two Thurston girls with her, she stepped outside the door
+and to the gate, the rest of the party following. The machine was
+waiting in the road, and out of it hurried the hotel doctor toward Ruth.
+
+"Aren't you hurt, Miss Stuart?" he cried. "I would have come in, but
+Miss Thurston said she would go in first and see how you were."
+
+"I'm perfectly well, doctor," smiled Ruth. "It's too bad you had to come
+way out here. I hope father will not hear you have been sent for!"
+
+She patted affectionately the nearest tire-rim of the big automobile.
+"Bless the 'bubble's' heart," she murmured. "He wouldn't run away with
+his missus. Barbara, Mollie, this is my best friend, Mr. A. Bubble. I
+think you'll get better acquainted with him before long. I wish you
+could come with me now, but I'm afraid neither you nor 'Bubble' would be
+quite comfortable. And you three must get along well together from the
+start."
+
+The doctor helped Ruth into the big red touring car and Gladys and Grace
+followed. The two men and the chauffeur crowded together in the front
+seat.
+
+"Au revoir," chorused the autoists, and "see you tomorrow," nodded Ruth
+emphatically to the girls. Then, in a whirl of dust, the big machine
+sped out of sight.
+
+"Isn't she a dear?" burst forth Mollie, as the sisters turned to go back
+to the house. "How her eyes shine when she talks! I wonder if I could do
+my hair that way. I was sure she'd be nice--but what do you suppose she
+means by that plan? Barbara, for heaven's sake, how did you happen to
+think of that umbrella stunt? It was great, but you did look so
+funny--like a sort of desperate, feminine Darius Green with his flying
+machine! No wonder you stopped the horses!"
+
+"Oh, I heard of a man who stopped a stampede of cattle that way out West
+once," Barbara answered abstractedly. There was a puzzled look on her
+face. "Mollie," she said abruptly, as they entered the house, "you
+didn't take our money with you, when you went into the bedroom for
+pencil and paper?"
+
+"Why, no," replied Mollie wonderingly. "It must be over there on the
+table now. I remember I noticed it as I came into the room. I wondered,
+for a second, why you'd gone away and left it so near the open window.
+That was before I looked through the window and saw what you were doing.
+It must be there," and Mollie hurried over to the window.
+
+The next moment she turned an astonished face to her sister. "Barbara!"
+she exclaimed, "it isn't here, anywhere!" Indeed, the marble top of the
+little table was absolutely bare. There was no sign of either of the
+gold pieces.
+
+"Let's look on the floor," said Barbara, quietly. "One of our guests may
+have unconsciously brushed them off."
+
+Both girls stopped and began a careful survey of the carpeted floor,
+under the table, and near the window. Their search was unrewarded.
+
+"Let's look in the grass outside," suggested Mollie. "You might have
+brushed them off as you went through the window."
+
+"But didn't you say you saw them on the table, when you came back into
+the room and found me gone?" queried Barbara, thoughtfully.
+
+"I was sure I did," Mollie replied. "But sometimes one remembers
+imaginary things. And if the money had been in the room when I came in,
+it would be there now. I'll ask mother----"
+
+"No, don't," said Barbara quickly; "at least, not yet." Mrs. Thurston
+had gone into the kitchen directly after her return from the gate, and
+had heard none of the conversation. "There's no need to worry mother
+about it now. Of course we must find it somewhere. Money doesn't walk
+off by itself. We'll go out and look in the grass under the window."
+
+On hands and knees the girls worked through the closely cropped grass
+underneath the sitting room window. Not two days before, they themselves
+had clipped this bit of lawn with big shears, and it was so close that
+there seemed no possibility of anything being hidden in it. Certainly
+nothing was to be found. The girls even looked over the short path, and
+ground near it. "Your skirts might have switched those small things a
+long way," observed Mollie, wisely. Yet, as before, the result
+was--nothing.
+
+Giving it up, at last, the girls sat down in a little garden seat at one
+side of the tiny yard, and looked at each other ruefully.
+
+"I am so glad I feel sure Miss Stuart will invite us to her party, now,"
+commented Mollie dryly. "Our new gowns and the pink hair ribbons and the
+silk stockings will be so awfully fetching! But where, where, where, by
+all that's mysterious, can those double-eagles have flown?"
+
+Suddenly she looked curiously at her sister. "Barbara, you are thinking
+of something!" she exclaimed. "Have you any nameable idea?"
+
+"No," said Barbara, quickly; "it isn't nameable."
+
+"All right; you never would talk when you didn't want to," complained
+Mollie. "And I know you want that money back as badly as I do. Tell you
+what--I'll say the fairies' charm. Don't you remember the one the old
+gypsy woman taught us? Wish she were here to say it for us! She promised
+to do all sorts of things for me when I found her in the field with a
+sprained ankle and helped her back to camp. Why! why! Barbara, this is
+_uncanny_--she's coming now!"
+
+In truth, down the road a queer little bent figure was seen approaching.
+"I know her," continued Mollie eagerly, "by that funny combination of
+red and yellow handkerchiefs she wears on her head. Do let's go and meet
+her and tell her--it can't do any harm."
+
+"What nonsense, Mollie!" laughed Barbara. But she followed her younger
+sister, who had already started down the road toward the quaint, little,
+gaudily-turbaned dame.
+
+Between them, the girls brought her into the yard, Mollie meanwhile
+busily explaining their predicament. "You'll help us, won't you, Granny
+Ann?" she coaxed childishly. "You said, that time that I helped you
+home, you'd always be near when I wanted you."
+
+Granny Ann sat on the garden seat, looking gravely down at the
+half-laughing, half-serious girls huddled at her feet.
+
+"I knowed," she began in a high, cracked voice, "I knowed my little fair
+one," lightly touching Mollie's curls, "would need me to-day. Far away I
+was, when I heard the shadow of her voice callin' out to me--and miles I
+have traveled to reach her. Granny Ann is thirsty, and she has had no
+food since morning." The old woman looked reproachfully at her
+listeners.
+
+Barbara's eyes twinkled at Mollie's rather crestfallen face, when the
+sybil voiced this most human request. But she said cheerily: "All right,
+Granny; supper isn't ready yet, but I know mother'll have something."
+Then Barbara hurried into the house, the gypsy dame waiting solemnly
+until she reappeared, a moment later, with sandwiches, doughnuts and a
+big glass of milk.
+
+Granny Ann smiled, but she didn't speak until the lunch had quite
+disappeared. Then the old woman rose impressively. "There's one sure
+magic for fetching back money that has gone," she declaimed. "Because
+you have been good to me, 'Little Fair One,' you and your sister, I will
+say the golden spell for you." With her hands crossed, Granny Ann began
+to croon dreamily:
+
+ Gold is gladsome, gold is gay,
+ Here to-night and gone to-day,
+ Here to-day and gone to-morrow,
+ Guest of joy and host of sorrow.
+ Gold of mine that's flitted far,
+ Forget me not, where'er you are.
+ Mine you are, as Pluto wrought you,
+ Mine you are, whoever's sought you,
+ Come by sea or come by land--
+ Homeward fly into my hand!
+
+Three times Granny Ann repeated this. Then, with a queer dignity, oddly
+assorting with her variegated raiment, she turned to the girls. "It will
+return," she said; "now, I must go to my own people."
+
+"But I thought you said you came here for us by yourself!" protested
+Mollie.
+
+The gypsy dame drew herself up. "I travel not alone!" she said, stiffly.
+"Good-bye."
+
+"Oh, good-bye, and thanks ever so much, Granny Ann!" cried both of the
+girls.
+
+But Granny Ann did not turn her head. Barbara looked at Mollie, her eyes
+dancing. "The blessed old fraud!" she teased; "her people decided to
+camp somewhere about, and she thought she'd come over for a call and a
+lunch, and whatever else she could get! I believe she actually expected
+us to cross her palm with silver for saying that little rhyme. But I
+wish I knew really----"
+
+All at once a faint chug-chug sounded in the distance. In a moment a big
+red touring car appeared, enveloped in dust. "Why, it looks like Ruth's
+car!" exclaimed Mollie, excitedly. "Yes, I do believe that young man
+seated beside the chauffeur is the Mr. Townsend who was with them.
+Barbara----"
+
+But Barbara was walking quickly toward the gate. A moment later the
+automobile stopped before it, and Harry Townsend stepped out.
+
+"Miss Thurston," he began, soberly, "have you lost any money?"
+
+"Oh, yes!" burst out Mollie, who was just behind, before Barbara could
+speak; "two twenty-dollar gold-pieces! We've hunted and hunted. We had
+them this afternoon----"
+
+"Then these must be yours," said the young man, extending his hand to
+Barbara. In it were two golden double-eagles. "When the young ladies
+were getting out at the hotel these were found on the seat, and Miss
+Stuart was sure you had dropped them out of your pocket, Miss Thurston,
+during the few moments you were in the machine. I am very glad to be
+able to restore them to you."
+
+"Yes," said Barbara, "but I----" Then she stopped. "Thank you, Mr.
+Townsend," she said, giving him a clear, direct glance. For some unknown
+reason the young man's eyes wavered under it, and he climbed hurriedly
+into the automobile. "I am very glad," he murmured again.
+
+"Miss Stuart expects you to-morrow," he added quickly, and the machine
+backed round and hurried off.
+
+Barbara stood looking at it, the money still in her hand. But Mollie was
+laughing happily. Then she saw Barbara's face. "Barbara, what is it,
+dear?" she demanded. "You look exactly as you did before Granny Ann
+appeared, and I asked you if you were thinking of something. What is it?
+Can't you tell me?"
+
+Barbara shook her head. "It really isn't anything, Molliekins. I did
+have an idea in my head, but I must be mistaken somehow. You are sure
+you saw the money on the table after I left the room? It must have been
+there, then, when the crowd from the automobile came in. I thought I saw
+some one standing near the table with one hand resting on it, when I
+came back and called out: 'Now, I've caught you!' But I must not think
+anything more about it. Please don't ask me any questions. Let us just
+be glad we have the money back. It is queer, though. Mr. Townsend says
+the money was found on the seat. I wonder who found it, and whether it
+was found on the front or back seat? Let's ask Grace. I don't understand
+it. But he brought the money back, and he's Miss Stuart's friend. Of
+course we will keep quiet, you and I, Mollie, whether the money was
+lost, strayed or stolen!"
+
+"Well, I am sure, Barbara Thurston," Mollie answered a little
+indignantly, "I am not likely to talk of what I know nothing about. If
+there is any mystery about the disappearance of that money, I am sure
+you have left me utterly in the dark."
+
+"Don't be cross," said Barbara, putting her arm in Mollie's. "But do you
+know if Mr. Townsend is a special friend of Gladys's?"
+
+Mollie shook her head. "How should I know?" she said. "Let's go in, it's
+nearly dark."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III--RUTH'S PERFECT PLAN
+
+
+Wonderment over the mystery of the money, and excited anticipation of
+Ruth Stuart's luncheon and "plan," kept the Thurston girls from getting
+to sleep very early that night. They awoke bright and fresh next
+morning, nevertheless. Just before eleven they started on their two-mile
+tramp to the hotel. They were hardly out of sight of the house, however,
+when what should they see but the now familiar red car speeding toward
+them. "Look--yes, it is!" cried Mollie. "Ruth herself is making it go!"
+
+The young driver waved a free hand for a second, as she neared them,
+then wheeled in a broad turn and stopped. "I was so afraid you might
+have started," she protested tactfully, "for it is such a fine morning
+for a nice leisurely walk. I was so anxious to see you that I simply
+couldn't wait, and I told Dad I'd take the 'bubble' and spin out to meet
+you. Now, won't you please hop in, and ride back with me?"
+
+The girls "hopped" with delighted celerity, and Ruth turned back to them
+for a moment. "I have reams to talk about," she continued, "but, to tell
+you the truth, I want my father to be with us, when I begin. So, now, if
+you don't mind, we'll just ride."
+
+Neither Mollie nor Barbara will ever forget their first ride. "I felt as
+if I had chartered my own private flying machine, and I was sure the
+angels were jealous," Mollie confessed, navely, at lunch.
+
+They reached the hotel very quickly, and after a cosy chat on the
+private balcony belonging to Ruth's tiny suite of rooms, found
+themselves seated around a little table in a cool, palm-shaded corner of
+the big dining-room. Between them, opposite Ruth, sat big, blue-eyed,
+open-hearted, Robert Stuart, Ruth's "Dad."
+
+Robert Stuart had made his fortune out West, in the mining country. That
+was how he started, anyway. For years, now, he had lived in Chicago,
+buying and selling real estate in the vicinity. There his wife had died,
+and there his eighteen-year-old daughter Ruth had spent nearly all her
+life. During the summers she had traveled more or less, and the last few
+years had frequently gone East. Her father's sister, Aunt Sallie Stuart,
+had brought the girl up since her mother's death, which had occurred
+when Ruth was a little girl. Aunt Sallie was not present at the
+luncheon, because of a bad headache. "Grace Carter has come over and is
+staying with her, like a dear," Ruth explained. Later, if Auntie felt
+better, the girls were to go up to her room.
+
+Ruth, as has appeared, was an extremely impulsive young person.
+Fortunately, most of her impulses were inspired by a natural kindliness,
+and a cheerful, youthful energy, with a stratum of good common sense at
+bottom. There was apt to be method in her madness. Her "plan," for
+instance, had long been her desire, but before she had never seen the
+way.
+
+Ruth couldn't wait for the cold boullion to be taken off. "Father, I
+want to tell them now!" she exclaimed. After his cheerful, "Go ahead,
+daughter," she burst out: "Barbara, Mollie, won't you go on an
+automobile tour to Newport with Grace Carter and me, with Aunt Sallie
+for chaperon? Won't you, can't you come?"
+
+While the amazed girls could only look at her and at each other, she
+hurried on: "Oh, yes, you probably think I'm crazy. But I'm not. You see
+it's like this: all my life I have longed to travel by myself; at least,
+with the people I want, not in a train, or a big crowded boat. Dad knows
+the feeling; it's what makes him run away from Chicago, and get out on
+the prairies and ride and ride and ride! I'm a girl, so I can't do that
+or lots of things. But I can run an automobile. For two years I have
+just been waiting to get the right crowd. Grace is a dear, but I wanted
+two more. The other girls I know are all right to meet at dances and to
+see now and then; but they'd collapse at the thought of starting off on
+a lark like this. You two--you're different, I knew it the minute I saw
+you. Besides," she continued, "Grace has been telling me things about
+you. I always know right off whether I like anybody, and it doesn't take
+long to find out how much I like them. I like both of you a whole
+lot--and I know we will have a perfectly delightful trip if you will go
+with me. If you don't, I simply can't go--that's all. It would be absurd
+setting off in that great machine with only Grace and Aunt Sallie to
+rattle around like two peas in a pod. Daddie understands, and he likes
+you just the way I do--I can see it in his eyes. So it's just up to you!
+Do you like me a little bit--well, say enough to visit me in my
+automobile for a month or so? Oh, please say you do!"
+
+She stopped, her voice catching impulsively over the last words.
+Barbara's eyes were shining. "I don't believe we need to tell you that,"
+she said softly; "you must just know. But there's mother. And we haven't
+the money."
+
+"Now that's not fair," Ruth broke in. "The money is out of the question
+altogether. You are my guests. Why, it's you who will do me the favor,"
+she pleaded, as she caught the look of dissent on Barbara's face.
+"Remember, if you fail me, I can't have my trip at all--and I have been
+looking forward to it for two whole years. As for your mother, if she
+will consent to it, Dad and I have a beautiful plan, to keep her and Dad
+both from being lonely. Poor Dad is sick and tired of hotel cooking and
+I told him all about your dear little cottage and the dandy tea and
+cookies your mother makes, and--and--do you suppose your mother would let
+Dad take his meals with her while we are away? Then he won't be too
+wretched living all alone up here. Also, you wouldn't have to worry
+about your mother, nor would I have to worry about Dad. Aunt Sallie has
+been with him so long that I don't know what he'd do all by himself. He
+could get on very well, if only your mother would look after him at
+meals, I know that.
+
+"Now I won't say another word about it for the rest of our lunch. Then
+we'll run in and call on Aunt Sallie. Afterward we will take the car out
+and see your mother, and get her to say yes! Then you'll say it, too,
+won't you? But don't let's spoil this good chicken salad, through
+worrying about it."
+
+In a more or less complete, yet altogether happy silence, the luncheon
+was finished. Ruth and her father did not try to force their guests to
+talk, realizing that the girls would want to think. From the smiling
+glances the two Stuarts exchanged now and then it was evident they hoped
+the thinking would have a happy outcome.
+
+After the last course had been served, and the finger bowls, a sprig of
+rose geranium floating in each, had been pushed aside, Ruth said
+quietly: "Now we will go to see Aunt Sallie for a few minutes. Daddie,
+you'll have the machine at the door?"
+
+The girls filed into the elevator, and soon were speeding down a long
+hall to Aunt Sallie's suite, just across from Ruth's. The latter knocked
+softly, and Grace Carter came to the door. "Yes, ever so much better,"
+Grace murmured, in reply to Ruth's whispered inquiry. "She wants you to
+be sure to come in with your friends before they go. Yes; I am sure she
+would be glad to see them now."
+
+As the girls entered the vestibule of the apartment, Grace gave
+Barbara's hand a furtive squeeze, and whispered: "I'll just never
+recover if you don't come." There was no chance for a reply, for a
+precise, though rather kindly voice called from the room beyond: "Ruth,
+please bring your friends in here."
+
+With some trepidation the girls advanced toward "Aunt Sallie." She was a
+somewhat stout woman, who reclined on a couch in a handsome violet
+neglige. She scanned the girls sharply for a moment, then in her
+carefully enunciated syllables, which contrasted oddly with her smooth,
+plump face, she said: "So you're the young ladies who stop runaway
+horses! Well, I never could have done it when I was young. But I'm sure
+I am indebted to you, and I am happy to know you, my dears. I hope and
+trust, since my madcap niece is bound to take her trip, that you will
+come along to keep her company."
+
+The girls smiled, and Ruth murmured to them: "You see, you really must
+come for the sake of my family!" Then Aunt Sallie stretched out two
+plump, jeweled hands and remarked: "I am sure I shall see a great deal
+of you very soon, my dears, and you will see all you want to of me. So,
+if you don't mind, I'll ask you to excuse me now, my head is so tired."
+
+"She likes to take a cat-nap pretty often," explained irreverent Ruth,
+as soon as they were safely outside the door. "But Aunt Sallie is a good
+sort, just the same, and the best possible dragon for our trip. Your
+mother needn't be in the least afraid to trust you to her. Now for your
+mother," Ruth added as the girls entered the elevator.
+
+In front of the broad piazza, the automobile waited on the driveway,
+with Mr. Stuart as chauffeur. "Pile in," he smiled, and, in a trice, the
+girls were whirled homeward once more.
+
+There a mighty conference was held. At first, Mrs. Thurston simply
+gasped. Then she dumbly shook her head. Barbara and Mollie both
+protested that nothing would persuade them to leave their mother against
+her wishes. As Ruth said afterwards, "Daddie did the whole thing." He
+explained to the girls, and to their mother, how brief the separation
+would be. To the mother he expatiated on the delights and educational
+value of such a trip. To the girls he hinted, delicately, that perhaps
+the little mother would get a bit of a rest, all by herself, for a few
+weeks, even with him to take care of. To all present Mr. Stuart enlarged
+upon the duty of charity toward him, a homeless vacation visitor,
+starving from eating only hotel food, and toward his daughter, a
+sisterless girl with a longing for friends. Though the Thurstons shook
+their heads, between smiles and tears, at the absurdity of these
+arguments, they finally said a grateful "yes."
+
+"One really doesn't need any clothes except veils and dusters for an
+automobile trip, and I have a big extra stock of those," concluded Ruth.
+"I want to run up here for you people--let me see--to-day is Friday--next
+Monday morning. That's such a nice day to start."
+
+"Yes," again cried Mollie and Barbara.
+
+The girls joined hands and made a low curtsey to Mrs. Thurston and Mr.
+Stuart. "Allow me to introduce you," said Ruth in her most impressive
+voice, "to 'The Automobile Girls' on their way to Newport."
+
+"Long may they flourish!" concluded Mr. Stuart, turning to the girls'
+mother. "I'll come up with Ruth and help you start them off, Mrs.
+Thurston. Then, if I may, I will come back and have lunch with you later
+in the day."
+
+"Till Monday!" called Ruth, and the machine whirled off.
+
+Barbara and Mollie watched it from the gate. "I wish--I wish I could do
+something for them," mused Barbara, her chin sunk in her hand, her brown
+eyes showing that soft brightness that only came to them when she was
+greatly moved.
+
+How well she was to repay the Stuart kith and kin she could not then
+guess.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV--MOTHER'S SECRET
+
+
+Mollie danced into the kitchen, waving the feather duster. "I'm so
+happy, I can't keep still!" she declared, waltzing in a circle around
+her mother and Barbara, who were in the kitchen washing the breakfast
+dishes.
+
+"It is just as well you don't have to," Mrs. Thurston laughed. "But,
+children, do be sensible a minute," she urged, as Barbara joined in the
+dance, still polishing a breakfast tumbler. "I've been thinking, that
+going to Newport, if only to stay a few days, _does_ mean more clothes
+than automobile coats and motor veils."
+
+"Now, you are not to worry, mother dearest," interrupted Barbara, "or we
+won't go a single step. Beside, have you forgotten the twenty-dollar
+gold-pieces? They are a fortune, two fortunes really." Barbara had been
+doing some pretty deep thinking herself, on the clothes question, but it
+would never do to let her thoughts be known. As elder daughter she tried
+to save her mother from all the worries she could. "While there are no
+men around in the family, you'll just have to pretend I'm older son
+instead of daughter," she used to say. "When Mollie marries I'll
+resign."
+
+"I'm through dusting," Mollie called from the dining-room. "This time I
+am surely going to get paper and pencil to put down what clothes we most
+need, if Barbara won't stop any runaway horses while I am away."
+
+Mollie's golden head and Barbara's tawny one bent anxiously over the
+paper.
+
+"Ruth's such an impetuous dear! Starting off on our trip Monday does not
+give us time to get anything new. Mother, will you go in to town
+shopping for us, and then send the clothes on later? I suppose we shall
+be on the road some time. Ruth says we are to stop in any of the places
+we like, and see all the sights along the way," continued Barbara.
+
+Gloves, ribbons, stockings, hair ribbons, and--oh, dear, yes! A pink sash
+for Bab and a blue one for Mollie. Forty dollars wasn't such a fortune
+after all. Where was the money left over for the party dresses? Both
+girls looked a little crestfallen, but Barbara shook her head at Mollie
+as a signal not to say anything aloud.
+
+Mother had come into the open dining-room door and was watching the
+girls' faces.
+
+"I've a secret," Mrs. Thurston said, after a minute. "A beautiful secret
+that I have been keeping to myself for over a year, now. But I think
+to-day is the best time I can find to tell it." Mrs. Thurston was
+fragile and blond, like Mollie, with a delicate color in her cheeks, and
+the sweetest smile in the world.
+
+"It's a nice secret, mother, I can tell by your face." Mollie put her
+arm around her mother and pulled her down in a chair, while she and Bab
+sat on either side of her. "Now, out with it!" they both cried.
+
+"Daughters," Mrs. Thurston lowered her voice and spoke in a whisper,
+"upstairs, in my room in the back part of my desk is an old bank book.
+What do you think is pressed between the pages?" She paused a minute,
+and Mollie gave her arm a little shake. "In that book," the mother
+continued, "are two fifty-dollar bills; one is labeled 'Bab' and the
+other is labeled 'Baby.'" Mrs. Thurston still called her big,
+fourteen-year-old daughter "baby" when no one was near.
+
+Mollie and Barbara could only stare at each other, and at their mother
+in surprise.
+
+"Please, and where did they come from?" queried Barbara.
+
+"They came from nickels and dimes, and sometimes pennies," Mrs. Thurston
+replied, as pleased and excited as the girls. "Only a week ago, I went
+to the bank and had the money changed into the two big bills. Oh, I've
+been saving some time. I saw my girls were growing up, and I imagined
+that, some day, something nice would happen--not just this, perhaps, but
+something equally exciting. So I wanted to be ready, and I am. I will
+get the prettiest clothes I can buy for the money, and I'll have Miss
+Mattie, the seamstress, in to help me. When you arrive in the
+fashionable world of Newport, new outfits will be awaiting my two
+girls."
+
+Mrs. Thurston's face was radiant over the joys in store for her
+daughters, but Barbara's eyes were full of tears. She knew what pinching
+and saving, what sacrifices the two banknotes meant.
+
+Soon Bab asked: "You don't need me any more, do you, mother? Because, if
+you don't, I am going up to look in the treasure chest. I want to find
+something to re-trim Mollie's hat. The roses are so faded, on the one
+she is wearing, it will never do to wear with her nice spring suit."
+
+There was a little attic over the cottage, and it almost belonged to
+Barbara. Up there she used to study her lessons, write poetry, and dream
+of the wonderful things she hoped to do in order to make mother and
+Mollie rich.
+
+Barbara skipped over to the trunk, where they kept odds and ends of
+faded finery, gifts from rich cousins who sent their cast-off clothes to
+the little girls. "This is like Pandora's chest," laughed Barbara to
+herself. "It looks as if everything, now, has gone out of it, except
+Hope."
+
+Bump! bang! crash! the chandelier shivered over Mrs. Thurston and
+Mollie's heads. Both started up with the one word, "Bab," on their lips.
+It was impossible to know what she would attempt, or what would happen
+to her next.
+
+Just as they reached the foot of the attic steps an apologetic head
+appeared over the railing. "I am not hurt," Bab's voice explained. "I
+just tried to move the old bureau so I could see better, and I knocked
+over a trunk. I am so sorry, mother, but the trunk has broken open. It
+is that old one of yours. I know it made an awful racket!"
+
+"It does not matter, child," Mrs. Thurston said in a relieved tone, when
+she saw what had actually happened. "Nothing matters, since you have not
+killed yourself."
+
+She bent over her trunk. The old lock had been loosened by the fall, and
+the top had tumbled off. On the floor were a yellow roll of papers, and
+a quaint carved fan. Mrs. Thurston picked them up. The papers she
+dropped in the tray of the trunk, but the fan she kept in her hand.
+"This little fan," she said, "I used at the last party your father and I
+attended together the week before we were married. I have kept it a long
+time, and I think it very beautiful." She opened, with loving fingers, a
+fan of delicately-carved ivory, mounted in silver, and hung on a curious
+silver chain. "Your great-uncle brought it to me from China, when I was
+just your age, Mollie! It was given him by a viceroy, in recognition of
+a service rendered. Which of my daughters would like to take this fan to
+Newport?"
+
+Barbara shook her head, while Mollie looked at it with longing eyes. "I
+don't believe either of us had better take it," protested Bab, "you have
+kept it so carefully all this time."
+
+But her mother said decidedly: "I saved it only for you girls. Here,
+Mollie, suppose you take it; we will find something else for Bab."
+
+As Mollie and her mother lifted out the tray of the old trunk, Bab's
+eyes caught sight of the roll of papers, and she picked them up.
+
+"Hello, hello!" a cheerful voice sounded from downstairs.
+
+"It's Grace Carter," said Mollie. "You don't mind her coming up, do you,
+mother?"
+
+Grace was almost a third daughter at the little Thurston cottage. Her
+own home was big and dull! her mother was a stern, cold woman, and her
+two brothers were much older than Grace.
+
+"No," said Mrs. Thurston, going on with her search.
+
+"I couldn't keep away, chilluns," apologized Grace as she came upstairs.
+"Mother told me I'd be dreadfully in the way, but I just had to talk
+about our trip. Isn't it too splendid! You are not having secrets, are
+you?"
+
+"Not from you," Mrs. Thurston said. "See what I have found for Bab."
+Mrs. Thurston held out an open jewel-case. In it was a beautiful spray
+of pink coral, and a round coral pin.
+
+"I think, Bab, dear," she said, "you are old enough, now, for such
+simple jewelry. I will buy you a white muslin, and you can wear this pin
+at your throat and the spray in your hair. Then, with a coral ribbon
+sash, who knows but you may be one of the belles of a Newport party?"
+
+Barbara flushed with pleasure over the gifts, but she looked so
+embarrassed at her mother's compliment that Mollie and Grace both
+laughed.
+
+"I declare," Grace said, "you have less vanity than any girl in the
+world. Oh, wasn't it fortunate I discovered your money yesterday? Just
+as we all jumped out of the car I heard something clink, and picked up
+one of your twenty dollars. Harry Townsend said he found the other
+tucked away in the leather of the front seat."
+
+"And I sat in the back seat all the time I was in the car," reflected
+Barbara, under her breath.
+
+When a turquoise blue heart on a string of tiny beads had been added to
+Mollie's "going-away" treasures, she and Grace went down stairs.
+
+Barbara still held the roll of papers in her hand and kept turning them
+over and over, trying to read the faded writing. She caught sight of her
+father's signature. "Are these papers valuable?" she asked her mother.
+
+Mrs. Thurston sighed deeply as she answered: "They are old papers of
+your father's. Put them away again. I never like to look at them. I
+found them in his business suit after he was dead. He had sent it to the
+tailor, and had forgotten all about it." Mrs. Thurston took the papers
+from Barbara's hand and put them back into her trunk.
+
+"Do you think they are valuable, mother?" persisted Barbara.
+
+"I don't think so," her mother concluded. "Your uncle told me he looked
+over all your father's papers that were of any value."
+
+After the two had mended the lock of the old trunk, and turned to leave
+the attic, Barbara was still thinking. "Dearest," she said thoughtfully,
+"would you mind my going through those papers some time?" To herself Bab
+added: "I'd like to ask a clever business man, like Mr. Stuart, to
+explain them to me."
+
+But Mrs. Thurston sighed as she said: "Oh, yes, you may look them over,
+some day, if you like. It won't make any difference."
+
+What difference it might make neither Mrs. Thurston or Barbara could
+then know.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V--THE GLORIOUS START
+
+
+Before daylight, on the great day, Mollie's two arms encircled a sleepy
+Barbara, and a soft voice whispered in her ear: "It isn't true, is it,
+Bab, that you and I, two insignificant little girls, who never could
+have conceived of anything so glorious, are off to-day for Newport,
+escorted by Ruth's distinguished friend, 'Mr. A. Bubble'?"
+
+Barbara was wide awake in a minute.
+
+"I suppose it's true," she said, "because it was last night, before we
+went to bed. Otherwise I would think we had both dreamed it."
+
+The two girls talked in excited whispers. It wouldn't do to waken mother
+any earlier than they must, for she was tired with their preparations,
+though her daughters had persuaded her to have a little country girl in
+to help with the work, now that she was to have so important a person as
+Mr. Stuart for "boarder."
+
+But at seven o'clock it was mother who called:
+
+"Get up, girls. It is time for coffee and clothes, if you are to start
+off at ten as you promised. It will not do to keep Miss Stuart and the
+girls waiting. As for Mr. A. Bubble, I don't believe he can stand still,
+even if he tries."
+
+Aunt Sallie having called on Sunday afternoon, had waived ceremony and
+stayed to tea in the tiny cottage, so impressed was she with Mrs.
+Thurston's quiet charm and gentle manners.
+
+The two girls hurried into their kimonos. Mother had suggested these
+garments for this morning, since they were to dress so soon afterwards
+in their "going away" clothes.
+
+By the time that Barbara and Mollie had put on their pretty brown and
+blue serge suits, with their dust coats over them, they heard strange
+noises on the front porch, mingled with giggles and whispers. Barbara
+was putting the sixth hat pin into her hat, and tying the motor veil so
+tightly under her chin that it choked her, when Mollie peeped out the
+front window.
+
+"It's a surprise party, I do believe," she whispered. "There's Harold
+Smith, with a big bunch of pink roses. I know they are for you. The
+girls have little bundles in their hands. What fun! I didn't know they
+had heard of our trip. How fast news _does_ fly around this village."
+
+While Mollie and Barbara were saying their good-byes on their little
+veranda there was equal excitement at the big hotel.
+
+Before breakfast Ruth had gone out to the garage with her arm in her
+father's.
+
+"I want to see with my own eyes, Dad," she said, "that the machine is
+all right. Isn't it well that I have a taste for mechanics, even though
+I am a girl? Suppose I hadn't studied all those automobile books with
+you until I could say them backwards, and hadn't helped you over all the
+accidents--you never would have let me go on this heavenly trip, would
+you? I am going to be as careful as can be, just to show you did right
+to trust me, also not to give Aunt Sallie a chance to say, 'I told you
+so.'"
+
+Ruth had pretty, sunny, red-gold hair and big, gray-blue eyes. Though
+she wasn't exactly a beauty, her face was so frank, and her coloring so
+fresh and lovely, many people thought her very good-looking.
+
+Mr. Stuart smiled at his daughter's enthusiasm. "She's 'a chip of the
+old block,'" he said to himself. "She loves fun and adventure and
+'getting there,' like a man. I am not going to stand in her way."
+
+Mr. Stuart was feeling rather nervous about the trip this morning, but
+he didn't intend Ruth to know.
+
+To judge by the looks of the automobile, the chauffeur must have been up
+all night. The machinery was cleaned and oiled. The extra tires, in
+their dark red leather cases, were strapped to the sides of the car. A
+great box of extra rugs and wraps, rubber covers for the machine and
+mackintoshes in case of rain, was tied on the back. Between the seats
+was an open hamper for lunch, with an English tea service in one
+compartment, and cups, saucers, a teapot and a hot-water jug and alcohol
+lamp, all complete. The luncheon was to be sent down later from the
+hotel.
+
+"You are to take your meals at the inns along the way, when you prefer,"
+Mr. Stuart had explained, "but I don't mean to have you run the risk of
+starving in case you are delayed, or an accident occurs. Be sure to take
+your picnic lunch along with you, when you start out each day. What you
+don't eat, feed to the small boys along the road, who will insist on
+playing guide."
+
+Aunt Sallie was the only one of the hotel party who enjoyed breakfast.
+Grace had driven over early, and was breakfasting with Ruth in order to
+save delay. Both the girls and Mr. Stuart were too excited to take much
+interest in their bacon and eggs, but Aunt Sallie ate with a resigned
+expression that seemed to say: "Perhaps this is my last meal on earth."
+Yet, secretly, she was almost as delighted as were the girls in the
+prospect of the trip.
+
+"Now, Sallie, you are not to go if you don't wish to," Mr. Stuart had
+protested. "You must not let Ruth drag you into this trip against your
+will."
+
+But all he could persuade his sister to answer was: "If Ruth is going on
+such an extraordinary excursion, then, at least, I shall be along to see
+that nothing worse happens to her."
+
+Gladys Le Baron came into the dining-room, stopping in front of Ruth's
+table. "You dear things," she drawled in her most careful society
+manner, "how can you look so fresh so early in the morning? I hope you
+appreciate my getting up to see you off." Gladys wore a lingerie frock
+more appropriate for a party than for the breakfast room.
+
+But Ruth answered good naturedly. "I do appreciate it, if it is such an
+effort for you. Did you know Mr. Townsend is going to ride over to the
+Thurston's with us to see us start? He tells me you and he are both to
+be in Newport while we are there."
+
+"Yes," Gladys declared with more airs than before. "Mrs. Erwin has asked
+me to be one of the house-party she's to have for her ball. She told me
+I could bring a friend along, and I have asked Mr. Townsend."
+
+"Wonderful! We won't expect you to associate with us!" laughed Grace.
+
+"Gladys," Ruth asked, "would you like to drive over to Mrs. Thurston's
+with us? Father is going, and the carriage will be there to bring him
+back."
+
+"I would like to go," murmured Gladys, "if I didn't have on this old
+frock. I don't know Mollie and Barbara very well, but I suppose I shall
+have to see a great deal of them, now you have taken them up. I wonder
+how they will behave at Newport? They have hardly been out of
+Kingsbridge before."
+
+Grace and Ruth both looked angry, and Mr. Stuart broke in, quite curtly:
+"I am sure we can depend on their behaving becomingly, which is all that
+is necessary at Newport or any other place." Ruth's father was a
+business acquaintance of Gladys's father, and had known her mother when
+the latter was a girl, but the airs of Mrs. Le Baron and her society
+daughter were too much for his western common sense. Only Aunt Sallie
+was impressed by their imposing manner.
+
+Ruth was very popular at the big summer hotel, and a number of the
+guests had assembled to see her off. But Ruth let her father run the car
+and sat quietly by his side. "You'll turn over the command to me,
+captain, won't you, when the trip really commences?" and she squeezed
+his arm with a little movement of affection.
+
+"Yes, lieutenant," Mr. Stuart said quietly.
+
+"Oh, Miss Ruth," called Mr. Townsend from the back seat, "do show all
+these people how you can handle your car!" But she only shook her head.
+
+"Goodness me, what are all those people doing on Mrs. Thurston's porch?"
+Ruth asked, in alarm. "I hope nothing has happened." But, as the car
+neared the quiet little house, which stood midway between the hotel and
+the New York high road, she saw the party of young people gathered on
+the front lawn.
+
+"It's only their friends, come to say good-bye to them," Harry
+volunteered. In answer to "What a bore!" from Gladys, he continued: "I
+don't know why you should think it a bore. Miss Stuart enjoys her
+friends's popularity." Mr. Townsend had been trying, for several weeks,
+to make himself equally agreeable to Ruth and Gladys. They were both
+very wealthy, and it seemed wise to him to associate with rich people.
+But as Ruth was not easily impressed with what she called "just
+foolishness," he had become very intimate with Gladys Le Baron.
+
+When Mr. Stuart tooted the horn to announce their approach to the
+cottage a chorus of tin horns answered him from Mrs. Thurston's front
+garden. As the car drew up to the gate, the boys and girls began to
+sing, "See the Conquering Hero Comes," while Barbara ran down to the car
+and Mollie urged her friends to be quieter. "I just don't know what Miss
+Stuart and Mr. Stuart will think of us!" she blushingly remonstrated.
+
+But Aunt Sallie and Mr. Stuart were in for all the fun going this
+morning. Barbara was invited to call her seven friends who had come to
+give the girls a send-off, down to meet the occupants of the car. Even
+Gladys, as she was forced to get out of the automobile to let the other
+travelers in, was condescending enough to permit Harold Smith to assist
+her. Harold was an old friend of Barbara's, and one of the cleverest
+boys in the village.
+
+Mr. Stuart went into the house for the suit cases and satchels, which
+were all the girls were to take with them, as they were to manage with
+as few clothes as possible. It had been arranged that extra luggage was
+to be expressed to them along the way.
+
+Barbara had caught Mollie storing away a sample package of cold cream
+among her most treasured possessions.
+
+"I am sure I don't see why you should laugh so," Mollie urged quite
+seriously. "It reads on the label 'especially adapted for automobile
+travelers to remove dust and tan from the face after the drive.' Aren't
+we going to be automobile travelers?"
+
+"Sure and we a'ire," said Bab, imitating the old Irish washerwoman, "and
+it shall put grease on its nose if it likes."
+
+"Come, daughter," said Mr. Stuart finally, as Ruth was trying to explain
+to a group of admiring boys the first principles of running an
+automobile. She talked as familiarly of an emergency brake and a
+steering wheel, of horse power and speed-transmission, as most girls
+talk of frills and furbelows.
+
+"It's ten-thirty," Mr. Stuart continued, "and, if this party is to be a
+strictly on time affair, you must be off! You couldn't have a more
+wonderful day."
+
+It was late in the month of June. The summer clouds were sailing
+overhead, great bubbles of white foam thrown up into the blue depth of
+the sky. The sun shone brightly and the whole atmosphere was perfumed
+with the bloom of the honeysuckle, that hung in yellow clusters from
+Mrs. Thurston's porch.
+
+Barbara and Mollie flung their arms around their mother until she was
+completely enveloped in their embrace. Ruth kissed her father, and put
+her hand to her trim leather cap with a military salute. "It's all
+right, captain," she said; "I'll bring my crew and good ship 'Bubble'
+safely into port."
+
+Aunt Sallie was anxious to be off. She could see that Mrs. Thurston was
+on the verge of tears at the thought of parting with her daughters.
+Still the young people were laughing and talking, and storing their
+little gifts under the seats in the car, as though they had all day
+before them.
+
+"Hurry, child," Aunt Sallie urged, reaching out a hand to Mollie. "Jump
+up on the back seat with Grace and me. We will let Mistress Barbara sit
+with Ruth for the first of the journey." Aunt Sallie was very imposing
+in a violet silk traveling coat, with a veil and hat of the same shade;
+indeed, Miss Sallie had a fancy for a "touch of lavender" in everything
+she wore. With her snow-white hair, and commanding appearance, she would
+add prestige to the party, Mollie thought, no matter how dusty and
+wind-blown the rest of them might appear.
+
+The girls hopped gayly in. Toot, toot, toot! the horn blew three times.
+Chug-chug-chug! and the great machine began to breathe with deep,
+muffled roars. Mr. Stuart gave the starting crank a strong turn, and the
+car slid gracefully along the road, red, blue, pink and violet motor
+veils floating behind in the breeze.
+
+"Here's good luck to you!" shouted Harold Smith, and roses and flowers
+of every kind were flung after them. Mollie and Grace picked up those
+that fell into their laps, and turned to wave their hands and throw
+kisses for good-bye.
+
+"They look like a rainbow," said Mr. Stuart, turning to Mrs. Thurston,
+who was no longer trying to hide her tears. Then he smiled at her
+gently. She was such a tiny, girlish-looking little woman, it was hard
+to think of her as the mother of two nearly grown-up daughters. "I
+expect," he continued, "that that rainbow holds most of our promise of
+sunshine."
+
+They were still watching the car!
+
+Down to the gate, at the furthest end of the road, a baby boy, chubby
+and fat, had crawled on two round, turned-in legs. There was something
+unusual going on down the street. He could hear strange noises, but,
+though he stuck his small nose through the fence, he was still unable to
+see. Just as Ruth's car was almost in front of the house, open flew the
+stubborn old gate, and the child flung himself out in the middle of the
+road, just in front of the wonderful red thing he could see flying
+toward him. The baby was too young to understand the danger.
+
+From the watchers at Mrs. Thurston's came a cry of horror. A thrill of
+terror passed through the occupants of the car. Ruth's face turned
+white. Like a flash, she slowed a little, turned her steering wheel and
+with a wide sweep drove her motor to the far side of the road, then
+straight on out of the path of the wondering baby.
+
+Mr. Stuart's, "Bravo, daughter!" was lost in his throat. But the little
+group of waiting friends gave three cheers for the girl chauffeur, which
+Ruth heard even at such a distance. Truly "The Automobile Girls" were
+fairly started on their adventures.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI--WHAT HAPPENED THE FIRST DAY
+
+
+The car flew along by sunny meadows and farms. New York was the first
+day's goal.
+
+"Barbara," Ruth said to her next-door neighbor, "you are hereby
+appointed royal geographer and guide-extraordinary to this party! Here
+is the route-book. It will be up to you to show us which roads we are to
+take. It is a pretty hard job, as I well know from experience; but then,
+honors come hard. You don't need to worry to-day. I know this coast trip
+into New York as well as I know my A.B.C.'s. I have often come along
+this way with father. Let's have a perfectly beautiful time in New York.
+We'll make Aunt Sallie chaperon us while we do the town, or, at least, a
+part of it. Have you ever been to a roof garden?"
+
+Barbara's eyes danced. It didn't sound quite right somehow--a roof
+garden--but then they were out for experiences, and Miss Sallie wouldn't
+let them do anything really wrong.
+
+Ruth glanced out of the corner of her eye at Barbara. Miss Stuart was a
+good little chauffeur who never allowed her attention to be distracted
+from running her car, no matter what was being talked of around her, nor
+how much she was interested, but she couldn't help laughing at Barbara's
+expression; it told so plainly all that was going on inside her head.
+
+"I do assure you, Miss Barbara Thurston, that a roof garden may be a
+fairly respectable thing, quite well suited to entertaining, without
+shocking either Miss Sallie Stuart or her four charming protges." Ruth
+called back: "Aunt Sallie, will you take us up on the Waldorf roof
+to-night? You know we are going to stay at the Waldorf Hotel, girls.
+Father said we might enjoy the experience, and it would be all right
+with Aunt Sallie for chaperon."
+
+Grace pinched Mollie's arm to express her rapture, and that little
+maiden simply gasped with delight. It was Mollie, not Barbara, of the
+two sisters, who had the greatest yearning for wealth and society, and
+the beautiful clothes and wonderful people that she believed went along
+with it. Barbara was an out-door girl, who loved tennis and all the
+sports, and could swim like a fish. An artist who spent his summers at
+Kingsbridge, once called her a brown sea-gull, when he saw her lithe
+brown body dart off the great pier to dive deep into the water.
+
+Aunt Sallie had been taking a brief cat-nap, before Ruth's question, and
+awakened in high good humor. "Why, yes, children," she answered, "it
+will be very pleasant to go up on the roof to-night, after we have had
+our baths and our dinners. I am quite disposed to let you do just what
+you like, so long as you behave yourselves."
+
+Grace Carter pressed Aunt Sallie's fat hand, as a message of thanks.
+Grace was Aunt Sallie's favorite among Ruth's friends. "She is a quiet,
+lady-like girl, who does not do unexpected things that get on one's
+nerves," Miss Sallie had once explained to Ruth. "Now, Aunt Sallie,"
+Ruth had protested, "I know I do get on your nerves sometimes, but you
+know you need me to stir you up. Think how dull you would be without
+me!" And Aunt Sallie had answered, with unexpected feeling: "I would be
+very dull, indeed, my dear."
+
+The girls were full of their plans for the evening.
+
+"That is why Ruth told us each to put a muslin dress in our suit cases!
+Ruth, are you going to think up a fresh surprise every day! It's just
+too splendid!" Mollie spoke in a tone of such fervent emotion that
+everyone in the car laughed.
+
+"I don't suppose I can manage a surprise every day, Molliekins," Ruth
+called back over her shoulder, "but I mean to think up as many as I
+possibly can. We are going to have the time of our lives, you know, and
+something must happen to make it."
+
+All this time the car had been flying faster than the girls could talk.
+"This is 'going some,'" commented Ruth, laughing.
+
+When they came into Lakewood Ruth slowed up, as she had promised her
+father not to go any faster than the law allowed. "I cross my heart and
+body, Dad," she had said. "Think of four lovely maidens and their
+handsome duenna languishing in jail instead of flying along the road to
+Newport. Honest Injun! father, I'll read every automobile sign from here
+to Jehosaphat, if we ever decide to travel that way."
+
+In Lakewood, Ruth drove her car around the wonderful pine shaded lake.
+
+"It's a winter resort," she explained to her companions. "Nearly all the
+cottages and hotels are closed in the summer, but I wanted you to have a
+smell of the pines. It will give you strength for the rest of the trip."
+
+Silence fell on the party as they skimmed out of Lakewood. After so much
+excitement it was pleasant to look at things without having to talk.
+
+Mollie had begun, once in a while, to tap the lunch basket with her
+foot. The fresh air and the long ride had made her desperately hungry.
+She really couldn't remember having eaten any breakfast in the
+excitement of getting off. But nobody said f-o-o-d! She felt she was the
+youngest member of the party and should not make suggestions before Miss
+Sallie.
+
+Ruth turned into a narrow lane; a sign post pointed the way to a
+deserted village.
+
+"Oh, dear me!" sighed Mollie to herself. "Why are we going to a deserted
+village, just as we are dying of hunger!"
+
+Ruth said never a word. She passed some tumble-down old cottages of a
+century ago, then an old iron foundry, and drew up with a great flourish
+before an old stone house, green with moss and ivy and fragrant with a
+"lovely" odor of cooking! There were little tables set out on the lawn
+and on the old-fashioned veranda, and soon the party was reveling in
+lunch.
+
+"I didn't know food could be so heavenly," whispered Mollie in Bab's
+ear, when they were back in the car, for Grace had begged for a seat by
+the chauffeur for the afternoon trip.
+
+Soon Ruth left the country behind, and came out on the sea-coast road
+that ran through Long Branch, Deal Beach, Monmouth and Seabright.
+
+From carriages and other automobiles, and along the promenades, everyone
+smiled at the crimson car full of happy, laughing girls.
+
+Ruth was driving in her best fashion, making all the speed she could,
+with the thought of town fifty miles or more ahead. "It is a sight to
+see," quoth Barbara, "the way the fairy princess handles her chariot of
+fire."
+
+It was a little after four o'clock when the car boarded the Staten
+Island ferry and finally crossed to the New York shore.
+
+"You see, Bab," Mollie said, trying to stuff her curls under her motor
+cap and to rub the dust from her rosy cheeks with a tiny pocket
+handkerchief as they sped up Broadway, "I might be dreadfully
+embarrassed arriving at the Waldorf looking the way I do, if I were not
+in a motor car, but riding in an automobile makes one feel so awfully
+swell that nothing matters. Isn't it lovely just to feel important for
+once? You know it is, Bab, and you needn't say no! It's silly to
+pretend."
+
+Miss Sallie was again on the border of slumberland, so that Mollie and
+Barbara could have their low-voiced talk.
+
+"Does Ruth know I have never even been to New York before?" asked
+Mollie. "I hope I won't seem very green about things. You must tell me
+if I do, Bab."
+
+But Bab only laughed and shook her head. "You are a foolish baby," she
+said.
+
+Two respectful porters at the Waldorf helped a dusty, crumpled party out
+of the big red touring car.
+
+The girls, a little dazed, followed Miss Sallie through a maze of palms
+and servants in livery, with handsomely dressed people strolling through
+the halls, until their suite of rooms, which Mr. Stuart had engaged by
+telegraph a few days before, was reached.
+
+The three rooms adjoined, only separated by white tile bathrooms. Miss
+Sallie, naturally, had a room to herself, and it was decided that Ruth
+and Grace were to sleep together, leaving the sisters to themselves.
+
+"Isn't it too beautiful!" sighed Mollie, standing in the midst of their
+luxurious chamber, gazing around at the single brass beds, with their
+rose-colored draperies, and the ivory-striped satin wall paper,
+garlanded in pink flowers. Ruth and Grace were equally fine in a room
+decorated in blue, and, even in the Waldorf, Miss Sallie's taste seemed
+to have been consulted, as her room was in her favorite violet shade.
+
+In some mysterious way the crumpled muslin dresses were taken downstairs
+by a maid, and came back smooth and fresh. Even Miss Sallie's elaborate
+chiffon gown looked as though it had just come home from the modiste's.
+
+"O Ruth! Ruth!" Mollie exclaimed, as the four girls made their way to
+the dining-room, Miss Sallie in the lead, "I didn't know there could be
+such a magnificent place in the world as this. I don't know what I can
+ever do to repay you, except to love you and be grateful my whole life
+long."
+
+"Well, I am sure that is all the gratitude I should ever want, Mollie,"
+laughed Ruth. "But wait until you see the houses at Newport."
+
+All eyes near the door turned to see the little automobile party enter
+the "palm room." Miss Sallie swept ahead in her black lace and chiffon,
+looking very handsome and impressive. Barbara and Grace came next;
+Barbara with her red-brown hair breaking into willful curves and waves,
+her big brown eyes glowing with pleasure, and the deep red showing in
+her olive cheeks; Grace with her look of refinement and gentle dignity.
+The blond maidens came in last. Ruth's bright gold hair and fresh
+coloring showed to best advantage in a dainty white muslin and lace
+frock. She was half a head taller than dainty Mollie, who looked like a
+flower with her yellow curls gathered in a soft cluster at the back of
+her neck and tied with a black velvet ribbon.
+
+On the Waldorf roof, Miss Stuart and the girls sat under an orange tree,
+hung in some mysterious way with golden oranges. The whole place was
+decorated with palms and evergreens and beautiful flowers. The soft,
+shaded yellow lights rivaled the moonlight that glowed above.
+
+"It's like the enchanted garden in the French fairy story, isn't it,
+Miss Sallie? Where the flowers and fruits bloomed all the year round?"
+whispered Barbara, who sat next their chaperon.
+
+Miss Sallie smiled very kindly at her enthusiasm.
+
+"I expect it is, but I am afraid I have forgotten the story. It has been
+a long time, remember, Barbara, since fairies and I have had much to say
+to each other."
+
+Barbara blushed. "Oh, I am not so young as all that, Miss Sallie; but I
+have never forgotten the fairy tales I read when I was a little girl.
+Though I must confess I liked boys' stories better. I just love
+adventures!" And Barbara's eyes shone. In a little while the music
+commenced, and she forgot everything but that.
+
+Mollie was differently occupied. What she liked best was to gaze around
+her at the women in their jewels and wonderful gowns.
+
+Just across from her on the other side of the aisle was a rarely
+beautiful woman in a white lace gown, with a string of pearls round her
+throat, and a pearl and diamond butterfly that glowed and sparkled in
+her hair.
+
+Mollie was so fascinated by her beauty that she couldn't help watching
+this stranger, and even overhearing a little of her conversation. "It
+isn't exactly eavesdropping," Mollie apologized to herself, "because I
+don't know them and they can never possibly know me." So nobody noticed,
+but Mollie, that when the woman gave a laughing toss of her head in
+answer to some question from her husband, who sat back of her, that the
+beautiful, jeweled butterfly slipped softly out of her hair, fell into
+the softer lace folds of her gown and then down--down--to the floor!
+
+The little girl waited half a minute. No one else had noticed the loss.
+At any time an usher might come down the aisle and crush the exquisite
+jewel. Mollie forgot herself and her shyness. If it had been Barbara she
+would not have minded, but Mollie was timid before strangers. She
+slipped quietly across the aisle and picked up the butterfly.
+
+"I beg your pardon," her soft voice explained, "but I saw this fall from
+your hair, and, as you did not notice it, I was afraid it might be
+crushed."
+
+The lovely woman turned in surprise. It is just as well to call her "the
+lovely lady," now, for that was Mollie's name for her ever afterwards.
+
+"My dear," she said, "I am very grateful to you. How could I have failed
+to see it? I am especially obliged to you, because I am very fond of
+this ornament."
+
+Mollie blushed rosy-red, as the people close to them had observed what
+had happened and were watching her. As she tried to slip over to her
+seat, the lady reached out and gave the child's hand a gentle squeeze of
+thanks, glancing across as she did so to see what friends the little
+girl was with, and so caught Ruth Stuart's eye.
+
+The intermission came at this minute.
+
+"Why, Ruth Stuart!" Mollie, to her surprise, heard her friend's name
+called in a low voice, and Ruth came across to them.
+
+"It's Mrs. Cartwright," she said. "I am so pleased! I didn't suppose you
+would remember me."
+
+"Of course I remember you, Ruth," Mrs. Cartwright protested. "It has
+been only two years since I saw you at my own wedding in Chicago. My
+memory is surely longer than that. Isn't that your aunt, Miss Stuart?"
+Mrs. Cartwright moved across the aisle to speak to Miss Sallie and to
+introduce her husband. When they had shaken hands, Mrs. Cartwright
+asked: "May I know what you are doing in this part of the world at this
+season?"
+
+"I am playing chaperon to my madcap niece and her three friends, who are
+doing an automobile trip to Newport without a man. Ruth is her own
+chauffeur," Miss Sallie explained, laughing.
+
+"How jolly of you, Ruth, and how clever! I am so glad you are going to
+Newport. Did you know my summer place is down there? I am only in town
+for a day or two. My husband had to come on business and I am with him.
+We shall be motoring home, soon, and may pass you if you are to take
+things slowly. Why not join me at New Haven? My husband's brother is a
+junior at Yale, and we've promised to stop there for a day. There is a
+dance on at Alumni Hall. I'd be too popular for words if I could take
+you four pretty girls along with me!"
+
+Ruth turned to her aunt with glowing eyes. "We did want to see the
+college dreadfully," she said. "I have never seen a big Eastern
+university. We didn't dream of knowing anybody who would show us around.
+Wouldn't it be too much for you to have us all on your hands?"
+
+"Certainly not," said Mrs. Cartwright, "but a most decided pleasure. I
+shall meet you in New Haven, say, day after to-morrow, and I'll
+telegraph to-night to my brother, whose name is Donald Cartwright, by
+the way, to expect us."
+
+The music was about to begin again, but, before Mrs. Cartwright went
+over to her seat, she put her hand on Mollie's curls. "I must see this
+little girl often at Newport. Then I can thank her better for saving my
+lovely butterfly for me. I hope to make all of you have a beautiful
+time." She put the jewel into her hair again, and Mollie looked at it
+thoughtfully. She was to know it again some day, under stranger
+circumstances.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII--SHOWING THEIR METTLE
+
+
+"Girls!" Aunt Sallie said solemnly next morning, as Mr. Cartwright and
+two footmen helped her into the motor car, while Barbara, Grace and
+Mollie stood around holding her extra veils, her magazines and
+pocketbook. "I feel, in my bones, that it is going to rain to-day. I
+think we had better stay in town."
+
+"Oh, Aunt Sallie!" Ruth's hand was already on the spark of her steering
+wheel, and she was bouncing up and down on her seat in her impatience to
+be off. "It's simply a splendid day! Look at the sun!" She leaned over
+to Mr. Cartwright. "Do say something to cheer Aunt Sallie up. If she
+loses her nerve now, we'll never have our trip."
+
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright both reassured her. "The paper says clear
+weather and light winds, Miss Stuart. You'll have a beautiful day of it.
+Remember we shall meet you in New Haven to-morrow, and you have promised
+to wait for us."
+
+Aunt Sallie settled herself resignedly into her violet cushions, holding
+her smelling bottle to her nose. "Very well, young people, have it your
+own way," she relented. "But, mark my words, it will rain before night.
+I have a shoulderblade that is a better weather prophet than all your
+bureaus."
+
+"You're much too handsome a woman," laughed Ruth, the other girls
+joining her, "to talk like Katisha, in the 'Mikado,' who had the famous
+shoulderblade that people came miles to see."
+
+Ruth was steering her car through Fifth Avenue, so Aunt Sallie merely
+smiled at her own expense, adding: "You're a very disrespectful niece,
+Ruth."
+
+"I'd get on my knees to apologize, Auntie," declared Ruth, "only there
+isn't room, and we'd certainly be run into, if I did."
+
+Barbara was poring over the route book. Her duty as guide to the
+automobile party really began to-day, and she was studying every inch of
+the road map. What would she do if they were lost?
+
+"You may look up from that book just once in every fifteen minutes,
+Guide Thurston," Ruth said, pretending to be serious over Barbara's
+worried look. "We promise not to eat you if you do get us a little out
+of our way. The roads are well posted. What shall we do if we meet some
+bandits?"
+
+"Leave them to me," boasted Barbara. "I suppose it's my fate to play man
+of the party."
+
+"And what of the chauffeur?" Ruth protested. "I wonder what any of us
+could do if we got into danger."
+
+The day was apparently lovely. The girls were in the wildest spirits.
+
+"I never believed until this minute," announced Mollie, "that we were
+actually going on the trip to Newport. I felt every moment something
+would happen to stop us. I even dreamed, last night, that we met a great
+giant in the road, and he roared at us, 'I never allow red motor cars
+with brass trimmings to pass along this road!' Ruth wouldn't pay the
+least attention to him, but kept straight ahead, until he picked up the
+car and started to pitch us over in a ditch. Then Ruth cried: 'Hold on
+there! If you won't let a red car pass, I'll go back to town and have
+mine painted green. I must have my trip.' Just as she turned around and
+started back, I woke up. Wasn't it awful?"
+
+"You are a goose," said Grace, rather nervously. "It isn't a sign of
+anything, is it? You ought not to tell your dreams after breakfast. You
+may make them come true."
+
+Barbara and Ruth both shouted with laughter, for Mollie answered just as
+seriously: "You're wrong, Grace; it's telling dreams before breakfast
+that makes them come true. I was particularly careful to wait."
+
+The car passed swiftly through the town in the early morning. Soon the
+spires and towers of the city were no longer visible.
+
+"Hurrah for the Boston Post Road!" sang Barbara, as the car swung into
+the famous old highway.
+
+"And hurrah for Barbara for discovering it!" teased Ruth. "Now, clear
+the track, fellow autoists and slow coach drivers! We know where we're
+going, and we're on the way!"
+
+It had been decided to make a straight trip through to New Haven, and to
+wait there for Mrs. Cartwright. Miss Sallie had insisted on some rest,
+and the girls were wild to see the college--and the college men.
+
+"It will be sure enough sport," Ruth confided, "to have one dance with
+all the partners needed to go round." Men were as scarce at the
+Kingsbridge Hotel as they were in other summer resorts, and Ruth was
+tired of Harry Townsend and his kind, who liked to stay around the
+hotel, making eyes at all the girls they saw.
+
+"Yes," said Barbara thoughtfully, "it will be fun. Yet, Ruth, suppose we
+are sticks and no one dances with us?" Barbara didn't like the thought
+of being a wall-flower. Ruth laughed and quickly replied, "Oh, Mrs.
+Cartwright is awfully jolly and popular, so we will have plenty of
+invitations to dance."
+
+"Ruth," said Miss Sallie, a little after noon, when they had passed,
+without a hitch, through a number of beautiful Connecticut towns, and
+were speeding along an open road, with a view of the waters of Long
+Island Sound to the right of them, "I have not looked at my watch
+lately, but I've an impression I am hungry. As long as we have made up
+our minds to eat the luncheon the hotel has put up for us, why not stop
+along the road here, and have a picnic?"
+
+"Good for you, Aunt Sallie!" said Grace, emphatically. "This is a beauty
+place. Ruth can leave the car right here, and we can go up under that
+elm and make tea. What larks!"
+
+The girls all piled out, carrying the big lunch hamper between them. On
+the stump of an old tree the alcohol lamp was set up and tea was quickly
+brewed. Then the girls formed a circle on the ground, while Miss Sallie,
+from her throne of violet silk pillows, gave directions about setting
+the lunch table.
+
+No one noticed how the time passed. No one could notice, all were having
+such a jolly time; even Miss Sallie was now in excellent spirits. She
+had been in Newport several times before, and the girls were full of
+questions.
+
+Mollie leaned her head against Miss Sallie's knee, so intimate had she
+grown in a day and a half with that awe-inspiring person. "Is it true,"
+she inquired in a voice of reverence, "that every person who lives in
+Newport is a millionaire?"
+
+"And are the streets paved with gold, Miss Sallie?" queried Grace. She
+was Mollie's special friend, and fond of teasing her. "I read that the
+water at Bailey's Beach is perfumed every morning before the ladies go
+in bathing, and that all the fish that come from near there taste like
+cologne."
+
+Miss Sallie laughed. "There are some people at Newport who are not
+summer people," she explained. "You must remember that it is an old New
+England town, and there are thousands of people who live there the year
+around. My brother has persuaded some old friends of ours, who used to
+be very wealthy when I was a girl, to take us to board with them. There
+are very few hotels."
+
+Several times during their talk Ruth's eyes had wandered a little
+anxiously to the sky above them. Every now and then the shadows darkened
+under the old elm where they were eating their luncheon, bringing a
+sudden coolness to the summer atmosphere.
+
+"Aunt Sallie made me nervous about the weather with that story of her
+shoulderblade," Ruth argued with herself. So she was the first to say:
+"Come, we had better be off. What a lot of time we've wasted!"
+
+"No hurry, Ruth," Aunt Sallie answered, placidly. "New Haven is no great
+distance. We shall be there before dark."
+
+It was fully half after two before the automobile girls had gathered up
+their belongings and were again comfortably disposed in the car.
+
+"It certainly is great, Ruth, the way you crank up your own car," Grace
+declared. "It must take an awful lot of strength, doesn't it?"
+
+"Yes," admitted Ruth, as she jumped back into her automobile and the car
+plunged on ahead. "But I've a strong right arm. I don't row and play
+tennis for nothing. Father says it takes skill and courage, as well as
+strength, to drive a car. I hope I'm not boasting; it's only that father
+believes girls should attempt to do things as well as boys. Girls could
+do a lot more if they tried harder. 'Sometimes,' Dad says, 'gumption
+counts for more than brute force.'"
+
+"Whew, Ruth! You talk like a suffragette," objected Grace.
+
+"Well, maybe I am one," said Ruth. "I'm from the West, where they raise
+strong-minded women. What do you say, Barbara?"
+
+"I don't know," replied Barbara. "I would not like to go to war, and I'm
+awfully afraid I'd run from a burglar in the dark."
+
+"Who'd have thought Barbara would confess to being a coward?" Grace
+broke in, just to see what Bab would say. But Bab wouldn't answer. "I
+don't know what I would do," she ended.
+
+"Anyhow," said Miss Ruth, from her position of dignity on the
+chauffeur's seat, "I should be allowed to vote on laws for motor cars,
+as long as I can run a machine without a man."
+
+"My dear Ruth," interposed Miss Sallie at last, "I beg of you, don't
+vote in my lifetime. Girls, in my day, would never have dreamed of such
+a thing."
+
+"Oh, well, Auntie," answered Ruth, "I wouldn't worry about it now. Who
+knows when I may have a chance to vote?"
+
+Ruth was worried by the clouds overhead, so she ran her machine at full
+speed. It took some time and ingenuity to make their way through
+Bridgeport, a big, bustling town with crowded streets. By this time the
+clouds had lifted, and, for the next hour, Ruth forgot the rain. She and
+Barbara were having a serious talk on the front seat. Mollie and Grace,
+with their arms around each other, were almost as quiet as Aunt Sallie;
+indeed, they were more so, for that good soul was gently snoring.
+
+"If we should have any adventures, Bab," said Ruth, "I wonder if we'd be
+equal to them? I'll wager you would be. Father says that when people are
+not too sure of themselves before a thing happens, they are likely to be
+brave at the critical minute."
+
+The car was going down a hill with a steep incline. Ruth's hand was on
+the brake. Biff! Biff! Bang! Bang! A cannon ball seemed to have exploded
+under them. Miss Sallie sat up very straight, with an expression of
+great dignity; Grace and Mollie gave little screams, and Barbara looked
+as though she were willing to be defended if anything very dreadful had
+happened.
+
+Only Ruth dared laugh. "You're not killed, girls," she said. "You might
+as well get used to that racket; it happens to the best regulated motor
+cars. It is only a bursted tire; but it might have been kind enough to
+have happened in town, instead of on this deserted country road. Oh,
+dear me!" she next ejaculated, for, before she could stop her car, it
+had skidded, and the front wheel was imbedded in a deep hole in the
+road.
+
+"Get out, please," Ruth ordered. "Grace, will you find a stone for me? I
+must try to brace this wheel. Did I say something about skill, instead
+of strength, and not needing a man?" Ruth had taken off her coat and
+rolled up her sleeves in a business-like fashion.
+
+"I have helped father with a punctured tire before." She tugged at the
+old tire, which hung limp and useless by this time. She was talking very
+cheerfully, though Aunt Sallie's woeful expression would have made any
+girl nervous. At the same time dark clouds had begun to appear overhead.
+
+"You'd better get out the rain things," Ruth conceded. "I can't get this
+fixed very soon. Queer no one passes along this way. It's a lonesome
+kind of road. I wonder if we are off the main track?"
+
+"It is a country lane, not a main road. I saw that at once," said Miss
+Sallie.
+
+"Then why didn't you tell us, Aunt Sallie?"
+
+"My eyes were closed to avoid the dust," replied Aunt Sallie firmly.
+
+Poor Ruth had a task on her hands. If only the car had not skidded into
+that ugly hole, she could have managed; but it was impossible for her,
+with the help of all the girls, to lift the car enough to slip the new
+tire over the rim.
+
+Mollie and Grace were taking Miss Sallie a little walk through the woods
+at the side of the road to try to make the time pass and to give Ruth a
+chance. Grace had winked at her slyly as they departed.
+
+"Barbara," Ruth said finally, in tragic tones, "I'm in a fix and I might
+as well confess it. I know it all comes of my boasting that I didn't
+need a man. My kingdom for one just for a few minutes! Do you suppose
+there is a farmhouse near where we could find some one to help me get
+this wheel out of the rut? I'd surrender this job to a man with
+pleasure."
+
+"I don't believe we are on the right road, Ruth, dear." Barbara felt so
+responsible that she was almost in tears. Ominous thunder clouds were
+rolling overhead, and Bab tried not to notice the large splash of rain
+that had fallen on her nose.
+
+"Don't worry Bab, dear," urged Ruth. "I should have looked out for the
+road, too. It can't be helped."
+
+"But I am going to help. You can just rely on that," announced Barbara,
+shaking her brown curls defiantly. She had taken off her hat in the
+exertion of trying to help Ruth. "We passed a sleepy-looking old farm a
+little way back, but I am going to wake it up!"
+
+She heard Miss Sallie and the girls returning to the shelter of the car,
+for the rain had suddenly come down in torrents. Down the road sped Bab,
+shaking her head like a little brown Shetland pony.
+
+Miss Sallie was in the depths of despair.
+
+"Child," she said sternly to Ruth, "get into the car out of that mud. We
+will remain here, under the shelter of the covers until morning. Then,
+if we are alive, I myself will walk to the nearest town and telegraph
+your father. We will take the next train back to New York." Miss Sallie
+spoke with the extreme severity due to a rheumatic shoulder that had
+been disregarded.
+
+"Please let me keep on trying, Aunt Sallie," pleaded Ruth. "I'll get the
+tire on, or some one will come along to help me. I am so sorry, for I
+know it is all my fault."
+
+"Never mind, Ruth; but you are to come into this car." And Ruth, covered
+with mud, was obliged to give in.
+
+"Where, I should like to know," demanded Miss Sallie, "is Barbara?"
+
+Through the rain they could hear the patter, patter of a horse's hoofs.
+
+[Illustration: On Came Barbara, Riding Bareback.]
+
+"Cheer up, Ruth, dear," whispered Grace. "What difference does a little
+rain make? Here is some one coming along the road!"
+
+Ruth's eyes were full of tears; Aunt Sallie's threat to stop their trip
+was more than she could bear; but she was soon smiling.
+
+"Why, Barbara Thurston," the girls called out together, "it can't be
+you!" On came Barbara, riding bareback astride an old horse, the
+animal's big feet clattering, its mane and tail soaked with rain.
+
+"Great heavens!" said Miss Sallie, and closed her eyes.
+
+Barbara rode up to the automobile, her hand clasped tightly in the
+horse's mane.
+
+"I'm as right as can be, Miss Sallie. I went back to that sleepy old
+farm, knocked and knocked for help, and called and called, but nobody
+would answer. Just as I gave up all hope, old Dobbin came to the porch
+and neighed, as if inquiring what I was doing on his premises. Like a
+flash I put out my hand, as though to pat him, grabbed him by the mane,
+hopped up here, and now you see the best lady bareback rider from
+Rinkhem's Circus. I led you into this mess; now I'm going to get you
+out. I shall ride old Dobbin into town and come back with help." Bab
+declaimed this, ending out of breath.
+
+"Never mind, Miss Sallie," Mollie explained, seeing her consternation.
+"Bab never rode any other way than bareback when she was a little girl.
+Do let her go!"
+
+"Very well; but she may be arrested as a horse thief. That is all I have
+to say in the matter." Miss Sallie sank back on her cushions, but
+Barbara had clattered off before she could be forbidden to go. She
+caught the words, "horse thief," as she rode as fast as old Dobbin would
+carry her.
+
+"It's Barbara to the rescue again!" Ruth shouted after her.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII--"FOR WE ARE JOLLY GOOD FELLOWS!"
+
+
+"Suppose I should be arrested!" thought Barbara uncomfortably. "It would
+be distinctly unpleasant to be hauled off to jail, while Aunt Sallie and
+the girls remain stuck in the mud, not knowing my fate, and helpless to
+save me! I may meet old Dobbin's owner at any minute!"
+
+It was after six o'clock, and, because of the heavy storm, was almost
+dusk. Barbara had decided to go to the end of the lane and find the main
+road to New Haven, hoping to sooner discover help in that direction.
+
+Before long she came to a fork in the road. By riding close to the
+sign-post she found a hand pointing: "Nine Miles to New Haven." On she
+sped through the mud and rain, slipping and sliding on the horse's back,
+but still holding tight to his mane.
+
+"Stop! Hello, there! Why, Mirandy, if that ain't my own hoss, and that
+girl astride it running off as fast as she can! Hello! Stop!" The farmer
+lashed the horse hitched to his rickety old buggy, and dashed after
+Barbara, who had ridden past without noticing them. "Stop, thief!"
+
+Down to her wet toes sank Barbara's heart. The worst she had feared had
+happened. If only she had seen their buggy in time to stop first and ask
+their help. Now, rushing by them, how could she explain? Horse thief,
+indeed.
+
+"Oh, please," she said, her voice not quite steady, "I am not exactly
+running away with your horse; I am only going for help! My friends----"
+
+The farmer grabbed the horse savagely by the mane. "Come on," he said.
+"You can tell your story at the nearest police station. I ain't got time
+fer sech foolishness. What I see, I see with my own eyes. You're plain
+running away with my hoss!"
+
+"John," pleaded the farmer's wife, "you might listen to the young lady."
+
+But Barbara's looks were against her. The rain had beaten her hair down
+over her eyes. Her clothes were wet and covered with mud from trying to
+help Ruth. What could she do? Barbara was frightened, but she kept a
+cool head. "I'll just let the old man haul me before the nearest
+magistrate. I expect _he'll_ listen to me!" She was shivering, but she
+knew that to think bravely helped to keep up one's courage. "If only it
+were not so awful for Aunt Sallie and the girls to be waiting there, I
+could stand my part," murmured Bab.
+
+For fifteen minutes captors and girl jogged on. Only the old man talked,
+savagely, under his breath. He wanted to get home to his farmhouse and
+supper, but this made him only the more determined to punish Barbara.
+
+"I suppose we'll take all night to get to town at this rate," she
+thought miserably.
+
+ For we are jolly good fellows, For we are jolly good fellows!
+
+Barbara could hear the ring of the gay song and the distant whirr of a
+motor car coming down the road. If only she could attract someone's
+attention and make them listen to her! She could now see the lights of
+the automobile bearing down upon them.
+
+Like a flash, before the farmer could guess what she was doing, Barbara
+whirled around on old Dobbin's back, and sat backwards. She put one hand
+to her lips. "Oh, stop! Stop, please!" she cried, looking like a gypsy,
+with her rain-blown hair and brown cheeks, which were crimson with
+blushes at her awkward position.
+
+On account of the rain, and the oncoming darkness, the car was going
+slowly. At the end of one of the choruses the song stopped half a
+second. One of the young fellows in the car caught sight of Barbara,
+evidently being dragged along by the irate farmer and his wife.
+
+"Hark! Stop! Look! Listen! Methinks, I see a female in distress," the
+young man called out.
+
+The car stopped almost beside the buggy, and one of the boys in the car
+roared with laughter at Barbara's appearance, but the friend nearest him
+gave a warning prod.
+
+"Hold on there!" called the first young man. "Where are you dragging
+this young lady against her will?"
+
+"She's a hoss thief!" said the old man sullenly.
+
+"I am no such thing," answered Barbara indignantly. Then, without any
+warning, Barbara threw back her head and laughed until the tears ran
+down her cheeks, mingling with the rain. It was absurdly funny, she
+sitting backwards on an old horse, one hand in his mane, and the farmer
+pulling them along with a rope. What must she look like to these boys?
+Barbara saw they were gentlemen, and knew she had nothing more to fear.
+
+"Do please listen, while I tell my story. I am not a horse thief! I've
+some friends up the road, stuck in the mud with a broken tire in their
+automobile. I saw this old horse in the farm-yard, and I borrowed or
+rented him, and started for help. The old man wouldn't let me explain.
+Won't you," she looked appealingly at the four boys in their motor car,
+"please go back and help my friends?"
+
+"Every man of us!" uttered one of the young fellows, springing up in his
+car. "And we'll drag this old tartar behind us with his own rope! We'll
+buy your old horse from you, if this young lady wants him as a
+souvenir."
+
+It was the farmer's turn to be frightened.
+
+"I am sure I beg your pardon, miss," he said, humbly enough now. His
+wife was in tears.
+
+"Oh, never mind him," urged Barbara. "Please go on back as fast as you
+can to my friends. You'll find them up the lane to the left. I'll ride
+the old horse back to the farm, and settle things and join you later."
+
+"Excuse me, Miss Paul Revere," disputed a tall, dark boy with a pair of
+laughing blue eyes that made him oddly handsome, "you'll do no such
+thing. Kindly turn over that fiery steed to me, take my seat in the car
+and show these knights-errant the way to the ladies in distress. I want
+to prove to you that a fellow can ride bareback as well as a girl can."
+
+But the farmer was anxious to get out of trouble.
+
+"I'll just lead the hoss back myself," he said. "No charge at all,
+miss." Evidently afraid of trouble, the farmer made a hurried start
+homeward, and was soon lost to view, while Barbara rode back to her
+friends with help.
+
+In ten minutes two motor cars were making their way into New Haven. The
+passengers had changed places. Ruth sat contentedly with her hands
+folded in her lap, by the side of a masculine chauffeur, who had
+introduced himself as Hugh Post, and turned out to be the roommate, at
+college, of Mrs. Cartwright's brother, Donald. Barbara, wrapped in
+steamer rugs, sat beside the boy with the dark hair and blue eyes, whom
+Miss Sallie had recognized as Ralph Ewing, son of the friends with whom
+they expected to board at Newport.
+
+It was arranged that Barbara and Ruth were to sleep together the first
+night at New Haven. The truth was, they wanted to talk things over, and
+there were no connecting doors between the three rooms. The hotel was an
+old one, and the rooms were big and dreary. They were connected by a
+narrow private hall, opening into the main hall by a single door, just
+opposite Ruth's and Barbara's room. The automobile girls were in a
+distant wing of the hotel, but the accommodations were the best that
+could be found.
+
+Miss Sallie bade their rescuers a prompt farewell on arrival at the
+hotel. "We shall be delighted to see you again in the morning," she
+said, "but we are too used up for anything more to-night."
+
+Barbara was promptly put to bed. She was not even allowed to go down to
+supper with the other girls, but lay snuggled in heavy covers, eating
+from a tray by her bed. Once or twice she thought she heard light
+footfalls outside in the main hall, but she had noticed a window that
+opened on a fire escape, and supposed that one of the hotel guests had
+walked down the corridor to look out of this window.
+
+In a short time Ruth came back and reported that the automobile girls,
+including Miss Sallie, were ready for bed.
+
+"I am not a bit sleepy. Are you?" Ruth asked Barbara. "I will just jump
+in here with you, so we can talk better. We've certainly had enough
+adventures for one day!"
+
+"Oh, no!" replied Barbara; "I feel quite wide awake." Five minutes later
+both girls were fast asleep.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX--ONLY GIRLS
+
+
+Barbara and Ruth both awoke with a feeling that a light had flashed over
+their faces, but neither of them spoke nor moved. How long they had
+slept they could not know. It seemed almost morning, but not a ray of
+daylight came through the closed blinds.
+
+Across the room the flash shone for an instant, then darted on like a
+will-o'-the-wisp. Both girls dimly saw the outline of a man crouching in
+the shadow along the wall. His hand slid cautiously up the sides of the
+bureau, fingering, for a moment, the toilet articles on the dresser.
+Then the search-light for an instant darted along the mantel and turned
+to the bed again. The girls were nearly fainting with terror. Ruth
+remembered that, for once, she had locked her money and her jewels in
+her trunk.
+
+The man stood absolutely still and listened. Not a sound!
+
+So quiet lay both girls that neither one knew the other had wakened.
+
+The man continued his search, but plainly this was not the room he
+sought. Still moving, his feet making absolutely no sound, the dark
+figure with the lantern crept out of the girls' room, to the front of
+the corridor, and turned down the narrow, private hallway.
+
+"Aunt Sallie!" Ruth thought with a gasp. She had said she would leave
+her door open, so she might hear if the girls called her in the night.
+And Aunt Sallie carried a large sum of money for the expenses of the
+trip, and her own jewelry as well.
+
+It may be that Ruth made a sound, anyway Barbara knew that her roommate
+was awake. Both had the same thought at just the same instant.
+
+Noiselessly, without a word, on bare feet, both girls sped down the hall
+to Miss Sallie's open door. What they would do when they got there
+neither of them knew. It was time for action, not for thought! At the
+open door they paused and knelt in the shadow. Black darkness was about
+them, save in Aunt Sallie's room, where a dark lantern flashed its
+uncanny light. The girls were alert in every faculty. Now they could see
+more distinctly the form of the man who carried the lantern. He was of
+medium height and slender. Over his face he wore a black mask through
+which gleamed his eyes, narrowed to two fine points of steel.
+
+Should the girls cry out? The man was armed and it might mean death to
+Aunt Sallie or themselves.
+
+Evidently the burglar meant to make a thorough search of the room before
+he went to the bed, where, he guessed, the valuables were probably kept;
+but he must know first. The room was bare of treasure. He walked
+cautiously to where Miss Sallie still slept in complete unconsciousness,
+this time holding his lantern down, that its light should not waken the
+sleeping woman.
+
+As he drew near her Ruth could bear the suspense no longer. She saw him
+drag out a bag from under Miss Sallie's head and could not refrain from
+uttering a low cry. It was enough. The man dashed the lantern to the
+ground and made a rush for the door.
+
+There was no time for Ruth and Barbara to plan. They were only girls;
+but as the man ran toward them in the darkness, striking out fiercely,
+Barbara seized one of his legs, Ruth the other. Together, the three of
+them went down in the blackness. The girls had not the robber's
+strength, but they had taken him by surprise and they meant to fight it
+out.
+
+He kicked violently to free himself, then turned and tore at Barbara's
+hands, but she clung to him. He raised the butt end of his pistol and
+struck with all his force. As the blow fell with a terrific thud,
+Barbara relaxed her hold, and tumbled over in the darkness.
+
+By this time Miss Sallie realized what was happening. Yet, in the
+darkness, she could only cry for help, and moan: "Let him alone, girls!
+Let him go!"
+
+With one leg free it seemed a simple task to get away. The noises were
+arousing the sleeping hotel guests. Another minute, and the burglar knew
+that he would be lost! With a violent wrench he tore himself away, and
+started down the hall, Ruth after him. If she could delay him a few
+seconds help would come!
+
+The outside door leading from their private hall into the main one was
+nearly closed; in reaching to open it there was a second's delay. Ruth
+flung herself forward, caught the man's coat and clung desperately, but
+the burglar was too clever for her. In less than a second he slipped out
+of his coat, ran quickly to the window leading to the fire escape, and
+was gone! When assistance arrived, Ruth was standing in the front hall
+holding a man's coat in her hand.
+
+"Oh, come!" she said in horror. "A light, please! Aunt Sallie has been
+robbed, and I am afraid Barbara has been killed!"
+
+Ten or twelve people came running down the hall. The hotel proprietor
+and several servants made for the fire escape. Grace and Mollie, clad in
+kimonos, had joined Ruth in the hall, and were shaking with terror.
+Neither of them had spoken a word, but Grace silently handed Ruth her
+bath robe.
+
+They turned and the three girls followed the rescuers, who were
+hastening toward Aunt Sallie's room. That elderly woman had already
+risen, struck a light and was in her kimono.
+
+Barbara was leaning against a chair, white as a sheet, but unhurt!
+
+"O Bab!" said Ruth, flying toward her, forgetting everything else in her
+relief, "I thought you were killed!"
+
+"I thought so, too," nodded Barbara, calmly smiling, as she reached for
+one of the blankets and wrapped herself in its folds, "but I wasn't.
+When the burglar raised the end of his pistol to strike me, I knew what
+was coming and ducked. He struck the side of the chair, and I tumbled
+over under it."
+
+The hotel proprietor came into the room carrying a chamois bag.
+
+"Madam," he asked, "is this your property? I found it outside here.
+Evidently the man dropped it in trying to make his escape. I cannot
+understand what has happened. The hotel is securely locked. The fire
+escape goes down into a closed court. The man could not have made his
+way down five stories, without being seen when we reached the window. It
+is incredible!"
+
+By this time the halls were swarming with frightened visitors.
+
+Grace had gone out to speak to them, and came in holding the burglar's
+coat in her hand. "How curious!" she said, handing the garment to the
+proprietor. "This is a gentleman's coat. I can tell by the lining and
+the whole appearance of it. It was not worn by a common thief!"
+
+"Ruth, my child, and Barbara," said Aunt Sallie, when everyone had left
+their apartments, "I shall never forgive you!"
+
+"Why not, Aunt Sallie?" both girls exclaimed, at once.
+
+"Because, my dears, you didn't just scream and let the wretch escape at
+once. In my day girls would never have behaved as you did!"
+
+"But, Aunt Sallie," protested Ruth, "the jewels and money are both safe,
+and neither Barbara nor I am hurt. I don't see how we could have done
+any better, even in your day."
+
+"Kiss me," said Aunt Sallie, "and go back to bed at once. It is nearly
+morning."
+
+When Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright drew up in front of the New Haven hotel, at
+a little after two o'clock next day, they found Miss Sallie and the four
+girls surrounded by a circle of college boys. With them stood a
+policeman.
+
+"What has happened?" said Mrs. Cartwright in astonishment, jumping out
+of her car, as Donald Cartwright, Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing came down to
+meet her. "Are those my girls, to whom I am to introduce you to-day?"
+
+"Goodness!" demanded Hugh. "Did you think we would wait twelve hours for
+an introduction! Do come and hear all that has happened."
+
+Miss Stuart, looking a good deal shaken by her adventures, came forward
+to meet Mrs. Cartwright. "Listen!" she said dramatically, for Barbara
+was talking to the policeman.
+
+"No, we would neither of us know him, because neither my friend nor I
+ever saw him before. It was dark and he was masked. But he was
+slight--not a big, rough kind of man--and his hands were soft, but strong
+as steel. I don't believe," she leaned over and whispered, "he could
+have been a servant, or an ordinary burglar."
+
+"We have discovered, miss, that no entrance was made from the outside.
+Any guests who left the hotel this morning will be followed and
+examined. The chief will report to you later," the policeman said, with
+a low bow to Miss Sallie.
+
+"Well, is this the way you see a nice, quiet, old college town?" Mrs.
+Cartwright inquired. "I suppose you mean to take the next train for
+home."
+
+"No such thing!" retorted Ruth, smiling, and looking as bright and fresh
+as ever. "We don't mind a few weeny adventures, do we, Aunt Sallie?"
+
+Miss Sallie held up her hands in horror. "Weeny adventures! What shall
+we expect next! However, I've promised the girls to go on. I think we
+need the trip, now, more than ever, and I want to ask Mr. Cartwright to
+keep the matter as quiet as possible. I do not wish my brother to know."
+
+"Do please come on," said Hugh Post, turning to Ruth. "We are going," he
+explained, "out to the athletic grounds in our motor cars. The girls
+came to see the university, and we haven't shown them a blooming thing."
+
+"We are going to the dance to-night, just the same," announced Mollie to
+Mrs. Cartwright. "Aunt Sallie is to rest this afternoon, so she will be
+equal to it. We wouldn't miss it for anything."
+
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright joined the party, and, in a few minutes, the two
+motor cars had covered the two miles between the college campus and the
+thirty acres Yale devotes to college sports. The visitors saw the
+athletic grounds thoroughly; here the football champions of the world
+had been trained, and there was the baseball diamond.
+
+"Ralph's the crack oarsman of the lot," said Donald Cartwright;
+"but--great Scott! We can't show these girls anything, after the way they
+tackled the burglar last night."
+
+"We'll get up a regatta in your honor, if you'll come again next year,
+Miss Thurston," said Ralph.
+
+Barbara only laughed at him. "Look out," she warned. "I may make you
+keep your promise."
+
+"Barbara," said Mollie that night, as they were getting ready for the
+dance which was to take place in the Old Alumni Hall, "are you sure you
+feel well enough for the ball to-night?"
+
+"Nonsense, child, why shouldn't I? I feel as fine as a fiddle. It isn't
+doing things that uses one up, even tackling a burglar; it is thinking
+about them. Ruth and I didn't have any time to think about our burglar."
+
+"Well," said Mollie, a little wistfully, smoothing the folds of her
+muslin dress, "I don't believe I am as anxious to go to the dance as I
+thought I was. Does this dress look _very_ shabby? I wouldn't go, now,
+only it seems kind of hateful of me to refuse Mrs. Cartwright's
+invitation."
+
+"Now, Molliekins," Barbara answered quite seriously, "it's your dress,
+isn't it? Of course, I have thought about mine, too. These are just
+simple muslins that we have worn before; but, when we left home, we
+neither of us dreamed we would go to a party in them. Let's just make
+the best of things. Anyhow, I've made up my mind to one thing, and I
+wish you would, too. You and I must not worry about being poor while we
+are on this trip. Let us not pretend that we are rich, because everybody
+we meet seems to be. Ruth knows we are poor, knows about our little
+cottage and not keeping a servant, and she doesn't mind. I don't believe
+really nice people care whether young girls are rich or poor, if they
+happen to like them. I don't mean to preach." Barbara put her arm around
+Mollie and waltzed her around the room. "Let us pretend we are both
+Cinderellas before the arrival of the fairy godmother."
+
+Mollie didn't answer; but she tucked some pink roses in her belt. "It
+doesn't really matter about me, anyway," she decided. "I can't expect
+these grown-up boys to dance with me. I will just stay by Miss Sallie."
+
+"All right, little Miss Wall-flower," laughed Bab, as she pinned on a
+knot of blue that Ralph Ewing had asked her to wear, as a tribute to the
+Yale colors.
+
+It was Mollie, after all, who was the belle of the party. Perhaps this
+was because the other girls whispered to their partners that Mollie was
+afraid nobody would dance with her; or, perhaps, because she was the
+youngest, and the best dancer among them all.
+
+"I am going to take this little lady under my special protection at
+Newport," Mrs. Cartwright said to Miss Stuart, late that evening. "I
+don't mean my 'butterfly girl' to be losing her beauty sleep."
+
+Mollie looked at her "lovely lady" with eyes as blue as myrtle blossoms.
+Mrs. Cartwright was so exquisite, so young and so wealthy, she seemed to
+Mollie to have stepped out of a book.
+
+Miss Sallie was vainly trying to collect her four charges all at once,
+in order to take them home.
+
+"Aunt Sallie," Hugh Post said roguishly, as that lady made a last
+determined stand, and gathered her girls together, "you know, from your
+experience yesterday, that Miss Ruth can't handle a motor car, even
+though she can tackle a burglar. So we are going to follow you in my
+automobile to-morrow and see that you get to New London all right."
+
+"Oh, no, you're not," protested Ruth. "This I will have you know is an
+automobile girls' excursion and nary a man allowed."
+
+"This one time, kindly permit us to follow you at a respectful distance,
+won't you?" Hugh urged. "It's only a short trip to New London. To tell
+you the truth, the governor's yacht is over there and I hope to be able
+to persuade you to go aboard. It is not disrespectful of me, Miss
+Stuart, to speak so of my father; he was once governor of the state, and
+he rather likes to be reminded of it. Mother has a number of friends on
+board the yacht, and we shall be cruising up to Newport in a few days. I
+think it would be jolly for father and mother to know you."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X--ENTER GLADYS AND MR. TOWNSEND
+
+
+"Why, Gladys Le Baron, this is a surprise!" gayly said Grace Carter next
+afternoon, when the two parties of girls and men had left their
+automobiles and had come aboard Governor Post's yacht, the "Penguin,"
+that lay just outside the New London harbor.
+
+Grace was awaiting her turn to be introduced to her host and hostess,
+when she spied Gladys, in a pale blue flannel suit and a cream felt hat,
+strolling down the deck, looking very much at home.
+
+"How ever did _you_ get here?" queried Grace, smiling.
+
+Gladys gave Grace's cheek an affected peck with her lips.
+
+"I have a better right to ask that question of you," Gladys pouted,
+"only I am not surprised. Harry Townsend came over from New London,
+yesterday, and told me you had arrived the night before. He went over
+with Hugh for the dance, but I didn't feel like going, so he came back
+early yesterday morning. I am amazed Hugh did not speak of it to you."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Post didn't know we had ever heard of Harry Townsend, or you
+either. We met most unexpectedly, and we had plenty of excitement of our
+own. I must tell you about it."
+
+At this moment, Hugh came over for Grace to introduce her to his mother.
+
+"This is Miss Carter, mother," he said. "Will you introduce her to Mrs.
+Erwin and father? She seems to know Gladys already."
+
+Harry Townsend had seen the newcomers, and came forward to speak to them
+with his most charming manner.
+
+"Say, Townsend," challenged Hugh, "what made you run away from us? We
+thought, of course, you'd stay over for the dance. Thought that was your
+plan in going over to New Haven."
+
+Harry turned to Miss Stuart. "I heard of your arrival in New Haven, the
+other evening," he said. "The fellows told me of your experiences; but I
+got away from the hotel too early next morning to pay my respects."
+
+"Then you didn't hear of the burglar, did you?" queried Hugh.
+
+In spite of Miss Sallie's protestations the whole story had to be gone
+over again.
+
+Barbara was talking to Ralph Ewing and had not looked at Harry Townsend
+during the conversation, until he came over to speak to her.
+
+"I have half an idea, Miss Thurston," he said, "that you do not like me,
+and I am sorry. I was looking forward to our having good times together
+at Newport, as I am to be Mrs. Erwin's guest, with your cousin Miss Le
+Baron. Mrs. Post asked us on for the yacht trip a day or two sooner than
+we expected. We are all going up to Newport together."
+
+"Mr. Townsend," said Barbara, her usually laughing, brown eyes now
+steadfast and serious, "I wonder why you think I do not like you?"
+
+"Miss Stuart," begged Mrs. Post, after the governor had conducted the
+party over his trim little craft, "you must stay and dine with us on
+board the yacht to-night. I refuse to take no for an answer. I wish I
+could keep you over until morning, but unfortunately the yacht is too
+small."
+
+Miss Sallie protested. No; they couldn't think of it. They had come
+aboard only for a call, and must get back to their hotel before night.
+But Hugh swept all her arguments aside. He was an adored only son, and
+accustomed to having his own way. To tell the truth, Miss Sallie was not
+averse to the idea of staying; it was pleasant to be meeting Newporters
+in advance. Miss Stuart was a woman who thought much of appearances, and
+of this world's goods, and their new acquaintances seemed to have plenty
+of both.
+
+"It's an ill wind," she thought to herself, "and I must say, for my
+young niece, that she has a habit of falling on her feet."
+
+But aloud Miss Sallie accepted the invitation with much decorum.
+
+On the deck aft, where the young people had gathered, there was much
+laughter.
+
+Gladys was really pleased to see Ruth. As for her cousins, they were a
+bore, but she had no idea of being openly rude to them. She simply meant
+to ignore them.
+
+It was not easy to disregard two such popular girls. Barbara and Mollie
+seemed to be well able to get on without her patronage. Barbara was
+already smiling and chattering with Governor Post, while the boys
+described her mad ride of two days before.
+
+"Father," said Hugh, "I forgot to introduce you to Miss Thurston by her
+proper title, 'Miss Paul Revere.'"
+
+"Harry," asked Gladys, as they stood on the outside of the circle,
+"don't you think it is disgusting the way that forward cousin of mine
+always manages to put herself before the public?"
+
+"Well," said Mr. Townsend--was there a little admiration in his
+tone?--"she seems to have plenty of grit."
+
+It was really Mollie, not Barbara, who saw through Gladys's treatment of
+them. Barbara was too open-hearted and boyish to notice a slight, unless
+it was very marked.
+
+Gladys had asked Ruth and Grace to her stateroom, and Mrs. Post had put
+the other two girls into her unoccupied guest chamber. It was a little
+gem of a stateroom, upholstered in pale green to relieve the glare from
+the water.
+
+"Bab," Mollie chuckled, rubbing her cheeks until they were pink, "do you
+remember the story of 'The Water Baby'?"
+
+"Yes," Bab answered absently; "I do, after a fashion. But why do you
+ask? You haven't turned into a water baby, have you, just because you
+are on board a yacht for the first time in your life?"
+
+"No," laughed Mollie. "I was thinking of the story in it of the salmon
+and the trout. Have you forgotten it?"
+
+"Of course I have," admitted Barbara.
+
+Mollie chuckled gleefully. "Our high and mighty cousin, Gladys, reminds
+me very much of the salmon, who thought the trout a very common fish,
+and disliked him all the more because he was a relation. Feel like a
+trout, Bab?"
+
+"Not at all, Mollie; but do hurry and go out on deck. That young
+freshman, who came down in the automobile with us to amuse you, is
+wandering around outside, looking frightened to death. You must go and
+talk to him."
+
+As Barbara stepped into the big salon, which was fitted up like a
+library, she saw one of the young men disappear quickly through the open
+door. Bab went over to their wraps, which they had dropped in a heap on
+a couch when they boarded the yacht, and selected her own jacket. Ruth's
+pocketbook was in full view among their belongings, and Bab covered it
+over before she went on deck.
+
+Before dinner ended the moon had risen, the pale crescent hanging like a
+slender jewel in the sky.
+
+Barbara was standing alone, for a second, when Mrs. Erwin approached
+her.
+
+"Pardon me, dear," she said, "but did you or your sister see a small pin
+on the dressing table of the guest room, when you went in there before
+dinner? I have misplaced a ruby and diamond circle of no great value. I
+went into the guest chamber this morning, while the maid was cleaning my
+room, and I thought perhaps I had laid it down in there."
+
+"No," said Bab, frowning. It did seem curious how losses were following
+them! "I didn't look, although it was probably there. I am most
+unobservant. I will ask my sister."
+
+"No, no," said Mrs. Erwin, hastily; "please don't. I shall probably find
+it again. I don't want Mrs. Post to hear."
+
+The next morning, when Grace and Ruth were donning their best motor
+veils and coats, Ruth suddenly looked surprised and began to search
+hurriedly through her pocketbook.
+
+"Grace," she said, "I can't find fifty dollars. I am sure I had it
+yesterday, because I looked carefully after that wretched burglar had
+gone, though I knew all my money was safe in my trunk. Now it's gone!"
+
+Ruth turned her pocketbook upside down. "Don't tell Aunt Sallie,
+please," she begged. "I don't know what she would say to have this item
+added to our adventures."
+
+Miss Sallie's voice was heard calling from the next room.
+
+"Girls, are we or are we not, going to Newport to-day? I, for my part,
+wish to spend no more time on the way!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI--NEWPORT AT LAST!
+
+
+The automobile girls were in a flutter of excitement. Another half hour,
+and they would arrive in Newport!
+
+"Ruth," said Miss Sallie, "slow up this car a little! Before we enter
+Newport, I must see to my appearance. To think of all I have gone
+through since I left Kingsbridge!" Miss Sallie took out a small hand
+mirror, thoughtfully surveying her own unwrinkled face. "What will you
+children get me into before we are through with this trip?"
+
+Ruth slowed down obediently.
+
+"Open my bag, Mollie," said Miss Sallie, decidedly, "and you, Grace,
+look under the seat for my other hat. We shall probably arrive in
+Newport at five o'clock, the hour for the fashionable parade. I, at
+least, shall do what I can to give our car an appearance of gentility. I
+advise you children to do the same."
+
+"Would you like a little cold cream, Miss Sallie, to wipe off your
+face?" Mollie spoke timidly, remembering how Barbara had laughed at her.
+
+"Certainly I should, my child, and very intelligent of you to have
+brought it along."
+
+"Well," said Ruth, "if you must 'fix up,' and I am to take a party of
+belles and beauties into Newport, instead of true lovers of sport, there
+are lots of new veils under my seat. Bab, take them out and pass them
+around. Only the chauffeur shall be dusty and dilapidated enough to look
+the part."
+
+Behold their dream had come true! The automobile girls were at last in
+Newport, watching the summer parade!
+
+Ruth, at the expected hour, turned her car, with a great flourish, into
+Bellevue Avenue, Newport's most fashionable thoroughfare. For a few
+minutes the girls beheld a long procession of carriages and automobiles;
+a little later, they swung round a corner and stopped in front of a
+beautiful old Colonial house, with a wide veranda running around three
+sides of it, and a hospitably open front door.
+
+Miss Sallie descended first, to be greeted by Ralph's mother, who was
+expecting them.
+
+"I don't like her. She's not a bit like Ralph," thought Barbara. Then
+she gave herself an inward shake. "There, Barbara, you know what mother
+would say to you about your sudden prejudices!"
+
+Mrs. Ewing, who had been a great beauty in her day, looked as though
+life had disagreed with her.
+
+Barbara had wondered how a private home could accommodate so many
+people, never having seen a handsome old New England house, but their
+three rooms occupied only half of one side of the long hall on the
+second floor. "And they think they are poor!" smiled Bab, to herself, as
+she looked admiringly at the handsome furniture. "I wonder what they
+would think of our little five-room cottage."
+
+"I want some clean clothes before anything else," sighed dainty Mollie,
+standing before a mirror, gazing with disdain at her own appearance. "I
+believe I have one clean shirtwaist left, but I must still wear this
+dusty old skirt."
+
+But Ruth was staggering into the room under an immense box.
+
+"Fifteen dollars express charges, mum; not a cent less! Them's my
+orders. And extry for carrying the box upstairs. It ain't my business.
+I'm too accommodating I am! Where shall I put it down, mum?"
+
+Ruth dropped the heavy bundle on the bed; she couldn't carry it a moment
+longer.
+
+"Why, Ruth Stuart!" said Mollie, dancing with glee. "It's some clothes
+for us! How did mother get them here in such a hurry? Oh, joy! oh,
+rapture! I was just fussing about having to wear this old suit
+to-night."
+
+Bab was tugging at the heavy cords.
+
+"Foolish Bab!" scoffed Ruth. "You'll never get it open that way," and
+she cut the cord in a business-like fashion with a little knife she
+always carried.
+
+"Now I'll run away and leave you," Ruth continued. "Grace is calling
+that it is time for my bath. Your turn next. I'll see the pretty things
+when I come back."
+
+Ruth would like to have stayed to see the girls open the box, but she
+had an instinctive feeling that they would prefer to be alone.
+
+"Here's a letter from mother. Let's read that first," said Bab.
+
+Inside the letter lay two crisp ten-dollar bills!
+
+"I have had a windfall, children," the letter read, "through the
+kindness of Mr. Stuart. He told me that some of my old stock that I
+thought of no value was paying a dividend again. Curiously, your Uncle
+Ralph had not mentioned it to me; but, when I wrote and told him of Mr.
+Stuart's advice, he sent it to me at once. So here's a little spending
+money. And oh, my darlings, I hope you will like your new clothes! Mr.
+Stuart is so kind to me, I am not lonely," the letter ended, "so have
+the best time you possibly can. I shall send your trunk to-morrow with
+your summer muslins and underwear."
+
+"Mollie mine, don't tear the paper in that fashion," remonstrated
+Barbara. "Let me open the box. Behold and see!" She held up two dainty
+organdie frocks, delicate and airy. Mollie's gown was white, with little
+butterfly medallions of embroidery and lace sprinkled over it.
+
+"Mollie, Mollie! How could mother have guessed your new name was 'the
+butterfly girl'? Isn't it too lovely!" Bab almost forgot to look at her
+own frock, so enraptured was she with her sister's.
+
+But Barbara's frock was just as charming, and as well suited to her. A
+circle of pink wild roses outlined the hem and encircled the yoke, which
+was of delicate pink tulle.
+
+Mollie was rummaging with impatient fingers. "Party capes, I do
+declare--the very newest style! I never reached the point of expecting
+capes even in my wildest dreams. See, yours is all white, and mine has a
+pale blue lining with a dear little 'blue riding hood cap.' Oh, won't I
+be charming?" murmured Mollie, putting the cape over her shoulders and
+pirouetting before the mirror. "Surely no sensible wolf would want to
+eat me up!"
+
+Two light flannel suits, one of cream color for Bab, and a pin-stripe of
+blue and white for Mollie, completed the glories of the box.
+
+"Now," said Bab, "what more can we want, for tennis, for rowing, for
+yachting, for driving? Are there any more entertainments that the rich
+enjoy, Mollie? Because, if there are, I should like to mention them."
+
+ Oh, the girls will all declare,
+ When they see me on the square--
+ Here comes a millionaire,
+ Mollie darling!
+
+"What do you think of that for poetry made while you wait? You don't
+half appreciate my talents, Miss Mollie Thurston," ended Bab, with a
+final hug.
+
+"Hurry, children," called Miss Sallie, appearing at their door. "You
+know we are to meet Mrs. Cartwright at the Casino to-night. She wants to
+introduce us to the place where a large part of Newport's gayety
+occurs."
+
+"What is the 'Casino'?" whispered Mollie, when Miss Sallie had
+disappeared.
+
+"Oh, it's only a big club, where you play tennis and have dances, and
+any sort of entertainments. Nearly all the nicest people in Newport
+belong to it. Mrs. Cartwright says we'll have most of our fun over
+there."
+
+Bab put her arm round her sister, as they walked downstairs.
+
+"Mollie," she said, "I have the queerest feeling. I am so happy, it
+frightens me. I never had such a good time before. I wonder how it will
+all turn out?"
+
+Barbara could not guess that there were to be tears for her, as well as
+joys, at Newport. It was as well she did not know, or her pleasure would
+have been marred.
+
+The girls finished dinner as quickly as possible.
+
+"There's time for a stroll on the cliffs, isn't there, before eight?"
+inquired Ruth. "Do you feel equal to exercise, Aunt Sallie? Everyone
+takes the cliff walk the first thing after arrival in Newport."
+
+"Certainly," Miss Sallie agreed. "I suppose I can manage it, though I
+have ridden so far that I may have lost the use of my limbs. However, I
+can sit down if I grow tired, and you children can go on without me.
+It's perfectly safe, isn't it, Mrs. Ewing?"
+
+"Oh, yes," Mrs. Ewing replied; "though it looks fairly dangerous, the
+cliffs are so high, the highest on the Atlantic Coast from Cape Ann to
+Yucatan. But very few accidents have occurred there--so far."
+
+Ruth and Barbara led the way. They could hear the sea booming and
+pounding below them. From the edge of the cliff they looked down a
+hundred feet at the sea, washing in on the level stretch of beach.
+
+Ruth shivered and turned pale. "Oh," she shuddered, "it makes me
+horribly nervous! I am ashamed of it, so I don't often mention it, but I
+simply can't look down from great heights. It even makes me a little
+sick to look out of a high window, and I'm a miserable climber, I get so
+dizzy. Let us go back. Do you mind, Bab?"
+
+"No, Ruth," Bab answered. "I suppose I am a tomboy; I used to play hare
+and hounds with the boys at school, and I learned to climb like a goat
+over the rocks at Kingsbridge; but these Newport cliffs are a different
+matter."
+
+Barbara's powers were to be tested, but neither she nor Ruth thought
+anything more of their talk. Miss Sallie and the other two girls had
+joined them, and they made their way along the narrow, winding path that
+dipped in hollows and curves, and stretched for two miles ahead of them.
+
+"How hard it is," said Miss Sallie, "to tell which view is the more
+beautiful!"
+
+On the inland side of the cliffs, beautiful, shaded lawns, luxuriant
+with flowers, ran down to the edge of the path. Set in their midst were
+the marble palaces of Newport's millionaires. Toward the sea, great
+points of land jutted out into the harbor, where the water was violet
+with the shadows of the closing day.
+
+"Miss Stuart! Miss Stuart!" Aunt Sallie heard a gay voice calling her.
+
+Running across the lawn, and waving her scarf at them, came Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+
+"Were you coming to see me first?" she asked.
+
+Miss Stuart confessed that she had not the shadow of an idea which house
+belonged to Mrs. Cartwright.
+
+"You must see it for a minute, since you are already here," urged Mrs.
+Cartwright, and led the way up the graveled path to her veranda.
+
+"Mollie," she said, addressing the young girl, "I think it is peculiarly
+appropriate for my butterfly girl to be introduced to my piazza. It is
+made to look like a Japanese teahouse," she explained to Miss Sallie.
+
+The sides of Mrs. Cartwright's veranda were of heavy Japanese paper
+stretched on bamboo poles which opened and closed at will. The paper had
+been painted by a famous Japanese artist to represent springtime in
+Japan. There were whole rows of cherry trees in full blossom, with
+little Japanese children playing beneath them. Opposite this scene was
+another painting--a marshy lake, surrounded by queer Japanese birds.
+
+The veranda was lighted by a hundred tiny shaded lamps. Japanese matting
+covered the floor, while the tea tables were set with tea services
+bought in old Japan. The girls had never seen anything so lovely.
+
+"You are officially invited to have tea with me here, any or every
+afternoon you are in Newport. Now I will run and get Mr. Cartwright,"
+added their hostess, "and we will go over to the Casino."
+
+Outside, the Casino looked like a rambling, old Dutch mansion, with
+peaked gables and overhanging eaves.
+
+"We've a Dutch house, English lawns and a French chef," Mr. Cartwright
+laughingly explained to Miss Sallie as they entered.
+
+"And we've dozens of tennis courts," added Mrs. Cartwright. "We are
+working dreadfully hard, now, for the tournament that is to take place
+in a few weeks. It is really the social event of the whole year at
+Newport. Is there a star player among you girls? Why not enter the
+tournament and compete for the championship? We are to have a special
+match game, this year, played by the young people. Let us keep these
+tennis courts busy for a while. You'll come over, too, Miss Stuart,
+won't you, and play bridge while we work. Or you'll work at bridge,
+while we play tennis. Perhaps you think that is the way I should have
+put it."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII--A WEEK LATER
+
+
+"Barbara, I wouldn't play tennis with Gladys and Harry Townsend, if I
+were you," said Mollie to her sister, one morning a week later. "They
+were horrid to you yesterday. Didn't you notice, when you called to Hugh
+and Ruth that their last ball had gone over the line, Gladys just
+shrugged her shoulders, and gave a sneery kind of smile to that Townsend
+fellow, and he lifted his eyebrows! Is your score the best, or Ruth's? I
+know you're both ahead of Gladys and Grace. I am sure Gladys doesn't
+play a bit better than I do; so she needn't have been so high and
+mighty."
+
+Mollie shrugged her dainty shoulders. "You see, she told me, the first
+day she arrived, that, of course, I didn't play in the class with the
+others, so you had just the right eight for the two courts--four girls
+and four men."
+
+"Why, Mollie!" Bab looked surprised. "I thought you said you didn't want
+to play. You can take my place any time."
+
+Mollie smiled. "No," she answered; "I don't want to play. It's not that.
+But it annoys me when you let Gladys Le Baron, cousin or no cousin, snub
+us all the time, and you not notice it. Ralph certainly wouldn't like to
+have me play with him now, when you're in for a match game."
+
+"Mollie," said Bab, tying her tennis shoe, "I _do_ notice how rude
+Gladys is. She left me standing all alone the other afternoon, when Ruth
+and Grace had gone into the club house to speak to Aunt Sallie. Friends
+of Gladys's came up, and she deliberately turned her back on me and
+didn't introduce me. I felt so out of it! Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin soon
+joined them, and they shook hands with me. I found the other people were
+some guests who had come down for Mrs. Erwin's ball, next week, and were
+staying at her house.
+
+"I know," she continued, "Gladys is furious that we are invited to the
+dance. Mrs. Erwin was so cordial and nice. She said, right before me,
+that though the ball was a grown-up affair, she knew Gladys would want
+her cousins and friends, and she had invited us on her account. Wasn't
+it funny? Miss Gladys couldn't say a word. Goodness knows, _she_ doesn't
+want us. She has been lording it over us, for days, because she and
+Harry were to be the only very young people invited. Gladys imagines
+herself a woman of society, and is in reality merely a foolish little
+girl," said Barbara. Then she added reflectively: "Miss Sallie says we
+are all too young to 'go out,' and she doubts the propriety of allowing
+us to attend Mrs. Erwin's ball. Last night she told Ruth she had almost
+decided against our going. Ruth championed our cause on the strength of
+the shortness of our stay in Newport, also that we should be permitted
+to go as a special favor to our hostess. You know Miss Sallie hates to
+refuse Ruth anything. Consequently we will be 'among those present' at
+Mrs. Erwin's ball whether Miss Gladys approves or not."
+
+"I just wish I could tell my lovely Mrs. Cartwright how mean Gladys is,"
+said Mollie. "She would not ask her to her charity fair."
+
+"Please don't say anything, Mollie," pleaded Barbara, taking her tennis
+racquet from the bed. She had already answered Ralph's impatient whistle
+from the garden below. "It won't do any good for us to be horrid to
+Gladys in return; it will only make us seem as hateful as she is. Things
+will come around, somehow. I don't mind her--so very much."
+
+"Well, I do," answered Mollie. "But you haven't told me how your score
+and Ruth's stand."
+
+"Oh, I think we are pretty nearly even." Barbara was half way out the
+door. "Be careful, Molliekins," she urged, "if you go rowing with that
+freshman this afternoon. Why do you want to know about Ruth's score and
+mine? It's a week before the game, and anything may happen before then.
+We all play pretty evenly; Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing, too."
+
+"Oh, I didn't mean anything, Bab," Mollie said, thoughtfully. "Only
+Ruth's awfully anxious to play in the tournament. She's just crazy about
+it."
+
+"Of course she is, child. So are we all, for that matter," answered Bab.
+"You don't mean----"
+
+"I don't mean a single thing, Bab Thurston!" said Mollie, a little
+indignantly.
+
+"Yes, I am coming, at last, Ralph," Barbara sang softly over the
+banisters. She had not overcome her awe of Mrs. Ewing. Ralph's mother
+was by no means pleased with the idea that her adored Ralph preferred
+Barbara to any of the other girls.
+
+"It's like Ralph," she complained to his father, "to pick out the
+poorest girl of the lot, when the rich ones are so much more charming. A
+great way for him to retrieve the family fortunes!"
+
+"We will hope," said Ralph's father quietly, "that Ralph will not try to
+restore our fortunes by marrying for money."
+
+As Barbara walked down to meet Ralph she looked grave, and her face was
+flushed. Ruth _did_ want to play in the tournament, but so did she, for
+that matter! Could she resign in Ruth's favor? Then Barbara laughed to
+herself. "Catch a girl like Ruth letting me give up to her! I wonder if
+it would be fair of me to disappoint Ralph?"
+
+"Come on, Miss Day-dreamer," ordered Ralph, hurrying her along. "The
+others have been waiting for us for fifteen minutes down at the Casino
+courts. Do you know that there is a party on for the afternoon? Ruth and
+Hugh are to pile as many of us as they can into their motor cars, and
+take us ten miles out the Ocean Drive. We are to stop at Mrs. Duffy's
+English tea place on our way back."
+
+Bab was certainly not playing in good form today. She even missed one of
+Gladys's serves, which were usually too soft to count. When the
+morning's practice was over, Ruth's and Hugh's score was two points
+ahead.
+
+"Who is going to play in the tournament from these courts?" asked Mrs.
+Cartwright, crossing the lawn, her tennis racquet swinging in her hand.
+Mollie was close beside her, also "that freshman," who followed Mollie
+wherever she went.
+
+"Bab," answered Ruth, coming up to smile at Mrs. Cartwright, who was
+looking prettier than usual in her tennis blouse of pale pink madras
+with a linen skirt of the same shade.
+
+"What a funny Gladys!" Mrs. Cartwright laughed as the other girls joined
+her. "You are following our latest Newport fad, are you not, of having
+your head wrapped in a chiffon veil while you play tennis. You look like
+a Turkish girl, with only your eyes peeping out."
+
+Gladys had tied up her head in a pale blue chiffon veil, with a fetching
+bow just over the ear. The other women who were playing on the courts,
+with the exception of Mrs. Cartwright and the automobile girls, were
+draped in the same fashion.
+
+"That suggests a game to me," continued Mrs. Cartwright. "You must come
+to my veranda some night and we will play it. It is called 'eyeology.' I
+won't tell you anything more about it now. Just you wait! But to go back
+to my first question. Then I am to enter Barbara for the tournament?"
+
+"I should say not, Mrs. Cartwright," said Barbara, who was standing
+near. This time she would not let Ruth speak.
+
+"Ruth is certainly the best player among us," drawled Gladys; "she and
+Mr. Post; but," she went on in insinuating tones, "you know there are
+strange things that can happen in tennis!"
+
+"If you mean, Gladys, that I cheated the other day," broke out Barbara
+fiercely, "I simply won't bear it! I know it is horrid of me to make a
+scene," she turned to Ruth with her eyes full of tears, "but this is the
+second time."
+
+"Please don't get excited, Miss Thurston," cried Gladys scornfully. "I
+have not said you cheated. It looks a little bit like a case of guilty
+conscience."
+
+Harry Townsend smiled knowingly.
+
+Bab, nearly in tears, couldn't answer, but Ralph and Hugh Post both
+protested indignantly.
+
+"Please don't discuss a thing of this kind here," said Mrs. Cartwright,
+angrily. "We don't allow quarreling on the Casino courts. I am surprised
+at you, Barbara. You were accused of nothing."
+
+Mollie's eyes were black, instead of their usual lovely blue. She was
+very indignant, but she was always more of a diplomat than Barbara.
+
+"Lovely lady," she said, putting her hand in Mrs. Cartwright's as they
+moved away, "Gladys did mean that Bab cheated. This is the second time
+she has said it. Wouldn't you answer back if you were accused of not
+playing fair with your very best friend?"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright gave Mollie's hand a squeeze. "Tell Barbara I am sorry
+if I was too hard on her, but I don't like scenes!"
+
+"I wish I could get an excuse to pummel that Harry Townsend!" muttered
+Ralph indignantly to Hugh, when the girls had gone home. "I can't take
+it out on Gladys, for she's a girl. That Townsend fellow's nothing but a
+sneak. He just stands round and smiles and says nothing, until he puts
+me in a rage!"
+
+"Oh, don't fight, Ralph," Hugh protested. "I hate that Townsend man,
+though, as much as you do. He is too infernally polite, for one thing,
+and he walks on his tiptoes. He comes right up behind you, and you never
+know where he is until he speaks. I believe he wears rubber soles on his
+shoes!"
+
+That afternoon, when the automobile parties had finished drinking their
+tea, Barbara asked Ralph to take a little walk with her in the woods.
+She wanted to ask him something.
+
+"Ralph," she began, "if I should fall down in my tennis, in the next few
+days, would you and Hugh play a test game to see which of you is the
+better man to help Ruth out in the tournament?"
+
+Ralph shook his head. "No," he answered. "You are not losing your nerve,
+are you, Bab? Ruth and Hugh are wonderfully good players, but we are as
+good as the rest of 'em. I'll take my chances with you."
+
+"Would you be very, very much disappointed if we lost?"
+
+"Oh, yes," said Ralph, cheerily, "but I could bear it all right." He
+looked hard at Barbara for a minute. Then he said: "Go ahead, Barbara; I
+think I understand. I am game. And I'll never breathe it to a soul. Hugh
+and Ruth would never forgive us, if they found out!"
+
+"Well, Ralph," said Barbara, "I don't think there's going to be any
+reason for my trying to let Ruth win; she's a better player than I am,
+and she will win anyhow, but, in case she shouldn't, Ruth has been a
+perfect dear to Mollie and me!"
+
+"Gladys," said Ruth that night, when the young people were having an
+informal dance at the Casino, "I shall never forgive you for accusing
+Barbara of cheating, as you did today. Barbara is perfectly incapable of
+cheating. I can't understand why you don't like her."
+
+Ruth's frank face clouded. She was incapable of understanding the petty
+meannesses in Gladys's nature.
+
+"Mr. Townsend and I thought differently concerning Miss Thurston,"
+Gladys replied, "but I have made no accusations, and will make none. You
+will find things out for yourself, though, when it is too late!"
+
+Mollie was very sympathetic with Barbara that night. Things had not been
+going well with Bab for several days; she had an unfortunate habit of
+speaking her mind without thinking, and this trait had gotten her into
+trouble with Miss Sallie several times. That lady had a profound respect
+for the rich, while Barbara had been heard to say that some of the most
+fashionable ideas of Newport were "just nonsense."
+
+"Bab," comforted Mollie, "Mrs. Cartwright told me to say she was sorry
+she had been cross to you. She wants you to be the gypsy fortune-teller
+at her bazaar. She says you are very clever, and would do it better than
+anyone else; besides, she thinks no one would know you. She has lots of
+gypsy things to dress up in."
+
+"I would much rather be a waitress, like you girls," Bab declared.
+
+"But you will do what Mrs. Cartwright wants you to, won't you?" urged
+Mollie.
+
+"I'll see," said Bab.
+
+The automobile girls were seeing Newport indeed! Mrs. Erwin and Mrs.
+Cartwright were both leaders in society. The girls had not only been
+invited to Mrs. Erwin's ball, but to the big dance which took place
+after the tennis tournament, and Mrs. Cartwright was arranging for a
+Charity Fair, which was to be the most original entertainment of the
+Newport season.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII--THE NIGHT OF THE BALL
+
+
+"Yes, Hugh," Barbara said, as the last strains of the Merry Widow waltz
+died away, "I should like to rest here a minute." Barbara sank down on
+the low, rose-colored divan shaded by magnificent palms in Mrs. Erwin's
+conservatory. "I would love an ice, too," she added.
+
+It was the night of Mrs. Erwin's famous white and gold ball, long
+remembered in the history of splendid entertainments in Newport.
+
+Barbara truly wanted a minute to think. She had come to the ball under
+Miss Sallie's excellent chaperonage, early in the evening, and had been
+dancing hard ever since. The little girl from Kingsbridge, who had never
+before seen anything finer than a village entertainment, felt almost
+overcome by the splendor and magnificence of everything about her.
+
+Mrs. Erwin's ballroom was built out from the side of her handsome villa
+like a Greek portico. The conservatory joined it at one end, forming an
+inner triangular court. This court was filled with rare trees which
+threw their branches out over a miniature artificial lake. The guests
+could pass from the ballroom into this open garden, or they could enter
+it through the conservatory.
+
+The walls of the wonderful ballroom were covered with a white silk
+brocade, and on this night Mrs. Erwin had allowed only yellow flowers to
+be used as decorations. Great bowls of yellow roses perfumed the air,
+and golden orchids looked like troops of butterflies just poising before
+they took flight.
+
+"Now I know," said Mollie, with a catch in her breath, as she first came
+into the magnificent ballroom, "what King Midas's garden must have
+looked like, when he went round and caressed all the flowers in it with
+the golden touch."
+
+"Clever Mollie!" laughed Ruth. "I expect it is the golden touch that has
+been round this ballroom, or the touch of golden dollars, anyway."
+
+Mollie blushed. "I didn't mean that," she said.
+
+Barbara leaned her head against the rose-colored cushion, just the color
+of the jeweled spray in her hair; she was wearing the coral jewelry her
+mother had given her. Fortunately the two girls had saved their best
+party dresses for this ball, having been content to wear their summer
+muslins at the informal dances at the Casino.
+
+Barbara, in her dainty pink flowered organdie, with her cheeks flushed
+to match it in color, resembled a lovely wild rose.
+
+Curiously enough, amid all this elegance, Bab felt a little homesick.
+She kept thinking of her mother and the little cottage.
+
+"It's a wonderful experience for Mollie and me," she said to herself. "I
+hope I can tell mother exactly what it looks like. I am sure fairyland
+can't be half so gorgeous; fairies wear only dewdrops for jewels; but
+here, I believe, there must be nearly all the jewels in the world."
+
+Barbara did not know how big the world really is, nor how many people
+and jewels, both real and paste, there are in it. After all, artificial
+people are no better than paste jewels!
+
+Earlier in the evening Mollie and Barbara had stood with their hands
+tight together, watching the men and women enter the great reception
+room to speak to their host and hostess.
+
+"Diamonds," whispered Mollie to Bab, "seem as plentiful as the
+strawberries we gathered for the hotel people this summer. We didn't
+dream, then, that we were coming to Newport! Isn't my Mrs. Cartwright
+the most beautiful of them all?" wound up the loyal child.
+
+Mrs. Cartwright wore a white satin gown, with a diamond star in the
+tulle of her bodice. In her hair was a spray of diamonds, mounted to
+look like a single stalk of lilies of the valley, each jewel hanging
+from the slender stem like a tiny floweret.
+
+The conservatory was almost empty while Bab rested and waited.
+
+During the intermission in the dance nearly all the guests had wandered
+into the dining-room or into the moonlit garden.
+
+Barbara realized that she was almost completely hidden by the great palm
+trees that formed an arch over her head and drooped their long arms down
+over her. She had crept into this seat in order that she might see
+without being seen.
+
+Yet in spite of the quiet, Barbara was not resting. Her heart was
+beating fast with the excitement of this wonderful evening, and her tiny
+feet in the pink silk slippers still kept time to the last waltz she had
+danced with Hugh.
+
+The conservatory door, leading into the garden, was open. Barbara saw
+Mrs. Post, Governor Post, Harry Townsend and a woman in a gold-colored
+brocade enter the conservatory and stop to talk for a few minutes. They
+had not noticed Barbara nor did she feel it was quite proper to
+interrupt them, as she did not know the strange woman who was with them.
+
+Governor Post bowed in military fashion to the ladies.
+
+"Now," he said, "I'll go, and leave the young man to do the
+entertaining. We old fellows must make ourselves useful when our
+ornamental days are over. Mr. Townsend will look after you here, and I
+shall find a waiter and have him bring you something to eat."
+
+Barbara saw Harry Townsend talking in his most impressive manner to the
+two women.
+
+"It is curious," Bab thought, to herself, "what a society man Harry
+Townsend is. Gladys says he is only twenty-two. I wonder where he comes
+from. Nobody seems to know. Oh, yes; Gladys said he was educated in
+Paris. She met him on shipboard."
+
+The little girl from her green bower was an interested watcher. It was
+fascinating to be able to see all that was going on, without being seen.
+Bab sat as quiet as a mouse, taking no part in the conversation.
+
+Mrs. Post was a handsome woman of about fifty, who looked rather stern
+to the girls; but Hugh assured them that she was "dead easy," once you
+got on the right side of her. Her husband was a prominent lawyer in
+Washington, and their winters were usually spent in the capital.
+
+Mrs. Post's gown was nearly covered by a long, light-colored chiffon
+wrap, with a high collar lined with a curious ornamental embroidery.
+
+"Harry," she said, turning to the young man with her, "it is warm in
+here with these tropical plants; will you be kind enough to remove my
+wrap?"
+
+The conservatory was dimly lighted. Barbara sat in the shadow. Between
+her and the party she was watching was a central row of flowers and
+evergreens, dividing the long room into two aisles.
+
+She saw Harry rise and lean over Mrs. Post, who only half rose from her
+chair. Deftly and with wonderful ease and swiftness, Townsend undid the
+clasp at her throat; but, for a moment, the embroidery from the collar
+seemed to have caught in her hair.
+
+Barbara's eyes grew wide and staring with surprise. As the coat slipped
+back from Mrs. Post's shoulders, she saw a string like a tiny green
+serpent glide with magic smoothness and swiftness from her throat, and
+drop into the shrubbery back of her, or--into Harry Townsend's hand?
+
+What should she do? Announce that she had seen her string of emeralds
+disappear? Mrs. Post was talking and laughing gayly with her friend in
+the gold-colored dress. Harry was smiling quietly by them. Barbara
+rubbed her eyes. Surely she was mistaken. She had been dazzled by the
+wonderful sights she had seen that night. While she hesitated her
+opportunity passed.
+
+Governor Post returned, saying to his wife: "Come, my dear, I have found
+Miss Stuart and a friend. They have a table out in the garden, and want
+us to join them."
+
+Mrs. Post again drew her wrap over her shoulders and turned to leave the
+conservatory. As she rose she saw Barbara.
+
+"You there, my child?" she said in a friendly way. "Why didn't you speak
+to me?"
+
+Barbara could only answer her stupidly. "I was waiting for Hugh."
+
+When Hugh returned he found Barbara looking as pale as though she had
+just seen a ghost.
+
+"What's the matter?" he asked at once. "Are you ill?"
+
+But Bab shook her head. "I'll go find Miss Stuart," the young man
+suggested.
+
+"You'll do no such thing, Hugh!" Barbara had recovered her breath.
+"There's nothing much the matter with me--at least, I am not sure whether
+I ought to tell you."
+
+"Bab and Hugh! Well, I like this!" Grace's voice sounded from the
+doorway, as she and Donald Cartwright came in, followed by Ruth and
+Ralph. "Here you two have run away by yourselves, when we promised to
+stick together this evening, in order to keep up each other's courage.
+You ought to see Gladys! She's as angry as can he, and is wandering
+round with Mollie and the freshman. Harry has been gone somewhere for a
+long time, and she has no partner for the next dance."
+
+"Are you sick, Bab?" inquired Ruth. She, too, noticed that Bab was
+unusually pale. Before she received an answer, Governor and Mrs. Post
+came into the conservatory, followed by Harry Townsend, Miss Stuart and
+the woman in yellow.
+
+"You are just the fellow I want to see, Hugh," said his father, so
+quietly that no one except those near him could hear. "Your mother has
+lost her emerald necklace, and she thought she had it on when she was
+last in here. We don't want to create any excitement, or to let Mrs.
+Erwin or the servants know until we have made a thorough search. She
+very probably dropped it among these flowers. Lock the door out there,
+will you? Miss Carter, you and Donald, please keep guard at the other
+door while these young people help me look."
+
+"I thought----" said Barbara.
+
+"Why, you were in here, child, when we were. You were on the other side
+of these evergreens," said Mrs. Post. "What did you say?"
+
+"I thought it might be in these evergreens," Barbara finished, lamely,
+getting down on her knees to assist in the search. Dared she speak of
+what she thought she had seen? Dared she speak with no evidence but her
+own word? Could she have been in error? First, she would look with the
+others.
+
+Every palm, every flower, every inch of space was carefully gone over.
+No sign of the missing emeralds!
+
+"Did anyone enter the conservatory after I left, Miss Thurston?"
+inquired Mrs. Post coldly. She was worried by the loss of her jewels,
+which were of great value, as well as annoyed by the excitement she was
+causing.
+
+"Nobody came in," Bab said, "only Hugh."
+
+"I am exceedingly sorry," the governor said at last, "but Mrs. Erwin
+will have to be notified. The jewels were either lost or stolen, and
+must be found. If the servants find the necklace a liberal reward will
+induce them to return it."
+
+The older people left the conservatory.
+
+Just as the younger ones turned to leave, Barbara, whose strange
+expression had not escaped the sharp eyes of Ruth, laid her hand on
+Hugh's arm.
+
+"Ask Harry Townsend to stay here a minute with us, won't you please,
+Hugh?" said Barbara hoarsely.
+
+"Say, Townsend," Hugh called, "come back a moment. I want to speak to
+you. Or, rather, Miss Thurston does."
+
+"Mr. Townsend," said Barbara, her face pale as death, "did you not see
+Mrs. Post's necklace when you took off her wrap in here?"
+
+"No," said Harry quietly. "Did you?"
+
+"Ask him, Hugh," said Barbara, desperately, "to show you what he has in
+his pockets!"
+
+"Oh, say, Barbara!" Hugh answered. "I can't do that. It's a little too
+much."
+
+But Ralph stepped forward. "We don't know what Miss Thurston means, but
+she most certainly doesn't mean to insult Mr. Townsend unnecessarily.
+Why, then, should he mind turning out his pockets? Here Hugh," Ralph
+turned, "search me first. Then Mr. Townsend won't object to the selfsame
+process."
+
+Hugh's face was crimson, but he looked through Ralph's pockets in a
+gingerly fashion.
+
+When he finished Harry Townsend turned quietly to Barbara. "I don't know
+why you wish to insult me," he said to her, "but I am perfectly willing
+to have Mr. Post search me. You were the only person in the conservatory
+after the jewels were lost!"
+
+Hugh started his search.
+
+Barbara leaned sick and faint against her chair, expecting every moment
+to see Hugh draw the jewels forth. She kept her eyes averted while Harry
+turned his pockets wrong side out and finally opened his vest.
+
+"Barbara," said Hugh, coldly, and Bab turned around. "We owe Mr.
+Townsend an apology. He is certainly no thief!"
+
+The jewels were nowhere to be found.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV--BARBARA'S SECRET
+
+
+"Bab, Bab! What is the matter with you!" cried Mollie, for Barbara had
+thrown herself on the bed after their return from the ball, bursting
+into a torrent of tears.
+
+"Oh, I don't know," sobbed Bab. "I must be wrong, or crazy, or
+something. Yet how can people doubt their own eyes?"
+
+Mollie stopped spreading out her butterfly dress, in which she had
+looked so pretty at the party, and flung her arms round her sister.
+
+"Just tell me what is the matter, dear! Has anyone hurt your feelings?
+If it's that Gladys Le Baron I'll certainly get even with her!"
+
+But Bab didn't answer.
+
+"I'm going to call Ruth," said Mollie. "I don't want to waken Aunt
+Sallie, but you seemed queer all the way home from the ball."
+
+Bab sat up, when Ruth came in, and dried her eyes.
+
+"I am so sorry you feel so badly, Barbara, dear," said Ruth, "but, of
+course, it was a wretched mistake for you to have made. Let's try to
+forget that horrid scene. Some servant will pick up the necklace in the
+morning, and return it to Mrs. Post. Hugh and I have decided that it
+will be wise for those of us who were in the conservatory just at the
+last not to speak of what happened. You will forgive us, Mollie, dear,
+won't you, if we don't tell even you?"
+
+"No, I won't!" cried Mollie, stamping her little slippered foot. "Bab
+can't have secrets that make her cry--not from her own sister. And I
+don't see, anyway, what Bab has to do with Mrs. Post having lost her
+emerald necklace. If you think the loss is a secret, you're wrong,
+because everybody in the ballroom was whispering it about half an hour
+afterwards. I heard of it from a perfect stranger!"
+
+"Mollie," said Ruth quietly, "will you please do me a favor? Don't ask
+Barbara to tell you what happened that has worried her. It was nothing
+but an unfortunate mistake, and will all blow over in the morning."
+
+"Very well, Ruth," agreed Mollie. "I won't ask. But I am not a baby, and
+I am very sure it would be better if I were told."
+
+Thus poor Bab had no one in whom to confide, and had to bear her ugly
+secret all alone.
+
+Ruth kissed her good night, saying: "Cheer up, silly girl, and sleep
+late as you can in the morning. You know, it's to be the last day of our
+tennis practice, and you are going to beat me tomorrow!"
+
+Ruth tiptoed over to Mollie, who was undressing in silence. "Mistress
+Mollie," she said, "forgive me; do, please, like a dear. Talking about
+horrid things only makes them _horrider_!"
+
+Ruth, in the depths of her heart, thought that Barbara had been most
+unwise in her hinted accusation of Harry Townsend. For Bab's sake she
+thought it best for everyone to forget what had happened. It was a fault
+in Ruth's nature that she loved only pleasant things, and would often
+give up, even when she knew she was right, in order not to make trouble.
+
+The next morning a Barbara of heavy eyes and white cheeks joined the
+players on the tennis court.
+
+Plainly Harry had confided what had happened to Gladys, for she did not
+speak to Bab as she came up to her, but tossed her head and bit her
+lips. Gladys said nothing, however, for Harry had made her promise she
+would not breathe what he had told her.
+
+As for Mr. Townsend, he treated Barbara with cold politeness. But
+Barbara was beginning to have her eyes opened. "If I am right about
+him," she thought to herself, "then I shall have to be very careful. I
+believe he is more clever than any of us dream!"
+
+It was Hugh whose manner was most constrained. He could not forgive the
+scene of the night before, in which he had been forced to take an
+unwilling part. Not until Ruth called him over to her, and gave him a
+lecture, did he beg Bab's pardon, and ask that they all forget the
+experience of the night before.
+
+"Come on!" he called, cheerily, to the group of tennis players. "It's do
+or die to-day--the last test day for us. It will show us who is to
+represent our crowd at the tournament. The girl and the fellow who can
+beat all the rest of us stand a good chance of winning the silver cup.
+Mrs. Cartwright says she has been closely following the game of the star
+players and she thinks we have them beaten to a finish. Come on, Ruth,
+let's show 'em that we're out for blood!"
+
+Swish! Barbara's ball flew over the net and curved toward the ground at
+Hugh's left. Not too swiftly for that young gentleman; while Ruth's
+heart gave a jump of apprehension, Hugh made a left-hand swing with his
+racquet and sent the ball whizzing back.
+
+"Fifteen!" Ralph called out, in a bored tone. He had failed in his
+return.
+
+The battle raged all morning.
+
+Grace and Donald Cartwright, Gladys and Mr. Townsend were soon out of
+the running. When they had finished they sank gratefully on the ground,
+to watch the others play.
+
+The field was thus left to Barbara and Ralph, to Ruth and Hugh. The sets
+stood even, and two more games would decide.
+
+A small crowd of visitors stood around the court. Mrs. Cartwright,
+having finished her own game, came over to look on. Miss Sallie was
+trying to be impartial, but she was really deeply interested in Ruth's
+success. Mrs. Erwin, Mrs. Post, the governor, all their friends, were
+lined up to behold the battle.
+
+A subdued discussion of the lost emeralds had been going on at the
+Casino all morning. After a thorough search of every inch of Mrs.
+Erwin's house and grounds, there was still no sign of the jewels; but
+Governor Post and Mrs. Erwin had made every effort to have the scandal
+of the necklace hushed up. They had seen the Newport detectives, and had
+telegraphed to New York for two experts to be sent down to handle the
+case. In the meantime they had been advised not to talk.
+
+Now the only upright person, who could have given them any information
+had, for just a little while, forgotten all about it. Whatever Barbara
+did she did with her whole heart. Today she played tennis.
+
+"Ralph," Hugh called, "remember, now, it's two straight games to finish
+the way we stand!"
+
+There was no more conversation. Even the watchers held their breath. The
+referee sat on the ground, rapidly calling out the
+score--"forty--thirty--deuce!"
+
+"Is this game to go on forever?" Miss Sallie inquired, plaintively. "My
+girls will be wholly worn out."
+
+"Advantage in!" shouted the referee.
+
+Ralph sprang forward for his ball; his foot slipped. Barbara, who had
+been expecting him to return it, was not ready.
+
+"Game!"
+
+Ruth and Hugh shook hands with each other. But Hugh called over: "Say,
+Ralph, was this game all right? You turned your ankle, didn't you?"
+
+"Surely I did," said Ralph. "I was an idiot, but it is your game just
+the same. I'll make it up next time, Barbara--see if I don't!"
+
+"My dear Ruth," said Miss Sallie, "I cannot permit it. You will be
+exhausted."
+
+"Here, Barbara," said Mollie, "do try to get your breath, and let me fix
+up your hair."
+
+"No prinking!" Ralph called out. "This is business, ladies!"
+
+The good old Casino courts never saw a finer tennis battle. Ralph and
+Bab played as though they had forgotten their talk in the woods that day
+when they had tea at Mrs. Duffy's. Ruth and Hugh were foeman worthy of
+their best steel.
+
+The game stood forty-all, and it was Bab's serve. Bab's serves were what
+made her tennis remarkable. They were as swift and straight and true as
+a boy's.
+
+Hugh stood ready waiting. Barbara caught a look in Ruth's face, on the
+other side of the net. Her big blue eyes, frank and clear as a baby's,
+were glowing with interest, with hope, with ambition! Like a flash the
+thought of all Ruth had done for them came into Bab's mind. Did it
+weaken the force of her drive? Or was it because her mind was
+distracted? The ball fell just inside the net on her own side.
+
+"Try again, partner mine!" shouted Ralph, "show 'em what you're made
+of!"
+
+This time Barbara was plainly nervous. She felt that nearly all the
+friends around them wanted Ruth to win. They would be delighted, of
+course, with her success and kind to her, but open-hearted and
+open-handed Ruth was the favorite with them all; at least, Bab thought
+so.
+
+With returning courage, Bab hit her last ball a hard blow. It rose high
+in the air! Hugh sprang on his tiptoes to receive it and gave a mighty
+shout. The ball had fallen outside the line.
+
+Ralph and Barbara were the first to congratulate the victors. Barbara
+cleared the net with a bound, forgetting both her age and her audience.
+
+"There, Ruth, you and Hugh are the best players that ever happened!"
+Barbara spoke with a glowing face. Then she turned to Ralph: "I lost the
+game for you," she said. "I am so sorry."
+
+"Oh, no, you didn't, my lady," said Ralph. "I lost the game before this
+one, so we're even."
+
+An admiring circle had formed around Ruth and Hugh.
+
+"Your father will be delighted, I know, child," said Miss Sallie.
+
+"I haven't won the cup yet, Auntie," protested Ruth.
+
+"But you must, child," said Mrs. Cartwright, smiling. "I am betting on
+you and Hugh in the tournament, and you mustn't make me lose my box of
+candy."
+
+"Barbara," said Ralph, shyly, as they walked off toward home a little
+later, "I don't like to ask you, but did you mean to miss those last
+serves?"
+
+Barbara shook her head. "No," she said, "I don't think I meant to. I
+don't know. But they were the best players, weren't they, Ralph?"
+
+"Certainly," Ralph answered.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV--RUTH IN DANGER
+
+
+Hugh, looking much embarrassed, came up early next morning to see Ruth.
+
+"I have an invitation to deliver to you, Ruth, but I am rather ashamed
+to do it, for I am afraid you will be angry. Mother told me to come over
+and ask Miss Stuart and yourself and the girls--except Barbara--to come
+out with us for the day on the yacht."
+
+"Why, Hugh Post!" cried Ruth. "What do you mean?"
+
+"Well, it's like this," Hugh said, desperately; "mother told me to
+explain to you exactly how things stand, so you will not think her rude.
+You see, mother is visiting Mrs. Erwin, and of course Mrs. Erwin,
+Gladys, and her devoted Harry Townsend have to go along on the yacht
+with us. Well, Gladys told mother that neither she nor Mr. Townsend
+could go if Barbara went. Gladys would not tell mother why, and, as you
+told me to keep that scene in the conservatory a secret, I didn't know
+what it was wisest for me to do."
+
+"Thank you," Ruth answered; "but tell your mother that none of us can
+accept."
+
+"O Ruth!" exclaimed Hugh. "I am fearfully disappointed, and mother I
+know will be angry."
+
+"I am afraid I don't care, Hugh," was Ruth's reply. "I don't like your
+mother's inviting any of us, if she had to leave Bab out."
+
+As Hugh turned to leave the front porch, where he had found Ruth alone,
+she called after him: "Wait a minute, please. I don't know what to tell
+Aunt Sallie. Your mother will be sure to speak to her of her invitation,
+and Auntie will think I should have let her refuse for herself. Oh, I
+know!"
+
+Ruth's face cleared. "I will go tell Aunt Sallie that she and Grace and
+Mollie are asked. I'll stay with my dear Bab," she finished a little
+defiantly. "If I am also left out of the party, no one will think
+anything of it."
+
+"Oh, I say, Ruth," Hugh urged, "please come."
+
+"Sorry," she said, shaking her head decidedly.
+
+"I expect you're right," Hugh replied.
+
+Miss Sallie, Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post's invitation with
+pleasure. As Mrs. Post's yacht was small, they did not think it strange
+that the other two girls were left out.
+
+How angry Mollie would have been, had she guessed the truth. Not a step
+would she have gone. As it was, she begged Barbara to go in her place.
+
+But Bab was too clever. She understood what had happened, and was glad
+to be left out of the party. She put her arm around Ruth's waist,
+whispering coaxingly: "Do go along with the others, old story-teller.
+You know you were asked."
+
+Ruth shook her head decidedly. "Not on your life," she slangily
+retorted. Fortunately, Miss Sallie did not hear her.
+
+"What shall we do this afternoon, Bab?" inquired Ruth after luncheon.
+"Suppose you and I go for a long walk?"
+
+"Don't think I am a lazy good-for-nothing, Ruth," Barbara begged, "but I
+have a little headache, and I must write to mother. Mollie and I have
+been neglecting her shamefully of late. I haven't even written her about
+the wonderful ball."
+
+"Are you going to tell her what happened, Bab?" Ruth inquired.
+
+"I suppose so," sighed Bab. She was half inclined to discuss the
+unfortunate affair with Ruth, but changed her mind.
+
+"Well, Bab," Ruth declared, "I shall go for the walk 'all by my
+lonesomes.' I'll be back in time for dinner. The others are to dine on
+the yacht, so we need not look for them until bedtime. I think I'll take
+the cliff walk, for the sea is so splendid to-day."
+
+Left alone, Barbara got out her writing materials and sat down by the
+window, but she did not begin to write.
+
+"I wonder," she asked herself, "why we have been mixed up in burglaries
+ever since Ruth began talking about our trip to Newport? First, our poor
+little twenty-dollar gold-pieces disappear; then we have that dreadful
+robber at New Haven. Now Mrs. Post's emerald necklace is stolen! It
+could not all have been Mr. Townsend!" Barbara sat with her hands
+clenched.
+
+"If it is true," she went on, "and I saw the necklace disappear with my
+own eyes, then we have another Raffles to deal with. Mr. Raffles, the
+second! I believe I am the only person that suspects him. Well, Mr.
+Harry Townsend!" Barbara's red lips tightened, "you are successful now,
+but we shall see whose wits are better, yours or mine!"
+
+Barbara's face turned a deep crimson. "I understood. He wanted to
+suggest I was the thief. Only he didn't dare to accuse me openly the
+other night. I won't tell mother," Barbara at last decided. "I'll just
+watch--and wait!"
+
+Barbara wrote her mother a long, happy letter, without a hint of the
+troubles she began to feel closing in on her. Then she straightened her
+own and Mollie's bureau drawers and arranged their clothes in the two
+closets. Still Ruth did not come.
+
+Twice Barbara went into her room. It was half past five--six--Mrs. Ewing's
+early dinner was served at half after six.
+
+"Mrs. Ewing," Barbara said, knocking timidly at her door. "Have you seen
+anything of Ruth? She has been gone such a long time that I am worried
+about her."
+
+But Mrs. Ewing knew nothing of her.
+
+"I believe I'll go to meet her," said Barbara, "and hurry her along. She
+must be on her way home." Ralph was on the yacht with Hugh, or Barbara
+would have asked him to accompany her.
+
+For the first half mile along the cliff walk Barbara strolled slowly,
+expecting every moment to see Ruth hurrying along. As the walk dipped
+down into hollows and rose again in the high places, it was difficult to
+see any distance ahead.
+
+The walk was entirely deserted, and Bab's heart commenced to beat faster
+as the darkness began to gather.
+
+"I suppose," thought Barbara, "Ruth has gone somewhere to make a visit,
+and has stayed late without thinking. She's probably at home, now,
+waiting for me, so I'll get the scolding from Mrs. Ewing for being late
+to dinner. I believe I'll go on back home." Barbara actually turned and
+started in the opposite direction.
+
+Something within her seemed to call: "Bab! Bab!" The voice was so urgent
+she was frightened. "Ruth needs you," it seemed to say.
+
+Bab began calling aloud, "Ruth! Ruth!" Her voice sounded high and shrill
+in her own ears; but only the echo answered her, and the noise of the
+waves pounding against the shore. She could see the distant lights in
+the houses along the way, but Barbara dared not stop to ask for help
+while that inner voice urged her on.
+
+Barbara was running, now, along the narrow, difficult path. "O Ruth,
+dear Ruth!" she cried. "Why don't you answer me? Are you anywhere,
+needing me?" She heard a low sound and stopped. Nothing but her own
+imagination! There were always queer noises along the cliff shore, where
+the water swirled into little eddies and gurgled out again.
+
+Barbara waited. She heard nothing more, so she plunged on. Suddenly she
+drew back with a gasp of horror. Part of the cliff walk had disappeared!
+Where a bridge of stone had spanned a narrow chasm there was a terrible,
+yawning hole. Jutting out their vicious arms were rocks, rocks, forming
+a sheer drop of seventy feet to the beach below.
+
+Involuntarily, Barbara had flung herself down on her hands and knees to
+keep from falling over into the abyss.
+
+"Ruth couldn't have," she thought. "No, no!" But hark! Was that again
+the low moaning sound of the waters? Barbara lay flat on the rocks,
+stretching her head over the embankment. There, in a cleft between two
+great rocks, fifteen feet below her, a dark object hung!
+
+"Ruth! Ruth!" Bab called, her voice coming from her throat in a hoarse
+cry. Again she heard the faint moan. This time she knew the sound. It
+was Ruth! What could she do? Run for help? Any second, Bab realized,
+Ruth's strength might fail, and she would let go her grasp. Barbara
+could not bear to think of the horrible end.
+
+As far as she could see, Ruth's feet rested on a narrow ledge of rock,
+while she clung with her hands to a cliff that jutted out overhead.
+"Ruth! Ruth!" Barbara called again, but this time her voice was clear
+and strong. "It is Bab! Do you understand? Hold on a little longer. I am
+coming."
+
+Swiftly a prayer came into Barbara's mind: "Lord, show me the way." Yet
+even while she prayed she acted. "Help, help!" Bab called out.
+
+[Illustration: Barbara Lay Flat on the Rocks.]
+
+She tore off the long woolen shawl which she had wrapped round her when
+she came out to seek Ruth. With hands that seemed to gain a superhuman
+strength Bab tore it into three, four strips. She dared not make the
+strips narrower for fear they would not hold. Then she took off her
+skirt of light wool and wrenched it into broad bands. How, Barbara never
+knew. She felt that the power was given her.
+
+Growing out from a rock between Bab and the moaning figure on the cliff
+below was a small tree, its roots deeply imbedded in the hard soil. Ruth
+had evidently reached out to grasp this tree as the cliff bridge gave
+way beneath her feet; but, missing it, her feet had touched a ledge of
+rock and she had flung out her arms and clasped the stone above her. How
+much longer would her failing strength serve her?
+
+Bab again lay down and measured the length of her queer rope. She found
+that by reaching the tree she could tie the rope to it and it would then
+be long enough to extend to Ruth. Removing her shoes, Barbara slowly,
+and with infinite caution, crawled down the jagged rocks, clinging with
+her hands and toes. Finally she arrived at the tree, and fastened her
+rope securely around it, only to find it dangled just above Ruth's head.
+Yet what was the use? If Ruth for an instant let go the rock to which
+she clung her feet would slip from the ledge, and Bab's poor woolen
+strings could never hold her.
+
+But Barbara understood this. She was face to face with the great moment
+of her life, and, though she was only a simple country girl, neither her
+brains nor her strength failed her.
+
+Did she stop at the tree after the rope was tied? No! Still clinging,
+sliding, her hands bruised and bleeding, Barbara was making her way to
+where Ruth hung. Bab had said truly that she could climb. Never had a
+girl a better opportunity to prove her boast! There were moments when
+she believed she could not go on. Then the thought of Ruth renewed her
+courage.
+
+Just above Ruth's head, on the left side of her, was a great boulder
+with a curved, smooth surface. It was to this rock Bab made her way. She
+was so close to Ruth now that she could lean over and touch her.
+"Courage, dear," she whispered, and she thought she saw Ruth's pale lips
+smile. She had not fainted; for this, Barbara was grateful.
+
+When Barbara was a little girl her mother had been ashamed of her tomboy
+ways; but she had given in, with a gentle sigh, when Bab grew and
+flourished by playing boys' games, by learning various boyish arts;
+among them was the knack of tying a sailor knot.
+
+Edging closer and closer to Ruth she managed to reach out and catch hold
+of the rope she had fastened to the tree. With one hand on her own rock,
+with the other she drew the cord about Ruth, fastening it firmly under
+her arms. The rope was not strong enough to draw Ruth up to safety, but
+it would steady her should her hands give way.
+
+Somehow, in some way, Barbara must get further help.
+
+Now that her first duty was over, she began to call loudly: "Help,
+help!" Her shouts roused Ruth, who joined feebly in the cry. No sound
+answered them. Only the seagulls swept over them, uttering their hoarse
+call.
+
+Barbara felt her own strength going. She tried to crawl up the slippery
+rock again, but her power was gone. She, too, felt herself--slipping,
+slipping! With one wild cry she caught at her rock, and all was still!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI--HELP ARRIVES
+
+
+Mr. Cartwright was dining alone on his Japanese veranda, as his wife was
+with the yachting party, and was not expected to dinner.
+
+Jones, the butler, came in softly, placing the soup in front of his
+master. As he put down the plate his hand shook. Surely he heard a cry!
+
+At the same moment Mr. Cartwright started up. "Jones, what was that?"
+They both stood still. There was no further sound.
+
+"Must 'ave been children playing, sir," suggested Jones, and Mr.
+Cartwright continued his dinner.
+
+"Help, help!" The sound came from afar off, loud and shrill. This time
+there was no mistake.
+
+"Coming!" Mr. Cartwright shouted. "Coming!" As he ran across the lawn,
+closely followed by Jones, he snatched a heavy coil of rope left by the
+workmen who had been swinging hammocks and arranging for Mrs.
+Cartwright's outdoor bazaar.
+
+"Call again, if you can," Mr. Cartwright yelled. Faintly, a voice seemed
+to come up out of the earth. "Help, help! Oh, please!"
+
+Mr. Cartwright caught the direction of the voice, and ran along the
+cliffs. In a moment he espied the fallen bridge and guessed what had
+happened; then he and Jones saw the two girls in their perilous
+position.
+
+Leaning over, he called: "Can you hear me?"
+
+Bab answered, "Yes."
+
+"Then keep still," shouted Mr. Cartwright, "and I'll have you up here in
+a moment."
+
+Quickly he knotted the rope around Jones's waist; then, some yards
+farther on, he tied it round his own. "Go back," he said to his butler,
+"and lie down." Jones was large and heavy; Mr. Cartwright was a tall
+man, thin, but strong.
+
+Slowly he lowered himself to the tree where Bab had tied her poor rope,
+and flung an improvised lasso over to Bab. "Not me," said Barbara,
+forgetting her grammar. "Ruth first."
+
+"Can she climb with the help of the rope?" asked their rescuer.
+
+Ruth had not spoken, but she opened her eyes, gave a shudder and
+fainted.
+
+Like a flash Bab had thrown the lasso over her shoulders, and Ruth hung
+swaying in the air! Fortunately her feet were still on the ledge of the
+rock. Mr. Cartwright caught his rope round the tree, at the same time
+calling to Jones, "Throw me another coil!" He then clambered down and
+half carried, half dragged the fainting Ruth to the top of the cliff.
+
+Once above, he dropped his burden, and again flung the lasso over the
+edge of the rocks to Barbara, who, crawling and being pulled by turns,
+came up in safety. When she had reached the top, and stood by the side
+of the fainting Ruth, Bab's courage deserted her, and she burst into
+tears.
+
+"Get the young ladies to the house at once," ordered Mr. Cartwright, far
+more frightened than he had been while playing rescuer.
+
+How fared the yachting party? They did not have a good day. Hugh was in
+a bad humor because Ruth had not come; Ralph missed Barbara, and, try as
+they might to avoid it, the conversation would drift back to the lost
+emeralds.
+
+"I shall never understand it," said Mrs. Erwin to Aunt Sallie, in
+subdued tones. "The detectives say they have made a thorough search of
+my servants' quarters, have watched their movements ever since the night
+of the theft, and they can find none of them of whom they are even
+suspicious. They do say"--this time Mrs. Erwin dropped her voice to a
+whisper, for the woman who was with Mrs. Post at the time of the robbery
+was approaching them--"they say that the burglar was probably--one of the
+guests!"
+
+This woman, who had worn a gold-colored brocade, was an American, who
+had married a Frenchman, but her husband was supposed to have been dead
+several years. She had come to Newport, this season, with letters of
+introduction, and was already very popular.
+
+"Do you know," she inquired, "where Miss Le Baron and Mr. Townsend are?
+No one has seen them recently."
+
+"Oh," laughed Mrs. Erwin, "we leave those two young people alone. I
+believe they have an affair of their own. Have you known Mr. Townsend
+before this meeting?"
+
+"Oh, no," replied the woman, in a curious tone; "at least, I have met
+him once or twice. I can't say I know him."
+
+"Ladies," Governor Post said, coming up to them, "I believe I will cheat
+you of part of your sail today. There are ugly clouds gathering, and I
+think it better to put into harbor. We can go ashore, or not, as we feel
+inclined."
+
+As the yacht neared the shore, Miss Sallie grew restless. It was the
+first time since the beginning of their trip that she had been separated
+from any of her girls. As soon as dinner was over she begged Governor
+Post to put herself, Grace and Mollie ashore. Immediately the rest of
+the party agreed to disembark with her.
+
+Ralph and the two girls followed Aunt Sallie home. For once, she hurried
+on before them, urged by a kind of foreboding.
+
+She found Mrs. Ewing, white and frightened, walking up and down in front
+of her gate. Mr. Ewing and the maids had left the house, half an hour
+before, to search for the lost girls.
+
+Thoughtlessly Mrs. Ewing rushed up to Miss Stuart. "Have Ruth and
+Barbara joined you?" she asked.
+
+"Why, no," replied the two girls in amazement. Ralph stared in surprise;
+but Miss Sallie spoke firmly. "Tell me, at once, what has happened." In
+the midst of real danger Miss Stuart was a different woman, as Mr.
+Stuart well knew when he allowed her to chaperon the automobile girls.
+
+Mrs. Ewing had nothing to tell. All she knew was that the girls had gone
+out for a long walk, and, at eight o'clock, had not come back.
+
+"Come with me, Ralph," Miss Sallie demanded. Grace and Mollie followed
+them.
+
+"Don't be frightened, Mollie," Grace begged, trying to talk cheerfully,
+though she was trembling violently. "Rely upon Ruth and Bab to get
+safely out of a scrape."
+
+Just as they reached the end of the street that turned into the cliff
+walk, Miss Sallie espied a servant of the Cartwrights running in their
+direction. "Stop him!" she commanded Ralph.
+
+"Sure, mum, I am to tell you," the gardener's boy said, "the young
+ladies was not killed."
+
+"Not killed!" the girls cried, in horror. Ralph took hold of Mollie's
+hand.
+
+"That is what I was to say, mum," said the boy, evidently much excited.
+"They is not much hurt and will be home soon."
+
+"Take me to them, at once," ordered Miss Sallie, asking no further
+questions. The gardener's boy led the way.
+
+When the party arrived, Mrs. Cartwright, still in her yachting suit, ran
+out to meet them. Ruth came to the door, walking a little stiffly.
+Barbara followed her, and straightway begged Mollie not to cry.
+
+"It's all over, silly little Mollie," she whispered, "and neither Ruth
+nor I am hurt. We are just a little scratched, and very dirty, and we
+want to go to bed."
+
+"Mr. Cartwright has already had the doctor in to see us, Auntie," said
+Ruth. "He is in the drawing room now. We have no broken bones or
+strains, though my shoulders ache rather badly."
+
+Mollie and Grace were both crying, just because there was nothing, now,
+for them to cry about.
+
+Miss Sallie made Ruth sit down again, as her niece was almost too weak
+to stand. After listening in silence to Ruth's story, Aunt Sallie held
+out her hand to Mr. Cartwright. "My brother and I can never thank you,
+and I shall not attempt it. Ruth means all our world." Then she turned
+to Barbara, and gathered her in her arms. "My child," she said, "you are
+the bravest girl I ever knew." Miss Stuart choked, and could say no
+more.
+
+"Do you remember, Bab," asked Mollie, when Barbara was safe in her own
+bed, "how once you said you would one day repay Ruth and Mr. Stuart for
+their kindness to us? Well, I think, and I know they will think, that
+you have kept your promise. Yes; I'm going to let her go to sleep, Miss
+Sallie," Mollie called back, in answer to Miss Stuart's remonstrance.
+
+Ruth and Barbara were utterly worn out, and had been put into warm baths
+and rubbed down with alcohol. "I am not even going to give two such
+sensible girls doses of aromatic spirits of ammonia," declared the
+doctor, who had driven over from Mrs. Cartwright's with them and had
+seen the girls safely in bed. "They will be all right in a day or two,"
+he assured Miss Sallie, "as soon as they get over the nervous shock."
+
+It took six telegrams to Mr. Stuart and Mrs. Thurston to persuade them
+the girls were unhurt and able to remain in Newport.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII--THE FORTUNE-TELLERS
+
+
+"My dears," said Mrs. Cartwright, two days after the accident, coming
+into the sitting-room, where Ruth and Bab were idling, "I suppose you
+know that you are the heroines of Newport. No one is talking about
+anything but your accident. You have almost put the jewel robbery out of
+our minds. How do you feel this morning?"
+
+"Oh, as fit as anything," smiled Ruth, though she still looked a little
+pale. "I have just written a long letter to father, to assure him that I
+shall be well enough to play in the tournament next week."
+
+"That is fine," declared Mrs. Cartwright. "And you, Bab?"
+
+"There never was much the matter with me," Bab answered.
+
+"Then you are just the girls I am looking for," said Mrs. Cartwright,
+clapping her hands. "You know, I asked you, Bab, to play gypsy
+fortune-teller at my bazaar; now I want to ask Ruth to join you.
+Everyone thinks you are both laid up from your accident, and no one will
+suspect who you are. The plans for the bazaar are going splendidly. I
+think I shall make lots of money for my poor sailors. I shall have it as
+simple and attractive as I can--a real country fair, with booths and
+lemonade stands. I am going to give these jaded Newport people a taste
+of the simple life. Do say you will help me."
+
+Both girls shook their heads. "We do not know how to tell fortunes,"
+they protested.
+
+"Oh, it's only fun," argued Mrs. Cartwright. "You can make up any
+foolishness you like as you go along. I'll show you how to run the
+cards, as they call it. Has either of you ever seen anyone do it?"
+
+Bab confessed she had watched "Granny Ann." Suddenly she left her chair,
+and came hobbling over to Mrs. Cartwright, saying, in Granny Ann's own
+high-pitched, whining voice: "Lovely lady, would you know the future,
+grave or gay, cross my hand with a silver piece and list to what I say."
+
+Gravely, Mrs. Cartwright extracted a dollar from her silver purse, and
+made the gypsy sign on Bab's outstretched hand. Barbara immediately told
+her such a nonsensical fortune, in a perfectly grave voice, that she and
+Ruth both screamed with laughter.
+
+"You'll do, Bab," said Mrs. Cartwright. "Won't you join her, Ruth?"
+
+"Well," said Ruth, "I never desert Mrs. Micawber these days, or, to put
+it plainly, Miss Bab Thurston. So I'm game."
+
+"Thursday, then, remember, and this is Tuesday," said Mrs. Cartwright.
+"I am the busiest woman in Newport, so I must run away now. You should
+see my house and lawn. They are full of workmen. The fair is to begin
+promptly at four, and will last until midnight. We shall have dancing on
+the lawn, but I want you girls and a few friends to come into the house
+after supper. When you finish playing fortune-tellers you can slip up to
+my room and dress. Nobody must guess, when you come down, that you have
+not just arrived. Now, I positively must be off. Tell Mollie and Grace I
+am depending on them to act as waitresses. Gladys isn't willing to help.
+She wants all her time for Harry Townsend."
+
+"Ruth," said Aunt Sallie, the afternoon of the bazaar, "I really cannot
+permit you to go anywhere, looking as you do, even if you are wearing a
+disguise. You are too horrible!"
+
+"Come and see Barbara," Grace called from the next room. "I am sure she
+must look worse. Why," she asked, laughing, "do you and Ruth want to
+disguise yourselves as such dreadful-looking gypsies. You might just as
+easily have arranged to look like young and charming ones."
+
+"Oh, no," said Bab. "We want to look like the real thing, not like stage
+gypsies." Barbara had arranged to appear as much like "Granny Ann" as
+she possibly could. A red and yellow handkerchief was bound around her
+head almost to her eyebrows, her face was stained to a deep brown, with
+lines and heavy seams drawn over it; even her hands were made up to look
+old and weather beaten.
+
+"Remember, you have never seen nor heard of these extraordinary
+fortune-tellers before," warned Ruth. "And don't forget, Barbara and
+Ruth are at home at Mrs. Ewing's, but they may feel well enough to come
+to the fair in the evening." Ruth caught Bab's arm, and together they
+made a low curtsey.
+
+"Beautiful ones," Ruth went on, pointing to Miss Sallie, who was looking
+handsome in a gown of pale gray crpe, with a violet hat and sunshade,
+and to Mollie and Grace, who were dressed like Swiss peasant girls,
+"your fortunes I would like to tell before you go to the Fair. Easy it
+is for my wise eyes to perceive that you will be the belles and beauties
+of the entertainment. Now, farewell!"
+
+The "gypsies" were to drive over early to Mrs. Cartwright's in a closed
+carriage. Ralph was to take Miss Sallie, Grace and Mollie in the motor
+car later on.
+
+"Granny Ann" and "old Meg" slipped inside the gypsy tent before any of
+the guests had arrived at the bazaar. They had gazed in wonder at Mrs.
+Cartwright's beautiful lawn, changed to look like a country fair. It was
+hung with bunting and flags, and had small tables and chairs under the
+trees; also a May-pole strung with long streamers of different colored
+ribbons. Mrs. Cartwright had planned a May-pole dance as one of the
+chief features of the afternoon, and Mollie and Grace were both to take
+part.
+
+For the gypsies, life was a serious matter. The tent was divided by a
+red curtain; on a low wooden table burned a round iron pot filled with
+charcoal and curious odorous herbs; a pack of dirty cards lay near it.
+"The cards must be dirty," argued Ruth, "or no one would believe we were
+the real thing in gypsies." Two rough stools stood by the table, and the
+only daylight shone through the tent flap. On the other side of the
+curtain, Mrs. Cartwright had been kinder to her gypsies. Here were a
+wicker couch and big chairs, where they could rest and talk; also a
+table for refreshments, "for," laughed Mrs. Cartwright, as she left the
+tent to welcome her first guests, "I have always heard that gypsies are
+a particularly hungry race of people."
+
+Mrs. Cartwright's fair was a huge success. The most fashionable "set" in
+Newport were present, entering into the spirit of the occasion with
+great zest.
+
+Gladys and Harry Townsend were seen everywhere together; but to-day
+there was often a third person with them, the Countess Bertouche, the
+woman of the gold-colored brocade, but lately introduced in Newport
+society.
+
+"I believe Gladys is engaged to Harry Townsend," whispered Grace to
+Mollie, when she had observed Harry bending over Miss Le Baron and
+talking to her in a more devoted manner than usual.
+
+"Well," retorted pretty Mollie, with a toss of her head, "I am sure I do
+not envy either one of them."
+
+All afternoon the gypsy tent had been flooded with visitors. Barbara and
+Ruth had the time of their lives. No one recognized the two automobile
+girls in the aged crones who mumbled and told strange fortunes in hoarse
+tones.
+
+It was growing late, and the gypsy tent was for the time deserted. Ruth
+was resting on the couch in the back of the tent, while Bab sat near
+her, talking over their experiences of the afternoon.
+
+Suddenly the tent flap opened, and Grace and Mollie rushed in. Before
+either of them spoke, they turned and fastened the flap down again
+securely, so no one could enter without their knowing it.
+
+"What's the matter?" asked Ruth and Bab at once, for it was plain to see
+their visitors were greatly excited.
+
+Grace and Mollie started talking together. "Mrs. Cartwright's diamond
+butterfly----" then they both stopped. "Are you sure no one can hear?
+Mollie, you tell," finished Grace.
+
+"The butterfly has gone, vanished right off Mrs. Cartwright's frock,
+this afternoon, while she was talking to her visitors. You know, she
+changed the ornament she wore in her hair into a brooch. She showed it
+to me early this afternoon, when I first came, and now--it is gone! I
+tell you, girls, there's a thief among these Newport people. I think it,
+and so does Mrs. Cartwright, and ever so many others. Promise you'll
+never tell," went on Mollie, "but there are two detectives here watching
+all the guests! I'd like to find the thief myself. I'd know Mrs.
+Cartwright's butterfly anywhere."
+
+There were noises at the tent door.
+
+Barbara heard Gladys's high, querulous voice, saying, coquettishly: "I
+don't want my fortune told, Harry. I would much rather you told it to me
+any way." But Mr. Townsend insisted.
+
+"Fly, girls--do, please! They are coming in!" said Barbara. "No; you
+can't get out, but you must stay perfectly still behind this curtain,
+and not breathe a single word."
+
+It was almost entirely dark in the gypsy tent, the only light coming
+from the burning pot of fire on the table. Barbara stooped low, when she
+opened the door to allow Harry, Gladys and the Countess Bertouche to
+come in.
+
+"It groweth late," Bab began, croakingly. "Evil may come. No good
+fortunes fall between dusk and darkness. Beware!"
+
+Gladys shuddered. "Let's not go in," she urged.
+
+But Harry Townsend only laughed. "Don't let the old hag frighten you,"
+he retorted, lightly. "Here," he turned to the gypsy and spoke in a
+voice no one of the girls had ever heard him use, "here, you old
+swindler, speak out! What kind of fate do you read for me in the stars?"
+
+Barbara picked up the pack of dirty cards, and began to shuffle them
+slowly. An idea was revolving in her head. Dared she do it? But Barbara
+was a girl who was not easily daunted.
+
+[Illustration: Harry Townsend's Face Grew Livid.]
+
+After a minute of silence she shook her head. "What I see I dare not
+reveal," she whined. "All black, dark, dark mystery!"
+
+"Oh, stuff!" jeered Mr. Townsend. "Don't try that dodge on me. Tell what
+you know."
+
+Barbara flung down the cards and blew three puffs into the smouldering
+pot of fire. Ashes and tiny flames shot up from it. She started back,
+then pointing a finger, she hissed: "Something is moving toward you,
+curving and coiling and twisting round you. Mercy!" she cried. "It is a
+green snake, and its fangs have struck into your soul!"
+
+Harry Townsend's face grew livid. In a moment the look of youth vanished
+from his face, his lips turned blue, and his eyes narrowed to two fine
+points.
+
+The Countess Bertouche came forward. "Harry," she said, "come away. You
+forget yourself. Don't listen to such nonsense."
+
+"Harry!" thought Gladys to herself, angrily. "She certainly presumes on
+a short acquaintance! Harry, indeed!"
+
+But Barbara had not finished.
+
+"Stay!" she said, holding up a warning finger. "Another messenger
+appears. It is a beautiful, bright thing, sparkling and darting toward
+you. Why," she added, quickly, "it is lighting on your coat. It has
+flown inside--a beautiful butterfly, born of summer time and flowers.
+Or"--this time Barbara leaned over and whispered in his ear--"or it may be
+made of diamonds and come from a jeweler's shop."
+
+For an instant, Harry Townsend's hand flew to his vest pocket. He rose,
+saying quietly to his companions: "Come away from here. Did you ever see
+such a stupid old fraud? A snake and a butterfly--a curious fortune
+indeed!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII--A WORD TO THE WISE
+
+
+Barbara's suspicion was now a certainty. Another person might not have
+been much wiser from Harry Townsend's behavior during the telling of his
+fortune. But Barbara's eyes were keen. The thief the detectives were
+seeking, the "Raffles" who was bowing and smiling his way through
+Newport society was none other than "Harry Townsend." How to prove it?
+That was another matter.
+
+"Bab," said the other girls, appearing on her side of the tent, "what a
+string of nonsense you did put off on poor Harry Townsend. What on earth
+made you tell him about a butterfly and a snake? I suppose you had
+butterfly on the brain, since we had just told you of the robbery."
+
+"That is true," assented Bab.
+
+"Ruth!" Barbara turned to her quickly. "I am tired of my job. I want to
+quit this fortune-telling business at once. Let's desert and go up to
+Mrs. Cartwright's room and change our clothes. Do hurry!" she urged, a
+little impatiently.
+
+"Oh, all right, Bab," Ruth agreed. She stared at Barbara curiously. What
+had come over her friend? Harry Townsend always seemed to have such a
+strange effect upon her.
+
+Barbara was thinking. How could she find the detectives, to tell them of
+her suspicions, while Harry Townsend still had in his pocket the jewel
+he had stolen?
+
+"I want to ask you something, Mollie," Bab announced, as the girls
+started for the house. "You'll excuse a family secret, won't you?" she
+asked of Grace and Ruth. "Mollie," Bab whispered, "don't speak out loud.
+Do you think you can discover who the two detectives are, and let me
+know as soon as I come downstairs? Don't ask questions, please; only, I
+must know."
+
+Mollie shut her lips close together. "Yes, I'll find out for you," she
+promised.
+
+Half an hour later, as the guests were being served with supper under
+the trees, Ruth and Barbara made their appearance.
+
+"We just couldn't keep away any longer," they explained to their
+friends. "Oh, yes, we are feeling perfectly well again."
+
+Barbara called Mrs. Cartwright aside for a minute. "Is it true," she
+asked, "that your diamond butterfly has disappeared?"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright's face clouded. "Yes," she replied. "It has gone within
+the last hour or so. I had it fastened here on my dress with a long pin.
+If it was stolen by a guest, which I am coming to believe, then it was
+not such a difficult theft. I have been leaning over, laughing and
+talking, and any light-fingered--woman--or man--could easily have taken it
+out of my dress."
+
+Mrs. Cartwright shivered and turned pale, as she looked at the gay
+parties of people out on her lawn. "Isn't it dreadful," she said,
+plaintively, "to think that there may be a thief right over there among
+all my friends! But run along, now, child, and enjoy yourself. You and
+Ruth were the success of the afternoon. Everyone has asked me where I
+found my clever gypsies."
+
+Barbara wandered off alone. Before she had gone more than a few steps,
+Ralph Ewing joined her. "Please don't come with me, Ralph," she begged.
+"I want to find Mollie."
+
+"Well, why should that prevent my coming along, too?" Ralph asked. "I'd
+like to find Mollie myself. She hasn't paid the slightest attention to
+me all afternoon."
+
+"I don't want to be horrid, Ralph," Barbara protested, nervously, "but
+please let me find her by myself."
+
+"Oh, certainly," assented Ralph, walking quickly away.
+
+Over by one of the lemonade stands that had been deserted at supper time
+Bab found Mollie.
+
+"Bab," she said, pulling her sister to one side, "do you see that tall,
+blond man, with the little, curly mustache? He is one of the detectives.
+I can't find out where the other one is."
+
+A little later Ralph Ewing, who was still strolling around by himself,
+felt his face flush, partly with wounded pride, partly with anger.
+Barbara was not talking to Mollie. She was standing some distance off
+from the other guests, having an earnest conversation with a man whom
+Ralph knew to be a stranger in Newport.
+
+Ralph was too proud to linger near them, since Bab had said so plainly
+she wanted none of his society. If he could have heard what she was
+saying he would have been even more horrified.
+
+"Yes," Barbara promised, "if you will come somewhere near us, when we
+are all together, this evening, I will give you a signal to show you the
+man I mean. His name is Townsend. He looks very young, is slender and is
+of medium height. Suppose, when you see us, I bow my head slowly in the
+direction of the man I mean? If you understand me, you can return my
+bow. Can you search him before he leaves the grounds?"
+
+"No, miss." The detective shook his head. "It would be impossible. He
+hasn't the jewel on him now. If he's the man we think he is, he is too
+smooth for that. He must have a confederate. If we search him here, and
+find no proof of his guilt, he will know all about us and our
+suspicions. Can't you see, then, he would just clear out and leave us
+here to whistle for our pains?"
+
+"Yes, I see," said Bab.
+
+"Thank you, miss, for telling us," the detective continued. "I must say
+that emerald story sounds like the real thing. You've only guessed about
+the butterfly theft; but I think you've guessed right. Now we must go
+easy. If there is a Raffles, here in Newport, he is out for more
+plunder. He'll make another bold attempt, and that will be our chance."
+
+"Well, I must go on back now to my friends," murmured Barbara, uneasily.
+It seemed strange to be taken into confidence by the detective, as
+though she were in the same line of business. "I suppose you and the
+other detective can manage, now, to secure the thief. I would rather not
+have anything more to do with the matter." Barbara gave a little shiver
+of repulsion.
+
+"Oh, now, young lady," protested the detective, "you mustn't go back on
+us, just as the game commences. To catch a society thief we must have
+help from the inside. The best detective in the service can't get on
+without it."
+
+"Where have you been, Bab?" inquired Miss Sallie, anxiously, when
+Barbara joined her friends a few minutes later. "I was beginning to get
+uneasy about you. Mrs. Cartwright wants us to come into the house for an
+informal dance. Do you feel well enough to go? I don't think you look
+very well, child."
+
+Harry Townsend and Gladys came up at this minute. Harry had promised to
+take Miss Stuart indoors to watch the dancing. There was a curious,
+restless look in the man's eyes, but his manners were as charming as
+ever.
+
+This was Barbara's chance. She lagged behind the others, and bowed her
+head slowly in the direction of Miss Sallie's escort. A strange, blond
+man, with a curly light mustache, standing some distance off, returned
+her bow.
+
+All evening Ralph did not come near Barbara. He devoted himself to
+Grace, who was wise enough to guess that Bab and Ralph must have had a
+quarrel. But Barbara did not understand. Not having realized that Ralph
+had felt snubbed when she dismissed him a little while before, she
+supposed he had grown tired of her.
+
+To tell the truth, Barbara was dull. All the merry, sparkling fun had
+gone out of her for this one evening. Whether she danced, or talked or
+rested quietly, she saw Harry Townsend's face as it had looked at her
+for a single minute in the gypsy tent. "I am not a coward," thought
+Barbara, "but I shall have to be careful if he discovers I was the gypsy
+who told his fortune this afternoon."
+
+Barbara was right.
+
+Harry Townsend knew there was just one person in Newport who suspected
+him of being a thief; this person must be put out of the way. The fine
+Raffles preferred not to use violence, but at any cost he must win.
+
+Harry Townsend had not recognized Bab in the gypsy tent, which served,
+for the time, to avert his suspicions from her. He believed she had only
+arrived, when he met her with Miss Stuart late in the evening. Then who
+was the gypsy? Either Barbara had seen her, some time in the afternoon,
+and told her the story of the necklace, or there was some one else who
+believed he had had a part in the robberies. He must find out.
+
+"Gladys," Harry Townsend said, "don't let us dance all evening. I have
+not had any kind of chance to talk to you alone. Come out on the veranda
+with me, won't you?"
+
+Gladys and Harry seated themselves on the front porch, whence they could
+look through an open window at the dancers.
+
+"Do you know Mrs. Cartwright very intimately, Gladys?" inquired Mr.
+Townsend.
+
+"Oh, no," returned Gladys, pettishly. If Harry Townsend had brought her
+out on the veranda to talk about Mrs. Cartwright, then she might as well
+have stayed indoors. "Why do you ask?"
+
+Harry Townsend frowned, then put his hands before his eyes. Gladys was
+so silly. She had served to introduce him to her friends at Newport.
+Now, if he could only make her useful in other ways!
+
+"Are you angry?" Gladys asked after a moment, "What is it that you want
+to know about Mrs. Cartwright?"
+
+"Oh, I don't want to know anything about Mrs. Cartwright at all, Gladys.
+I am sorry I spoke of it, if the subject offends you. But I did feel a
+little curious to know where she got hold of the gypsies she had in the
+tent this afternoon. I thought you would be interested."
+
+"I am interested, Harry," declared Gladys. She was only a spoiled child,
+and could not help showing it. "But I am not a favorite of Mrs.
+Cartwright's. It's my delightful cousins that she adores--Mollie and Bab.
+I can ask one of them to inquire."
+
+"Oh, no," drawled Harry, "it is not of enough importance for that."
+
+For the next half hour Harry devoted himself to the whims of Gladys. He
+could see Barbara through the window, looking pale and tired. This gave
+all the more reason for believing that she had not recovered from the
+shock of her experience on the cliffs.
+
+The cleverest man will sometimes make a false move. Harry Townsend was
+tired of Gladys, weary of her whims and foolishness. Besides, she had
+served his purpose; he was almost through with her.
+
+"Shall we take a walk, Gladys?" he asked.
+
+As they walked down the path toward the cliff, this up-to-date Raffles,
+whose fingers were more agile than a magician's, pressed Gladys's hand
+for a moment. At the same instant, he slipped her jeweled bracelet into
+his pocket. "I don't want the bauble," he said to himself, "but she
+might as well be punished for not doing what I ask her."
+
+At the same moment a blond man stepped out from among the bushes and
+asked Harry for a light for his cigarette.
+
+Miss Stuart and her girls were saying good-night to Mrs. Cartwright.
+Hugh Post and Ralph were to escort them home. As Barbara came down the
+steps with her wraps on, some one touched her on the arm.
+
+"Miss," the detective whispered, "I know the man you pointed out to me;
+but I have got to see you again. Tell me how we can manage it."
+
+"Oh," said Barbara, hopelessly, "I don't know. Miss Sallie will be so
+angry!"
+
+"You can't quit us now," the detective urged. "Why not come out in the
+morning, before any of your folks are up."
+
+"Yes," agreed Barbara, quickly. She didn't have time to refuse. Miss
+Sallie was coming toward her, and looked in surprise at Barbara's
+strange companion. "Come on, child," she said, "it is time you and Ruth
+were both in bed."
+
+"Down the street, two turnings to the right," Barbara heard a voice
+behind her whisper, as she turned away.
+
+Gladys was crying, as she made her way to Miss Stuart for comfort. "Miss
+Stuart," she said, "I have lost my pearl bracelet. Mother told me it was
+too handsome for me to wear. Now she'll be angry with me. I didn't think
+it mattered if I wore it this one time. It was large, I suppose, and it
+slipped off my hand somewhere."
+
+"Never mind, Gladys," advised Harry Townsend, coming up to her. "If it
+is stolen, the thief is sure to be caught."
+
+"Why do you stare at us so, Barbara?" demanded Gladys, angrily. "I am
+sure you look all eyes."
+
+"I beg your pardon," murmured Barbara.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX--"EYEOLOGY"
+
+
+All night long Bab tossed and tumbled in her bed. Should she keep her
+appointment with the detective? About daylight she fell asleep and
+wakened with her mind fully made up. Whatever the danger, she was in for
+it now. A clever thief was abroad in Newport; circumstances had led to
+her discovering him; well, she would do what she could to bring him to
+bay.
+
+At six o'clock Barbara slipped quietly out of bed, without awaking
+Mollie, and stole noiselessly through the deserted halls of Mrs. Ewing's
+great house. Not even the servants were about.
+
+At the appointed place she found waiting for her two detectives instead
+of one.
+
+"We're wise to the thief," said the larger, blond man, to whom Barbara
+had talked yesterday. "I never had my eyes off of him last night, after
+you pointed him out to me. I saw him slip a bracelet from a young lady's
+arm out in the garden, just as coolly as you'd shake hands with a
+person. But it was no time to make a row then. I never let him know that
+I saw him. The fellow would have had a thousand excuses to make. I could
+see he was on pretty intimate terms with the young lady."
+
+"The truth is, miss," interrupted the other detective, whom Bab saw for
+the first time this morning, "we think you have given us the clue to a
+pretty clever customer. We've been looking for him before. He's known to
+the service as 'The Boy Raffles.' We tried to catch him two years ago
+when he played this same game at Saratoga. But he got off to Europe
+without our ever finding the goods on him. So you see, this time we've
+got to nail him. My partner and I," the wiry little dark man pointed to
+the big blond one, "have been talking matters over and we believe this
+here 'Raffles' has got what we detectives call a 'confed' with him--some
+one who receives the stolen goods. So that's why we want to ask your
+help. Have you any idea of anyone who could be playing the game along
+with him? We think he is giving the jewels to some one to keep in hiding
+for him. The gems have not been sent out of town, and we have made a
+thorough search of Mrs. Erwin's house, where Townsend is staying. There
+is nothing there."
+
+"Could the young lady I saw him in the garden with last night be a
+partner of his?" asked the blond detective.
+
+"Oh, my goodness, no!" cried Barbara, in horror. "She is my cousin,
+Gladys Le Baron."
+
+"Now, that's just it, miss. You can see we need some one like you, who's
+on the inside, to keep us off the wrong track. Can you suggest anyone
+else?"
+
+Barbara was silent. Then she shook her head. "I don't know of anyone
+now," she said. "You'll have to give me time to think and watch."
+
+"All right, miss, and thank you. You can write a note to this address if
+you have anything to communicate." One of the men handed her a card with
+the number of a Newport boarding house on it. "My name is Burton," said
+the big man, "and my assistant is Rowley. We both came up from the New
+York office, and we're at your service, miss."
+
+On the way home Barbara tried to make up her mind whether she ought to
+tell Miss Sallie what she was doing.
+
+"I don't think it best to tell her now," she concluded. "She would only
+be worried and frightened to death. What is the good? Miss Sallie would
+be sure to think that girls did not hunt for jewel thieves in her day.
+And she'd probably think they ought not to hunt for them in my day,"
+Barbara confessed to herself, honestly. "I'll just wait a while, and see
+how things develop. Now I am in this detective business, I might as well
+confess to myself that it is very interesting."
+
+Barbara walked slowly. "I wish Ruth would find out how things are
+going," she thought to herself. "She is so shrewd and she already
+guesses I have something on my mind. But Ruth was so positive I was
+wrong about Harry Townsend, at Mrs. Erwin's ball, that she would
+probably think I was wrong again. So the female detective will pursue
+her lonely way for a little while longer--and then, I just must tell some
+one," Bab ended.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls were coming down-stairs to breakfast, when Bab
+entered at the front door. Miss Stuart was plainly displeased with
+Barbara's explanation. "I couldn't sleep very well, Miss Sallie," said
+Barbara, "and I went out for a walk." "That is partly true," she
+reflected, "but half truths are not far from story-telling."
+
+"Well, I must ask you, Bab," said Miss Sallie, in firm tones, "not to
+leave the house again in the morning, unless some one is with you. I was
+most uneasy."
+
+"Didn't Mollie give you the note I left on the bureau to explain where I
+had gone?" inquired Bab.
+
+"Mollie did not see the note until we were almost ready to come
+downstairs. Naturally, we did not understand your absence."
+
+"I am so sorry, Miss Sallie," cried Bab. "I never will do it again."
+
+Barbara was beginning to understand Miss Sallie better since Ruth's
+accident. She knew that her cold exterior hid a very warm heart.
+
+As for Miss Sallie, she finally smiled on Bab and gave her a forgiving
+kiss. "I could forgive Bab anything," she thought to herself, "after her
+wonderful heroism in saving Ruth. I suppose I have to expect a girl of
+so much spirit to do erratic things sometimes."
+
+Ralph kept his eyes lowered when he said good morning and hardly spoke
+during breakfast.
+
+"Ralph is out of sorts," his mother complained, "but, man-like, he won't
+tell what is the matter with him."
+
+"Perhaps you are tired from the party last night, Ralph?" suggested
+Mollie. Then Ralph laughed a mirthless laugh. "No, I am not tired,
+Mollie," he replied.
+
+Yet all through breakfast he did not once speak to Bab.
+
+"Remember," said Grace, "that our crowd and just a few other people are
+invited over to Mrs. Cartwright's to-night. She is going to have a porch
+party, and we are to play the famous game 'eyeology' that she was
+talking of to Gladys the other day. Do you know what she means?"
+
+Nobody at the table had ever heard of it.
+
+"I begged Donald to tell me," Grace added, "but he declares he is as
+much in the dark about it as the rest of us, and Mrs. Cartwright simply
+says, 'wait and see!'"
+
+"I suppose," said Miss Sallie, "that you children never intend to rest
+again. I should think that Mrs. Cartwright would be perfectly used up
+from so much entertaining."
+
+"O Aunt Sallie," pleaded Grace, "we shall rest well enough when we are
+back in sleepy old Kingsbridge. There is too much doing in Newport. And,
+you know, we've only about a week longer to stay. What a wonderful time
+we have had!"
+
+"Let's see what we have ahead of us," pondered Mollie. "The only
+especially big things we know about are the tennis tourney and the ball
+after it. Then Miss Ruth Stuart and Mr. Hugh Post are to win a silver
+cup, in order to spread more luster upon the reputation of the
+automobile girls at Newport. Bab helped pull Ruth out of an abyss! The
+two girls held up a burglar! Ruth is a famous tennis champion! Only you
+and I are no good, Grace. What can we do for our country?" finished
+Mollie.
+
+"Nothing at all, dear!" laughed Miss Sallie, and the rest of the party.
+"Much as I admire these two clever lassies, I am very glad to have my
+other two girls of a more peaceful and quiet variety, or my hair would
+certainly turn whiter than it is now, if that were possible." Miss
+Stuart touched her snow-white hair, which was very handsome with her
+delicate skin and bright color.
+
+"Now I insist," she said, "that you girls have a quiet day if you are
+going out again this evening."
+
+"May I have a row on the bay with Ralph?" asked Barbara. "Have you
+forgotten, Ralph, that you invited me several days ago?"
+
+"I am sorry, Barbara," Ralph answered, quietly, "but I had forgotten it.
+If you will excuse me, I have something else on hand for today that I
+must attend to. Perhaps you will go with me some other time," he
+proposed, without any enthusiasm.
+
+"All right, Ralph," Bab nodded. "Of course, I do not mind. We did not
+have a real engagement, anyway." "He won't let me make up with him," Bab
+thought. "I wonder why he is so angry?"
+
+At five o'clock Barbara came down on the veranda, dressed for the
+evening. She spied Ralph walking alone down the garden path, which was
+arched with trellises of crimson and pink rambler roses. There were
+several seats along the walk, and it had formed a favorite retreat for
+the girls ever since they had arrived at Mrs. Ewing's home.
+
+Perhaps another girl than Barbara would not have tried again to make
+friends with Ralph, after his refusal to take her boating in the
+morning; but Bab was so open-hearted and sincere that she could not bear
+a misunderstanding. She was fond of Ralph, he had been kind to her, and
+his manner toward her had changed so suddenly that she felt she must
+have done something to wound him. Bab did offend people, sometimes, with
+her quick speeches and thoughtlessness, but she was always ready to say
+she was wrong and to make amends.
+
+"Ralph!" she called. "Ralph!" The boy was obliged to stop and turn
+round, as Barbara was hurrying after him.
+
+"I want to talk to you, please," she said, coaxingly. "You are not too
+angry with me to let me speak to you, are you?"
+
+"I have not said I was angry with you, Miss Thurston," replied Ralph.
+
+"Now, Ralph!" Barbara put her hand lightly on his sleeve. "You know you
+don't call me Miss Thurston. We decided weeks ago it was silly for us to
+call each other Miss and Mister when we were such intimate friends. I
+want you to do me a favor. Will you take me over to Mrs. Cartwright's
+to-night? Donald and his guest, 'the freshman,' are coming for Grace and
+Mollie. Ruth, of course, is going over with Hugh, and I could go with
+them, but I want to talk to you. I can't say what I have to say to you
+now, because already the girls are calling me. Please say you will take
+me."
+
+Barbara's eyes were so pretty and pleading that Ralph felt his anger
+already melting. Yet Ralph's feeling toward Barbara was not only anger.
+It was a much more serious thing, a growing sense of distrust. But he
+answered: "Of course, Bab, I shall be delighted to take you."
+
+Barbara and Ralph let the rest of their friends start ahead of them.
+They wanted to have their walk alone.
+
+Miss Sallie had pleaded fatigue, and remained at home. "Besides,
+children," she explained, "I am much too old to take any further
+interest in games, 'eyeology,' or any other 'ology.'"
+
+Ralph and Barbara walked in silence down the street for several minutes.
+Then Bab spoke. "Tell me, Ralph, what is the matter? If you were angry
+with a man you would tell him what the trouble was, if he asked you. It
+is not fair not to be open with me because I am a girl. If you think you
+are being more polite to me by not telling me why you are angry, then I
+don't agree with you. I think you are acting a whole lot worse."
+
+Ralph continued to go on in moody silence.
+
+"All right, then, Ralph," said Barbara; "I can't ask you any more
+questions, or beg your pardon, when I don't know what I have done to
+offend you. Only I am sorry."
+
+"Oh, it isn't that you have offended me, Bab," Ralph burst out. "Do you
+suppose I would act like such a bear if you had just thrown me down, or
+some little thing like that, when we have been such jolly good friends
+before? I didn't like your sending me off yesterday, when you went to
+look for Mollie, because--because----"
+
+"Go on, Ralph," insisted Barbara.
+
+"Very well, then, Bab; I was angry and hurt because, if you did join
+Mollie, you couldn't have stayed with her a minute. I saw you, just
+afterwards, holding a long conversation with a strange man."
+
+"Well, Ralph," argued Bab, "was that such a dreadful offense? I am sure
+I should not have been angry with you, if you had talked to any number
+of strange women." Bab's eyes were twinkling. She had made up her mind
+that she wanted a confidant. Here was Ralph, the best one she could
+have.
+
+"That's not all," Ralph continued, "I did not mean to be an
+eavesdropper, but I was standing just behind you and I could not help
+overhearing that strange man make an appointment to meet you this
+morning. Say, Bab," Ralph turned toward her, all his anger gone, "don't
+do things like meeting that man this morning without telling. It's not
+nice, and I've thought you the nicest, most straightforward girl I ever
+knew. If there is anything between you and that fellow, why should it be
+a secret? A girl can't afford to have secrets, except with other girls."
+
+"But I want to have a secret with _you_, Ralph," rejoined Barbara. "Now
+listen, while I tell you everything. I have never talked to you about
+the scene in the conservatory, the night of Mrs. Erwin's ball, though I
+did appreciate what you did to help me out when I made that strange
+request of Harry Townsend. I was not crazy. I saw Harry Townsend steal
+Mrs. Post's emerald necklace. Ralph," Barbara's voice was now so low
+that he had to bend over to hear her, "Harry Townsend is not what the
+people here think him. He is a professional thief, and a dangerous one."
+
+"Whew!" whistled Ralph. "What did you say?"
+
+Then Barbara told him the story of the three thefts, from the beginning,
+and her own part in discovering them. "The detectives are on the lookout
+now, Ralph," she added, "but they want me to keep a watch from the
+inside."
+
+"Well, you are a clever one, Bab!" declared Ralph. "Look here, I am glad
+you told me this. I appreciate it a whole lot, and I will not mention it
+to anyone until you tell me I may. But, remember one thing. I shall be
+on the watch, too, and it's Miss Barbara Thurston I'll be watching. That
+Townsend is a dangerous rogue. I've known there was something crooked
+about him from the first. Oh, it's easy to say that, now, after what you
+have told me. I am not pretending I knew his special game. Only I knew
+he was not our sort. He is a whole lot older than he pretends to be, for
+one thing."
+
+"Ralph," sighed Barbara, "do you think there is any way I could warn
+Gladys against Harry Townsend?"
+
+Ralph shook his head. "Not any way that I know of. She would just snub
+you hard, if you tried. Even if you dared to tell her the truth she
+would go right off and tell that Townsend fellow. She's been pretty
+hateful to you, Bab. I don't see why you should care."
+
+"Oh, but I do care," retorted Bab. "She has been horrid and stuck up,
+but she hasn't done Mollie and me any real harm, and she is my cousin.
+Her father is my mother's brother. Uncle Ralph has never been very fond
+of us, nor has he come to see us very much, but he looks after mother's
+money. I don't suppose," wound up Barbara, thoughtfully, "he would do us
+any wrong. I shouldn't like Gladys to get into trouble."
+
+"What has kept you children so long?" asked Grace, as Ralph and Barbara
+appeared on Mrs. Cartwright's veranda. Then she squeezed Bab's hand and
+whispered, so no one else could hear, "Made it up, Bab?" Barbara nodded,
+"yes."
+
+Mrs. Cartwright was heard speaking. "Sit down, everyone, over there
+where Jones has placed the chairs for us. Professor Cartwright," she
+bowed to show she meant herself, "will now explain to his pupils, or his
+guests, the principles of the science of 'eyeology.' Human character is
+expressed in the human eye--our love, our hate, our ambitions,
+everything. But can we read the characters of people about us as we look
+into their eyes? No! Why not? Because the rest of the face confuses our
+attention. Instead of the steadfast beacon of the eye, we see the nose,
+the mouth, the hair, all the other features, and so we fail to
+understand the story the eye would tell us if it were alone. To-night I
+intend to instruct you in the proper understanding of 'eyeology.'"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright changed to her usual manner of speaking. "Don't you
+think it would be amusing to make a test? Here Ruth," laughed the
+hostess, "be my first pupil. Go into the drawing-room and wait there
+until I send for you. I want to find out how many of your friends you
+will know, when you see only their eyes."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX--RUTH WAKES UP!
+
+
+A curious sight met Ruth's gaze when she was invited to return to the
+veranda.
+
+"Goodness!" she laughed. "It is just as well I am not afraid of ghosts.
+I've come upon a whole army of them all at once!"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright had the porch darkened, except for a single row of
+bright lights. Her visitors stood with their backs against the wall, a
+sheet drawn up on a level with their eyes. Another white cloth covered
+their heads, drawn down so low over their foreheads that even the
+eyebrows were concealed. By standing on books and stools the eyes were
+all on a level.
+
+"No giggling," said Mrs. Cartwright severely to the ghostly set in front
+of her, "or Ruth can guess who you are by the tones of your voices."
+
+Ruth looked confused. No signs of her friends remained, save a long row
+of shining eyes, black, blue, brown and gray, even the color being hard
+to distinguish in the artificial light.
+
+"Now, mademoiselle," said Mrs. Cartwright, still speaking in the voice
+of a professor, "behold before you an opportunity to prove your skill in
+the remarkable science of 'eyeology.' I have a piece of paper and a
+pencil in my hand. As you gaze into each pair of eyes, you are to reveal
+that person's identity. I will write the names down as you tell them to
+me. When you have gone through the whole list, the curtain shall be
+lifted. Then we shall discover how many of your friends you know by the
+character of their eyes. After Ruth has finished, anyone else who wishes
+may try his or her skill."
+
+"My dear Mrs. Cartwright," said Ruth, laughing and peering in front of
+her, "I tell you, right now, that I shall not guess a single name
+correctly. To tell the truth, I never saw any of these eyes before. It's
+horrid to have them all staring and blinking at me. I am frightened at
+them all! Besides, I can't see. May I have a candle and hold it up in
+front of each person as I pass along?"
+
+"Yes," said Mrs. Cartwright; "only kindly keep at a safe distance. We
+don't want to burn up any of our ghosts."
+
+Ruth started down the line. She had the privilege of staring as long and
+as hard as she liked into each pair of eyes.
+
+The company was strangely silent. They were really interested in the
+idea, and knew that any talking would spoil the whole experiment.
+
+"I've mixed the babies up, Ruth," said Mrs. Cartwright, "so you needn't
+think you can guess anyone by his choice of a next-door neighbor. No
+social preferences have been allowed in this game."
+
+Ruth tried the first pair of eyes. She looked at them intently. Then she
+turned round to Mrs. Cartwright. "I am sure I never saw those eyes
+before. You have introduced some stranger since I left the porch."
+
+"There is not a person here whom you do not know well," Mrs. Cartwright
+assured her. "Don't try to slip out of your task."
+
+Ruth kept staring. The eyes in front of her drooped, and soft, curling
+lashes for an instant swept over them. A little wistful look lay in the
+depths of them, when the lids lifted. "Why, it's Molliekins! How absurd
+of me not to know her! I was about to guess Ralph!"
+
+Mistress Ruth must have guessed wrongly next time, for there was a burst
+of laughter, afterwards, that made the white sheets shake.
+
+"Be quiet," warned Mrs. Cartwright sternly.
+
+So Ruth passed on down the line. There were about twenty people in the
+game, but Ruth knew all of them very well. Sometimes her guesses were
+right, sometimes they were wrong. Once or twice she had to confess
+herself beaten, and "gave up" with a shake of her head at Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+
+Ruth had nearly finished her task. Only a few more pairs of eyes
+remained to be investigated.
+
+"Well, I am nearly through," she said gayly. "If anyone thinks I have
+had an easy time of it, he has only to take my place and try the next
+turn. No more mistakes now, for Ruth Stuart! Who is my next victim?"
+Ruth held her candle above her head and looked up.
+
+Gleaming at her through the darkness lit by the flare from her
+candle-light was a pair of eyes that were strangely familiar.
+
+Ruth stared at them. They belonged to none of the friends she knew--yet,
+somewhere, she had seen them before.
+
+Ruth looked and looked. The eyes shifted and narrowed. Ruth still held
+her candle aloft; but she had forgotten where she was. Where had she
+seen those eyes before?
+
+"Look straight ahead of you," said Mrs. Cartwright to the gleaming eyes,
+"how can Ruth guess when your eyes are closed?" But again the eyes
+shifted.
+
+"I am going to find out to whom those eyes belong, if I stay here all
+night," said Ruth, speaking to herself.
+
+The eyes glinted, narrowed and shone like two fine points of steel.
+
+"Oh!" said Ruth. She staggered a little and the candle shook in her
+hand. "I thought I knew those eyes, but I don't. I must be mistaken. I
+beg your pardon, Mrs. Cartwright," said Ruth, "but I am tired. I don't
+think I can go on. Will some one take my place?"
+
+Ruth's expression was so peculiar that Mrs. Cartwright came up to her.
+"You foolish child!" she said, putting her hand on Ruth's shoulder, "I
+believe this game is making you nervous. Who is it sitting there with
+the eyes that Ruth remembers, yet will not reveal to us?" she called.
+
+"Harry Townsend, Harry Townsend!" the people sitting closest to him
+answered.
+
+"Harry," said Mrs. Cartwright, "you come and take Ruth's place. Let's
+see if you are a better 'eyeologist' than she is."
+
+Before Harry Townsend had slipped out from under his strange covering,
+Ruth turned to Mrs. Cartwright. "Excuse me for a minute," she begged.
+"My labors as an optician have used me up. I will be back in a little
+while."
+
+Barbara crept from under the sheet, and, without speaking to anyone, ran
+after Ruth, who was on her way upstairs to Mrs. Cartwright's boudoir.
+
+"Ruth, dear, what on earth has happened to you? Are you sick?" asked
+Barbara.
+
+"Oh, I am worse than sick, Bab!" muttered Ruth, with a shudder. "Don't
+ask me to talk until we get upstairs."
+
+The girls closed the dressing-room door.
+
+"I must be wrong, Bab, yet I don't believe I am. I saw to-night the same
+eyes that glared at us from behind a black mask the time of that
+horrible burglary at New Haven, when, for a little while, I thought you
+were killed. I have never said much about it. I wanted to forget and I
+wanted everyone else to forget it, but those eyes have followed me
+everywhere since. To-night----"
+
+Bab took Ruth's hand.
+
+"Oh, Bab," groaned Ruth, "what does it mean? I saw those eyes again
+to-night and they were Harry Townsend's. I wanted to scream right out:
+'Burglar! robber!' But I could not make a scene. I came upstairs, hardly
+knowing how I reached here."
+
+One of the maids knocked at the door. "Do the young ladies wish
+anything? Mrs. Cartwright sent me up to inquire," she said.
+
+"Nothing at all. Tell her we are all right, and will be down in a few
+minutes."
+
+"Ruth," said Barbara, "I want to tell you something. If I do, can you
+pretend that nothing has happened, and be perfectly composed for the
+rest of the evening? Now don't say 'yes' unless you feel sure."
+
+Ruth looked straight at Barbara, "Yes; tell me what it is," she urged.
+"I am beginning to guess."
+
+"The eyes you saw to-night were Harry Townsend's, and he is a burglar
+and a thief. I did not know he was the robber at New Haven; I have only
+suspected it. Now I feel sure, and you recognized him to-night. He is a
+more dangerous character than I had thought, and he must not know that
+you suspect him."
+
+"He shall know nothing from me," said Ruth, coolly. Her color had come
+back, now that she knew the truth. "It was only the shock that unnerved
+me. Why haven't you told me before, Bab?"
+
+"I was afraid you'd ask me that, Ruth, dear, and I want to explain. You
+see, I have believed Harry Townsend a thief ever since I saw him, with
+my own eyes, take the necklace from Mrs. Post's neck at Mrs. Erwin's
+ball; but you were positive I was wrong, and asked me not to talk about
+it. So I didn't know what to do. I have only watched and waited.
+To-night I told Ralph what I knew."
+
+Barbara then explained to Ruth the whole story, and the part the
+detectives had asked her to play in Townsend's apprehension. "What shall
+I do, Ruth?" she ended.
+
+"Come on downstairs, Bab," said Ruth. "Some one may suspect us if we
+don't. Do, Bab. We are going on to play the game, just as you have been
+playing it by yourself. We will say nothing, but we will do some hard
+thinking; and, when the time comes, we shall act! To tell you the truth,
+if you will never betray me to Aunt Sallie, I think playing detective
+beats nearly any fun I know."
+
+"Eyeology" was no longer amusing the guests when the two girls came
+downstairs; indeed, the company had scattered and was talking in
+separate groups. Ruth and Bab joined Mollie and Grace, who were standing
+near Mrs. Post and their new acquaintance, the Countess Bertouche.
+
+"Girls," asked Mrs. Post, "would you like to join the Countess Bertouche
+and myself Saturday afternoon? We are going to explore old Newport; the
+old town is well worth seeing. The countess tells me this is her first
+visit to Newport, so, before she goes back to Paris, I want her to see
+that we have a little of the dignity that age gives.
+
+"Why," and Mrs. Post turned smilingly to the little group, "Newport
+boasts even a haunted house! It is not occupied, and I have the
+privilege of showing you over it. A story has been written about the old
+mansion. Here a young woman lived who loved an officer in Rochambeau's
+fleet, when the gallant French sailor came over to these shores. But the
+sailor loved and sailed away, never to return. So the lady pined and
+died; but her presence still haunts the old house. You can feel her
+approaching you by a sudden perfume of mignonette. After we see all the
+sights of the town, we shall go to the old house at about dusk, so that
+we may have a better chance to discover the 'spirit lady.'"
+
+Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post's invitation with enthusiasm.
+Barbara and Ruth had to decline regretfully.
+
+"You see, Mrs. Post," Barbara explained, "Ruth and Hugh have to practice
+their tennis, every hour they can manage, until the tournament on
+Monday. Ruth has become a little out of practice since her accident, and
+must work hard at her game for the next few days. Ralph and I have
+promised to help by furnishing the opposition."
+
+"You'll excuse Mollie and me from playing audience, won't you, Ruth?"
+asked Grace. "We are going home so soon after the tournament is over
+that we can't resist Mrs. Post's invitation."
+
+"Barbara," said Ruth, coming into Bab's room, just as that young woman
+was about to step into bed, "can you imagine anyone whom Harry Townsend
+can be using as a confederate?"
+
+"Sh-sh!" warned Bab. "Here comes Mollie. Don't say anything. I haven't
+the faintest idea."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI--THE CAPTURE OF THE BUTTERFLY
+
+
+Harry Townsend was not aware of the chain of suspicion that was
+tightening around him; but he was too clever not to use every
+precaution. Once or twice he had come across the small, dark detective
+who was making investigations in Mrs. Erwin's house--the large, blond
+man, named Burton, had kept in the background--but knowing that the
+servants had been under suspicion, he supposed that the search was being
+made on their account. He knew of no act of his own that could possibly
+implicate him in the robberies. He came and went among Mrs. Erwin's
+guests, and was on a friendly footing with their most fashionable
+friends at Newport. He had seen no one else during his visit, as the
+whole world was privileged to know.
+
+The only act that the detective, Rowley, was able to report to his
+superior was that Mr. Townsend mailed his own letters. In Mrs. Erwin's
+household it was the custom of her guests to place all their mail in a
+bag, which the butler sent to the postoffice at regular hours; but Mr.
+Townsend preferred to mail his own letters. This act occasioned no
+comment. Other guests, writing important business letters, had done the
+same thing.
+
+"And Townsend has mailed only letters," continued Rowley in making his
+report. "Not a single package, even of the smallest size, has gone out
+through the postoffice. The jewels are still in Newport."
+
+Mr. Townsend had already begun to discuss with his hostess the
+possibility of his soon having to leave her charming home. "I have
+presumed on your hospitality too long," he said to Mrs. Erwin, several
+times. "When the famous Casino ball is over I must be getting back to
+New York."
+
+To Gladys he explained: "My dear Gladys, my holiday time must end some
+day. I shall be able to see you often when you go back to Kingsbridge. I
+am going into a broker's office as soon as I get back to New York. I
+have been loafing around in Europe for the last two years, but I have
+decided that, even if a fellow has money enough to make him fairly
+comfortable, work is the thing for the true American!"
+
+To-day Harry Townsend walked to the post-office alone. He carried three
+letters. One of them was to a steamship company engaging passage to
+Naples for "John Brown." The steamer was due to sail the following
+Wednesday. The other two letters had New York addresses. When they
+arrived at their first destination, they were to be remailed to other
+addresses. A tall, blond man, who happened to be lounging in the
+postoffice at the time Mr. Townsend entered it, observed that the young
+gentleman was anxious to know when the letters would be delivered in the
+city.
+
+The letters posted, Townsend walked over to the Casino courts, where Bab
+and Ruth were playing tennis. He had promised Gladys to join her there.
+He still had some investigations he desired to make. But he walked
+slowly. Clever fingers must be directed by a clever brain, whether their
+work be good or evil. No matter how well he knew he could depend on his
+wonderful fingers to do their share of the work, the "boy Raffles"
+always thought out carefully the plan of his theft before he tried to
+execute it.
+
+On Monday night, at the Casino tournament ball, he planned to make his
+final theft. This accomplished, he could leave Newport feeling he had
+reaped a rich harvest, even in the summer season, when harvests are not
+supposed to be gathered.
+
+Harry Townsend, alias half a dozen other names, had seen the jewel he
+most coveted for his final effort. It was a diamond tiara belonging to
+one of the richest and most prominent women in Newport. His schemes were
+carefully laid. He was waiting for Monday night.
+
+At about three o'clock, on this same Saturday afternoon, Mrs. Post and
+the Countess Bertouche stopped in a small automobile for Grace and
+Mollie. They had no one with them except the chauffeur.
+
+It took them some time to drive through the old town of Newport. The
+ladies descended at the old Trinity church, to investigate it, and the
+girls were much interested in the ancient jail. There, they were told,
+was once kept a woman prisoner who complained because she had no lock on
+her door.
+
+Mollie and Grace were not ardent sightseers. It was really the thought
+of the haunted house that had brought them on their pilgrimage. But Mrs.
+Post and the countess insisted on poking their way down the Long Wharf,
+with its rows of sailors' houses and junk shops. Both girls were
+dreadfully bored, and secretly longed to be on the tennis courts with
+Bab and Ruth. Yet the thought of the haunted house buoyed them up.
+
+Mrs. Post was a collector. If you have ever traveled with one, you will
+understand that it means hours and hours of looking through dirt and
+trash in order to run across one treasure that a collector regards as
+"an antique."
+
+Even when Mrs. Post was through with her search she decided that it was
+not yet sufficiently late for them to visit the haunted house. "I told
+the caretaker not to meet us there until a quarter of seven. We shall
+want only a few minutes to go through the old place; but, of course, we
+must see it under conditions as romantic as possible." Mrs. Post then
+ordered the chauffeur to take them for a drive before driving them to
+the haunted house.
+
+Mollie and Grace were unusually quiet, so they noticed that the Countess
+Bertouche had little to say during the afternoon. She seemed tired and
+nervous. When Mrs. Post asked her questions about her life abroad, after
+she married, the countess replied in as few words as possible.
+
+At exactly the appointed time the automobile delivered its passengers
+before the door of the house they sought. It was an old, gray,
+Revolutionary mansion, three stories high, with a sloping roof and small
+windows with diamond-latticed panes. It was quite dark when the girls
+entered the ghostly mansion, following Mrs. Post and the countess, who
+were led by a one-eyed old caretaker carrying a smoky lamp. There was
+just enough daylight shining through the windows to see one's way about,
+but the corners of the vast old house were full of terrifying shadows.
+
+"Let us not stay too long, Mrs. Post," urged the countess. "I am not
+fond of ghosts, and I am tired." But Mrs. Post was the kind of
+sight-seer who goes on to the end, no matter who lags behind. She led
+the party up the winding steps, peering into each room as they went
+along. The house was kept furnished with a few rickety pieces of old
+furniture.
+
+When they reached the second floor, the caretaker announced that the
+middle bedroom was the sleeping apartment of the haunted lady. The
+little party searched it curiously. There was no sign of the ghostly
+inhabitant; no perfume of mignonette.
+
+"I don't see anything unusual about this room," said the countess,
+suppressing a sigh, "except that it has the most comfortable chair in
+the house. I shall sit here and rest while you take the two girls over
+the other part of the building."
+
+The three left her. The woman dropped into a chair, and a worn, nervous
+look crossed her face.
+
+As Mollie ascended the attic stairs behind Grace she called out, "If you
+will excuse me, Mrs. Post, I shall go down and join the countess."
+
+An imp of mischief had entered Mollie. Wrapped up in her handkerchief,
+carefully concealed in her purse bag, was a handful of mignonette, which
+she had gathered from Mrs. Ewing's garden only that morning. Mollie
+meant to impersonate the "spirit lady." Suddenly she had decided that
+the countess was the best one upon whom she could try her joke.
+
+Creeping down the stairs as quietly as a mouse, Mollie stole into the
+back room, adjoining the one where the countess sat. Had she looked in,
+she would hardly have played her naughty trick. The woman who sat there
+was a very different person from the gay society lady they had been
+meeting everywhere in the last few weeks. This woman looked weary and
+frightened. But Mollie was thinking only of mischief.
+
+Silently she took the mignonette out of her bag and crushed it in her
+hand. There was a sudden fragrance all about her. Then she slipped her
+hand slyly through the open doorway and dropped her bunch of mignonette
+into the room where the countess was sitting. There was no response. The
+countess had not detected the odor of the flowers and Mollie was deeply
+disappointed.
+
+Faintly, however, the countess began to be aware of the fragrance of a
+subtle perfume; but she was thinking too deeply of other things to be
+conscious of what it was. Besides, the growing darkness was making her
+nervous.
+
+Mollie gave up in despair. Her effort with the mignonette had plainly
+proved a failure. The countess refused to be frightened by the
+suggestion of the ghost.
+
+"Countess!" said Mollie, appearing suddenly in the open doorway. She
+certainly expected no result from this simple action; but the countess,
+who thought she was entirely alone, was dreadfully startled. She rose,
+with a short scream of surprise, and started forward. Her foot catching
+in a worn old rug, she stumbled. Mollie was by her side in a second,
+trying to help her to rise.
+
+"I am so sorry to have frightened you!" the child said penitently. "Wait
+a minute, you have dropped something." Mollie picked up a square chamois
+skin bag. In her excitement and embarrassment she caught hold of the
+wrong end of it. Out of it tumbled a purse, and--Mollie saw it as plainly
+as could be, though it was nearly dark in the room--Mrs. Cartwright's
+diamond butterfly!
+
+"Child!" said the countess, angrily. "See what your nonsense has done!
+This is the bag that I wear under my dress to carry my money and jewels.
+It is always securely fastened. I suppose, falling as I did, I must have
+broken the catch." She picked up the things quickly and thrust them into
+her bag. It was so dark in the room she supposed Mollie had not seen
+them. Then, holding the bag tightly in her hand, she went on downstairs,
+Mollie after her, and joined Grace and Mrs. Post, who had preceded them
+to the automobile.
+
+"Well, did anyone see the ghost?" asked Mrs. Post. "You, Mollie, my
+child, look as if you had seen something."
+
+"Oh, no," denied Mollie; "but I am afraid I frightened the countess. I
+threw some mignonette in the room, trying to make her think I was the
+ghost, but she didn't notice it. Then, when I spoke to her to tell her
+it was time to come downstairs, she was dreadfully startled."
+
+Mrs. Post ordered the chauffeur to drive home first, as she and the
+countess had a dinner engagement; the two girls being later taken to
+Mrs. Ewing's.
+
+The two women had barely left the car before Mollie put her lips near
+Grace's ear and whispered: "Grace Carter, the Countess Bertouche has
+stolen Mrs. Cartwright's butterfly! I saw it with my own eyes. She
+dropped it out of a bag on the floor, when she fell down."
+
+"Goose!" smiled Grace. "What are you talking about? Don't you suppose a
+countess may have a jeweled butterfly of her own?"
+
+"Not like that one," retorted Mollie, firmly. "I would know it among a
+thousand. You needn't believe me, but it's as true as that my name is
+Mollie Thurston. I am going to tell Ruth and Bab, as soon as I get home.
+I know they will believe me."
+
+"I do believe you, only I am so dumfounded I can't take it in," said
+Grace.
+
+"What on earth is the matter with you, Mollie?" asked Bab of her sister,
+as soon as they had finished dinner. "You look awfully excited."
+
+"Bab," whispered Mollie, "call Ruth and Grace right away. Don't let
+anyone else come. Let's go down to the end of the garden. I have
+something I must tell you, this minute!"
+
+Grace had already found Ruth, and the two came hurrying along. "No,
+Ralph," ordered Grace, "you can't come. This is strictly a girl's
+party."
+
+"Bab," began Mollie, "you will believe me, won't you? I do know what I
+am talking about. This afternoon I saw the Countess Bertouche with Mrs.
+Cartwright's diamond butterfly. She dropped it, right before my eyes,
+out of the same kind of bag that Miss Sallie uses to keep her jewelry
+in. What can it mean?"
+
+"Ruth!" gasped Bab. "Bab!" uttered Ruth.
+
+The two girls looked at each other in silence. Then Bab exclaimed: "It
+took my Mollie to make the discovery, after all!"
+
+"What are you talking about, Barbara Thurston? What discovery have I
+made?" demanded Mollie.
+
+"Ruth, do you think I had better tell the girls?" asked Bab.
+
+Ruth nodded, and Barbara related the principal facts of the jewel
+robbery. She also told the girls that she and Ruth suspected that Harry
+Townsend had been the robber who frightened them at New Haven. "You
+remember," Bab continued, "he was a guest at the hotel the same night we
+were, and left early the next morning. If he had one of the rooms under
+us, he could have climbed down the fire escape and into his own room
+before anyone could discover him."
+
+But Bab kept to herself that she and Ruth were expecting another
+burglary, and that she, Bab, was to play a part in bringing the thief to
+bay. Mollie and Grace would both be terribly frightened at the thought,
+but it was just as well that they knew enough not to be surprised at
+what was to follow.
+
+Barbara went upstairs and wrote a note to the address in Newport that
+the detectives had given to her. It told the story just recited by
+Mollie.
+
+"Ralph," requested Barbara, sauntering slowly through the hall, "will
+you mail this at once with your own hands? Little Mollie has done the
+deed, after all. She has found the woman who receives Harry Townsend's
+stolen goods!"
+
+Ralph took the letter with an exclamation of surprise and hurried off to
+the post.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII--THE TENNIS TOURNAMENT
+
+
+The girls were dressing for the tennis tournament. The games were to
+begin at noon, and continue until six o'clock. Three hours later the
+annual tennis ball took place at the Casino.
+
+"You know, Ruth," said Bab, fixing a pin in her friend's collar, as they
+stood before the mirror, "that the really most important thing in our
+whole stay at Newport is your winning the silver cup in the tournament
+to-day."
+
+"Oh!" cried Ruth. "Don't be quite so energetic, Bab. You jabbed that pin
+right into my neck. I believe I am going to win. I can't imagine a good
+soldier going into battle with the idea that he is going to be beaten.
+Why, an idea like that would take all the fight out of a man, or a girl
+either, for that matter. No, Hugh and I are going to do everything we
+possibly can to come out winners. But, if we do, Bab, Hugh and I will
+think we owe it to you and Ralph. You have been such trumps about
+keeping us up to the mark with your fine playing."
+
+"Nonsense, Ruth!" retorted Bab, decidedly. "All Ralph and I ask this
+afternoon is a chance to do some shouting for the winners. What time is
+the tourney on for the 'eighteen-year-olds'?"
+
+"Just after lunch; about two o'clock, I believe. Bab, are you nervous
+about to-night?" Ruth asked. "Do you think there is going to be a scene
+at the ball? The detectives will be watching Mr. Townsend closely. They
+suspect that he means to make another big attempt, don't they?"
+
+"I really don't know, Ruth," Barbara answered. "I had a short note from
+Mr. Burton this morning. I meant to show it to you, but I did not have a
+chance. It simply said: 'Thanks. The game is ours. Keep a sharp
+lookout!' But I want to forget the whole burglary business to-day.
+Tennis is the only really important thing. Hurrah for Miss Ruth Stuart,
+the famous girl champion!" cried Barbara, then suddenly sobered down.
+The two girls had been in the wildest spirits all day. Indeed, Miss
+Sallie had sent them into the same room to dress, in order to get rid of
+them.
+
+"What is the matter, Bab?" said Ruth, turning round to look into her
+friend's face.
+
+"I've a confession to make to you. In my heart of hearts, way down
+underneath, I am kind of sneakingly sorry for Harry Townsend. I know he
+is a rogue and everything that's wicked. When I think of him in that way
+I am not sorry for him a bit. Then the thought comes of the man who has
+been around with us for weeks, playing tennis with us and going to our
+parties, and I can't quite take it in."
+
+"I know just what you mean, Bab," replied Ruth, reflectively. "Don't you
+think it must be the same idea as Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde? Everyone has
+a good and a bad side. We can't help being sorry for the good part of a
+person, when the evil gets ahead of it. But, then, you and I have never
+really liked even the good side of Harry Townsend much. So I wonder why
+we both feel sorry."
+
+"It's the woman in us, I suppose," sighed Bab.
+
+"Ruth, come in here and let me see how you look," called Miss Sallie.
+She had sent up to New York for a special tennis costume for Ruth. The
+suit was a light-weight white serge skirt with an embroidered blouse of
+handkerchief linen, and the only color was Ruth's pale blue necktie and
+the snood on her hair, which was carefully braided and securely fastened
+to the back of her head.
+
+Gowns were an important part of tournament days; indeed, the New York
+Horse Show seldom shows more elaborate dressing than does the annual
+tennis tournament at the Newport Casino.
+
+Mollie and Barbara were the proud owners of two new gowns made by their
+mother for this special occasion. Bab's frock was a simple yellow
+dimity, and she wore a big white hat with a wreath of yellow roses round
+it.
+
+"You're a baby blue, Mollie, aren't you?" asked Grace standing and
+admiring her little friend. Grace had on a lingerie frock of lavender
+muslin and lace, and a big hat trimmed in lavender plumes.
+
+"Well," said Mollie, making her a low bow, "lucky am I to be dressed in
+blue, if it means I may sit near so lovely a person as you. Fortunately,
+lavender and blue make a pretty color combination."
+
+Miss Stuart had a box for the tennis tournament.
+
+When she and the girls entered it, they found it nearly filled with
+roses. There were no cards except a single one inscribed: "For the
+Automobile Girls," for Miss Sallie was as much an automobile girl as any
+of the others. The girls selected the bunches of flowers that seemed
+most suited to their costumes. Miss Sallie and Grace immediately decided
+on the white roses, Mollie chose the pink ones, looking in her pale blue
+dress and hat like a little Dresden shepherdess.
+
+In some one's garden a yellow rose bush of the old-fashioned kind must
+have bloomed for Bab. "Why!" uttered Miss Sallie, holding up Bab's
+flowers, from which streamed a long yellow satin bow, "I have not seen
+these little yellow garden roses since I was a girl. See how they open
+out their hearts to everyone! Is that like you, Bab? Be careful how you
+hold them," teased Miss Sallie; "they have a few thorns underneath, and
+must be gently handled."
+
+Ruth half suspected Hugh had been the anonymous giver of the flowers, as
+soon as she discovered her own bunch. They formed a big ball of pale
+blue hydrangeas, tied with Ruth's especial shade of blue ribbon.
+
+"See!" said Ruth, laughing, and holding them up for the other girls to
+admire. "Hugh was not discouraged by the fact that blue flowers are so
+hard to find. I wouldn't have dreamed that hydrangeas could look so
+lovely, except on the bush."
+
+Ruth sat in the front of the box, waiting for her name to be called for
+her tennis match. She was one of the most popular visitors in Newport;
+nearly everyone who passed her box stopped to wish good luck to her and
+to Hugh.
+
+"I have seen a good many sights, in my day," said Miss Sallie, gazing
+around through her lorgnette, "but never one more beautiful than this."
+
+The grass of the wide lawns was so perfectly trimmed that it looked like
+a carpet of moss. Over the green there swept a crowd of laughing, happy
+people, the women in frocks of every delicate color. Even the sober note
+that men's clothes generally make in a gay throng was missing to-day,
+for the boys, young and old, wore white flannels and light shirts that
+rivaled the dresses of the girls in the brightness of their hues.
+
+Tier upon tier of seats rose up around the tennis courts; before the
+first game was called every one was filled.
+
+"Give me my smelling salts, Grace," said Miss Sallie, when Ruth and Hugh
+were called out to commence their game. "I shall not look at them until
+the set is over."
+
+"O Miss Sallie!" declared Ralph, who had quietly slipped into Ruth's
+place next Barbara. "I am ashamed of you for not having more courage. I
+am certain they will win. We shall have two silver cups in this box in
+the next hour or so."
+
+Over the heads of the great crowd Barbara could see the Countess
+Bertouche. She was standing near Mr. and Mrs. Erwin's box, in which sat
+Governor and Mrs. Post, Gladys and Harry Townsend.
+
+For the first time in her acquaintance with them, Barbara saw Harry
+Townsend leave his seat and walk across the lawn with the countess.
+Evidently she had made some request of him. Not far off Barbara could
+also see a tall, blond man, with a curly, light mustache, who followed
+the pair with his eyes and then moved nonchalantly in their direction.
+
+But Harry Townsend was back with his friends in a minute. He had only
+taken the countess to her place, so that she need not be alone in the
+crowd.
+
+Ruth and Hugh were easy winners. They had no such tennis battle as they
+fought the day they earned the right to represent their crowd over the
+heads of Ralph and Barbara.
+
+"Hurrah! Hurrah! Hurrah!" shouted the crowd.
+
+Ruth and Hugh were standing near each other in front of the judges'
+stand, where the prizes were awarded.
+
+With a low bow, Mr. Cartwright presented Ruth with a beautiful silver
+cup and to Hugh another of the same kind. On the outside of each cup was
+engraved a design of two racquets crossing each other, with the word
+"champion" below.
+
+Barbara and Ruth had given up all their interest and thought to the
+tennis match during the day; but Ruth having won her cup, both girls'
+minds turned to the jewel robbery.
+
+Except for the note Bab had received in the morning, she had had no sign
+nor signal from the two detectives. The Countess Bertouche, apparently
+as calm and undisturbed as any of the other guests, had been an
+interested watcher of the tournament.
+
+The girls were late in arriving at the ball. Miss Stuart had insisted on
+their resting an hour after dinner, and the affair was in full swing
+when they entered the beautiful Casino ballroom.
+
+"You're just in time for the barn dance, all of you," called Mrs.
+Cartwright. "We are going to be informal for the next half hour, at
+least. Come, Ruth, I insist on you and Hugh leading off. You are our
+special tennis champions. Wasn't it hard luck that I didn't win, when my
+husband was a judge?"
+
+"Miss Thurston," said Harry Townsend, turning suddenly to Barbara,
+"won't you dance with me?"
+
+Barbara's hands turned cold as ice and her cheeks suddenly flamed. She
+hated to dance with a man whom she knew to be of the character of Harry
+Townsend. Yet how could she refuse?
+
+He looked at her coolly, and Bab saw a mocking smile curl the corners of
+his lips. But he was as smooth and courteous as usual.
+
+"He is the prince of actors," thought Bab. "I was a goose to let him see
+how I felt. I will show him that I know how to act as well as he does,
+when I am forced to it."
+
+Barbara accepted the invitation quietly. They took their places with the
+two long rows of dancers extending down the whole length of the great
+ballroom.
+
+The barn dance, with its merry, unconventional movement, its swinging
+music and grace, was generally the greatest joy to Bab. But tonight, in
+spite of her pretense at acting, her feet lagged. She dared not look
+into the face of her partner. He was as gay and debonair as usual.
+
+When the dance was over, Townsend asked Bab to walk out on the lawn with
+him.
+
+As Ruth saw Harry and Barbara walk out at the door, she turned suddenly
+to the stranger with whom she was talking. "Will you," she said to him,
+"tell Ralph Ewing I would like to speak to him at once? I want to tell
+him something that is very important. Please forgive my asking you, but
+I must see him. I will wait right here until you find him." It was
+five--ten minutes, before Ralph was found.
+
+Harry Townsend meant to discover what Barbara Thurston knew. She was a
+young girl, still at school. He was a man approaching thirty, with a
+record behind him of nearly ten years of successful villainy.
+
+Would Barbara betray herself? Would she "give the game away?"
+
+"Miss Thurston," began Harry Townsend, politely, "as I shall be going
+away from Newport very soon, I want to have a talk with you. I must
+confess, that, since the night of Mrs. Erwin's ball, I have been very
+angry with you. No high-minded man could endure the suggestion you made
+against my honor, when you asked Hugh Post to search me, so soon after
+his mother's jewels had disappeared. But time has passed, and I do not
+now feel so wounded. Before I go away, would you mind telling me why you
+made such an accusation against me?"
+
+"Mr. Townsend," said Barbara, biting her lips, but keeping cool and
+collected, "is it necessary for you to ask me why I made such an
+accusation? If it is, then, I beg your pardon. The jewels were not in
+your possession, certainly, when the search was made. I own I was most
+unwise."
+
+"Then you withdraw the accusation?" Townsend was puzzled. He had
+expected Barbara to defy him, to insist he had stolen the jewels, that
+she had seen him in the act of doing it. He was wise enough to know
+that, if he could once make her angry, she would betray what she knew.
+He had still to discover who the gypsy was that had so strangely
+revealed to him her knowledge of his crimes.
+
+Barbara's heart was beating like a sledgehammer.
+
+There was a slight movement in the nearby shrubbery. Harry Townsend
+wheeled like a flash. Barbara turned at the same instant. It was only a
+stranger who had wandered across the lawn and mistaken the path, but
+Barbara knew that his presence there meant eternal vigilance.
+
+"O Mr. Townsend," she said, "the music is commencing. I would rather
+return to the ballroom. I have an engagement for this dance."
+
+Harry Townsend realized he must manage to entice Barbara to a more
+secluded part of the Casino grounds before he could have a satisfactory
+talk with her.
+
+"No," he said, "we will not go back yet, I want to talk to you. We must
+understand each other better, before the night is over. Come!" He spoke
+in a voice as cold and hard as ice and took Barbara by the wrist.
+
+Barbara could not jerk away or call for help. She decided it was best to
+follow him.
+
+"You are not running away, are you, Miss Thurston?" It was Ralph's voice
+calling. "I am sure Mr. Townsend will excuse you, as you have a previous
+engagement with me."
+
+"Oh, certainly," said Harry Townsend, pleasantly, "sorry as I am to lose
+Miss Thurston's society." As Barbara and Ralph walked away, he bit his
+lips savagely. Then he decided to follow the tall man he had seen moving
+about in the shrubbery. It might be that the man suspected something.
+But Townsend found him ten minutes later in the smoking-room, quietly
+moving around among the men.
+
+"Bab," Ruth had a chance to whisper to her later in the evening, "is it
+all right with you? I was desperately frightened when I saw you
+disappear outside with Harry Townsend. Have you noticed something?"
+
+"What?" said Bab, gazing searchingly about her.
+
+"Only," Ruth answered, "that the Countess Bertouche is not here this
+evening."
+
+Both realized that the first card in the game had been played.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII--BROUGHT TO BAY
+
+
+One other person had noticed, with even greater interest than had Ruth
+and Bab, that the Countess Bertouche had failed to appear at the ball.
+That person was the jewel thief, Harry Townsend. He was filled with a
+silent rage. How dared she fail him this night of all others?
+
+All the fellow's plans were carefully laid. The woman with the jewels he
+coveted sat in the ballroom; large and slow witted, she would not be
+quick either to discover her loss or to raise an alarm. And Harry
+Townsend was on friendly terms with her. Once she decided to leave the
+brightly lighted halls for the darkness of the grounds outside, lifting
+the tiara would be an easy matter. But Townsend never kept the jewels he
+stole in his possession ten minutes after their theft. How was he to get
+rid of them to-night?
+
+It was after midnight. Many of the guests had withdrawn to the veranda;
+the lawns were filled with people walking about. Now Harry Townsend
+stood back of a row of lights that cast a deep shadow. He was talking to
+some acquaintances. The women were elegantly gowned, and one of them
+wore a beautiful diamond tiara.
+
+Bab was standing alone in the door of the girls' dressing-room. Miss
+Sallie had called her in, after supper, to smooth her hair. The other
+girls had been with her, but they had returned to join the dancers. Bab
+was resting and thinking. Mollie and Grace knew nothing of what she and
+Ruth had on their minds. The younger girls knew that Harry Townsend and
+the Countess Bertouche were suspected as thieves, but they did not know
+that the detectives were on the alert, and that the arrest might come
+to-night.
+
+Barbara was wondering if she ought to tell Gladys Le Baron what she
+knew. After all, Gladys was her cousin; and, as she had told Ralph, the
+other day, Bab felt that there ought to be a certain loyalty among
+people of the same blood, even when they were not fond of one another.
+
+To-night Gladys Le Baron had been more conspicuous with Harry Townsend
+than ever before. Not only was she seen with him constantly, but she
+wore an air of conscious pride, as if to say, "See what a prize I have
+won!"
+
+Gladys had passed Bab two or three times during the evening, but had
+pretended not to see her. Now she was coming in at the dressing-room
+door.
+
+"Gladys," said Bab, timidly.
+
+Gladys turned to her haughtily. "I would rather," she said, "that you
+did not speak to me. We cannot have much to say to each other. Harry
+Townsend told me"--Gladys spoke so passionately and with such deep anger
+in her tones that Barbara stared at her aghast--"of the accusation you
+made against him. He made me promise not to speak of it, but I will
+speak of it to you. I want you to know that I shall never forgive you as
+long as I live, and that I shall get even with you some day. You are
+jealous and envious of me because we have more money, and because Harry
+Townsend likes me. I want you never to talk to me."
+
+"O Gladys!" said Barbara. She was angry and hurt, but she was more
+frightened by the real feeling her cousin showed. Did she care for Mr.
+Townsend so much? Gladys was nearly eighteen, and Bab knew that ever
+since she was a girl of fourteen she had been brought up to think she
+was a young lady.
+
+"Gladys," said Bab, firmly, "listen to me! Be quiet. I cannot tell you
+what I wish to say in this ballroom, to-night, among all these people,
+but I have something to tell you that you simply must know. Do you
+understand? Come to my house in the morning, and don't fail." Barbara's
+tones were so new and commanding that Gladys could only stare at her in
+silent amazement.
+
+"Yes," she said, meekly; "I will come."
+
+Bab's eyes were burning, and her cheeks stung with the shame of the
+scene between herself and Gladys. In order to be alone in the fresh air,
+she slipped out of the dressing-room door which opened into a side yard.
+This yard had a double hedge of althea bushes which led into the back
+part of the Casino grounds. At the same instant that Bab left the
+dressing-room door, a man passed her on the other side of the hedge. He
+was going into the back part of the garden.
+
+The show grounds of the Casino were in a central court. In the rear,
+back of the kitchens, was a long arbor covered with heavy grapevines.
+The man Bab followed slipped into this arbor.
+
+When Barbara glanced into it a second later--she dared not move quickly,
+for fear of making a noise--there was no human figure in sight. "He has
+gone on down through the arbor and slipped over the fence," she thought
+to herself.
+
+She was feeling her way along, trying to keep in the center path. The
+night was dark, and there were few stars overhead.
+
+Suddenly, Bab gave a little shriek of terror and started back. Crouching
+in the darkness was a man. His back was turned to Barbara, and, if the
+darkness was not deceiving her, he was digging in the earth.
+
+But Barbara's shriek roused him. "You, again!" he cried. He leaped at
+her, and, before she could call for help, his hand covered her mouth,
+and her head was pressed back.
+
+"Don't make a noise," another voice said quietly. "My instructions were
+not to make a scene."
+
+Townsend felt his own arms seized and drawn down to his sides. The big,
+blond man, who had interrupted his tte--tte with Barbara earlier in
+the evening, was again by his side. A smaller, dark man stood near him.
+
+"Well, we have got you this time with the goods on you, or pretty close
+to you," said the smaller detective, striking a match and looking down
+at his feet. Just near where they stood, only partially concealed by the
+dirt, which had been hastily dug up, something brilliant flashed and
+sparkled.
+
+"Did you think, Mr. Townsend," laughed Detective Burton quietly, "that
+you were the only clever person in Newport? These jewels you have just
+stolen are hardly worth the risk you ran. You might get about
+twenty-five dollars for the lot. I suppose you didn't know, since it has
+become the fashion to have a jewel thief in Newport, it has also become
+the fashion to wear paste jewels." The man held the tiara in his hand.
+"But I will restore them to the rightful owner," he said. "Mrs. Oliver
+informed me they were gone, two minutes after you slipped them out of
+her hair."
+
+Townsend had not spoken. "Don't," he now said, with a shudder, "put
+those handcuffs on my hands. I will go quietly. I see the game is
+up--thanks to you!" He turned to Barbara with a snarl. But Ruth and Ralph
+were standing close by her side.
+
+Barbara was much shaken and frightened by her encounter, but she tried
+to summon a little of her old spirit. "You do me too much honor, Mr.
+Townsend," she answered quietly.
+
+"Where is the Countess Bertouche?" asked Townsend stolidly.
+
+"She is ready to leave Newport with you to-night. Only we persuaded her
+to get ready a little earlier; indeed, we called upon her this
+afternoon, while she was at the tournament, and were waiting for her
+when she got back. She had two or three little trinkets in her
+possession, which she was holding for you, that we wished to return to
+their rightful owners. The lady will be able to travel as soon as you
+are. We think it best not to have any excitement in Newport. By the
+way," went on the detective--the three young people were listening
+breathlessly--"the lady is not such a cool customer as you are. She
+confessed that she was not a countess, but a poor newspaper woman out of
+a job, whom you enticed down here to help you. She explained that you
+had been mailing letters of instruction to her by sending them on to New
+York and having them remailed to her here. A poor business it has been
+for both of you, I am thinking."
+
+"Ruth," said Barbara, quickly, "it's too awful! Let us go back to Miss
+Sallie!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV--GOOD-BYE TO NEWPORT
+
+
+Early next morning Ruth and Barbara made full confession to Miss Sallie.
+Mollie and Grace were not surprised, for they had been told enough of
+the circumstances to expect the outcome. But imagine Miss Sallie!
+
+"You mean to tell me, Ruth and Bab," she gasped, dropping limply into
+the nearest chair, "that Harry Townsend is the jewel thief, the Newport
+Raffles? Why, you girls have walked with him, talked with him, played
+tennis with him! And Barbara has suspected him all the time! My
+heavens!" she wailed, in despair. "Did it never dawn on you, Barbara,
+that you might have been killed?"
+
+Miss Stuart was overcome. "Ruth Stuart, my own niece, do you mean to
+tell me that you lately discovered that 'this Townsend' was the thief
+who tried to rob us in New Haven? Why was I not told at once? But then,
+I am grateful I was not. And you, Mollie, fourteen-year-old Mollie, you
+found out this wretch's accomplice, and discovered Mrs. Cartwright's
+stolen butterfly! I never would have thought it of you!"
+
+"But I didn't mean to, Miss Sallie. It was all an accident. I am awfully
+sorry for that poor woman," answered Mollie.
+
+"Nonsense, child!" said Miss Sallie. "I am grateful enough that such
+dangerous people are out of the way."
+
+The girls were standing in a circle round her. "Come to my arms," she
+demanded of Grace. "Thank heavens, child, you have not turned detective,
+and can be relied on to keep me company!"
+
+"But it was just as much Grace's fault as it was mine that I discovered
+the butterfly," argued Mollie, who could not see that Miss Sallie was
+joking. "She was with me when I found it out." Everyone joined in the
+laugh at Mollie's expense.
+
+"Some one to see you in the library, miss," announced Susan, the parlor
+maid. "She says she'd like to see you alone, first, and she'd rather not
+give her name."
+
+"Then you are not to go one step, Barbara Thurston," said Miss Stuart in
+the voice the girls knew had to be obeyed. "There is no telling who it
+is waiting for you, nor what her intentions may be toward you. You'd go
+if you thought you'd be murdered the next minute. I never saw a girl
+like you. I will go myself," announced Miss Sallie.
+
+"Oh, no," said the girls, all pulling together at her skirts.
+
+Miss Sallie had to pause. "If you think, young ladies," she said,
+calmly, "that, because I have not unearthed a jewel robber, nor attacked
+a burglar in the dark, I am therefore more of a coward than a parcel of
+silly girls, you are vastly mistaken. Let go of me!" Miss Sallie marched
+majestically forward.
+
+"Susan, _I_ will go down."
+
+"Oh, no'm," pleaded Susan, giggling. She had no idea what all the fuss
+was about, but she knew it was most unnecessary. "Please'm, let me
+whisper to you. It's only that Miss Gladys Le Baron, but I promised not
+to give her name. I am sure she means no harm, miss. She looks like she
+was worried and had been crying a bit, ma'am."
+
+"It is all right, Barbara," said Miss Sallie. "From what Susan tells me
+you may go downstairs alone."
+
+Bab had not the faintest idea who could be waiting for her. In all the
+excitement, she had entirely forgotten that she had told Gladys Le Baron
+to come to see her this morning without fail. As soon as she opened the
+library door, she remembered. "Good morning," she said, coldly.
+
+But Gladys flung her arms about her neck and burst into a torrent of
+tears. "I know it all, all!" she said. "Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin called
+me into their rooms last night, and told me everything. I had expected
+Harry Townsend to take me home from the ball, and, when he didn't put in
+his appearance, I was so angry and behaved so badly Mrs. Post said I had
+to be told at once. Mrs. Erwin wanted to wait until morning. O Bab, I
+didn't sleep a wink last night!"
+
+"I am sorry," said Bab, but she didn't really show a great deal of
+feeling.
+
+"Bab," Gladys went on, "I simply can't believe it! And to think you knew
+it almost all the time! Mrs. Post says I have to believe it, now,
+because the whole story is out. She says she was completely deceived,
+too, and can understand why I thought Townsend was a gentleman. Father
+seemed to think he was all right. He told us all about his being an
+orphan, and who his rich relations were. Mrs. Erwin is so good. She just
+says she is sorry for me, and hasn't uttered a word of blame. Only
+think, I brought that dreadful wretch to her house, and I am responsible
+for all the trouble! O Barbara, I can never face it!" Gladys wiped her
+eyes again with her handkerchief, which was already wet with her tears.
+
+"I want to go home to mother to-day, but Mrs. Erwin says I have to stay
+with her a little while longer. She says that, if I rush right off now,
+if I disappear the very same day Harry Townsend and that woman leave,
+people will believe there is more between us than there really is. There
+wasn't anything exactly serious, though I did like him. I am sure I
+shall never hold up my head again."
+
+"I wanted to warn you sooner, Gladys; believe me, I did," answered
+Barbara; "but I knew you wouldn't listen to me, and would not believe a
+word I said."
+
+"I know, Barbara," said Gladys, humbly. "I have been a horrid stuck-up
+goose. I know, now, if you hadn't seen him steal the necklace at Mrs.
+Erwin's, we might never have found out who the thief was. Then I don't
+know what dreadful thing might have happened to me, if I had gone on
+seeing him and never understood his true nature. Do you think he could
+have stolen my bracelet?"
+
+"I know he did," Bab answered.
+
+"The horrid, hateful thing!" cried Gladys, with a fresh burst of tears.
+"Barbara, I want to ask you a favor. Will you beg Ruth to let me go back
+to Kingsbridge in the automobile with you? I suppose I ask you because I
+have been more hateful to you than to anyone else. I know if you will
+forgive me the other girls will. Ruth will do anything you ask her."
+
+"But I can't ask Ruth such a favor as that, Gladys," argued Barbara.
+"There wouldn't be room in the car, for one thing."
+
+"Oh, I could sit on the little seat and I would be as nice and give as
+little trouble as I possibly could, if you will only ask her. I somehow
+feel that if you girls will stick by me, now, other people will not
+think so badly of me. They will know I have been a goose, and have been
+dreadfully deceived by Harry Townsend, but they'll understand that I
+never meant any wrong, and am not really bad. You see, Bab, you and
+Mollie are my cousins. Everyone is sure to find out you helped to expose
+the awful villain; so, if I am seen with you now, it will show that you
+take my part, and that you knew I had only been deceived."
+
+"Don't you think it is a good deal to ask of me, Gladys?" said Barbara,
+speaking very slowly. She was thinking of every snub, every cruel thrust
+Gladys had given her since they were children.
+
+Gladys did not answer at first. Then she shook her head, and rose to go.
+"Yes, Barbara," she said; "I know I don't deserve a bit of kindness at
+your hands. I have been perfectly hateful to you, always. Good-bye."
+
+"Oh, stay, Gladys," begged Bab, penitent in an instant. "I didn't mean
+that. Of course we will all stand by you. Indeed, I shall ask Ruth if
+you may go back in the automobile with us, and I am sure, if Miss Stuart
+thinks there is room enough, Ruth will be delighted to have you. She is
+always the dearest, most generous girl in the world," said Bab, her face
+glowing with the enthusiasm she always felt in speaking of Ruth.
+
+"Now," she continued, "do come on upstairs and take off your hat. You
+must stay to lunch with us. Oh, no; you needn't be afraid of Miss
+Stuart. She won't be unkind to you; she's a perfect dear! She'll just be
+awfully sorry for you, when you tell her how badly you feel. Come on,
+Gladys." Bab took hold of her hand.
+
+"Won't you call Ruth down first?" urged Gladys. "I feel too much ashamed
+to go right on up there among all of you."
+
+Ruth and Bab, between them, persuaded Gladys to go to their rooms. To
+their surprise, Mistress Mollie was the one to be appeased. She was not
+so ready to kiss and make up as Bab had been, yet even Mollie's "hard"
+little heart softened when she saw what a changed and chastened Gladys
+the girls brought upstairs with them.
+
+"You'll see I am going to be different," Gladys said to Bab, "and if
+ever there's a chance for me to prove how I appreciate your being so
+kind to me now, I shall do it. Of course, I don't expect you to have
+much faith in me yet."
+
+"Miss Barbara Thurston is requested to spend her last day in Newport as
+the guest of honor of Governor and Mrs. Post on board their yacht, the
+'Penguin,' which is at this instant awaiting her answer outside in
+Narragansett Bay," said Ruth, with a flourish of a letter she held in
+her hand and a low bow to Barbara.
+
+"Goose!" shot Barbara at Ruth. "But are we all invited for a sail? How
+jolly!"
+
+"I am no goose, madam," retorted Ruth. "I mean what I say. Read this."
+
+She handed Barbara a letter which Miss Stuart had received from Mrs.
+Post only a few minutes before, and which read:
+
+ My Dear Miss Stuart,
+
+ We want, in some quiet fashion, to show our appreciation of, and
+ thanks to, the little girl who so patiently and cleverly kept her own
+ counsel, and so materially aided in the discovery of the jewel thief.
+ I feel that I did not do her justice. Governor Post and I both believe
+ that it is to her wit and courage that I owe the return of my emerald
+ necklace. I have talked matters over with Hugh, and, with your
+ consent, I should like to give a luncheon, in her honor, on board the
+ yacht at one o'clock to-morrow. We will spend the afternoon sailing in
+ the bay. Only our intimate friends will be invited and we feel that no
+ party could be complete, at Newport, without the presence of "The
+ Automobile Girls."
+
+ Faithfully yours,
+ Katherine Post.
+
+
+"What larks!" cried Barbara, blushing with pleasure. "Has Miss Sallie
+said we could go?"
+
+"Certainly she has," rejoined Ruth. "I told Hugh so at once."
+
+ Columbia, the gem of the ocean,
+ The home of the brave and the free,
+ The shrine of each patriot's devotion----
+
+The young people were in the bow of the yacht when the music commenced.
+"Why, Hugh," Bab whispered to him in an undertone, "have we a band on
+board? How perfectly delightful!"
+
+"Young Miss America," Hugh answered, "you needn't think, for one minute,
+that this party on the 'Penguin' is going to enjoy any ordinary
+entertainment to-day. The band is not half. Just you wait, and see all
+the remarkable things that are to take place on this blessed boat
+excursion."
+
+Earlier in the day, when Ruth and Grace first came aboard, they passed
+through the salon on their way to the upper deck. Grace caught hold of
+Ruth's sleeve and drew her back to whisper to her: "Has it ever occurred
+to you that Harry Townsend might have stolen your fifty dollars that
+disappeared after we spent our first day on the yacht? I have been
+thinking that he must have been dreadfully hard up, or he never would
+have tried the robbery at New Haven, or have stolen such a small sum
+from you afterwards."
+
+"Yes, I have thought about it," said Ruth, shaking her head, with a
+forlorn gesture. "Isn't it too dreadful? Let's forget all about him
+to-day."
+
+The luncheon was announced promptly at one.
+
+"'The Automobile Girls,' including Miss Sallie, will kindly stay on deck
+until they are summoned," called Mrs. Post, sweeping on ahead, followed
+by her other guests.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls waited in some excitement. The sun was shining
+gayly on the deck of the little ship, which sailed through the water
+like a white bird. All the flags were flying in Barbara's honor, as the
+governor explained, when she came on board.
+
+Suddenly Hugh's smiling face appeared at the open door. "Come in, now,"
+he requested.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls marched into the long salon dining-room, while
+the band played "Liberty Bell."
+
+In the center of the luncheon table, raised on a moss-covered stand, was
+a miniature automobile. In it sat five dolls wearing automobile veils of
+different colors and long dust coats. Two of the dolls were blondes, the
+other two were brunettes. But the stateliest and handsomest doll of the
+lot had soft, white hair and reclined against a violet cushion. A pale
+blue flag flew over the car. It bore the inscription: "The Automobile
+Girls--Long May They Flourish!"
+
+At either end of the table stood Hugh's and Ruth's silver cups, won at
+the tennis tournament.
+
+As Miss Sallie and the four girls took their places, Hugh raised one
+cup, his mother the other. "We will drink from these loving cups," he
+said, "to the health of our guests of honor, 'The Automobile Girls.'" He
+then passed the cups, filled with a fruit punch, around the table.
+
+At the close of the luncheon, Hugh again rose to his feet.
+
+"Ladies and gentlemen," he announced, "I am going to make a speech."
+
+"Don't do it, Hugh," laughed Ralph.
+
+"All right, Ralph," said Hugh; "I won't. Barbara," Hugh leaned over to
+attract her attention, and Barbara turned a rosy red, "here's a souvenir
+of Newport for you. I guess it's a gift from us all." He motioned to his
+friends around the table and handed to Bab a small green velvet box.
+"For the girl who is always on the watch," he ended.
+
+Barbara's eyes were full of tears. They came partly from embarrassment,
+but most of all from pleasure. Inside the velvet case was a tiny gold
+watch, set in a circle of small emeralds.
+
+But Mollie was calling Bab to look at her gift. Mrs. Cartwright, who sat
+next her favorite of the girls, had pinned a little, pearl butterfly in
+the lace yoke of Mollie's gown. Ruth and Grace were each rejoicing in
+their gifts, silver pins representing tennis racquets, their souvenirs
+of the luncheon and their month's stay in Newport.
+
+"It has been just too lovely!" said Mollie to Mrs. Post, as she bade her
+good-night. "Yes, we start for home the first thing in the morning. In a
+few days there will be no more 'Automobile Girls,'" she ended with a
+sigh.
+
+"Oh," said Ruth, laughing and coming up beside her, "who knows? You
+never can tell! Good-bye, everyone," she said, taking hold of Bab's
+hand. "We have had the time of our lives, just as we hoped we would.
+Till we meet again," she finished with a smile.
+
+The four girls ran down the gangplank and rejoined Miss Sallie.
+
+As many of our readers will guess, the return to Kingsbridge did not
+bring an end to the adventures of the natural and charming girls in
+their automobile. Further adventures and a host of new things remain to
+be told, but these must be deferred for narration in the next volume,
+which will be entitled, "The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires; or, The
+Ghost of Lost Man's Trail."
+
+
+ [The End]
+
+ * * * * *
+
+HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY'S
+
+Best and Least Expensive
+
+Books for Boys and Girls
+
+The Motor Boat Club Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The keynote of these books is manliness. The stories are wonderfully
+entertaining, and they are at the same time sound and wholesome. No boy
+will willingly lay down an unfinished book in this series.
+
+ 1 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB OF THE KENNEBEC; Or,
+ The Secret of Smugglers' Island.
+ 2 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AT NANTUCKET; Or, The
+ Mystery of the Dunstan Heir.
+ 3 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB OFF LONG ISLAND; Or, A
+ Daring Marine Game at Racing Speed.
+ 4 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AND THE WIRELESS; Or,
+ The Dot, Dash and Dare Cruise.
+ 5 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB IN FLORIDA; Or, Laying
+ the Ghost of Alligator Swamp.
+ 6 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AT THE GOLDEN GATE;
+ Or, A Thrilling Capture in the Great Fog.
+ 7 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB ON THE GREAT LAKES;
+ Or, The Flying Dutchman of the Big Fresh Water.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+Sold by all booksellers or sent postpaid on receipt of price.
+
+Henry Altemus Company
+
+1326-1336 Vine Street, Philadelphia
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Battleship Boys Series
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+These stories throb with the life of young Americans on to-day's huge
+drab Dreadnaughts.
+
+ 1 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS AT SEA; Or, Two Apprentices
+ in Uncle Sam's Navy.
+ 2 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS' FIRST STEP UPWARD; Or,
+ Winning Their Grades as Petty Officers.
+ 3 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN FOREIGN SERVICE; Or,
+ Earning New Ratings in European Seas.
+ 4 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN THE TROPICS; Or, Upholding
+ the American Flag in a Honduras Revolution.
+ 5 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS UNDER FIRE; Or, The Dash for
+ the Besieged Kam Shau Mission.
+ 6 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN THE WARDROOM; Or,
+ Winning their Commissions as Line Officers.
+ 7 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS WITH THE ADRIATIC CHASERS;
+ Or, Blocking the Path of the Undersea Raiders.
+ 8 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS' SKY PATROL; Or, Fighting
+ the Hun from Above the Clouds.
+
+Price, $1.00 each
+
+
+The Range and Grange Hustlers
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+Have you any idea of the excitements, the glories of life on great
+ranches in the West? Any bright boy will "devour" the books of this
+series, once he has made a start with the first volume.
+
+ 1 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS ON THE RANCH;
+ Or, The Boy Shepherds of the Great Divide.
+ 2 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS' GREATEST ROUND-UP;
+ Or, Pitting Their Wits Against a Packers' Combine.
+ 3 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS ON THE PLAINS;
+ Or, Following the Steam Plows Across the Prairie.
+ 4 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS AT CHICAGO;
+ Or, The Conspiracy of the Wheat Pit.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Submarine Boys Series
+
+By VICTOR G. DURHAM
+
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS ON DUTY;
+ Or, Life on a Diving Torpedo Boat.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS' TRIAL TRIP;
+ Or, "Making Good" as Young Experts.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE MIDDIES;
+ Or, The Prize Detail at Annapolis.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE SPIES;
+ Or, Dodging the Sharks of the Deep.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS' LIGHTNING CRUISE;
+ Or, The Young Kings of the Deep.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS FOR THE FLAG;
+ Or, Deeding Their Lives to Uncle Sam.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE SMUGGLERS;
+ Or, Breaking Up the New Jersey Customs Frauds.
+
+
+Grace Harlowe Overseas Series
+
+ GRACE HARLOWE OVERSEAS.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE RED CROSS IN FRANCE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE MARINES AT CHATEAU THIERRY.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE AMERICAN ARMY IN THE ARGONNE.
+
+
+The College Girls Series
+
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S FIRST YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S SECOND YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S THIRD YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S FOURTH YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S RETURN TO OVERTON CAMPUS.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S PROBLEM.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S GOLDEN SUMMER.
+
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid on receipt
+of only $1.00 each.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Pony Rider Boys Series
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+These tales may be aptly described the best books for boys and girls.
+
+ 1 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE ROCKIES;
+ Or, The Secret of the Lost Claim.
+ 2 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN TEXAS;
+ Or, The Veiled Riddle of the Plains.
+ 3 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN MONTANA;
+ Or, The Mystery of the Old Custer Trail.
+ 4 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE OZARKS;
+ Or, The Secret of Ruby Mountain.
+ 5 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE ALKALI;
+ Or, Finding a Key to the Desert Maze.
+ 6 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN NEW MEXICO;
+ Or, The End of the Silver Trail.
+ 7 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE GRAND CANYON;
+ Or, The Mystery of Bright Angel Gulch.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Boys of Steel Series
+
+By JAMES R. MEARS
+
+Each book presents a vivid picture of this great industry. Each story is
+full of adventure and fascination.
+
+ 1 THE IRON BOYS IN THE MINES;
+ Or, Starting at the Bottom of the Shaft.
+ 2 THE IRON BOYS AS FOREMEN;
+ Or, Heading the Diamond Drill Shift.
+ 3 THE IRON BOYS ON THE ORE BOATS;
+ Or, Roughing It on the Great Lakes.
+ 4 THE IRON BOYS IN THE STEEL MILLS;
+ Or, Beginning Anew in the Cinder Pits.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Madge Morton Books
+
+By AMY D. V. CHALMERS
+
+ 1 MADGE MORTON--CAPTAIN OF THE MERRY MAID.
+ 2 MADGE MORTON'S SECRET.
+ 3 MADGE MORTON'S TRUST.
+ 4 MADGE MORTON'S VICTORY.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+West Point Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The principal characters in these narratives are manly, young Americans
+whose doings will inspire all boy readers.
+
+ 1 DICK PRESCOTT'S FIRST YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Two Chums in the Cadet Gray.
+ 2 DICK PRESCOTT'S SECOND YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Finding the Glory of the Soldier's Life.
+ 3 DICK PRESCOTT'S THIRD YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Standing Firm for Flag and Honor.
+ 4 DICK PRESCOTT'S FOURTH YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Ready to Drop the Gray for Shoulder Straps.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+Annapolis Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The Spirit of the new Navy is delightfully and truthfully depicted in
+these volumes.
+
+ 1 DAVE DARRIN'S FIRST YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or, Two
+ Plebe Midshipmen at the U. S. Naval Academy.
+ 2 DAVE DARRIN'S SECOND YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or,
+ Two Midshipmen as Naval Academy "Youngsters."
+ 3 DAVE DARRIN'S THIRD YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or, Leaders
+ of the Second Class Midshipmen.
+ 4 DAVE DARRIN'S FOURTH YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or,
+ Headed for Graduation and the Big Cruise.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Young Engineers Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The heroes of these stories are known to readers of the High School Boys
+Series. In this new series Tom Reade and Harry Hazelton prove worthy of
+all the traditions of Dick & Co.
+
+ 1 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN COLORADO; Or, At Railroad
+ Building in Earnest.
+ 2 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN ARIZONA; Or, Laying Tracks
+ on the "Man-Killer" Quicksand.
+ 3 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN NEVADA; Or, Seeking Fortune
+ on the Turn of a Pick.
+ 4 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN MEXICO; Or, Fighting the
+ Mine Swindlers.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Boys of the Army Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+These books breathe the life and spirit of the United States Army of
+to-day, and the life, just as it is, is described by a master pen.
+
+ 1 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS IN THE RANKS; Or, Two Recruits
+ in the United States Army.
+ 2 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS ON FIELD DUTY; Or, Winning
+ Corporal's Chevrons.
+ 3 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS AS SERGEANTS; Or, Handling
+ Their First Real Commands.
+ 4 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS IN THE PHILIPPINES; Or, Following
+ the Flag Against the Moros.
+ 6 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS AS LIEUTENANTS; Or, Serving
+ Old Glory as Line Officers.
+ 7 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS WITH PERSHING; Or, Dick Prescott
+ at Grips with the Boche.
+ 8 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS SMASH THE GERMANS; Or, Winding
+ Up the Great War.
+
+
+Dave Darrin Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+ 1 DAVE DARRIN AT VERA CRUZ;
+ Or, Fighting With the U. S. Navy in Mexico.
+ 2 DAVE DARRIN ON MEDITERRANEAN SERVICE.
+ 3 DAVE DARRIN'S SOUTH AMERICAN CRUISE.
+ 4 DAVE DARRIN ON THE ASIATIC STATION.
+ 5 DAVE DARRIN AND THE GERMAN SUBMARINES.
+ 6 DAVE DARRIN AFTER THE MINE LAYERS;
+ Or, Hitting the Enemy a Hard Naval Blow.
+
+
+The Meadow-Brook Girls Series
+
+By JANET ALDRIDGE
+
+ 1 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS UNDER CANVAS.
+ 2 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS ACROSS COUNTRY.
+ 3 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS AFLOAT.
+ 4 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS IN THE HILLS.
+ 5 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS BY THE SEA.
+ 6 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS ON THE TENNIS COURTS.
+
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid on receipt
+of only $1.00 each.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+High School Boys Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+In this series of bright, crisp books a new note has been struck.
+
+Boys of every age under sixty will be interested in these fascinating
+volumes.
+
+ 1 THE HIGH SCHOOL FRESHMEN; Or, Dick & Co.'s First
+ Year Pranks and Sports.
+ 2 THE HIGH SCHOOL PITCHER; Or, Dick & Co. on the
+ Gridley Diamond.
+ 3 THE HIGH SCHOOL LEFT END; Or, Dick & Co. Grilling on
+ the Football Gridiron.
+ 4 THE HIGH SCHOOL CAPTAIN OF THE TEAM; Or, Dick &
+ Co. Leading the Athletic Vanguard.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+Grammar School Boys Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+This series of stories, based on the actual doings of grammar school
+boys, comes near to the heart of the average American boy.
+
+ 1 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS OF GRIDLEY;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Start Things Moving.
+ 2 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS SNOWBOUND;
+ Or, Dick & Co. at Winter Sports.
+ 3 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS IN THE WOODS;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Trail Fun and Knowledge.
+ 4 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS IN SUMMER ATHLETICS;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Make Their Fame Secure.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+High School Boys' Vacation Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+"Give us more Dick Prescott books!"
+
+This has been the burden of the cry from young readers of the country
+over. Almost numberless letters have been received by the publishers,
+making this eager demand; for Dick Prescott, Dave Darrin, Tom Reade, and
+the other members of Dick & Co. are the most popular high school boys in
+the land. Boys will alternately thrill and chuckle when reading these
+splendid narratives.
+
+ 1 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS' CANOE CLUB; Or, Dick & Co.'s
+ Rivals on Lake Pleasant.
+ 2 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS IN SUMMER CAMP; Or, The
+ Dick Prescott Six Training for the Gridley Eleven.
+ 3 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS' FISHING TRIP; Or, Dick & Co.
+ in the Wilderness.
+ 4 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS' TRAINING HIKE; Or, Dick &
+ Co. Making Themselves "Hard as Nails."
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The Circus Boys Series
+
+By EDGAR B. P. DARLINGTON
+
+Mr. Darlington's books breathe forth every phase of an intensely
+interesting and exciting life.
+
+ 1 THE CIRCUS BOYS ON THE FLYING RINGS; Or, Making
+ the Start in the Sawdust Life.
+ 2 THE CIRCUS BOYS ACROSS THE CONTINENT; Or, Winning
+ New Laurels on the Tanbark.
+ 3 THE CIRCUS BOYS IN DIXIE LAND; Or, Winning the
+ Plaudits of the Sunny South.
+ 4 THE CIRCUS BOYS ON THE MISSISSIPPI; Or, Afloat with
+ the Big Show on the Big River.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The High School Girls Series
+
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+
+These breezy stories of the American High School Girl take the reader
+fairly by storm.
+
+ 1 GRACE HARLOWE'S PLEBE YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Merry Doings of the Oakdale Freshman Girls.
+ 2 GRACE HARLOWE'S SOPHOMORE YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Record of the Girl Chums in Work and Athletics.
+ 3 GRACE HARLOWE'S JUNIOR YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, Fast Friends in the Sororities.
+ 4 GRACE HARLOWE'S SENIOR YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Parting of the Ways.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Automobile Girls Series
+
+By LAURA DENT CRANE
+
+No girl's library--no family book-case can be considered at all complete
+unless it contains these sparkling twentieth-century books.
+
+ 1 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT;
+ Or, Watching the Summer Parade.
+ 2 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS IN THE BERKSHIRES;
+ Or, The Ghost of Lost Man's Trail.
+ 3 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS ALONG THE HUDSON;
+ Or, Fighting Fire in Sleepy Hollow.
+ 4 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT CHICAGO;
+ Or, Winning Out Against Heavy Odds.
+ 5 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT PALM BEACH;
+ Or, Proving Their Mettle Under Southern Skies.
+ 6 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT WASHINGTON;
+ Or, Checkmating the Plots of Foreign Spies.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Automobile Girls at Newport, by
+Laura Dent Crane
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+***** This file should be named 36273-8.txt or 36273-8.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/6/2/7/36273/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/36273-8.zip b/36273-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fca291a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-h.zip b/36273-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fe34830
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-h/36273-h.htm b/36273-h/36273-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c885cfd
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h/36273-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,10720 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" >
+<head>
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
+ <meta content="The Automobile Girls at Newport" name="DC.Title"/>
+ <meta content="Laura Dent Crane" name="DC.Creator"/>
+ <meta content="en" name="DC.Language"/>
+ <meta content="1910" name="DC.Created"/>
+ <meta name="generator" content="ppgen (1.09) generated May 30, 2011 09:56 AM" />
+ <title>The Automobile Girls at Newport</title>
+ <style type="text/css">
+ body {margin-left:10%; margin-right:10%;}
+ p {margin-top:1ex; margin-bottom:0; text-align:justify;}
+ div.center p {margin-left:auto; margin-right:auto; text-align:center;}
+ .pagenum {display:inline; font-size:x-small; text-align:right; text-indent:0;
+ position:absolute; right:2%; padding:1px 3px; font-style:normal;
+ font-variant:normal; font-weight:normal; text-decoration:none;
+ background-color:inherit; border:1px solid #eee;}
+ .pncolor {color:silver;}
+ h1 {text-align:center; font-weight:normal;}
+ h2 {text-align:left; font-weight:normal;}
+ h1 {font-size:1.4em; margin-top:4em; margin-bottom:2em;}
+ h2 {font-size:1.2em; margin-top:4em; margin-bottom:2em;}
+ hr.pb {margin:30px 0; width:100%; border:none; border-top:thin dashed silver; clear:both;}
+ .sc {font-variant: small-caps;}
+ .center {margin-left:auto; margin-right:auto; text-align:center;}
+ .larger {font-size:larger;}
+ .smaller {font-size:smaller;}
+ table.c {margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto;}
+ .sc {font-variant:small-caps}
+ .caption {font-size: 80%;}
+ .figcenter {margin: auto; text-align: center;}
+ div.center p {margin: 0 auto; text-align:center;}
+ hr.tb {border:none; border-bottom: 1px solid black; margin: 20px auto; width:35%}
+ </style>
+</head>
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+Project Gutenberg's The Automobile Girls at Newport, by Laura Dent Crane
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Automobile Girls at Newport
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+Author: Laura Dent Crane
+
+Release Date: May 30, 2011 [EBook #36273]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
+<a name='i001' id='i001'></a>
+<img src='images/illus-cvr.jpg' alt='' width='60%' title=''/><br />
+</div>
+<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
+<a name='i002' id='i002'></a>
+<img src="images/illus-fpc.jpg" alt="“The Automobile Girls” Were Fairly Started. Frontispiece." width="60%" title=""/><br />
+<span class='caption'>“The Automobile Girls” Were Fairly<br/>Started. <em>Frontispiece.</em></span>
+</div>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+&#160;<br />
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<div class='center'>
+<p><span style='font-size:1.4em;'>The Automobile Girls at Newport</span></p>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p>OR</p>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p><span style='font-size:1.2em;'>Watching the Summer Parade</span></p>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p>By</p>
+<p><span style='font-size:larger;'>LAURA DENT CRANE</span></p>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>Author of The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires, The</span></p>
+<p><span style='font-size:smaller;'>Automobile Girls Along the Hudson, Etc., Etc.</span></p>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p>Illustrated</p>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p>PHILADELPHIA</p>
+<p>HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY</p>
+</div>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+&#160;<br />
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<div class='center'>
+<p><span style='font-size:smaller; font-variant:small-caps'>Copyright, 1910, by Howard E. Altemus</span></p>
+</div>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+&#160;<br />
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<div class='center'>
+<p><span style='font-size:1.2em'>CONTENTS</span></p>
+</div>
+<table class='c' summary=''>
+<tr><td style='font-size:smaller'>CHAPTER</td><td></td><td style='font-size:smaller'>PAGE</td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>I.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Barbara to the Rescue</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chI'>7</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>II.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Lost, Strayed or Stolen</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chII'>16</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>III.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Ruth’s Perfect Plan</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chIII'>30</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>IV.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Mother’s Secret</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chIV'>39</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>V.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Glorious Start</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chV'>47</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>VI.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>What Happened the First Day</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chVI'>59</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>VII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Showing Their Mettle</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chVII'>71</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>VIII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>“For We Are Jolly Good Fellows!”</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chVIII'>86</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>IX.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Only Girls</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chIX'>93</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>X.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Enter Gladys and Mr. Townsend</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chX'>104</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XI.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Newport at Last</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXI'>111</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Week Later</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXII'>121</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XIII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Night of the Ball</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXIII'>131</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XIV.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Barbara’s Secret</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXIV'>142</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XV.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Ruth in Danger</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXV'>150</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XVI.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Help Arrives</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXVI'>162</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XVII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Fortune-Tellers</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXVII'>169</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XVIII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>A Word to the Wise</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXVIII'>180</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XIX.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>“Eyeology”</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXIX'>190</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XX.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Ruth Wakes Up!</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXX'>204</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXI.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Capture of the Butterfly</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXXI'>213</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>The Tennis Tournament</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXXII'>224</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXIII.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Brought to Bay</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXXIII'>236</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td valign='top' style='text-align:right; padding-right:1em;'>XXIV.</td><td valign='top' style='text-align:left; padding-right:3em;'><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>Good-Bye to Newport</span></td><td valign='top' style='text-align:right;'><a href='#chXXIV'>242</a></td></tr>
+</table>
+<h1>THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT</h1>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_7'></a>7</span><a name='chI' id='chI'></a>CHAPTER I—BARBARA TO THE RESCUE</h2>
+<p>
+“Pink hair ribbons!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara Thurston’s brown, bright
+face seemed to twinkle all over, as she
+clinked a yellow coin on the marble top of the
+little sewing table.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Silk stockings!” chorused Mollie Thurston
+gleefully. “Wasn’t it the luckiest thing that
+the hotel people wanted so many berries this
+year!” And she, too, sent a gold piece spinning
+over the smooth surface. “But, perhaps,
+we won’t be invited after all,” she sighed.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nonsense!” rejoined Barbara energetically.
+“When Grace Carter says she’ll fix a thing, you
+can wager she will. She’s known Ruth Stuart
+for three summers now, and she’s told us we’d
+be invited to Ruth’s party this year. I can read
+the invitations already. The only thing worrying
+me was what we’d wear. Now the strawberry
+crop has turned out so well, and mother’s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_8'></a>8</span>
+a brick, and will let us use our money as we
+wish—I think we’re fixed. Then—who knows?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am sure Ruth Stuart’s lots of fun when
+you get to know her,” interrupted Mollie
+eagerly. “If Cousin Gladys wasn’t boarding at
+the hotel with her, we’d have met her long before.
+Isn’t Gladys a stuck-up goose? Never
+mind. We’ll have the laugh on her when she
+sees us at the party. Let’s be de-lighted to meet
+her. I should love to watch her when she is
+fussed!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“After all,” mused Barbara, thoughtfully,
+“her father was in partnership with papa. It’s
+mighty funny that uncle got all the money. I
+wonder——” She stopped playing with her gold
+piece and gazed thoughtfully out of the sitting
+room window at the hot, empty, yellow road that
+ran so near the tiny cottage.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara Thurston was sixteen, Mollie just two
+years younger, and nearly all their lives had
+been spent in that little cottage. John Thurston,
+the girls’ father, had died suddenly when
+Mollie was only three years old.
+</p>
+<p>
+He had been at that time in the wholesale clothing
+business with his wife’s brother, Ralph Le
+Baron, and was supposed to be a rich man. But
+when his affairs were settled up, his brother-in-law,
+the executor, announced that a very small
+interest in the business remained to Mrs. Thurston.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_9'></a>9</span>
+He hinted, darkly, at stock speculation on
+her husband’s part, and poor Mrs. Thurston,
+overcome by grief, had not wanted to question
+deeply.
+</p>
+<p>
+She, herself, happened to own the little cottage,
+in Kingsbridge, in which she and her
+brother had lived as children. Acting on his
+advice, she settled there with her two little girls,
+and had remained ever since, subsisting on the
+small income her brother regularly transmitted
+to her from her dead husband’s tiny business interest.
+Le Baron and his wife, with their
+daughter, Gladys, usually spent the summer in
+Kingsbridge, at the one “summer hotel” in the
+place; but intercourse between the two families
+had come to be little sought on either side.
+Kingsbridge was a quiet little village in New
+Jersey, and, except for the summer visitors,
+there was little gayety. Gladys Le Baron, especially,
+had shown herself icily oblivious of the
+existence of her younger cousins, Barbara and
+Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+These two were delightful examples of self-reliant
+young America. Barbara, the elder,
+looked a regular “nut-brown maid,” with chestnut
+hair that never would “stay put,” and
+usually a mischievous twinkle in the brown eyes
+beneath the straying locks. But there was
+plenty of genuinely forceful energy stored away
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_10'></a>10</span>
+in her slim, well-knit young body, and her firm
+chin and broad forehead told both of determination
+and intelligence.
+</p>
+<p>
+Her sister, Mollie, was fair, with lovely curling
+blond hair, and a quaint drollery of speech that
+won her many friends. Both sisters had grown
+up quietly, helping their mother about the
+house, as they could afford no servant, going to
+the village school, and, when they wanted anything
+beyond the plainest necessities of life,
+earning it.
+</p>
+<p>
+This summer both had set their hearts on
+“really-truly” party clothes, not “hand-me-downs.”
+Their friend, Grace Carter, daughter
+of Squire Carter, the village dignitary, had
+promised them invitations to “the event of the
+season,” the party to be given by her friend
+Ruth Stuart, a rich Western girl who quite recently
+had come to spend her summer at Kingsbridge.
+And didn’t Ruth Stuart live at the
+same hotel with Gladys Le Baron, the snobbish
+cousin?
+</p>
+<p>
+To meet the enemy on her own ground, and to
+have the fun of a party besides, was certainly
+worth picking strawberries for, thought Barbara
+and Mollie. So they scoured the country
+round for the sweet wild ones the hotel visitors
+liked best. Now each of the girls was fingering
+gleefully her twenty-dollar gold-piece that
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_11'></a>11</span>
+meant many days’ work in the past, but pretty
+dresses in the future.
+</p>
+<p>
+The prospect was too alluring for Barbara
+to spend much time in wondering about the real
+“why” of their fallen fortunes, though the question
+had come to her before, and would again.
+Now she was ready to join Mollie in eager planning
+as to “just what they’d get.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Go get a pencil and paper, Molliekins, and
+we’ll set it all down,” she laughed.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie went into the further room and Barbara
+waited, eyes absent-mindedly fixed on the
+yellow stretch of road.
+</p>
+<p>
+Suddenly she became conscious of a curious
+pounding. There was a queer, wild rhythm to
+it, and it seemed to be coming nearer and nearer.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara put her head out of the open window.
+She could see nothing but a cloud of dust far
+down the road. Yet the pounding sounded
+louder every moment.
+</p>
+<p>
+Then she knew. The noise came from the
+furious feet of runaway horses. And they were
+coming past the house with their helpless, unknown
+victims.
+</p>
+<p>
+What could Barbara do? Her mother was
+asleep upstairs and there was no man about the
+place. There was no other house near. Besides,
+the slightest delay might prove fatal.
+</p>
+<p>
+All this seemed to flash through Barbara’s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_12'></a>12</span>
+brain in a second. She knew she must act.
+Swiftly and easily as a boy she vaulted the open
+window, pausing only to snatch a closed umbrella
+that leaned against the sill. How glad
+she was she had forgotten to put it away in the
+closet when she came in from the shower yesterday!
+</p>
+<p>
+In an instant the girl sped through the gate
+and out into the road, opening her umbrella as
+she ran.
+</p>
+<p>
+There she paused, squarely in front of the
+approaching dust cloud, very near now. She
+could hear the click of the stones, cast aside by
+the flying feet of the horses, and she caught a
+glimpse of two black heads, wild-eyed and foam-flecked,
+through the whirling dust.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara strained her eyes to locate hanging
+bridles. But meantime, swiftly and mechanically,
+she was opening and shutting the big
+black umbrella.
+</p>
+<p>
+“If they’ll only stop!” she murmured.
+</p>
+<p>
+And they did. Fear-crazed already, their
+legs trembling after a terrific run, the horses
+dared not seek encounter with that horrible bat-like
+creature that seemed to await them.
+</p>
+<p>
+Scarcely five feet away, their wild pace broke.
+They hesitated, and Barbara flung herself forward
+and seized the dangling bridles. For a
+moment she pulled on them with wrists of steel,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_13'></a>13</span>
+but it was not necessary. The horses drooped
+their weary heads and gladly stood still.
+</p>
+<p>
+Then, and only then, Barbara glanced at the
+carriage and its occupants.
+</p>
+<p>
+It was an open four-seated carriage, and in it
+were Ruth Stuart, Grace Carter, Gladys Le
+Baron and a strange young man somewhat older
+than the rest of the party. The girls were leaning
+back, with closed eyes and white faces. The
+young man was staring straight ahead, with a
+blank expression, fear depicted on every feature.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara dared not leave the horses even now.
+“Mollie! Mollie!” she called.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie was already out of the house. From
+the window, terror-stricken, she had seen it all.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Get the girls out,” Barbara directed. “I
+can’t leave these brutes, though I guess they’re
+all right now.”
+</p>
+<p>
+In the meantime, Grace and Gladys had
+opened their eyes. Mollie now stood at the
+carriage step, her hand outstretched.
+</p>
+<p>
+As they recognized their rescuers, Grace’s
+pale face lit up. Even Gladys, for once, tried
+to summon a gracious and grateful smile.
+</p>
+<p>
+“We’re all right, Mollie,” spoke up Grace,
+“but I think Ruth has fainted. I’ll help you
+get her into the house.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Suddenly the young man started up. “I beg
+your pardon,” he remarked in a smooth,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_14'></a>14</span>
+pleasantly-modulated voice, “but you really
+must let me help. I have been utterly helpless
+so far,” and his glance wandered admiringly
+and a trifle shamefacedly toward Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+In an instant, he had sprung over the wheel
+and gently half lifted, half dragged Ruth Stuart
+off the seat.
+</p>
+<p>
+As her feet touched the ground, she too opened
+her eyes, only to close them again with a shivering
+sigh. Grace was at her side in a moment.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Try to walk to the house, dear,” Grace
+urged. “It’s only a few steps.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie took the place of the young man, and,
+between the two girls, Ruth stumbled to the
+gate.
+</p>
+<p>
+The young man stepped up to Barbara. “Can
+I help you?” he ventured, looking at the now
+quieted horses.
+</p>
+<p>
+But a cold voice sounded from the carriage,
+where Gladys still sat. “I think you might
+think a little about me, Harry,” she exclaimed.
+</p>
+<p>
+The young fellow bit his lip and hesitated.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Please,” broke in Barbara, “please take her
+to the house. I can’t get these horses and this
+carriage through the gate. It isn’t big enough.
+But I’ll hitch them to the fence and stay with
+them for a few minutes. You must need rest,
+all of you!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend bit his lip as he caught the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_15'></a>15</span>
+sarcastic inflection in Barbara’s last sentence,
+but did as he was directed, and walked slowly
+toward the house with Gladys.
+</p>
+<p>
+Left to herself, Barbara led the horses, still
+attached to the carriage, toward the fence, and
+hitched them by the reins in a clever way all
+country girls know. “Good boys! Poor boys!”
+she murmured, petting them, for they were still
+shivering pitifully with fright.
+</p>
+<p>
+For several minutes she stood talking to them.
+Then Mollie’s anxious face appeared at the door,
+and in a moment she stood beside her sister.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What shall we do?” she asked. “Miss
+Stuart is feeling very ill, and wants to go home
+at once. She and all the others refuse to step
+foot into that carriage again—and I can’t blame
+them; but, you know, it’s two miles to the hotel,
+if it’s a step, and we haven’t a telephone. Grace
+says Ruth’s father would send the au-to-mo-bile,”—Mollie
+pronounced the word with reverent
+care—“but what’s the quickest way of getting
+the message to them? Mother suggests
+running over to Jim Trumbull’s and seeing if
+he’ll hitch up and drive to the hotel. But it’s
+half a mile to his place, and he’s very likely to be
+away anyhow. What do you——?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara interrupted her decisively. “I’ll
+just drive those horses back to the hotel myself,
+Mollie Thurston,” she said calmly.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_16'></a>16</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara, you can’t! It’s risking your
+life!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nonsense! There isn’t an ounce of spirit
+left in the poor, frightened things. I guess I
+haven’t broken Jim Trumbull’s colts for him
+without knowing how to handle horses. You go
+tell Miss Stuart that her automobile will be here
+in two shakes of a lamb’s tail. And see, Mollie,”
+the twinkle shone in Barbara’s eyes, “of
+course they’ll give me a ride back in the auto!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Laughing at Mollie’s protests, the plucky girl
+untied the horses and turned them carefully.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Stand at their heads, just a minute,” she
+cheerfully directed. Then Barbara gathered up
+the reins and climbed up to the high seat.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Drop anchor, Mollie,” she called, and trotted
+slowly down the road behind the quieted blacks.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chII' id='chII'></a>CHAPTER II—LOST, STRAYED OR STOLEN</h2>
+<p>
+“Mollie Thurston, has Barbara
+driven off with those awful horses?”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was Grace Carter who spoke.
+She had reached the doorway of the cottage just
+in time to catch a glimpse of the departing
+equipage.
+</p>
+<p>
+Without waiting for a reply, she turned from
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_17'></a>17</span>
+the open door to the group inside just as Mollie
+rejoined them, exclaiming:
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara is driving the runaways to the hotel
+for the machine!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Thurston started. She had been downstairs
+for some time helping to make the victims
+of the accident comfortable. She was a
+slim, sweet-faced little woman, whose entire
+world lay in her two lively young daughters,
+in whom she had unlimited faith.
+</p>
+<p>
+But, in a moment, she smiled and said, “I
+am not afraid to trust Barbara with anything.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth Stuart’s lately pale face was glowing.
+“I think that is regularly splendid of her!” she
+exclaimed, with more animation than she had
+shown since she had left the carriage.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, Barbara is used to taking care of herself,”
+Gladys Le Baron interposed with a supercilious
+smile.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie looked at her cousin a moment.
+“Yes,” she answered steadily, “we think it is
+a pretty good thing in our family.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys flushed, and had no reply ready.
+Ruth looked surprised and Grace plunged into
+the breach.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh,” she tried to murmur off-handedly,
+“Barbara and Mollie and Gladys are cousins,
+you know.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“And you never——” Ruth turned to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_18'></a>18</span>
+Gladys, then stopped and smiled. “Well, it’s
+awfully jolly to have met you all in this nice,
+informal way. Grace has often spoken of you,”
+she said.
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls had to laugh at this, so Ruth continued:
+“I’m well enough now to be proper
+and conventional, I suppose. I believe you
+know I’m Ruth Stuart. Mrs. Thurston, Mollie,
+have you met Gladys’s friend, Mr. Townsend?”
+</p>
+<p>
+The young man came out from the corner
+near the window, where he had been seated, and
+bowed gayly. Ruth nodded in a satisfied
+fashion.
+</p>
+<p>
+“There, doesn’t that finish it?” she sighed.
+“The rest of you are all acquainted, aren’t you?
+Now, won’t one of you, please tell me why those
+awful horses aren’t running still? I know some
+horrible white hay-caps started them, and Jones
+fell off the seat, and now we are here. Who
+stopped us?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Everybody turned to Ruth at once. “Why,
+Barbara stopped them,” Grace managed to
+say first. “Barbara——”
+</p>
+<p>
+A gay laugh sounded in the doorway, and
+Barbara herself appeared before them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now I’ve caught you!” she cried merrily,
+her bright eyes sweeping the circle. Then she
+turned to Ruth with a mock curtsey.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_19'></a>19</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Your ladyship’s chariot waits,” she declaimed,
+then continuing in quick explanation:
+“You see, your driver was scarcely hurt and
+he rushed back to the hotel at once and sent the
+automobile along the road where he had seen
+the horses disappearing. Before I’d gone a
+quarter of a mile, I met the machine with the
+chauffeur, and doctor and Jones himself. We
+sent Jones back with the horses, though they
+weren’t bothering me a bit, and I came back in
+the automobile. How are you feeling?” and
+the bright voice softened sympathetically, as
+she noted Ruth’s pale cheeks.
+</p>
+<p>
+For answer the girl arose quickly, and held
+out both hands to Barbara. “You’re a brick,”
+she said simply. “I fainted, like a goose, and
+they’ve just told me what you did. I am so glad
+I know you, and I guess my father will be glad,
+too—not to say thankful! Now, please won’t
+you and your sister dine with us to-morrow?
+No? Make it lunch; then I’ll see you sooner.
+I won’t take no for an answer, because I have
+a very important plan. Dad decides as quickly
+as I do. So if you’ll only say yes—but I can’t
+tell you about it now. Perhaps, if I make you
+curious, you’ll be more interested when the time
+comes!” Ruth laughed mischievously.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What have you up your sleeve now, Ruth
+Stuart?” asked Grace, curiously. “I never
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_20'></a>20</span>
+saw such a girl as you are for chain-lightning
+projects!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’ll see,” laughed Ruth. “You’re in it
+too, you know. You must be one of my lunch
+party to-morrow. I know you and Mr. Townsend
+have another engagement, Gladys, so you
+will pardon my delivering my invitation before
+you. Now, I won’t say another word.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come,” she continued, addressing the party,
+“we must be off at once. If the news of this
+runaway circulates through the hotel and
+reaches either your father or mine, Gladys,
+they’ll be wild with fright. Good-bye, Mrs.
+Thurston, and thank you. You’ve been awfully
+good to us. As for you two”—holding out her
+hands to Barbara and Mollie—“wait till tomorrow
+at lunch!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Drawing the two Thurston girls with her, she
+stepped outside the door and to the gate, the
+rest of the party following. The machine was
+waiting in the road, and out of it hurried the
+hotel doctor toward Ruth.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Aren’t you hurt, Miss Stuart?” he cried.
+“I would have come in, but Miss Thurston said
+she would go in first and see how you were.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’m perfectly well, doctor,” smiled Ruth.
+“It’s too bad you had to come way out here.
+I hope father will not hear you have been sent
+for!”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_21'></a>21</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+She patted affectionately the nearest tire-rim
+of the big automobile. “Bless the ‘bubble’s’
+heart,” she murmured. “He wouldn’t run away
+with his missus. Barbara, Mollie, this is my
+best friend, Mr. A. Bubble. I think you’ll get
+better acquainted with him before long. I wish
+you could come with me now, but I’m afraid
+neither you nor ‘Bubble’ would be quite comfortable.
+And you three must get along well
+together from the start.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The doctor helped Ruth into the big red touring
+car and Gladys and Grace followed. The
+two men and the chauffeur crowded together
+in the front seat.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Au revoir,” chorused the autoists, and “see
+you tomorrow,” nodded Ruth emphatically to
+the girls. Then, in a whirl of dust, the big
+machine sped out of sight.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Isn’t she a dear?” burst forth Mollie, as the
+sisters turned to go back to the house. “How
+her eyes shine when she talks! I wonder if I
+could do my hair that way. I was sure she’d
+be nice—but what do you suppose she means
+by that plan? Barbara, for heaven’s sake, how
+did you happen to think of that umbrella stunt?
+It was great, but you did look so funny—like
+a sort of desperate, feminine Darius Green with
+his flying machine! No wonder you stopped the
+horses!”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_22'></a>22</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I heard of a man who stopped a stampede
+of cattle that way out West once,” Barbara
+answered abstractedly. There was a
+puzzled look on her face. “Mollie,” she said
+abruptly, as they entered the house, “you didn’t
+take our money with you, when you went into
+the bedroom for pencil and paper?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, no,” replied Mollie wonderingly. “It
+must be over there on the table now. I remember
+I noticed it as I came into the room. I wondered,
+for a second, why you’d gone away and
+left it so near the open window. That was before
+I looked through the window and saw what
+you were doing. It must be there,” and Mollie
+hurried over to the window.
+</p>
+<p>
+The next moment she turned an astonished
+face to her sister. “Barbara!” she exclaimed,
+“it isn’t here, anywhere!” Indeed, the marble
+top of the little table was absolutely bare. There
+was no sign of either of the gold pieces.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Let’s look on the floor,” said Barbara,
+quietly. “One of our guests may have unconsciously
+brushed them off.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Both girls stopped and began a careful survey
+of the carpeted floor, under the table, and
+near the window. Their search was unrewarded.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Let’s look in the grass outside,” suggested
+Mollie. “You might have brushed them off as
+you went through the window.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_23'></a>23</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“But didn’t you say you saw them on the
+table, when you came back into the room and
+found me gone?” queried Barbara, thoughtfully.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I was sure I did,” Mollie replied. “But
+sometimes one remembers imaginary things.
+And if the money had been in the room when
+I came in, it would be there now. I’ll ask
+mother——”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No, don’t,” said Barbara quickly; “at
+least, not yet.” Mrs. Thurston had gone into
+the kitchen directly after her return from the
+gate, and had heard none of the conversation.
+“There’s no need to worry mother about it now.
+Of course we must find it somewhere. Money
+doesn’t walk off by itself. We’ll go out and
+look in the grass under the window.”
+</p>
+<p>
+On hands and knees the girls worked through
+the closely cropped grass underneath the sitting
+room window. Not two days before, they themselves
+had clipped this bit of lawn with big
+shears, and it was so close that there seemed no
+possibility of anything being hidden in it. Certainly
+nothing was to be found. The girls even
+looked over the short path, and ground near it.
+“Your skirts might have switched those small
+things a long way,” observed Mollie, wisely.
+Yet, as before, the result was—nothing.
+</p>
+<p>
+Giving it up, at last, the girls sat down in a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_24'></a>24</span>
+little garden seat at one side of the tiny yard,
+and looked at each other ruefully.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am so glad I feel sure Miss Stuart will invite
+us to her party, now,” commented Mollie
+dryly. “Our new gowns and the pink hair ribbons
+and the silk stockings will be so awfully
+fetching! But where, where, where, by all
+that’s mysterious, can those double-eagles have
+flown?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Suddenly she looked curiously at her sister.
+“Barbara, you are thinking of something!” she
+exclaimed. “Have you any nameable idea?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No,” said Barbara, quickly; “it isn’t nameable.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“All right; you never would talk when you
+didn’t want to,” complained Mollie. “And I
+know you want that money back as badly as
+I do. Tell you what—I’ll say the fairies’ charm.
+Don’t you remember the one the old gypsy
+woman taught us? Wish she were here to say
+it for us! She promised to do all sorts of things
+for me when I found her in the field with a
+sprained ankle and helped her back to camp.
+Why! why! Barbara, this is <em>uncanny</em>—she’s
+coming now!”
+</p>
+<p>
+In truth, down the road a queer little bent
+figure was seen approaching. “I know her,”
+continued Mollie eagerly, “by that funny combination
+of red and yellow handkerchiefs she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_25'></a>25</span>
+wears on her head. Do let’s go and meet her
+and tell her—it can’t do any harm.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“What nonsense, Mollie!” laughed Barbara.
+But she followed her younger sister, who had
+already started down the road toward the
+quaint, little, gaudily-turbaned dame.
+</p>
+<p>
+Between them, the girls brought her into the
+yard, Mollie meanwhile busily explaining their
+predicament. “You’ll help us, won’t you,
+Granny Ann?” she coaxed childishly. “You
+said, that time that I helped you home, you’d
+always be near when I wanted you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Granny Ann sat on the garden seat, looking
+gravely down at the half-laughing, half-serious
+girls huddled at her feet.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I knowed,” she began in a high, cracked
+voice, “I knowed my little fair one,” lightly
+touching Mollie’s curls, “would need me to-day.
+Far away I was, when I heard the shadow of
+her voice callin’ out to me—and miles I have
+traveled to reach her. Granny Ann is thirsty,
+and she has had no food since morning.” The
+old woman looked reproachfully at her listeners.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s eyes twinkled at Mollie’s rather
+crestfallen face, when the sybil voiced this most
+human request. But she said cheerily: “All
+right, Granny; supper isn’t ready yet, but I
+know mother’ll have something.” Then Barbara
+hurried into the house, the gypsy dame
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_26'></a>26</span>
+waiting solemnly until she reappeared, a moment
+later, with sandwiches, doughnuts and a
+big glass of milk.
+</p>
+<p>
+Granny Ann smiled, but she didn’t speak
+until the lunch had quite disappeared. Then
+the old woman rose impressively. “There’s one
+sure magic for fetching back money that has
+gone,” she declaimed. “Because you have been
+good to me, ‘Little Fair One,’ you and your
+sister, I will say the golden spell for you.” With
+her hands crossed, Granny Ann began to croon
+dreamily:
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Gold&nbsp;is&nbsp;gladsome,&nbsp;gold&nbsp;is&nbsp;gay,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Here&nbsp;to-night&nbsp;and&nbsp;gone&nbsp;to-day,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Here&nbsp;to-day&nbsp;and&nbsp;gone&nbsp;to-morrow,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Guest&nbsp;of&nbsp;joy&nbsp;and&nbsp;host&nbsp;of&nbsp;sorrow.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Gold&nbsp;of&nbsp;mine&nbsp;that’s&nbsp;flitted&nbsp;far,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Forget&nbsp;me&nbsp;not,&nbsp;where’er&nbsp;you&nbsp;are.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Mine&nbsp;you&nbsp;are,&nbsp;as&nbsp;Pluto&nbsp;wrought&nbsp;you,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Mine&nbsp;you&nbsp;are,&nbsp;whoever’s&nbsp;sought&nbsp;you,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Come&nbsp;by&nbsp;sea&nbsp;or&nbsp;come&nbsp;by&nbsp;land—<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Homeward&nbsp;fly&nbsp;into&nbsp;my&nbsp;hand!<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Three times Granny Ann repeated this. Then,
+with a queer dignity, oddly assorting with her
+variegated raiment, she turned to the girls. “It
+will return,” she said; “now, I must go to my
+own people.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But I thought you said you came here for
+us by yourself!” protested Mollie.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_27'></a>27</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+The gypsy dame drew herself up. “I travel
+not alone!” she said, stiffly. “Good-bye.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, good-bye, and thanks ever so much,
+Granny Ann!” cried both of the girls.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Granny Ann did not turn her head. Barbara
+looked at Mollie, her eyes dancing. “The
+blessed old fraud!” she teased; “her people decided
+to camp somewhere about, and she
+thought she’d come over for a call and a lunch,
+and whatever else she could get! I believe she
+actually expected us to cross her palm with
+silver for saying that little rhyme. But I wish
+I knew really——”
+</p>
+<p>
+All at once a faint chug-chug sounded in the
+distance. In a moment a big red touring car appeared,
+enveloped in dust. “Why, it looks like
+Ruth’s car!” exclaimed Mollie, excitedly. “Yes,
+I do believe that young man seated beside the
+chauffeur is the Mr. Townsend who was with
+them. Barbara——”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Barbara was walking quickly toward the
+gate. A moment later the automobile stopped
+before it, and Harry Townsend stepped out.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Thurston,” he began, soberly, “have
+you lost any money?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, yes!” burst out Mollie, who was just
+behind, before Barbara could speak; “two
+twenty-dollar gold-pieces! We’ve hunted and
+hunted. We had them this afternoon——”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_28'></a>28</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then these must be yours,” said the young
+man, extending his hand to Barbara. In it were
+two golden double-eagles. “When the young
+ladies were getting out at the hotel these
+were found on the seat, and Miss Stuart was
+sure you had dropped them out of your pocket,
+Miss Thurston, during the few moments you
+were in the machine. I am very glad to be able
+to restore them to you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” said Barbara, “but I——” Then she
+stopped. “Thank you, Mr. Townsend,” she
+said, giving him a clear, direct glance. For
+some unknown reason the young man’s eyes
+wavered under it, and he climbed hurriedly into
+the automobile. “I am very glad,” he murmured
+again.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Stuart expects you to-morrow,” he
+added quickly, and the machine backed round
+and hurried off.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara stood looking at it, the money still
+in her hand. But Mollie was laughing happily.
+Then she saw Barbara’s face. “Barbara, what
+is it, dear?” she demanded. “You look exactly
+as you did before Granny Ann appeared, and
+I asked you if you were thinking of something.
+What is it? Can’t you tell me?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara shook her head. “It really isn’t anything,
+Molliekins. I did have an idea in my
+head, but I must be mistaken somehow. You
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_29'></a>29</span>
+are sure you saw the money on the table after
+I left the room? It must have been there, then,
+when the crowd from the automobile came in.
+I thought I saw some one standing near the
+table with one hand resting on it, when I came
+back and called out: ‘Now, I’ve caught you!’
+But I must not think anything more about it.
+Please don’t ask me any questions. Let us just
+be glad we have the money back. It is queer,
+though. Mr. Townsend says the money was
+found on the seat. I wonder who found it, and
+whether it was found on the front or back seat?
+Let’s ask Grace. I don’t understand it. But
+he brought the money back, and he’s Miss
+Stuart’s friend. Of course we will keep quiet,
+you and I, Mollie, whether the money was lost,
+strayed or stolen!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, I am sure, Barbara Thurston,” Mollie
+answered a little indignantly, “I am not likely
+to talk of what I know nothing about. If there
+is any mystery about the disappearance of that
+money, I am sure you have left me utterly in the
+dark.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t be cross,” said Barbara, putting her
+arm in Mollie’s. “But do you know if Mr.
+Townsend is a special friend of Gladys’s?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie shook her head. “How should I
+know?” she said. “Let’s go in, it’s nearly
+dark.”
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_30'></a>30</span><a name='chIII' id='chIII'></a>CHAPTER III—RUTH’S PERFECT PLAN</h2>
+<p>
+Wonderment over the mystery of the
+money, and excited anticipation of
+Ruth Stuart’s luncheon and “plan,”
+kept the Thurston girls from getting to sleep
+very early that night. They awoke bright and
+fresh next morning, nevertheless. Just before
+eleven they started on their two-mile tramp to
+the hotel. They were hardly out of sight of the
+house, however, when what should they see but
+the now familiar red car speeding toward them.
+“Look—yes, it is!” cried Mollie. “Ruth herself
+is making it go!”
+</p>
+<p>
+The young driver waved a free hand for a
+second, as she neared them, then wheeled in a
+broad turn and stopped. “I was so afraid you
+might have started,” she protested tactfully,
+“for it is such a fine morning for a nice leisurely
+walk. I was so anxious to see you that I simply
+couldn’t wait, and I told Dad I’d take the ‘bubble’
+and spin out to meet you. Now, won’t you
+please hop in, and ride back with me?”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls “hopped” with delighted celerity,
+and Ruth turned back to them for a moment.
+“I have reams to talk about,” she continued,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_31'></a>31</span>
+“but, to tell you the truth, I want my father to
+be with us, when I begin. So, now, if you don’t
+mind, we’ll just ride.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Neither Mollie nor Barbara will ever forget
+their first ride. “I felt as if I had chartered my
+own private flying machine, and I was sure the
+angels were jealous,” Mollie confessed, naïvely,
+at lunch.
+</p>
+<p>
+They reached the hotel very quickly, and after
+a cosy chat on the private balcony belonging to
+Ruth’s tiny suite of rooms, found themselves
+seated around a little table in a cool, palm-shaded
+corner of the big dining-room. Between them,
+opposite Ruth, sat big, blue-eyed, open-hearted,
+Robert Stuart, Ruth’s “Dad.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Robert Stuart had made his fortune out West,
+in the mining country. That was how he
+started, anyway. For years, now, he had lived
+in Chicago, buying and selling real estate in the
+vicinity. There his wife had died, and there his
+eighteen-year-old daughter Ruth had spent
+nearly all her life. During the summers she had
+traveled more or less, and the last few years had
+frequently gone East. Her father’s sister, Aunt
+Sallie Stuart, had brought the girl up since her
+mother’s death, which had occurred when Ruth
+was a little girl. Aunt Sallie was not present at
+the luncheon, because of a bad headache.
+“Grace Carter has come over and is staying
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_32'></a>32</span>
+with her, like a dear,” Ruth explained. Later,
+if Auntie felt better, the girls were to go up to
+her room.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth, as has appeared, was an extremely impulsive
+young person. Fortunately, most of
+her impulses were inspired by a natural kindliness,
+and a cheerful, youthful energy, with a
+stratum of good common sense at bottom.
+There was apt to be method in her madness.
+Her “plan,” for instance, had long been her
+desire, but before she had never seen the way.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth couldn’t wait for the cold boullion to be
+taken off. “Father, I want to tell them now!”
+she exclaimed. After his cheerful, “Go ahead,
+daughter,” she burst out: “Barbara, Mollie,
+won’t you go on an automobile tour to Newport
+with Grace Carter and me, with Aunt Sallie for
+chaperon? Won’t you, can’t you come?”
+</p>
+<p>
+While the amazed girls could only look at her
+and at each other, she hurried on: “Oh, yes, you
+probably think I’m crazy. But I’m not. You
+see it’s like this: all my life I have longed to
+travel by myself; at least, with the people I
+want, not in a train, or a big crowded boat. Dad
+knows the feeling; it’s what makes him run away
+from Chicago, and get out on the prairies and
+ride and ride and ride! I’m a girl, so I can’t
+do that or lots of things. But I can run an automobile.
+For two years I have just been waiting
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_33'></a>33</span>
+to get the right crowd. Grace is a dear, but I
+wanted two more. The other girls I know are
+all right to meet at dances and to see now and
+then; but they’d collapse at the thought of starting
+off on a lark like this. You two—you’re
+different, I knew it the minute I saw you. Besides,”
+she continued, “Grace has been telling
+me things about you. I always know right off
+whether I like anybody, and it doesn’t take long
+to find out how much I like them. I like both
+of you a whole lot—and I know we will have a
+perfectly delightful trip if you will go with me.
+If you don’t, I simply can’t go—that’s all. It
+would be absurd setting off in that great machine
+with only Grace and Aunt Sallie to rattle
+around like two peas in a pod. Daddie understands,
+and he likes you just the way I do—I can
+see it in his eyes. So it’s just up to you! Do
+you like me a little bit—well, say enough to visit
+me in my automobile for a month or so? Oh,
+please say you do!”
+</p>
+<p>
+She stopped, her voice catching impulsively
+over the last words. Barbara’s eyes were shining.
+“I don’t believe we need to tell you that,”
+she said softly; “you must just know. But
+there’s mother. And we haven’t the money.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now that’s not fair,” Ruth broke in. “The
+money is out of the question altogether. You
+are my guests. Why, it’s you who will do me
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_34'></a>34</span>
+the favor,” she pleaded, as she caught the look
+of dissent on Barbara’s face. “Remember, if
+you fail me, I can’t have my trip at all—and I
+have been looking forward to it for two whole
+years. As for your mother, if she will consent
+to it, Dad and I have a beautiful plan, to keep
+her and Dad both from being lonely. Poor Dad
+is sick and tired of hotel cooking and I told him
+all about your dear little cottage and the dandy
+tea and cookies your mother makes, and—and—do
+you suppose your mother would let Dad take
+his meals with her while we are away? Then
+he won’t be too wretched living all alone up here.
+Also, you wouldn’t have to worry about your
+mother, nor would I have to worry about Dad.
+Aunt Sallie has been with him so long that I don’t
+know what he’d do all by himself. He could get
+on very well, if only your mother would look
+after him at meals, I know that.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now I won’t say another word about it for
+the rest of our lunch. Then we’ll run in and
+call on Aunt Sallie. Afterward we will take the
+car out and see your mother, and get her to say
+yes! Then you’ll say it, too, won’t you? But
+don’t let’s spoil this good chicken salad, through
+worrying about it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+In a more or less complete, yet altogether
+happy silence, the luncheon was finished. Ruth
+and her father did not try to force their guests to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_35'></a>35</span>
+talk, realizing that the girls would want to think.
+From the smiling glances the two Stuarts exchanged
+now and then it was evident they hoped
+the thinking would have a happy outcome.
+</p>
+<p>
+After the last course had been served, and the
+finger bowls, a sprig of rose geranium floating in
+each, had been pushed aside, Ruth said quietly:
+“Now we will go to see Aunt Sallie for a few
+minutes. Daddie, you’ll have the machine at
+the door?”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls filed into the elevator, and soon were
+speeding down a long hall to Aunt Sallie’s suite,
+just across from Ruth’s. The latter knocked
+softly, and Grace Carter came to the door.
+“Yes, ever so much better,” Grace murmured,
+in reply to Ruth’s whispered inquiry. “She
+wants you to be sure to come in with your
+friends before they go. Yes; I am sure she
+would be glad to see them now.”
+</p>
+<p>
+As the girls entered the vestibule of the apartment,
+Grace gave Barbara’s hand a furtive
+squeeze, and whispered: “I’ll just never recover
+if you don’t come.” There was no chance for a
+reply, for a precise, though rather kindly voice
+called from the room beyond: “Ruth, please
+bring your friends in here.”
+</p>
+<p>
+With some trepidation the girls advanced
+toward “Aunt Sallie.” She was a somewhat
+stout woman, who reclined on a couch in a handsome
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_36'></a>36</span>
+violet negligée. She scanned the girls
+sharply for a moment, then in her carefully
+enunciated syllables, which contrasted oddly
+with her smooth, plump face, she said: “So
+you’re the young ladies who stop runaway
+horses! Well, I never could have done it when
+I was young. But I’m sure I am indebted to
+you, and I am happy to know you, my dears. I
+hope and trust, since my madcap niece is bound
+to take her trip, that you will come along to keep
+her company.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls smiled, and Ruth murmured to
+them: “You see, you really must come for the
+sake of my family!” Then Aunt Sallie
+stretched out two plump, jeweled hands and remarked:
+“I am sure I shall see a great deal of
+you very soon, my dears, and you will see all
+you want to of me. So, if you don’t mind, I’ll
+ask you to excuse me now, my head is so tired.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“She likes to take a cat-nap pretty often,”
+explained irreverent Ruth, as soon as they were
+safely outside the door. “But Aunt Sallie is a
+good sort, just the same, and the best possible
+dragon for our trip. Your mother needn’t be
+in the least afraid to trust you to her. Now
+for your mother,” Ruth added as the girls
+entered the elevator.
+</p>
+<p>
+In front of the broad piazza, the automobile
+waited on the driveway, with Mr. Stuart as
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_37'></a>37</span>
+chauffeur. “Pile in,” he smiled, and, in a trice,
+the girls were whirled homeward once more.
+</p>
+<p>
+There a mighty conference was held. At first,
+Mrs. Thurston simply gasped. Then she dumbly
+shook her head. Barbara and Mollie both protested
+that nothing would persuade them to
+leave their mother against her wishes. As Ruth
+said afterwards, “Daddie did the whole thing.”
+He explained to the girls, and to their mother,
+how brief the separation would be. To the
+mother he expatiated on the delights and educational
+value of such a trip. To the girls he
+hinted, delicately, that perhaps the little mother
+would get a bit of a rest, all by herself, for a few
+weeks, even with him to take care of. To all
+present Mr. Stuart enlarged upon the duty of
+charity toward him, a homeless vacation visitor,
+starving from eating only hotel food, and toward
+his daughter, a sisterless girl with a longing for
+friends. Though the Thurstons shook their
+heads, between smiles and tears, at the absurdity
+of these arguments, they finally said a grateful
+“yes.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“One really doesn’t need any clothes except
+veils and dusters for an automobile trip, and I
+have a big extra stock of those,” concluded Ruth.
+“I want to run up here for you people—let me
+see—to-day is Friday—next Monday morning.
+That’s such a nice day to start.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_38'></a>38</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” again cried Mollie and Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls joined hands and made a low
+curtsey to Mrs. Thurston and Mr. Stuart. “Allow
+me to introduce you,” said Ruth in her most
+impressive voice, “to ‘The Automobile Girls’
+on their way to Newport.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Long may they flourish!” concluded Mr.
+Stuart, turning to the girls’ mother. “I’ll come
+up with Ruth and help you start them off, Mrs.
+Thurston. Then, if I may, I will come back and
+have lunch with you later in the day.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Till Monday!” called Ruth, and the machine
+whirled off.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara and Mollie watched it from the gate.
+“I wish—I wish I could do something for
+them,” mused Barbara, her chin sunk in her
+hand, her brown eyes showing that soft brightness
+that only came to them when she was
+greatly moved.
+</p>
+<p>
+How well she was to repay the Stuart kith and
+kin she could not then guess.
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_39'></a>39</span><a name='chIV' id='chIV'></a>CHAPTER IV—MOTHER’S SECRET</h2>
+<p>
+Mollie danced into the kitchen, waving
+the feather duster. “I’m so happy, I
+can’t keep still!” she declared, waltzing
+in a circle around her mother and Barbara,
+who were in the kitchen washing the breakfast
+dishes.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It is just as well you don’t have to,” Mrs.
+Thurston laughed. “But, children, do be sensible
+a minute,” she urged, as Barbara joined in
+the dance, still polishing a breakfast tumbler.
+“I’ve been thinking, that going to Newport, if
+only to stay a few days, <em>does</em> mean more clothes
+than automobile coats and motor veils.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now, you are not to worry, mother dearest,”
+interrupted Barbara, “or we won’t go a single
+step. Beside, have you forgotten the twenty-dollar
+gold-pieces? They are a fortune, two
+fortunes really.” Barbara had been doing some
+pretty deep thinking herself, on the clothes question,
+but it would never do to let her thoughts be
+known. As elder daughter she tried to save her
+mother from all the worries she could. “While
+there are no men around in the family, you’ll
+just have to pretend I’m older son instead of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_40'></a>40</span>
+daughter,” she used to say. “When Mollie
+marries I’ll resign.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’m through dusting,” Mollie called from
+the dining-room. “This time I am surely going
+to get paper and pencil to put down what clothes
+we most need, if Barbara won’t stop any runaway
+horses while I am away.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie’s golden head and Barbara’s tawny one
+bent anxiously over the paper.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth’s such an impetuous dear! Starting
+off on our trip Monday does not give us time to
+get anything new. Mother, will you go in to
+town shopping for us, and then send the clothes
+on later? I suppose we shall be on the road
+some time. Ruth says we are to stop in any of
+the places we like, and see all the sights along
+the way,” continued Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gloves, ribbons, stockings, hair ribbons, and—oh,
+dear, yes! A pink sash for Bab and a blue
+one for Mollie. Forty dollars wasn’t such a
+fortune after all. Where was the money left
+over for the party dresses? Both girls looked a
+little crestfallen, but Barbara shook her head at
+Mollie as a signal not to say anything aloud.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mother had come into the open dining-room
+door and was watching the girls’ faces.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’ve a secret,” Mrs. Thurston said, after a
+minute. “A beautiful secret that I have been
+keeping to myself for over a year, now. But I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_41'></a>41</span>
+think to-day is the best time I can find to tell it.”
+Mrs. Thurston was fragile and blond, like Mollie,
+with a delicate color in her cheeks, and the
+sweetest smile in the world.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s a nice secret, mother, I can tell by your
+face.” Mollie put her arm around her mother
+and pulled her down in a chair, while she and
+Bab sat on either side of her. “Now, out with
+it!” they both cried.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Daughters,” Mrs. Thurston lowered her
+voice and spoke in a whisper, “upstairs, in my
+room in the back part of my desk is an old bank
+book. What do you think is pressed between
+the pages?” She paused a minute, and Mollie
+gave her arm a little shake. “In that book,”
+the mother continued, “are two fifty-dollar bills;
+one is labeled ‘Bab’ and the other is labeled
+‘Baby.’” Mrs. Thurston still called her big,
+fourteen-year-old daughter “baby” when no one
+was near.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Barbara could only stare at each
+other, and at their mother in surprise.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Please, and where did they come from?”
+queried Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“They came from nickels and dimes, and
+sometimes pennies,” Mrs. Thurston replied, as
+pleased and excited as the girls. “Only a week
+ago, I went to the bank and had the money
+changed into the two big bills. Oh, I’ve been
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_42'></a>42</span>
+saving some time. I saw my girls were growing
+up, and I imagined that, some day, something
+nice would happen—not just this, perhaps, but
+something equally exciting. So I wanted to be
+ready, and I am. I will get the prettiest clothes
+I can buy for the money, and I’ll have Miss
+Mattie, the seamstress, in to help me. When
+you arrive in the fashionable world of Newport,
+new outfits will be awaiting my two girls.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Thurston’s face was radiant over the
+joys in store for her daughters, but Barbara’s
+eyes were full of tears. She knew what pinching
+and saving, what sacrifices the two banknotes
+meant.
+</p>
+<p>
+Soon Bab asked: “You don’t need me any
+more, do you, mother? Because, if you don’t,
+I am going up to look in the treasure chest. I
+want to find something to re-trim Mollie’s hat.
+The roses are so faded, on the one she is wearing,
+it will never do to wear with her nice spring
+suit.”
+</p>
+<p>
+There was a little attic over the cottage, and
+it almost belonged to Barbara. Up there she
+used to study her lessons, write poetry, and
+dream of the wonderful things she hoped to do
+in order to make mother and Mollie rich.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara skipped over to the trunk, where they
+kept odds and ends of faded finery, gifts from
+rich cousins who sent their cast-off clothes to the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_43'></a>43</span>
+little girls. “This is like Pandora’s chest,”
+laughed Barbara to herself. “It looks as if
+everything, now, has gone out of it, except
+Hope.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bump! bang! crash! the chandelier shivered
+over Mrs. Thurston and Mollie’s heads. Both
+started up with the one word, “Bab,” on their
+lips. It was impossible to know what she would
+attempt, or what would happen to her next.
+</p>
+<p>
+Just as they reached the foot of the attic steps
+an apologetic head appeared over the railing.
+“I am not hurt,” Bab’s voice explained. “I just
+tried to move the old bureau so I could see better,
+and I knocked over a trunk. I am so sorry,
+mother, but the trunk has broken open. It is
+that old one of yours. I know it made an awful
+racket!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“It does not matter, child,” Mrs. Thurston
+said in a relieved tone, when she saw what had
+actually happened. “Nothing matters, since
+you have not killed yourself.”
+</p>
+<p>
+She bent over her trunk. The old lock had
+been loosened by the fall, and the top had tumbled
+off. On the floor were a yellow roll of
+papers, and a quaint carved fan. Mrs. Thurston
+picked them up. The papers she dropped in the
+tray of the trunk, but the fan she kept in her
+hand. “This little fan,” she said, “I used at the
+last party your father and I attended together
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_44'></a>44</span>
+the week before we were married. I have kept it
+a long time, and I think it very beautiful.” She
+opened, with loving fingers, a fan of delicately-carved
+ivory, mounted in silver, and hung on a
+curious silver chain. “Your great-uncle
+brought it to me from China, when I was just
+your age, Mollie! It was given him by a
+viceroy, in recognition of a service rendered.
+Which of my daughters would like to take
+this fan to Newport?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara shook her head, while Mollie looked
+at it with longing eyes. “I don’t believe either
+of us had better take it,” protested Bab, “you
+have kept it so carefully all this time.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But her mother said decidedly: “I saved it
+only for you girls. Here, Mollie, suppose you
+take it; we will find something else for Bab.”
+</p>
+<p>
+As Mollie and her mother lifted out the tray of
+the old trunk, Bab’s eyes caught sight of the roll
+of papers, and she picked them up.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hello, hello!” a cheerful voice sounded from
+downstairs.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s Grace Carter,” said Mollie. “You
+don’t mind her coming up, do you, mother?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace was almost a third daughter at the little
+Thurston cottage. Her own home was big
+and dull! her mother was a stern, cold woman,
+and her two brothers were much older than
+Grace.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_45'></a>45</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“No,” said Mrs. Thurston, going on with her
+search.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I couldn’t keep away, chilluns,” apologized
+Grace as she came upstairs. “Mother told me
+I’d be dreadfully in the way, but I just had to
+talk about our trip. Isn’t it too splendid! You
+are not having secrets, are you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Not from you,” Mrs. Thurston said. “See
+what I have found for Bab.” Mrs. Thurston
+held out an open jewel-case. In it was a beautiful
+spray of pink coral, and a round coral pin.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I think, Bab, dear,” she said, “you are old
+enough, now, for such simple jewelry. I will
+buy you a white muslin, and you can wear this
+pin at your throat and the spray in your hair.
+Then, with a coral ribbon sash, who knows but
+you may be one of the belles of a Newport
+party?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara flushed with pleasure over the gifts,
+but she looked so embarrassed at her mother’s
+compliment that Mollie and Grace both laughed.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I declare,” Grace said, “you have less vanity
+than any girl in the world. Oh, wasn’t it
+fortunate I discovered your money yesterday?
+Just as we all jumped out of the car I heard
+something clink, and picked up one of your
+twenty dollars. Harry Townsend said he found
+the other tucked away in the leather of the
+front seat.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_46'></a>46</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“And I sat in the back seat all the time I
+was in the car,” reflected Barbara, under her
+breath.
+</p>
+<p>
+When a turquoise blue heart on a string of
+tiny beads had been added to Mollie’s “going-away”
+treasures, she and Grace went down
+stairs.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara still held the roll of papers in her
+hand and kept turning them over and over, trying
+to read the faded writing. She caught sight
+of her father’s signature. “Are these papers
+valuable?” she asked her mother.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Thurston sighed deeply as she answered:
+“They are old papers of your father’s. Put
+them away again. I never like to look at them.
+I found them in his business suit after he was
+dead. He had sent it to the tailor, and had forgotten
+all about it.” Mrs. Thurston took the
+papers from Barbara’s hand and put them back
+into her trunk.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Do you think they are valuable, mother?”
+persisted Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t think so,” her mother concluded.
+“Your uncle told me he looked over all your
+father’s papers that were of any value.”
+</p>
+<p>
+After the two had mended the lock of the old
+trunk, and turned to leave the attic, Barbara
+was still thinking. “Dearest,” she said thoughtfully,
+“would you mind my going through those
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_47'></a>47</span>
+papers some time?” To herself Bab added:
+“I’d like to ask a clever business man, like Mr.
+Stuart, to explain them to me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Mrs. Thurston sighed as she said: “Oh,
+yes, you may look them over, some day, if you
+like. It won’t make any difference.”
+</p>
+<p>
+What difference it might make neither Mrs.
+Thurston or Barbara could then know.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chV' id='chV'></a>CHAPTER V—THE GLORIOUS START</h2>
+<p>
+Before daylight, on the great day,
+Mollie’s two arms encircled a sleepy
+Barbara, and a soft voice whispered in
+her ear: “It isn’t true, is it, Bab, that you and
+I, two insignificant little girls, who never could
+have conceived of anything so glorious, are off
+to-day for Newport, escorted by Ruth’s distinguished
+friend, ‘Mr. A. Bubble’?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was wide awake in a minute.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I suppose it’s true,” she said, “because it
+was last night, before we went to bed. Otherwise
+I would think we had both dreamed it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The two girls talked in excited whispers. It
+wouldn’t do to waken mother any earlier than
+they must, for she was tired with their preparations,
+though her daughters had persuaded her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_48'></a>48</span>
+to have a little country girl in to help with the
+work, now that she was to have so important a
+person as Mr. Stuart for “boarder.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But at seven o’clock it was mother who called:
+</p>
+<p>
+“Get up, girls. It is time for coffee and
+clothes, if you are to start off at ten as you
+promised. It will not do to keep Miss Stuart
+and the girls waiting. As for Mr. A. Bubble, I
+don’t believe he can stand still, even if he tries.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Aunt Sallie having called on Sunday afternoon,
+had waived ceremony and stayed to tea
+in the tiny cottage, so impressed was she with
+Mrs. Thurston’s quiet charm and gentle manners.
+</p>
+<p>
+The two girls hurried into their kimonos.
+Mother had suggested these garments for this
+morning, since they were to dress so soon afterwards
+in their “going away” clothes.
+</p>
+<p>
+By the time that Barbara and Mollie had put
+on their pretty brown and blue serge suits, with
+their dust coats over them, they heard strange
+noises on the front porch, mingled with giggles
+and whispers. Barbara was putting the sixth
+hat pin into her hat, and tying the motor veil
+so tightly under her chin that it choked her,
+when Mollie peeped out the front window.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s a surprise party, I do believe,” she
+whispered. “There’s Harold Smith, with a big
+bunch of pink roses. I know they are for you.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_49'></a>49</span>
+The girls have little bundles in their hands.
+What fun! I didn’t know they had heard of
+our trip. How fast news <em>does</em> fly around this
+village.”
+</p>
+<p>
+While Mollie and Barbara were saying their
+good-byes on their little veranda there was
+equal excitement at the big hotel.
+</p>
+<p>
+Before breakfast Ruth had gone out to the
+garage with her arm in her father’s.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I want to see with my own eyes, Dad,” she
+said, “that the machine is all right. Isn’t it
+well that I have a taste for mechanics, even
+though I am a girl? Suppose I hadn’t studied
+all those automobile books with you until I
+could say them backwards, and hadn’t helped
+you over all the accidents—you never would
+have let me go on this heavenly trip, would
+you? I am going to be as careful as can be,
+just to show you did right to trust me, also not
+to give Aunt Sallie a chance to say, ‘I told you
+so.’”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth had pretty, sunny, red-gold hair and
+big, gray-blue eyes. Though she wasn’t exactly
+a beauty, her face was so frank, and her coloring
+so fresh and lovely, many people thought
+her very good-looking.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Stuart smiled at his daughter’s enthusiasm.
+“She’s ‘a chip of the old block,’” he
+said to himself. “She loves fun and adventure
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_50'></a>50</span>
+and ‘getting there,’ like a man. I am not going
+to stand in her way.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Stuart was feeling rather nervous about
+the trip this morning, but he didn’t intend Ruth
+to know.
+</p>
+<p>
+To judge by the looks of the automobile, the
+chauffeur must have been up all night. The
+machinery was cleaned and oiled. The extra
+tires, in their dark red leather cases, were
+strapped to the sides of the car. A great box of
+extra rugs and wraps, rubber covers for the
+machine and mackintoshes in case of rain, was
+tied on the back. Between the seats was an
+open hamper for lunch, with an English tea
+service in one compartment, and cups, saucers,
+a teapot and a hot-water jug and alcohol lamp,
+all complete. The luncheon was to be sent down
+later from the hotel.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You are to take your meals at the inns along
+the way, when you prefer,” Mr. Stuart had explained,
+“but I don’t mean to have you run the
+risk of starving in case you are delayed, or an
+accident occurs. Be sure to take your picnic
+lunch along with you, when you start out each
+day. What you don’t eat, feed to the small boys
+along the road, who will insist on playing
+guide.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Aunt Sallie was the only one of the hotel party
+who enjoyed breakfast. Grace had driven over
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_51'></a>51</span>
+early, and was breakfasting with Ruth in order
+to save delay. Both the girls and Mr. Stuart
+were too excited to take much interest in their
+bacon and eggs, but Aunt Sallie ate with a resigned
+expression that seemed to say: “Perhaps
+this is my last meal on earth.” Yet,
+secretly, she was almost as delighted as were
+the girls in the prospect of the trip.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now, Sallie, you are not to go if you don’t
+wish to,” Mr. Stuart had protested. “You must
+not let Ruth drag you into this trip against your
+will.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But all he could persuade his sister to answer
+was: “If Ruth is going on such an extraordinary
+excursion, then, at least, I shall be
+along to see that nothing worse happens to
+her.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys Le Baron came into the dining-room,
+stopping in front of Ruth’s table. “You dear
+things,” she drawled in her most careful society
+manner, “how can you look so fresh so
+early in the morning? I hope you appreciate
+my getting up to see you off.” Gladys wore
+a lingerie frock more appropriate for a party
+than for the breakfast room.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Ruth answered good naturedly. “I do
+appreciate it, if it is such an effort for you. Did
+you know Mr. Townsend is going to ride over
+to the Thurston’s with us to see us start? He
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_52'></a>52</span>
+tells me you and he are both to be in Newport
+while we are there.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” Gladys declared with more airs than
+before. “Mrs. Erwin has asked me to be one
+of the house-party she’s to have for her ball.
+She told me I could bring a friend along, and
+I have asked Mr. Townsend.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Wonderful! We won’t expect you to associate
+with us!” laughed Grace.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Gladys,” Ruth asked, “would you like to
+drive over to Mrs. Thurston’s with us? Father
+is going, and the carriage will be there to bring
+him back.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I would like to go,” murmured Gladys, “if
+I didn’t have on this old frock. I don’t know
+Mollie and Barbara very well, but I suppose I
+shall have to see a great deal of them, now you
+have taken them up. I wonder how they will
+behave at Newport? They have hardly been
+out of Kingsbridge before.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace and Ruth both looked angry, and Mr.
+Stuart broke in, quite curtly: “I am sure we
+can depend on their behaving becomingly, which
+is all that is necessary at Newport or any other
+place.” Ruth’s father was a business acquaintance
+of Gladys’s father, and had known
+her mother when the latter was a girl, but the
+airs of Mrs. Le Baron and her society daughter
+were too much for his western common sense.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_53'></a>53</span>
+Only Aunt Sallie was impressed by their imposing
+manner.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth was very popular at the big summer
+hotel, and a number of the guests had assembled
+to see her off. But Ruth let her father run the
+car and sat quietly by his side. “You’ll turn
+over the command to me, captain, won’t you,
+when the trip really commences?” and she
+squeezed his arm with a little movement of
+affection.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes, lieutenant,” Mr. Stuart said quietly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, Miss Ruth,” called Mr. Townsend from
+the back seat, “do show all these people how
+you can handle your car!” But she only shook
+her head.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Goodness me, what are all those people doing
+on Mrs. Thurston’s porch?” Ruth asked, in
+alarm. “I hope nothing has happened.” But,
+as the car neared the quiet little house, which
+stood midway between the hotel and the New
+York high road, she saw the party of young
+people gathered on the front lawn.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s only their friends, come to say good-bye
+to them,” Harry volunteered. In answer to
+“What a bore!” from Gladys, he continued:
+“I don’t know why you should think it a bore.
+Miss Stuart enjoys her friends’s popularity.”
+Mr. Townsend had been trying, for several
+weeks, to make himself equally agreeable to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_54'></a>54</span>
+Ruth and Gladys. They were both very
+wealthy, and it seemed wise to him to associate
+with rich people. But as Ruth was not easily
+impressed with what she called “just foolishness,”
+he had become very intimate with Gladys
+Le Baron.
+</p>
+<p>
+When Mr. Stuart tooted the horn to announce
+their approach to the cottage a chorus of tin
+horns answered him from Mrs. Thurston’s front
+garden. As the car drew up to the gate, the
+boys and girls began to sing, “See the Conquering
+Hero Comes,” while Barbara ran down
+to the car and Mollie urged her friends to be
+quieter. “I just don’t know what Miss Stuart
+and Mr. Stuart will think of us!” she blushingly
+remonstrated.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Aunt Sallie and Mr. Stuart were in for all
+the fun going this morning. Barbara was invited
+to call her seven friends who had come to
+give the girls a send-off, down to meet the occupants
+of the car. Even Gladys, as she was
+forced to get out of the automobile to let the
+other travelers in, was condescending enough to
+permit Harold Smith to assist her. Harold was
+an old friend of Barbara’s, and one of the cleverest
+boys in the village.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Stuart went into the house for the suit
+cases and satchels, which were all the girls were
+to take with them, as they were to manage with
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_55'></a>55</span>
+as few clothes as possible. It had been arranged
+that extra luggage was to be expressed to them
+along the way.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara had caught Mollie storing away a
+sample package of cold cream among her most
+treasured possessions.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am sure I don’t see why you should laugh
+so,” Mollie urged quite seriously. “It reads on
+the label ‘especially adapted for automobile
+travelers to remove dust and tan from the face
+after the drive.’ Aren’t we going to be automobile
+travelers?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Sure and we a’ire,” said Bab, imitating the
+old Irish washerwoman, “and it shall put grease
+on its nose if it likes.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come, daughter,” said Mr. Stuart finally, as
+Ruth was trying to explain to a group of admiring
+boys the first principles of running an
+automobile. She talked as familiarly of an
+emergency brake and a steering wheel, of horse
+power and speed-transmission, as most girls talk
+of frills and furbelows.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s ten-thirty,” Mr. Stuart continued, “and,
+if this party is to be a strictly on time affair,
+you must be off! You couldn’t have a more
+wonderful day.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was late in the month of June. The summer
+clouds were sailing overhead, great bubbles
+of white foam thrown up into the blue depth of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_56'></a>56</span>
+the sky. The sun shone brightly and the whole
+atmosphere was perfumed with the bloom of
+the honeysuckle, that hung in yellow clusters
+from Mrs. Thurston’s porch.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara and Mollie flung their arms around
+their mother until she was completely enveloped
+in their embrace. Ruth kissed her father, and
+put her hand to her trim leather cap with a
+military salute. “It’s all right, captain,” she
+said; “I’ll bring my crew and good ship
+‘Bubble’ safely into port.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Aunt Sallie was anxious to be off. She could
+see that Mrs. Thurston was on the verge of tears
+at the thought of parting with her daughters.
+Still the young people were laughing and talking,
+and storing their little gifts under the seats
+in the car, as though they had all day before
+them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hurry, child,” Aunt Sallie urged, reaching
+out a hand to Mollie. “Jump up on the back
+seat with Grace and me. We will let Mistress
+Barbara sit with Ruth for the first of the journey.”
+Aunt Sallie was very imposing in a
+violet silk traveling coat, with a veil and hat
+of the same shade; indeed, Miss Sallie had a
+fancy for a “touch of lavender” in everything
+she wore. With her snow-white hair, and commanding
+appearance, she would add prestige to
+the party, Mollie thought, no matter how
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_57'></a>57</span>
+dusty and wind-blown the rest of them might
+appear.
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls hopped gayly in. Toot, toot, toot!
+the horn blew three times. Chug-chug-chug!
+and the great machine began to breathe with
+deep, muffled roars. Mr. Stuart gave the starting
+crank a strong turn, and the car slid gracefully
+along the road, red, blue, pink and violet
+motor veils floating behind in the breeze.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Here’s good luck to you!” shouted Harold
+Smith, and roses and flowers of every kind were
+flung after them. Mollie and Grace picked up
+those that fell into their laps, and turned to
+wave their hands and throw kisses for good-bye.
+</p>
+<p>
+“They look like a rainbow,” said Mr. Stuart,
+turning to Mrs. Thurston, who was no longer
+trying to hide her tears. Then he smiled at her
+gently. She was such a tiny, girlish-looking little
+woman, it was hard to think of her as the mother
+of two nearly grown-up daughters. “I expect,”
+he continued, “that that rainbow holds most
+of our promise of sunshine.”
+</p>
+<p>
+They were still watching the car!
+</p>
+<p>
+Down to the gate, at the furthest end of the
+road, a baby boy, chubby and fat, had crawled
+on two round, turned-in legs. There was something
+unusual going on down the street. He
+could hear strange noises, but, though he stuck
+his small nose through the fence, he was still
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_58'></a>58</span>
+unable to see. Just as Ruth’s car was almost
+in front of the house, open flew the stubborn
+old gate, and the child flung himself out in the
+middle of the road, just in front of the wonderful
+red thing he could see flying toward him.
+The baby was too young to understand the danger.
+</p>
+<p>
+From the watchers at Mrs. Thurston’s came
+a cry of horror. A thrill of terror passed
+through the occupants of the car. Ruth’s face
+turned white. Like a flash, she slowed a little,
+turned her steering wheel and with a wide sweep
+drove her motor to the far side of the road, then
+straight on out of the path of the wondering
+baby.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Stuart’s, “Bravo, daughter!” was lost
+in his throat. But the little group of waiting
+friends gave three cheers for the girl chauffeur,
+which Ruth heard even at such a distance.
+Truly “The Automobile Girls” were fairly
+started on their adventures.
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_59'></a>59</span><a name='chVI' id='chVI'></a>CHAPTER VI—WHAT HAPPENED THE FIRST DAY</h2>
+<p>
+The car flew along by sunny meadows and
+farms. New York was the first day’s
+goal.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara,” Ruth said to her next-door neighbor,
+“you are hereby appointed royal geographer
+and guide-extraordinary to this party!
+Here is the route-book. It will be up to you to
+show us which roads we are to take. It is a
+pretty hard job, as I well know from experience;
+but then, honors come hard. You don’t
+need to worry to-day. I know this coast trip into
+New York as well as I know my A.B.C.‘s. I
+have often come along this way with father.
+Let’s have a perfectly beautiful time in New
+York. We’ll make Aunt Sallie chaperon us
+while we do the town, or, at least, a part of it.
+Have you ever been to a roof garden?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s eyes danced. It didn’t sound quite
+right somehow—a roof garden—but then they
+were out for experiences, and Miss Sallie
+wouldn’t let them do anything really wrong.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth glanced out of the corner of her eye at
+Barbara. Miss Stuart was a good little chauffeur
+who never allowed her attention to be
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_60'></a>60</span>
+distracted from running her car, no matter what
+was being talked of around her, nor how much
+she was interested, but she couldn’t help laughing
+at Barbara’s expression; it told so plainly
+all that was going on inside her head.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I do assure you, Miss Barbara Thurston,
+that a roof garden may be a fairly respectable
+thing, quite well suited to entertaining, without
+shocking either Miss Sallie Stuart or her
+four charming protégées.” Ruth called back:
+“Aunt Sallie, will you take us up on the Waldorf
+roof to-night? You know we are going to
+stay at the Waldorf Hotel, girls. Father said
+we might enjoy the experience, and it would be
+all right with Aunt Sallie for chaperon.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace pinched Mollie’s arm to express her
+rapture, and that little maiden simply gasped
+with delight. It was Mollie, not Barbara, of
+the two sisters, who had the greatest yearning
+for wealth and society, and the beautiful clothes
+and wonderful people that she believed went
+along with it. Barbara was an out-door girl,
+who loved tennis and all the sports, and could
+swim like a fish. An artist who spent his
+summers at Kingsbridge, once called her a
+brown sea-gull, when he saw her lithe brown
+body dart off the great pier to dive deep into
+the water.
+</p>
+<p>
+Aunt Sallie had been taking a brief cat-nap,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_61'></a>61</span>
+before Ruth’s question, and awakened in high
+good humor. “Why, yes, children,” she answered,
+“it will be very pleasant to go up on
+the roof to-night, after we have had our baths
+and our dinners. I am quite disposed to let
+you do just what you like, so long as you behave
+yourselves.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace Carter pressed Aunt Sallie’s fat hand,
+as a message of thanks. Grace was Aunt
+Sallie’s favorite among Ruth’s friends. “She
+is a quiet, lady-like girl, who does not do unexpected
+things that get on one’s nerves,” Miss
+Sallie had once explained to Ruth. “Now, Aunt
+Sallie,” Ruth had protested, “I know I do get
+on your nerves sometimes, but you know you
+need me to stir you up. Think how dull you
+would be without me!” And Aunt Sallie had
+answered, with unexpected feeling: “I would
+be very dull, indeed, my dear.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls were full of their plans for the
+evening.
+</p>
+<p>
+“That is why Ruth told us each to put a
+muslin dress in our suit cases! Ruth, are you
+going to think up a fresh surprise every day!
+It’s just too splendid!” Mollie spoke in a tone
+of such fervent emotion that everyone in the
+car laughed.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t suppose I can manage a surprise
+every day, Molliekins,” Ruth called back over
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_62'></a>62</span>
+her shoulder, “but I mean to think up as many
+as I possibly can. We are going to have the
+time of our lives, you know, and something must
+happen to make it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+All this time the car had been flying faster
+than the girls could talk. “This is ‘going
+some,’” commented Ruth, laughing.
+</p>
+<p>
+When they came into Lakewood Ruth slowed
+up, as she had promised her father not to go
+any faster than the law allowed. “I cross my
+heart and body, Dad,” she had said. “Think
+of four lovely maidens and their handsome
+duenna languishing in jail instead of flying
+along the road to Newport. Honest Injun!
+father, I’ll read every automobile sign from
+here to Jehosaphat, if we ever decide to travel
+that way.”
+</p>
+<p>
+In Lakewood, Ruth drove her car around the
+wonderful pine shaded lake.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s a winter resort,” she explained to her
+companions. “Nearly all the cottages and
+hotels are closed in the summer, but I wanted
+you to have a smell of the pines. It will give
+you strength for the rest of the trip.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Silence fell on the party as they skimmed out
+of Lakewood. After so much excitement it was
+pleasant to look at things without having to
+talk.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie had begun, once in a while, to tap the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_63'></a>63</span>
+lunch basket with her foot. The fresh air and
+the long ride had made her desperately hungry.
+She really couldn’t remember having eaten any
+breakfast in the excitement of getting off. But
+nobody said f-o-o-d! She felt she was the
+youngest member of the party and should not
+make suggestions before Miss Sallie.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth turned into a narrow lane; a sign post
+pointed the way to a deserted village.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, dear me!” sighed Mollie to herself.
+“Why are we going to a deserted village, just
+as we are dying of hunger!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth said never a word. She passed some
+tumble-down old cottages of a century ago,
+then an old iron foundry, and drew up with a
+great flourish before an old stone house, green
+with moss and ivy and fragrant with a “lovely”
+odor of cooking! There were little tables set
+out on the lawn and on the old-fashioned
+veranda, and soon the party was reveling in
+lunch.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I didn’t know food could be so heavenly,”
+whispered Mollie in Bab’s ear, when they were
+back in the car, for Grace had begged for a seat
+by the chauffeur for the afternoon trip.
+</p>
+<p>
+Soon Ruth left the country behind, and came
+out on the sea-coast road that ran through
+Long Branch, Deal Beach, Monmouth and Seabright.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_64'></a>64</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+From carriages and other automobiles, and
+along the promenades, everyone smiled at the
+crimson car full of happy, laughing girls.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth was driving in her best fashion, making
+all the speed she could, with the thought
+of town fifty miles or more ahead. “It is a
+sight to see,” quoth Barbara, “the way the
+fairy princess handles her chariot of fire.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was a little after four o’clock when the car
+boarded the Staten Island ferry and finally
+crossed to the New York shore.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You see, Bab,” Mollie said, trying to stuff
+her curls under her motor cap and to rub the
+dust from her rosy cheeks with a tiny pocket
+handkerchief as they sped up Broadway, “I
+might be dreadfully embarrassed arriving at the
+Waldorf looking the way I do, if I were not in
+a motor car, but riding in an automobile makes
+one feel so awfully swell that nothing matters.
+Isn’t it lovely just to feel important for once?
+You know it is, Bab, and you needn’t say no!
+It’s silly to pretend.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie was again on the border of slumberland,
+so that Mollie and Barbara could have
+their low-voiced talk.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Does Ruth know I have never even been to
+New York before?” asked Mollie. “I hope I
+won’t seem very green about things. You must
+tell me if I do, Bab.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_65'></a>65</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+But Bab only laughed and shook her head.
+“You are a foolish baby,” she said.
+</p>
+<p>
+Two respectful porters at the Waldorf helped
+a dusty, crumpled party out of the big red touring
+car.
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls, a little dazed, followed Miss Sallie
+through a maze of palms and servants in livery,
+with handsomely dressed people strolling
+through the halls, until their suite of rooms,
+which Mr. Stuart had engaged by telegraph a
+few days before, was reached.
+</p>
+<p>
+The three rooms adjoined, only separated by
+white tile bathrooms. Miss Sallie, naturally,
+had a room to herself, and it was decided that
+Ruth and Grace were to sleep together, leaving
+the sisters to themselves.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Isn’t it too beautiful!” sighed Mollie, standing
+in the midst of their luxurious chamber,
+gazing around at the single brass beds, with
+their rose-colored draperies, and the ivory-striped
+satin wall paper, garlanded in pink
+flowers. Ruth and Grace were equally fine in
+a room decorated in blue, and, even in the Waldorf,
+Miss Sallie’s taste seemed to have been
+consulted, as her room was in her favorite
+violet shade.
+</p>
+<p>
+In some mysterious way the crumpled muslin
+dresses were taken downstairs by a maid, and
+came back smooth and fresh. Even Miss Sallie’s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_66'></a>66</span>
+elaborate chiffon gown looked as though it had
+just come home from the modiste’s.
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Ruth! Ruth!” Mollie exclaimed, as the
+four girls made their way to the dining-room,
+Miss Sallie in the lead, “I didn’t know there
+could be such a magnificent place in the world
+as this. I don’t know what I can ever do to
+repay you, except to love you and be grateful
+my whole life long.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, I am sure that is all the gratitude I
+should ever want, Mollie,” laughed Ruth. “But
+wait until you see the houses at Newport.”
+</p>
+<p>
+All eyes near the door turned to see the little
+automobile party enter the “palm room.” Miss
+Sallie swept ahead in her black lace and chiffon,
+looking very handsome and impressive. Barbara
+and Grace came next; Barbara with her
+red-brown hair breaking into willful curves and
+waves, her big brown eyes glowing with pleasure,
+and the deep red showing in her olive
+cheeks; Grace with her look of refinement and
+gentle dignity. The blond maidens came in
+last. Ruth’s bright gold hair and fresh coloring
+showed to best advantage in a dainty white
+muslin and lace frock. She was half a head
+taller than dainty Mollie, who looked like a
+flower with her yellow curls gathered in a soft
+cluster at the back of her neck and tied with a
+black velvet ribbon.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_67'></a>67</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+On the Waldorf roof, Miss Stuart and the girls
+sat under an orange tree, hung in some mysterious
+way with golden oranges. The whole
+place was decorated with palms and evergreens
+and beautiful flowers. The soft, shaded yellow
+lights rivaled the moonlight that glowed above.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s like the enchanted garden in the French
+fairy story, isn’t it, Miss Sallie? Where the
+flowers and fruits bloomed all the year round?”
+whispered Barbara, who sat next their chaperon.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie smiled very kindly at her enthusiasm.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I expect it is, but I am afraid I have forgotten
+the story. It has been a long time, remember,
+Barbara, since fairies and I have had much
+to say to each other.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara blushed. “Oh, I am not so young as
+all that, Miss Sallie; but I have never forgotten
+the fairy tales I read when I was a little girl.
+Though I must confess I liked boys’ stories better.
+I just love adventures!” And Barbara’s
+eyes shone. In a little while the music commenced,
+and she forgot everything but that.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie was differently occupied. What she
+liked best was to gaze around her at the women
+in their jewels and wonderful gowns.
+</p>
+<p>
+Just across from her on the other side of the
+aisle was a rarely beautiful woman in a white
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_68'></a>68</span>
+lace gown, with a string of pearls round her
+throat, and a pearl and diamond butterfly that
+glowed and sparkled in her hair.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie was so fascinated by her beauty that
+she couldn’t help watching this stranger, and
+even overhearing a little of her conversation.
+“It isn’t exactly eavesdropping,” Mollie apologized
+to herself, “because I don’t know them and
+they can never possibly know me.” So nobody
+noticed, but Mollie, that when the woman gave a
+laughing toss of her head in answer to some
+question from her husband, who sat back of her,
+that the beautiful, jeweled butterfly slipped
+softly out of her hair, fell into the softer lace
+folds of her gown and then down—down—to the
+floor!
+</p>
+<p>
+The little girl waited half a minute. No one
+else had noticed the loss. At any time an usher
+might come down the aisle and crush the exquisite
+jewel. Mollie forgot herself and her shyness.
+If it had been Barbara she would not
+have minded, but Mollie was timid before
+strangers. She slipped quietly across the aisle
+and picked up the butterfly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I beg your pardon,” her soft voice explained,
+“but I saw this fall from your hair, and,
+as you did not notice it, I was afraid it might be
+crushed.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The lovely woman turned in surprise. It is
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_69'></a>69</span>
+just as well to call her “the lovely lady,” now,
+for that was Mollie’s name for her ever afterwards.
+</p>
+<p>
+“My dear,” she said, “I am very grateful to
+you. How could I have failed to see it? I am
+especially obliged to you, because I am very fond
+of this ornament.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie blushed rosy-red, as the people close to
+them had observed what had happened and were
+watching her. As she tried to slip over to her
+seat, the lady reached out and gave the child’s
+hand a gentle squeeze of thanks, glancing across
+as she did so to see what friends the little girl
+was with, and so caught Ruth Stuart’s eye.
+</p>
+<p>
+The intermission came at this minute.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, Ruth Stuart!” Mollie, to her surprise,
+heard her friend’s name called in a low
+voice, and Ruth came across to them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s Mrs. Cartwright,” she said. “I am so
+pleased! I didn’t suppose you would remember
+me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Of course I remember you, Ruth,” Mrs.
+Cartwright protested. “It has been only two
+years since I saw you at my own wedding in
+Chicago. My memory is surely longer than
+that. Isn’t that your aunt, Miss Stuart?” Mrs.
+Cartwright moved across the aisle to speak to
+Miss Sallie and to introduce her husband. When
+they had shaken hands, Mrs. Cartwright asked:
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_70'></a>70</span>
+“May I know what you are doing in this part of
+the world at this season?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am playing chaperon to my madcap
+niece and her three friends, who are doing an
+automobile trip to Newport without a man.
+Ruth is her own chauffeur,” Miss Sallie explained,
+laughing.
+</p>
+<p>
+“How jolly of you, Ruth, and how clever! I
+am so glad you are going to Newport. Did you
+know my summer place is down there? I am
+only in town for a day or two. My husband had
+to come on business and I am with him. We
+shall be motoring home, soon, and may pass you
+if you are to take things slowly. Why not join
+me at New Haven? My husband’s brother is a
+junior at Yale, and we’ve promised to stop there
+for a day. There is a dance on at Alumni Hall.
+I’d be too popular for words if I could take you
+four pretty girls along with me!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth turned to her aunt with glowing eyes.
+“We did want to see the college dreadfully,”
+she said. “I have never seen a big Eastern university.
+We didn’t dream of knowing anybody
+who would show us around. Wouldn’t it be too
+much for you to have us all on your hands?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Certainly not,” said Mrs. Cartwright, “but
+a most decided pleasure. I shall meet you in
+New Haven, say, day after to-morrow, and I’ll
+telegraph to-night to my brother, whose name
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_71'></a>71</span>
+is Donald Cartwright, by the way, to expect
+us.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The music was about to begin again, but, before
+Mrs. Cartwright went over to her seat, she
+put her hand on Mollie’s curls. “I must see this
+little girl often at Newport. Then I can thank
+her better for saving my lovely butterfly for
+me. I hope to make all of you have a beautiful
+time.” She put the jewel into her hair again,
+and Mollie looked at it thoughtfully. She was
+to know it again some day, under stranger circumstances.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chVII' id='chVII'></a>CHAPTER VII—SHOWING THEIR METTLE</h2>
+<p>
+“Girls!” Aunt Sallie said solemnly next
+morning, as Mr. Cartwright and two
+footmen helped her into the motor
+car, while Barbara, Grace and Mollie stood
+around holding her extra veils, her magazines
+and pocketbook. “I feel, in my bones, that it
+is going to rain to-day. I think we had better
+stay in town.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, Aunt Sallie!” Ruth’s hand was already
+on the spark of her steering wheel, and she was
+bouncing up and down on her seat in her impatience
+to be off. “It’s simply a splendid day!
+Look at the sun!” She leaned over to Mr. Cartwright.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_72'></a>72</span>
+“Do say something to cheer Aunt Sallie
+up. If she loses her nerve now, we’ll never
+have our trip.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright both reassured her.
+“The paper says clear weather and light winds,
+Miss Stuart. You’ll have a beautiful day of it.
+Remember we shall meet you in New Haven to-morrow,
+and you have promised to wait for us.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Aunt Sallie settled herself resignedly into her
+violet cushions, holding her smelling bottle to
+her nose. “Very well, young people, have it
+your own way,” she relented. “But, mark my
+words, it will rain before night. I have a shoulderblade
+that is a better weather prophet than
+all your bureaus.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’re much too handsome a woman,”
+laughed Ruth, the other girls joining her, “to
+talk like Katisha, in the ‘Mikado,’ who had the
+famous shoulderblade that people came miles to
+see.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth was steering her car through Fifth Avenue,
+so Aunt Sallie merely smiled at her own
+expense, adding: “You’re a very disrespectful
+niece, Ruth.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’d get on my knees to apologize, Auntie,”
+declared Ruth, “only there isn’t room, and we’d
+certainly be run into, if I did.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was poring over the route book.
+Her duty as guide to the automobile party really
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_73'></a>73</span>
+began to-day, and she was studying every inch
+of the road map. What would she do if they
+were lost?
+</p>
+<p>
+“You may look up from that book just once in
+every fifteen minutes, Guide Thurston,” Ruth
+said, pretending to be serious over Barbara’s
+worried look. “We promise not to eat you if
+you do get us a little out of our way. The roads
+are well posted. What shall we do if we meet
+some bandits?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Leave them to me,” boasted Barbara. “I
+suppose it’s my fate to play man of the party.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“And what of the chauffeur?” Ruth protested.
+“I wonder what any of us could do if
+we got into danger.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The day was apparently lovely. The girls
+were in the wildest spirits.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I never believed until this minute,” announced
+Mollie, “that we were actually going on
+the trip to Newport. I felt every moment something
+would happen to stop us. I even dreamed,
+last night, that we met a great giant in the road,
+and he roared at us, ‘I never allow red motor
+cars with brass trimmings to pass along this
+road!’ Ruth wouldn’t pay the least attention to
+him, but kept straight ahead, until he picked up
+the car and started to pitch us over in a ditch.
+Then Ruth cried: ‘Hold on there! If you won’t
+let a red car pass, I’ll go back to town and have
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_74'></a>74</span>
+mine painted green. I must have my trip.’
+Just as she turned around and started back, I
+woke up. Wasn’t it awful?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“You are a goose,” said Grace, rather nervously.
+“It isn’t a sign of anything, is it? You
+ought not to tell your dreams after breakfast.
+You may make them come true.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara and Ruth both shouted with laughter,
+for Mollie answered just as seriously: “You’re
+wrong, Grace; it’s telling dreams before breakfast
+that makes them come true. I was particularly
+careful to wait.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The car passed swiftly through the town in the
+early morning. Soon the spires and towers of
+the city were no longer visible.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hurrah for the Boston Post Road!” sang
+Barbara, as the car swung into the famous old
+highway.
+</p>
+<p>
+“And hurrah for Barbara for discovering
+it!” teased Ruth. “Now, clear the track, fellow
+autoists and slow coach drivers! We know
+where we’re going, and we’re on the way!”
+</p>
+<p>
+It had been decided to make a straight trip
+through to New Haven, and to wait there for
+Mrs. Cartwright. Miss Sallie had insisted on
+some rest, and the girls were wild to see the college—and
+the college men.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It will be sure enough sport,” Ruth confided,
+“to have one dance with all the partners needed
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_75'></a>75</span>
+to go round.” Men were as scarce at the Kingsbridge
+Hotel as they were in other summer resorts,
+and Ruth was tired of Harry Townsend
+and his kind, who liked to stay around the hotel,
+making eyes at all the girls they saw.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” said Barbara thoughtfully, “it will be
+fun. Yet, Ruth, suppose we are sticks and
+no one dances with us?” Barbara didn’t like
+the thought of being a wall-flower. Ruth
+laughed and quickly replied, “Oh, Mrs. Cartwright
+is awfully jolly and popular, so we will
+have plenty of invitations to dance.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth,” said Miss Sallie, a little after noon,
+when they had passed, without a hitch, through
+a number of beautiful Connecticut towns, and
+were speeding along an open road, with a view
+of the waters of Long Island Sound to the right
+of them, “I have not looked at my watch lately,
+but I’ve an impression I am hungry. As long
+as we have made up our minds to eat the luncheon
+the hotel has put up for us, why not stop
+along the road here, and have a picnic?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Good for you, Aunt Sallie!” said Grace,
+emphatically. “This is a beauty place. Ruth
+can leave the car right here, and we can go up
+under that elm and make tea. What larks!”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls all piled out, carrying the big lunch
+hamper between them. On the stump of an old
+tree the alcohol lamp was set up and tea was
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_76'></a>76</span>
+quickly brewed. Then the girls formed a circle
+on the ground, while Miss Sallie, from her throne
+of violet silk pillows, gave directions about setting
+the lunch table.
+</p>
+<p>
+No one noticed how the time passed. No one
+could notice, all were having such a jolly time;
+even Miss Sallie was now in excellent spirits.
+She had been in Newport several times before,
+and the girls were full of questions.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie leaned her head against Miss Sallie’s
+knee, so intimate had she grown in a day and a
+half with that awe-inspiring person. “Is it
+true,” she inquired in a voice of reverence,
+“that every person who lives in Newport is a
+millionaire?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“And are the streets paved with gold, Miss
+Sallie?” queried Grace. She was Mollie’s
+special friend, and fond of teasing her. “I read
+that the water at Bailey’s Beach is perfumed
+every morning before the ladies go in bathing,
+and that all the fish that come from near there
+taste like cologne.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie laughed. “There are some people
+at Newport who are not summer people,”
+she explained. “You must remember that it is
+an old New England town, and there are
+thousands of people who live there the year
+around. My brother has persuaded some old
+friends of ours, who used to be very wealthy
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_77'></a>77</span>
+when I was a girl, to take us to board with them.
+There are very few hotels.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Several times during their talk Ruth’s eyes
+had wandered a little anxiously to the sky above
+them. Every now and then the shadows darkened
+under the old elm where they were eating
+their luncheon, bringing a sudden coolness to the
+summer atmosphere.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Aunt Sallie made me nervous about the
+weather with that story of her shoulderblade,”
+Ruth argued with herself. So she was the first
+to say: “Come, we had better be off. What a
+lot of time we’ve wasted!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No hurry, Ruth,” Aunt Sallie answered,
+placidly. “New Haven is no great distance.
+We shall be there before dark.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was fully half after two before the automobile
+girls had gathered up their belongings
+and were again comfortably disposed in the car.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It certainly is great, Ruth, the way you
+crank up your own car,” Grace declared. “It
+must take an awful lot of strength, doesn’t it?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” admitted Ruth, as she jumped back
+into her automobile and the car plunged on
+ahead. “But I’ve a strong right arm. I don’t
+row and play tennis for nothing. Father says
+it takes skill and courage, as well as strength, to
+drive a car. I hope I’m not boasting; it’s only
+that father believes girls should attempt to do
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_78'></a>78</span>
+things as well as boys. Girls could do a lot more
+if they tried harder. ‘Sometimes,’ Dad says,
+‘gumption counts for more than brute force.’”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Whew, Ruth! You talk like a suffragette,”
+objected Grace.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, maybe I am one,” said Ruth. “I’m
+from the West, where they raise strong-minded
+women. What do you say, Barbara?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t know,” replied Barbara. “I would
+not like to go to war, and I’m awfully afraid I’d
+run from a burglar in the dark.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Who’d have thought Barbara would confess
+to being a coward?” Grace broke in, just to see
+what Bab would say. But Bab wouldn’t answer.
+“I don’t know what I would do,” she
+ended.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Anyhow,” said Miss Ruth, from her position
+of dignity on the chauffeur’s seat, “I should be
+allowed to vote on laws for motor cars, as long
+as I can run a machine without a man.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“My dear Ruth,” interposed Miss Sallie at
+last, “I beg of you, don’t vote in my lifetime.
+Girls, in my day, would never have dreamed of
+such a thing.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, well, Auntie,” answered Ruth, “I
+wouldn’t worry about it now. Who knows when
+I may have a chance to vote?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth was worried by the clouds overhead, so
+she ran her machine at full speed. It took some
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_79'></a>79</span>
+time and ingenuity to make their way through
+Bridgeport, a big, bustling town with crowded
+streets. By this time the clouds had lifted, and,
+for the next hour, Ruth forgot the rain. She
+and Barbara were having a serious talk on the
+front seat. Mollie and Grace, with their arms
+around each other, were almost as quiet as Aunt
+Sallie; indeed, they were more so, for that good
+soul was gently snoring.
+</p>
+<p>
+“If we should have any adventures, Bab,”
+said Ruth, “I wonder if we’d be equal to them?
+I’ll wager you would be. Father says that when
+people are not too sure of themselves before a
+thing happens, they are likely to be brave at the
+critical minute.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The car was going down a hill with a steep incline.
+Ruth’s hand was on the brake. Biff!
+Biff! Bang! Bang! A cannon ball seemed to
+have exploded under them. Miss Sallie sat up
+very straight, with an expression of great dignity;
+Grace and Mollie gave little screams, and
+Barbara looked as though she were willing to be
+defended if anything very dreadful had happened.
+</p>
+<p>
+Only Ruth dared laugh. “You’re not killed,
+girls,” she said. “You might as well get used
+to that racket; it happens to the best regulated
+motor cars. It is only a bursted tire; but it
+might have been kind enough to have happened
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_80'></a>80</span>
+in town, instead of on this deserted country
+road. Oh, dear me!” she next ejaculated, for,
+before she could stop her car, it had skidded, and
+the front wheel was imbedded in a deep hole in
+the road.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Get out, please,” Ruth ordered. “Grace,
+will you find a stone for me? I must try to
+brace this wheel. Did I say something about
+skill, instead of strength, and not needing a
+man?” Ruth had taken off her coat and rolled
+up her sleeves in a business-like fashion.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have helped father with a punctured tire
+before.” She tugged at the old tire, which hung
+limp and useless by this time. She was talking
+very cheerfully, though Aunt Sallie’s woeful expression
+would have made any girl nervous.
+At the same time dark clouds had begun to
+appear overhead.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’d better get out the rain things,” Ruth
+conceded. “I can’t get this fixed very soon.
+Queer no one passes along this way. It’s a lonesome
+kind of road. I wonder if we are off the
+main track?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“It is a country lane, not a main road. I saw
+that at once,” said Miss Sallie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then why didn’t you tell us, Aunt Sallie?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“My eyes were closed to avoid the dust,” replied
+Aunt Sallie firmly.
+</p>
+<p>
+Poor Ruth had a task on her hands. If only
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_81'></a>81</span>
+the car had not skidded into that ugly hole, she
+could have managed; but it was impossible for
+her, with the help of all the girls, to lift the car
+enough to slip the new tire over the rim.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Grace were taking Miss Sallie a
+little walk through the woods at the side of the
+road to try to make the time pass and to give
+Ruth a chance. Grace had winked at her slyly
+as they departed.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara,” Ruth said finally, in tragic tones,
+“I’m in a fix and I might as well confess it. I
+know it all comes of my boasting that I didn’t
+need a man. My kingdom for one just for a few
+minutes! Do you suppose there is a farmhouse
+near where we could find some one to help me get
+this wheel out of the rut? I’d surrender this
+job to a man with pleasure.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t believe we are on the right road,
+Ruth, dear.” Barbara felt so responsible that
+she was almost in tears. Ominous thunder
+clouds were rolling overhead, and Bab tried not
+to notice the large splash of rain that had fallen
+on her nose.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t worry Bab, dear,” urged Ruth. “I
+should have looked out for the road, too. It
+can’t be helped.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But I am going to help. You can just rely
+on that,” announced Barbara, shaking her
+brown curls defiantly. She had taken off her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_82'></a>82</span>
+hat in the exertion of trying to help Ruth.
+“We passed a sleepy-looking old farm a little
+way back, but I am going to wake it up!”
+</p>
+<p>
+She heard Miss Sallie and the girls returning
+to the shelter of the car, for the rain had suddenly
+come down in torrents. Down the road
+sped Bab, shaking her head like a little brown
+Shetland pony.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie was in the depths of despair.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Child,” she said sternly to Ruth, “get into
+the car out of that mud. We will remain here,
+under the shelter of the covers until morning.
+Then, if we are alive, I myself will walk to the
+nearest town and telegraph your father. We
+will take the next train back to New York.”
+Miss Sallie spoke with the extreme severity due
+to a rheumatic shoulder that had been disregarded.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Please let me keep on trying, Aunt Sallie,”
+pleaded Ruth. “I’ll get the tire on, or some one
+will come along to help me. I am so sorry, for
+I know it is all my fault.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Never mind, Ruth; but you are to come into
+this car.” And Ruth, covered with mud, was
+obliged to give in.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Where, I should like to know,” demanded
+Miss Sallie, “is Barbara?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Through the rain they could hear the patter,
+patter of a horse’s hoofs.
+</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_83'></a>83</span></div>
+<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
+<a name='i003' id='i003'></a>
+<img src="images/illus-083.jpg" alt="On Came Barbara, Riding Bareback." width="60%" title=""/><br />
+<span class='caption'>On Came Barbara, Riding Bareback.</span>
+</div>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_85'></a>85</span></div>
+<p>
+“Cheer up, Ruth, dear,” whispered Grace.
+“What difference does a little rain make? Here
+is some one coming along the road!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth’s eyes were full of tears; Aunt Sallie’s
+threat to stop their trip was more than she could
+bear; but she was soon smiling.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, Barbara Thurston,” the girls called
+out together, “it can’t be you!” On came Barbara,
+riding bareback astride an old horse, the
+animal’s big feet clattering, its mane and tail
+soaked with rain.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Great heavens!” said Miss Sallie, and closed
+her eyes.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara rode up to the automobile, her hand
+clasped tightly in the horse’s mane.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’m as right as can be, Miss Sallie. I went
+back to that sleepy old farm, knocked and
+knocked for help, and called and called, but nobody
+would answer. Just as I gave up all hope,
+old Dobbin came to the porch and neighed, as if
+inquiring what I was doing on his premises.
+Like a flash I put out my hand, as though to pat
+him, grabbed him by the mane, hopped up here,
+and now you see the best lady bareback rider
+from Rinkhem’s Circus. I led you into this
+mess; now I’m going to get you out. I shall ride
+old Dobbin into town and come back with help.”
+Bab declaimed this, ending out of breath.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Never mind, Miss Sallie,” Mollie explained,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_86'></a>86</span>
+seeing her consternation. “Bab never rode any
+other way than bareback when she was a little
+girl. Do let her go!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Very well; but she may be arrested as a
+horse thief. That is all I have to say in the
+matter.” Miss Sallie sank back on her cushions,
+but Barbara had clattered off before she could
+be forbidden to go. She caught the words,
+“horse thief,” as she rode as fast as old Dobbin
+would carry her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s Barbara to the rescue again!” Ruth
+shouted after her.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chVIII' id='chVIII'></a>CHAPTER VIII—“FOR WE ARE JOLLY GOOD FELLOWS!”</h2>
+<p>
+“Suppose I should be arrested!” thought
+Barbara uncomfortably. “It would be
+distinctly unpleasant to be hauled off to
+jail, while Aunt Sallie and the girls remain stuck
+in the mud, not knowing my fate, and helpless to
+save me! I may meet old Dobbin’s owner at
+any minute!”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was after six o’clock, and, because of the
+heavy storm, was almost dusk. Barbara had
+decided to go to the end of the lane and find the
+main road to New Haven, hoping to sooner discover
+help in that direction.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_87'></a>87</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Before long she came to a fork in the road.
+By riding close to the sign-post she found a hand
+pointing: “Nine Miles to New Haven.” On
+she sped through the mud and rain, slipping and
+sliding on the horse’s back, but still holding tight
+to his mane.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Stop! Hello, there! Why, Mirandy, if
+that ain’t my own hoss, and that girl astride it
+running off as fast as she can! Hello! Stop!”
+The farmer lashed the horse hitched to his rickety
+old buggy, and dashed after Barbara, who
+had ridden past without noticing them. “Stop,
+thief!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Down to her wet toes sank Barbara’s heart.
+The worst she had feared had happened. If
+only she had seen their buggy in time to stop
+first and ask their help. Now, rushing by
+them, how could she explain? Horse thief,
+indeed.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, please,” she said, her voice not quite
+steady, “I am not exactly running away with
+your horse; I am only going for help! My
+friends——”
+</p>
+<p>
+The farmer grabbed the horse savagely by the
+mane. “Come on,” he said. “You can tell
+your story at the nearest police station. I ain’t
+got time fer sech foolishness. What I see, I see
+with my own eyes. You’re plain running away
+with my hoss!”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_88'></a>88</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“John,” pleaded the farmer’s wife, “you
+might listen to the young lady.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Barbara’s looks were against her. The
+rain had beaten her hair down over her eyes.
+Her clothes were wet and covered with mud
+from trying to help Ruth. What could she do?
+Barbara was frightened, but she kept a cool
+head. “I’ll just let the old man haul me before
+the nearest magistrate. I expect <em>he’ll</em> listen to
+me!” She was shivering, but she knew that to
+think bravely helped to keep up one’s courage.
+“If only it were not so awful for Aunt Sallie and
+the girls to be waiting there, I could stand my
+part,” murmured Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+For fifteen minutes captors and girl jogged
+on. Only the old man talked, savagely, under
+his breath. He wanted to get home to his farmhouse
+and supper, but this made him only the
+more determined to punish Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I suppose we’ll take all night to get to town
+at this rate,” she thought miserably.
+</p>
+<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
+For we are jolly good fellows,
+For we are jolly good fellows!
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara could hear the ring of the gay song
+and the distant whirr of a motor car coming
+down the road. If only she could attract someone’s
+attention and make them listen to her!
+She could now see the lights of the automobile
+bearing down upon them.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_89'></a>89</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Like a flash, before the farmer could guess
+what she was doing, Barbara whirled around on
+old Dobbin’s back, and sat backwards. She put
+one hand to her lips. “Oh, stop! Stop,
+please!” she cried, looking like a gypsy, with
+her rain-blown hair and brown cheeks, which
+were crimson with blushes at her awkward
+position.
+</p>
+<p>
+On account of the rain, and the oncoming
+darkness, the car was going slowly. At the end
+of one of the choruses the song stopped half a
+second. One of the young fellows in the car
+caught sight of Barbara, evidently being
+dragged along by the irate farmer and his wife.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hark! Stop! Look! Listen! Methinks,
+I see a female in distress,” the young man called
+out.
+</p>
+<p>
+The car stopped almost beside the buggy, and
+one of the boys in the car roared with laughter
+at Barbara’s appearance, but the friend nearest
+him gave a warning prod.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hold on there!” called the first young man.
+“Where are you dragging this young lady
+against her will?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“She’s a hoss thief!” said the old man
+sullenly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am no such thing,” answered Barbara indignantly.
+Then, without any warning, Barbara
+threw back her head and laughed until the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_90'></a>90</span>
+tears ran down her cheeks, mingling with the
+rain. It was absurdly funny, she sitting backwards
+on an old horse, one hand in his mane, and
+the farmer pulling them along with a rope.
+What must she look like to these boys? Barbara
+saw they were gentlemen, and knew she had
+nothing more to fear.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Do please listen, while I tell my story. I
+am not a horse thief! I’ve some friends up the
+road, stuck in the mud with a broken tire in their
+automobile. I saw this old horse in the farm-yard,
+and I borrowed or rented him, and started
+for help. The old man wouldn’t let me explain.
+Won’t you,” she looked appealingly at the
+four boys in their motor car, “please go back
+and help my friends?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Every man of us!” uttered one of the young
+fellows, springing up in his car. “And we’ll
+drag this old tartar behind us with his own rope!
+We’ll buy your old horse from you, if this young
+lady wants him as a souvenir.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was the farmer’s turn to be frightened.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am sure I beg your pardon, miss,” he said,
+humbly enough now. His wife was in tears.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, never mind him,” urged Barbara.
+“Please go on back as fast as you can to my
+friends. You’ll find them up the lane to the
+left. I’ll ride the old horse back to the farm,
+and settle things and join you later.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_91'></a>91</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Excuse me, Miss Paul Revere,” disputed a
+tall, dark boy with a pair of laughing blue eyes
+that made him oddly handsome, “you’ll do no
+such thing. Kindly turn over that fiery steed
+to me, take my seat in the car and show these
+knights-errant the way to the ladies in distress.
+I want to prove to you that a fellow can ride
+bareback as well as a girl can.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But the farmer was anxious to get out of
+trouble.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’ll just lead the hoss back myself,” he said.
+“No charge at all, miss.” Evidently afraid of
+trouble, the farmer made a hurried start homeward,
+and was soon lost to view, while Barbara
+rode back to her friends with help.
+</p>
+<p>
+In ten minutes two motor cars were making
+their way into New Haven. The passengers
+had changed places. Ruth sat contentedly with
+her hands folded in her lap, by the side of a
+masculine chauffeur, who had introduced himself
+as Hugh Post, and turned out to be the
+roommate, at college, of Mrs. Cartwright’s
+brother, Donald. Barbara, wrapped in steamer
+rugs, sat beside the boy with the dark hair and
+blue eyes, whom Miss Sallie had recognized as
+Ralph Ewing, son of the friends with whom they
+expected to board at Newport.
+</p>
+<p>
+It was arranged that Barbara and Ruth were
+to sleep together the first night at New Haven.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_92'></a>92</span>
+The truth was, they wanted to talk things over,
+and there were no connecting doors between
+the three rooms. The hotel was an old one, and
+the rooms were big and dreary. They were
+connected by a narrow private hall, opening
+into the main hall by a single door, just opposite
+Ruth’s and Barbara’s room. The automobile
+girls were in a distant wing of the hotel,
+but the accommodations were the best that
+could be found.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie bade their rescuers a prompt farewell
+on arrival at the hotel. “We shall be delighted
+to see you again in the morning,” she
+said, “but we are too used up for anything more
+to-night.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was promptly put to bed. She was
+not even allowed to go down to supper with the
+other girls, but lay snuggled in heavy covers,
+eating from a tray by her bed. Once or twice
+she thought she heard light footfalls outside
+in the main hall, but she had noticed a window
+that opened on a fire escape, and supposed that
+one of the hotel guests had walked down the
+corridor to look out of this window.
+</p>
+<p>
+In a short time Ruth came back and reported
+that the automobile girls, including Miss Sallie,
+were ready for bed.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am not a bit sleepy. Are you?” Ruth
+asked Barbara. “I will just jump in here with
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_93'></a>93</span>
+you, so we can talk better. We’ve certainly had
+enough adventures for one day!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no!” replied Barbara; “I feel quite
+wide awake.” Five minutes later both girls
+were fast asleep.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chIX' id='chIX'></a>CHAPTER IX—ONLY GIRLS</h2>
+<p>
+Barbara and Ruth both awoke with a
+feeling that a light had flashed over
+their faces, but neither of them spoke
+nor moved. How long they had slept they could
+not know. It seemed almost morning, but not
+a ray of daylight came through the closed
+blinds.
+</p>
+<p>
+Across the room the flash shone for an instant,
+then darted on like a will-o’-the-wisp.
+Both girls dimly saw the outline of a man
+crouching in the shadow along the wall. His
+hand slid cautiously up the sides of the bureau,
+fingering, for a moment, the toilet articles on
+the dresser. Then the search-light for an instant
+darted along the mantel and turned to
+the bed again. The girls were nearly fainting
+with terror. Ruth remembered that, for once,
+she had locked her money and her jewels in her
+trunk.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_94'></a>94</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+The man stood absolutely still and listened.
+Not a sound!
+</p>
+<p>
+So quiet lay both girls that neither one knew
+the other had wakened.
+</p>
+<p>
+The man continued his search, but plainly
+this was not the room he sought. Still moving,
+his feet making absolutely no sound, the dark
+figure with the lantern crept out of the girls’
+room, to the front of the corridor, and turned
+down the narrow, private hallway.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Aunt Sallie!” Ruth thought with a gasp.
+She had said she would leave her door open, so
+she might hear if the girls called her in the
+night. And Aunt Sallie carried a large sum
+of money for the expenses of the trip, and her
+own jewelry as well.
+</p>
+<p>
+It may be that Ruth made a sound, anyway
+Barbara knew that her roommate was awake.
+Both had the same thought at just the same
+instant.
+</p>
+<p>
+Noiselessly, without a word, on bare feet, both
+girls sped down the hall to Miss Sallie’s open
+door. What they would do when they got there
+neither of them knew. It was time for action,
+not for thought! At the open door they paused
+and knelt in the shadow. Black darkness was
+about them, save in Aunt Sallie’s room, where
+a dark lantern flashed its uncanny light. The
+girls were alert in every faculty. Now they
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_95'></a>95</span>
+could see more distinctly the form of the man
+who carried the lantern. He was of medium
+height and slender. Over his face he wore a
+black mask through which gleamed his eyes,
+narrowed to two fine points of steel.
+</p>
+<p>
+Should the girls cry out? The man was
+armed and it might mean death to Aunt Sallie
+or themselves.
+</p>
+<p>
+Evidently the burglar meant to make a thorough
+search of the room before he went to the
+bed, where, he guessed, the valuables were probably
+kept; but he must know first. The room
+was bare of treasure. He walked cautiously to
+where Miss Sallie still slept in complete unconsciousness,
+this time holding his lantern down,
+that its light should not waken the sleeping
+woman.
+</p>
+<p>
+As he drew near her Ruth could bear the suspense
+no longer. She saw him drag out a bag
+from under Miss Sallie’s head and could not refrain
+from uttering a low cry. It was enough.
+The man dashed the lantern to the ground and
+made a rush for the door.
+</p>
+<p>
+There was no time for Ruth and Barbara to
+plan. They were only girls; but as the man
+ran toward them in the darkness, striking out
+fiercely, Barbara seized one of his legs, Ruth the
+other. Together, the three of them went down
+in the blackness. The girls had not the robber’s strength,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_96'></a>96</span>
+but they had taken him by surprise
+and they meant to fight it out.
+</p>
+<p>
+He kicked violently to free himself, then
+turned and tore at Barbara’s hands, but she
+clung to him. He raised the butt end of his
+pistol and struck with all his force. As the
+blow fell with a terrific thud, Barbara relaxed
+her hold, and tumbled over in the darkness.
+</p>
+<p>
+By this time Miss Sallie realized what was
+happening. Yet, in the darkness, she could only
+cry for help, and moan: “Let him alone, girls!
+Let him go!”
+</p>
+<p>
+With one leg free it seemed a simple task to
+get away. The noises were arousing the sleeping
+hotel guests. Another minute, and the burglar
+knew that he would be lost! With a violent
+wrench he tore himself away, and started down
+the hall, Ruth after him. If she could delay him
+a few seconds help would come!
+</p>
+<p>
+The outside door leading from their private
+hall into the main one was nearly closed; in
+reaching to open it there was a second’s delay.
+Ruth flung herself forward, caught the man’s
+coat and clung desperately, but the burglar was
+too clever for her. In less than a second he
+slipped out of his coat, ran quickly to the window
+leading to the fire escape, and was gone!
+When assistance arrived, Ruth was standing in
+the front hall holding a man’s coat in her hand.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_97'></a>97</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, come!” she said in horror. “A light,
+please! Aunt Sallie has been robbed, and I am
+afraid Barbara has been killed!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ten or twelve people came running down the
+hall. The hotel proprietor and several servants
+made for the fire escape. Grace and Mollie,
+clad in kimonos, had joined Ruth in the hall, and
+were shaking with terror. Neither of them had
+spoken a word, but Grace silently handed Ruth
+her bath robe.
+</p>
+<p>
+They turned and the three girls followed the
+rescuers, who were hastening toward Aunt
+Sallie’s room. That elderly woman had already
+risen, struck a light and was in her kimono.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was leaning against a chair, white
+as a sheet, but unhurt!
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Bab!” said Ruth, flying toward her, forgetting
+everything else in her relief, “I thought
+you were killed!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I thought so, too,” nodded Barbara, calmly
+smiling, as she reached for one of the blankets
+and wrapped herself in its folds, “but I wasn’t.
+When the burglar raised the end of his pistol to
+strike me, I knew what was coming and ducked.
+He struck the side of the chair, and I tumbled
+over under it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The hotel proprietor came into the room
+carrying a chamois bag.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Madam,” he asked, “is this your property?
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_98'></a>98</span>
+I found it outside here. Evidently the man
+dropped it in trying to make his escape. I cannot
+understand what has happened. The hotel
+is securely locked. The fire escape goes down
+into a closed court. The man could not have
+made his way down five stories, without being
+seen when we reached the window. It is incredible!”
+</p>
+<p>
+By this time the halls were swarming with
+frightened visitors.
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace had gone out to speak to them, and
+came in holding the burglar’s coat in her hand.
+“How curious!” she said, handing the garment
+to the proprietor. “This is a gentleman’s
+coat. I can tell by the lining and the whole
+appearance of it. It was not worn by a common
+thief!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth, my child, and Barbara,” said Aunt
+Sallie, when everyone had left their apartments,
+“I shall never forgive you!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why not, Aunt Sallie?” both girls exclaimed,
+at once.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Because, my dears, you didn’t just scream
+and let the wretch escape at once. In my day
+girls would never have behaved as you did!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But, Aunt Sallie,” protested Ruth, “the
+jewels and money are both safe, and neither
+Barbara nor I am hurt. I don’t see how we
+could have done any better, even in your day.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_99'></a>99</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Kiss me,” said Aunt Sallie, “and go back
+to bed at once. It is nearly morning.”
+</p>
+<p>
+When Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright drew up in
+front of the New Haven hotel, at a little after
+two o’clock next day, they found Miss Sallie
+and the four girls surrounded by a circle of college
+boys. With them stood a policeman.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What has happened?” said Mrs. Cartwright
+in astonishment, jumping out of her car, as
+Donald Cartwright, Hugh Post and Ralph
+Ewing came down to meet her. “Are those
+my girls, to whom I am to introduce you
+to-day?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Goodness!” demanded Hugh. “Did you
+think we would wait twelve hours for an introduction!
+Do come and hear all that has happened.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Stuart, looking a good deal shaken by
+her adventures, came forward to meet Mrs.
+Cartwright. “Listen!” she said dramatically,
+for Barbara was talking to the policeman.
+</p>
+<p>
+“No, we would neither of us know him, because
+neither my friend nor I ever saw him before.
+It was dark and he was masked. But he
+was slight—not a big, rough kind of man—and
+his hands were soft, but strong as steel. I don’t
+believe,” she leaned over and whispered, “he
+could have been a servant, or an ordinary
+burglar.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_100'></a>100</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“We have discovered, miss, that no entrance
+was made from the outside. Any guests who
+left the hotel this morning will be followed and
+examined. The chief will report to you later,”
+the policeman said, with a low bow to Miss
+Sallie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, is this the way you see a nice, quiet,
+old college town?” Mrs. Cartwright inquired.
+“I suppose you mean to take the next train for
+home.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No such thing!” retorted Ruth, smiling, and
+looking as bright and fresh as ever. “We don’t
+mind a few weeny adventures, do we, Aunt
+Sallie?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie held up her hands in horror.
+“Weeny adventures! What shall we expect
+next! However, I’ve promised the girls to go
+on. I think we need the trip, now, more than
+ever, and I want to ask Mr. Cartwright to keep
+the matter as quiet as possible. I do not wish
+my brother to know.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Do please come on,” said Hugh Post, turning
+to Ruth. “We are going,” he explained,
+“out to the athletic grounds in our motor cars.
+The girls came to see the university, and we
+haven’t shown them a blooming thing.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“We are going to the dance to-night, just the
+same,” announced Mollie to Mrs. Cartwright.
+“Aunt Sallie is to rest this afternoon, so she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_101'></a>101</span>
+will be equal to it. We wouldn’t miss it for
+anything.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright joined the party,
+and, in a few minutes, the two motor cars had
+covered the two miles between the college
+campus and the thirty acres Yale devotes to
+college sports. The visitors saw the athletic
+grounds thoroughly; here the football champions
+of the world had been trained, and there
+was the baseball diamond.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph’s the crack oarsman of the lot,” said
+Donald Cartwright; “but—great Scott! We
+can’t show these girls anything, after the way
+they tackled the burglar last night.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“We’ll get up a regatta in your honor, if
+you’ll come again next year, Miss Thurston,”
+said Ralph.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara only laughed at him. “Look out,”
+she warned. “I may make you keep your promise.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara,” said Mollie that night, as they
+were getting ready for the dance which was to
+take place in the Old Alumni Hall, “are you
+sure you feel well enough for the ball to-night?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nonsense, child, why shouldn’t I? I feel
+as fine as a fiddle. It isn’t doing things that
+uses one up, even tackling a burglar; it is
+thinking about them. Ruth and I didn’t have
+any time to think about our burglar.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_102'></a>102</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well,” said Mollie, a little wistfully, smoothing
+the folds of her muslin dress, “I don’t believe
+I am as anxious to go to the dance as I
+thought I was. Does this dress look <em>very</em>
+shabby? I wouldn’t go, now, only it seems kind
+of hateful of me to refuse Mrs. Cartwright’s
+invitation.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now, Molliekins,” Barbara answered quite
+seriously, “it’s your dress, isn’t it? Of course,
+I have thought about mine, too. These are just
+simple muslins that we have worn before; but,
+when we left home, we neither of us dreamed
+we would go to a party in them. Let’s just
+make the best of things. Anyhow, I’ve made
+up my mind to one thing, and I wish you would,
+too. You and I must not worry about being
+poor while we are on this trip. Let us not pretend
+that we are rich, because everybody we
+meet seems to be. Ruth knows we are poor,
+knows about our little cottage and not keeping a
+servant, and she doesn’t mind. I don’t believe
+really nice people care whether young girls are
+rich or poor, if they happen to like them. I
+don’t mean to preach.” Barbara put her arm
+around Mollie and waltzed her around the room.
+“Let us pretend we are both Cinderellas before
+the arrival of the fairy godmother.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie didn’t answer; but she tucked some
+pink roses in her belt. “It doesn’t really matter about
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_103'></a>103</span>
+me, anyway,” she decided. “I can’t
+expect these grown-up boys to dance with me.
+I will just stay by Miss Sallie.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“All right, little Miss Wall-flower,” laughed
+Bab, as she pinned on a knot of blue that Ralph
+Ewing had asked her to wear, as a tribute to
+the Yale colors.
+</p>
+<p>
+It was Mollie, after all, who was the belle of
+the party. Perhaps this was because the other
+girls whispered to their partners that Mollie
+was afraid nobody would dance with her; or,
+perhaps, because she was the youngest, and the
+best dancer among them all.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am going to take this little lady under
+my special protection at Newport,” Mrs. Cartwright
+said to Miss Stuart, late that evening.
+“I don’t mean my ‘butterfly girl’ to be losing
+her beauty sleep.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie looked at her “lovely lady” with eyes
+as blue as myrtle blossoms. Mrs. Cartwright
+was so exquisite, so young and so wealthy, she
+seemed to Mollie to have stepped out of a book.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie was vainly trying to collect her
+four charges all at once, in order to take them
+home.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Aunt Sallie,” Hugh Post said roguishly, as
+that lady made a last determined stand, and
+gathered her girls together, “you know, from
+your experience yesterday, that Miss Ruth can’t
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_104'></a>104</span>
+handle a motor car, even though she can tackle
+a burglar. So we are going to follow you in
+my automobile to-morrow and see that you get
+to New London all right.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no, you’re not,” protested Ruth. “This
+I will have you know is an automobile girls’
+excursion and nary a man allowed.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“This one time, kindly permit us to follow
+you at a respectful distance, won’t you?” Hugh
+urged. “It’s only a short trip to New London.
+To tell you the truth, the governor’s yacht is
+over there and I hope to be able to persuade
+you to go aboard. It is not disrespectful of me,
+Miss Stuart, to speak so of my father; he was
+once governor of the state, and he rather likes
+to be reminded of it. Mother has a number of
+friends on board the yacht, and we shall be
+cruising up to Newport in a few days. I think
+it would be jolly for father and mother to know
+you.”
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chX' id='chX'></a>CHAPTER X—ENTER GLADYS AND MR. TOWNSEND</h2>
+<p>
+“Why, Gladys Le Baron, this is a surprise!”
+gayly said Grace Carter
+next afternoon, when the two parties
+of girls and men had left their automobiles and
+had come aboard Governor Post’s yacht, the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_105'></a>105</span>
+“Penguin,” that lay just outside the New London
+harbor.
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace was awaiting her turn to be introduced
+to her host and hostess, when she spied Gladys,
+in a pale blue flannel suit and a cream felt hat,
+strolling down the deck, looking very much at
+home.
+</p>
+<p>
+“How ever did <em>you</em> get here?” queried Grace,
+smiling.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys gave Grace’s cheek an affected peck
+with her lips.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have a better right to ask that question
+of you,” Gladys pouted, “only I am not surprised.
+Harry Townsend came over from New
+London, yesterday, and told me you had arrived
+the night before. He went over with Hugh for
+the dance, but I didn’t feel like going, so he
+came back early yesterday morning. I am
+amazed Hugh did not speak of it to you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, Mr. Post didn’t know we had ever heard
+of Harry Townsend, or you either. We met
+most unexpectedly, and we had plenty of excitement
+of our own. I must tell you about it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+At this moment, Hugh came over for Grace
+to introduce her to his mother.
+</p>
+<p>
+“This is Miss Carter, mother,” he said.
+“Will you introduce her to Mrs. Erwin and
+father? She seems to know Gladys already.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend had seen the newcomers,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_106'></a>106</span>
+and came forward to speak to them with his
+most charming manner.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Say, Townsend,” challenged Hugh, “what
+made you run away from us? We thought, of
+course, you’d stay over for the dance. Thought
+that was your plan in going over to New
+Haven.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry turned to Miss Stuart. “I heard of
+your arrival in New Haven, the other evening,”
+he said. “The fellows told me of your experiences;
+but I got away from the hotel too early
+next morning to pay my respects.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then you didn’t hear of the burglar, did
+you?” queried Hugh.
+</p>
+<p>
+In spite of Miss Sallie’s protestations the
+whole story had to be gone over again.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was talking to Ralph Ewing and had
+not looked at Harry Townsend during the conversation,
+until he came over to speak to her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have half an idea, Miss Thurston,” he said,
+“that you do not like me, and I am sorry. I
+was looking forward to our having good times
+together at Newport, as I am to be Mrs. Erwin’s
+guest, with your cousin Miss Le Baron. Mrs.
+Post asked us on for the yacht trip a day or
+two sooner than we expected. We are all going
+up to Newport together.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mr. Townsend,” said Barbara, her usually
+laughing, brown eyes now steadfast and serious, “I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_107'></a>107</span>
+wonder why you think I do not like
+you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Stuart,” begged Mrs. Post, after the
+governor had conducted the party over his trim
+little craft, “you must stay and dine with us on
+board the yacht to-night. I refuse to take no
+for an answer. I wish I could keep you over
+until morning, but unfortunately the yacht is
+too small.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie protested. No; they couldn’t
+think of it. They had come aboard only for a
+call, and must get back to their hotel before
+night. But Hugh swept all her arguments aside.
+He was an adored only son, and accustomed to
+having his own way. To tell the truth, Miss
+Sallie was not averse to the idea of staying; it
+was pleasant to be meeting Newporters in advance.
+Miss Stuart was a woman who thought
+much of appearances, and of this world’s goods,
+and their new acquaintances seemed to have
+plenty of both.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s an ill wind,” she thought to herself,
+“and I must say, for my young niece, that she
+has a habit of falling on her feet.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But aloud Miss Sallie accepted the invitation
+with much decorum.
+</p>
+<p>
+On the deck aft, where the young people had
+gathered, there was much laughter.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys was really pleased to see Ruth. As
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_108'></a>108</span>
+for her cousins, they were a bore, but she had no
+idea of being openly rude to them. She simply
+meant to ignore them.
+</p>
+<p>
+It was not easy to disregard two such popular
+girls. Barbara and Mollie seemed to be well
+able to get on without her patronage. Barbara
+was already smiling and chattering with Governor
+Post, while the boys described her mad
+ride of two days before.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Father,” said Hugh, “I forgot to introduce
+you to Miss Thurston by her proper title, ‘Miss
+Paul Revere.’”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Harry,” asked Gladys, as they stood on the
+outside of the circle, “don’t you think it is disgusting
+the way that forward cousin of mine
+always manages to put herself before the
+public?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well,” said Mr. Townsend—was there a little
+admiration in his tone?—“she seems to have
+plenty of grit.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was really Mollie, not Barbara, who saw
+through Gladys’s treatment of them. Barbara
+was too open-hearted and boyish to notice a
+slight, unless it was very marked.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys had asked Ruth and Grace to her stateroom,
+and Mrs. Post had put the other two girls
+into her unoccupied guest chamber. It was a
+little gem of a stateroom, upholstered in pale
+green to relieve the glare from the water.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_109'></a>109</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” Mollie chuckled, rubbing her cheeks
+until they were pink, “do you remember the
+story of ‘The Water Baby’?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” Bab answered absently; “I do, after
+a fashion. But why do you ask? You haven’t
+turned into a water baby, have you, just because
+you are on board a yacht for the first time in
+your life?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No,” laughed Mollie. “I was thinking of
+the story in it of the salmon and the trout. Have
+you forgotten it?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Of course I have,” admitted Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie chuckled gleefully. “Our high and
+mighty cousin, Gladys, reminds me very much
+of the salmon, who thought the trout a very
+common fish, and disliked him all the more because
+he was a relation. Feel like a trout,
+Bab?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Not at all, Mollie; but do hurry and go out
+on deck. That young freshman, who came down
+in the automobile with us to amuse you, is wandering
+around outside, looking frightened to
+death. You must go and talk to him.”
+</p>
+<p>
+As Barbara stepped into the big salon, which
+was fitted up like a library, she saw one of the
+young men disappear quickly through the open
+door. Bab went over to their wraps, which they
+had dropped in a heap on a couch when they
+boarded the yacht, and selected her own jacket.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_110'></a>110</span>
+Ruth’s pocketbook was in full view among their
+belongings, and Bab covered it over before she
+went on deck.
+</p>
+<p>
+Before dinner ended the moon had risen, the
+pale crescent hanging like a slender jewel in the
+sky.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was standing alone, for a second,
+when Mrs. Erwin approached her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Pardon me, dear,” she said, “but did you or
+your sister see a small pin on the dressing table
+of the guest room, when you went in there before
+dinner? I have misplaced a ruby and diamond
+circle of no great value. I went into the
+guest chamber this morning, while the maid was
+cleaning my room, and I thought perhaps I had
+laid it down in there.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No,” said Bab, frowning. It did seem
+curious how losses were following them! “I
+didn’t look, although it was probably there. I
+am most unobservant. I will ask my sister.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No, no,” said Mrs. Erwin, hastily; “please
+don’t. I shall probably find it again. I don’t
+want Mrs. Post to hear.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The next morning, when Grace and Ruth were
+donning their best motor veils and coats, Ruth
+suddenly looked surprised and began to search
+hurriedly through her pocketbook.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Grace,” she said, “I can’t find fifty dollars.
+I am sure I had it yesterday, because I looked
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_111'></a>111</span>
+carefully after that wretched burglar had gone,
+though I knew all my money was safe in my
+trunk. Now it’s gone!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth turned her pocketbook upside down.
+“Don’t tell Aunt Sallie, please,” she begged.
+“I don’t know what she would say to have this
+item added to our adventures.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie’s voice was heard calling from the
+next room.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Girls, are we or are we not, going to Newport
+to-day? I, for my part, wish to spend no more
+time on the way!”
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXI' id='chXI'></a>CHAPTER XI—NEWPORT AT LAST!</h2>
+<p>
+The automobile girls were in a flutter of
+excitement. Another half hour, and
+they would arrive in Newport!
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth,” said Miss Sallie, “slow up this car
+a little! Before we enter Newport, I must see to
+my appearance. To think of all I have gone
+through since I left Kingsbridge!” Miss Sallie
+took out a small hand mirror, thoughtfully surveying
+her own unwrinkled face. “What will
+you children get me into before we are through
+with this trip?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth slowed down obediently.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_112'></a>112</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Open my bag, Mollie,” said Miss Sallie, decidedly,
+“and you, Grace, look under the seat
+for my other hat. We shall probably arrive in
+Newport at five o’clock, the hour for the fashionable
+parade. I, at least, shall do what I can
+to give our car an appearance of gentility. I
+advise you children to do the same.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Would you like a little cold cream, Miss Sallie,
+to wipe off your face?” Mollie spoke timidly,
+remembering how Barbara had laughed at
+her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Certainly I should, my child, and very intelligent
+of you to have brought it along.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well,” said Ruth, “if you must ‘fix up,’ and
+I am to take a party of belles and beauties into
+Newport, instead of true lovers of sport, there
+are lots of new veils under my seat. Bab, take
+them out and pass them around. Only the
+chauffeur shall be dusty and dilapidated enough
+to look the part.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Behold their dream had come true! The automobile
+girls were at last in Newport, watching
+the summer parade!
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth, at the expected hour, turned her car,
+with a great flourish, into Bellevue Avenue,
+Newport’s most fashionable thoroughfare. For
+a few minutes the girls beheld a long procession
+of carriages and automobiles; a little later, they
+swung round a corner and stopped in front of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_113'></a>113</span>
+a beautiful old Colonial house, with a wide veranda
+running around three sides of it, and a
+hospitably open front door.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie descended first, to be greeted by
+Ralph’s mother, who was expecting them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t like her. She’s not a bit like Ralph,”
+thought Barbara. Then she gave herself an inward
+shake. “There, Barbara, you know what
+mother would say to you about your sudden
+prejudices!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Ewing, who had been a great beauty in
+her day, looked as though life had disagreed
+with her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara had wondered how a private home
+could accommodate so many people, never having
+seen a handsome old New England house,
+but their three rooms occupied only half of one
+side of the long hall on the second floor. “And
+they think they are poor!” smiled Bab, to herself,
+as she looked admiringly at the handsome
+furniture. “I wonder what they would think of
+our little five-room cottage.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I want some clean clothes before anything
+else,” sighed dainty Mollie, standing before a
+mirror, gazing with disdain at her own appearance.
+“I believe I have one clean shirtwaist
+left, but I must still wear this dusty old skirt.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Ruth was staggering into the room under
+an immense box.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_114'></a>114</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Fifteen dollars express charges, mum; not a
+cent less! Them’s my orders. And extry for
+carrying the box upstairs. It ain’t my business.
+I’m too accommodating I am! Where shall I
+put it down, mum?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth dropped the heavy bundle on the bed;
+she couldn’t carry it a moment longer.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, Ruth Stuart!” said Mollie, dancing
+with glee. “It’s some clothes for us! How did
+mother get them here in such a hurry? Oh, joy!
+oh, rapture! I was just fussing about having to
+wear this old suit to-night.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab was tugging at the heavy cords.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Foolish Bab!” scoffed Ruth. “You’ll never
+get it open that way,” and she cut the cord in a
+business-like fashion with a little knife she always
+carried.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now I’ll run away and leave you,” Ruth
+continued. “Grace is calling that it is time for
+my bath. Your turn next. I’ll see the pretty
+things when I come back.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth would like to have stayed to see the girls
+open the box, but she had an instinctive feeling
+that they would prefer to be alone.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Here’s a letter from mother. Let’s read that
+first,” said Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+Inside the letter lay two crisp ten-dollar
+bills!
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have had a windfall, children,” the letter
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_115'></a>115</span>
+read, “through the kindness of Mr. Stuart. He
+told me that some of my old stock that I thought
+of no value was paying a dividend again. Curiously,
+your Uncle Ralph had not mentioned it
+to me; but, when I wrote and told him of Mr.
+Stuart’s advice, he sent it to me at once. So
+here’s a little spending money. And oh, my
+darlings, I hope you will like your new clothes!
+Mr. Stuart is so kind to me, I am not lonely,” the
+letter ended, “so have the best time you possibly
+can. I shall send your trunk to-morrow with
+your summer muslins and underwear.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie mine, don’t tear the paper in that
+fashion,” remonstrated Barbara. “Let me
+open the box. Behold and see!” She held up
+two dainty organdie frocks, delicate and airy.
+Mollie’s gown was white, with little butterfly
+medallions of embroidery and lace sprinkled
+over it.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie, Mollie! How could mother have
+guessed your new name was ‘the butterfly girl’?
+Isn’t it too lovely!” Bab almost forgot to look
+at her own frock, so enraptured was she with her
+sister’s.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Barbara’s frock was just as charming,
+and as well suited to her. A circle of pink wild
+roses outlined the hem and encircled the yoke,
+which was of delicate pink tulle.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie was rummaging with impatient fingers.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_116'></a>116</span>
+“Party capes, I do declare—the very newest
+style! I never reached the point of expecting
+capes even in my wildest dreams. See, yours
+is all white, and mine has a pale blue lining with
+a dear little ‘blue riding hood cap.’ Oh, won’t
+I be charming?” murmured Mollie, putting the
+cape over her shoulders and pirouetting before
+the mirror. “Surely no sensible wolf would
+want to eat me up!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Two light flannel suits, one of cream color for
+Bab, and a pin-stripe of blue and white for Mollie,
+completed the glories of the box.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now,” said Bab, “what more can we want,
+for tennis, for rowing, for yachting, for driving?
+Are there any more entertainments that
+the rich enjoy, Mollie? Because, if there are, I
+should like to mention them.”
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Oh,&nbsp;the&nbsp;girls&nbsp;will&nbsp;all&nbsp;declare,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;When&nbsp;they&nbsp;see&nbsp;me&nbsp;on&nbsp;the&nbsp;square—<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Here&nbsp;comes&nbsp;a&nbsp;millionaire,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Mollie&nbsp;darling!<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+“What do you think of that for poetry made
+while you wait? You don’t half appreciate my
+talents, Miss Mollie Thurston,” ended Bab, with
+a final hug.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hurry, children,” called Miss Sallie, appearing
+at their door. “You know we are to
+meet Mrs. Cartwright at the Casino to-night.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_117'></a>117</span>
+She wants to introduce us to the place where a
+large part of Newport’s gayety occurs.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“What is the ‘Casino’?” whispered Mollie,
+when Miss Sallie had disappeared.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, it’s only a big club, where you play tennis
+and have dances, and any sort of entertainments.
+Nearly all the nicest people in Newport
+belong to it. Mrs. Cartwright says we’ll have
+most of our fun over there.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab put her arm round her sister, as they
+walked downstairs.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie,” she said, “I have the queerest feeling.
+I am so happy, it frightens me. I never
+had such a good time before. I wonder how it
+will all turn out?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara could not guess that there were to be
+tears for her, as well as joys, at Newport. It
+was as well she did not know, or her pleasure
+would have been marred.
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls finished dinner as quickly as possible.
+</p>
+<p>
+“There’s time for a stroll on the cliffs, isn’t
+there, before eight?” inquired Ruth. “Do you
+feel equal to exercise, Aunt Sallie? Everyone
+takes the cliff walk the first thing after arrival
+in Newport.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Certainly,” Miss Sallie agreed. “I suppose
+I can manage it, though I have ridden so far
+that I may have lost the use of my limbs. However,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_118'></a>118</span>
+I can sit down if I grow tired, and you
+children can go on without me. It’s perfectly
+safe, isn’t it, Mrs. Ewing?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, yes,” Mrs. Ewing replied; “though it
+looks fairly dangerous, the cliffs are so high, the
+highest on the Atlantic Coast from Cape Ann to
+Yucatan. But very few accidents have occurred
+there—so far.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth and Barbara led the way. They could
+hear the sea booming and pounding below them.
+From the edge of the cliff they looked down a
+hundred feet at the sea, washing in on the level
+stretch of beach.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth shivered and turned pale. “Oh,” she
+shuddered, “it makes me horribly nervous! I
+am ashamed of it, so I don’t often mention it, but
+I simply can’t look down from great heights. It
+even makes me a little sick to look out of a high
+window, and I’m a miserable climber, I get so
+dizzy. Let us go back. Do you mind, Bab?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No, Ruth,” Bab answered. “I suppose I
+am a tomboy; I used to play hare and hounds
+with the boys at school, and I learned to climb
+like a goat over the rocks at Kingsbridge; but
+these Newport cliffs are a different matter.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s powers were to be tested, but
+neither she nor Ruth thought anything more of
+their talk. Miss Sallie and the other two girls
+had joined them, and they made their way along
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_119'></a>119</span>
+the narrow, winding path that dipped in hollows
+and curves, and stretched for two miles ahead of
+them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“How hard it is,” said Miss Sallie, “to tell
+which view is the more beautiful!”
+</p>
+<p>
+On the inland side of the cliffs, beautiful,
+shaded lawns, luxuriant with flowers, ran down
+to the edge of the path. Set in their midst were
+the marble palaces of Newport’s millionaires.
+Toward the sea, great points of land jutted out
+into the harbor, where the water was violet with
+the shadows of the closing day.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Stuart! Miss Stuart!” Aunt Sallie
+heard a gay voice calling her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Running across the lawn, and waving her
+scarf at them, came Mrs. Cartwright.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Were you coming to see me first?” she
+asked.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Stuart confessed that she had not the
+shadow of an idea which house belonged to Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You must see it for a minute, since you are
+already here,” urged Mrs. Cartwright, and led
+the way up the graveled path to her veranda.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie,” she said, addressing the young girl,
+“I think it is peculiarly appropriate for my
+butterfly girl to be introduced to my piazza.
+It is made to look like a Japanese teahouse,”
+she explained to Miss Sallie.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_120'></a>120</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+The sides of Mrs. Cartwright’s veranda were
+of heavy Japanese paper stretched on bamboo
+poles which opened and closed at will. The
+paper had been painted by a famous Japanese
+artist to represent springtime in Japan. There
+were whole rows of cherry trees in full blossom,
+with little Japanese children playing beneath
+them. Opposite this scene was another painting—a
+marshy lake, surrounded by queer Japanese
+birds.
+</p>
+<p>
+The veranda was lighted by a hundred tiny
+shaded lamps. Japanese matting covered the
+floor, while the tea tables were set with tea
+services bought in old Japan. The girls had
+never seen anything so lovely.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You are officially invited to have tea with
+me here, any or every afternoon you are in Newport.
+Now I will run and get Mr. Cartwright,”
+added their hostess, “and we will go over to
+the Casino.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Outside, the Casino looked like a rambling,
+old Dutch mansion, with peaked gables and
+overhanging eaves.
+</p>
+<p>
+“We’ve a Dutch house, English lawns and
+a French chef,” Mr. Cartwright laughingly explained
+to Miss Sallie as they entered.
+</p>
+<p>
+“And we’ve dozens of tennis courts,” added
+Mrs. Cartwright. “We are working dreadfully
+hard, now, for the tournament that is to take
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_121'></a>121</span>
+place in a few weeks. It is really the social
+event of the whole year at Newport. Is there
+a star player among you girls? Why not enter
+the tournament and compete for the championship?
+We are to have a special match game,
+this year, played by the young people. Let us
+keep these tennis courts busy for a while.
+You’ll come over, too, Miss Stuart, won’t you,
+and play bridge while we work. Or you’ll work
+at bridge, while we play tennis. Perhaps you
+think that is the way I should have put it.”
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXII' id='chXII'></a>CHAPTER XII—A WEEK LATER</h2>
+<p>
+“Barbara, I wouldn’t play tennis with
+Gladys and Harry Townsend, if I were
+you,” said Mollie to her sister, one
+morning a week later. “They were horrid to
+you yesterday. Didn’t you notice, when you
+called to Hugh and Ruth that their last ball had
+gone over the line, Gladys just shrugged her
+shoulders, and gave a sneery kind of smile to that
+Townsend fellow, and he lifted his eyebrows!
+Is your score the best, or Ruth’s? I know
+you’re both ahead of Gladys and Grace. I am
+sure Gladys doesn’t play a bit better than I do;
+so she needn’t have been so high and mighty.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_122'></a>122</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie shrugged her dainty shoulders. “You
+see, she told me, the first day she arrived, that,
+of course, I didn’t play in the class with the
+others, so you had just the right eight for the
+two courts—four girls and four men.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, Mollie!” Bab looked surprised. “I
+thought you said you didn’t want to play.
+You can take my place any time.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie smiled. “No,” she answered; “I
+don’t want to play. It’s not that. But it annoys
+me when you let Gladys Le Baron, cousin
+or no cousin, snub us all the time, and you not
+notice it. Ralph certainly wouldn’t like to have
+me play with him now, when you’re in for a
+match game.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie,” said Bab, tying her tennis shoe, “I
+<em>do</em> notice how rude Gladys is. She left me
+standing all alone the other afternoon, when
+Ruth and Grace had gone into the club house to
+speak to Aunt Sallie. Friends of Gladys’s came
+up, and she deliberately turned her back on me
+and didn’t introduce me. I felt so out of it!
+Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin soon joined them,
+and they shook hands with me. I found the
+other people were some guests who had come
+down for Mrs. Erwin’s ball, next week, and
+were staying at her house.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I know,” she continued, “Gladys is furious
+that we are invited to the dance. Mrs. Erwin
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_123'></a>123</span>
+was so cordial and nice. She said, right before
+me, that though the ball was a grown-up affair,
+she knew Gladys would want her cousins and
+friends, and she had invited us on her account.
+Wasn’t it funny? Miss Gladys couldn’t say a
+word. Goodness knows, <em>she</em> doesn’t want us.
+She has been lording it over us, for days, because
+she and Harry were to be the only very
+young people invited. Gladys imagines herself
+a woman of society, and is in reality merely
+a foolish little girl,” said Barbara. Then she
+added reflectively: “Miss Sallie says we are
+all too young to ‘go out,’ and she doubts the
+propriety of allowing us to attend Mrs. Erwin’s
+ball. Last night she told Ruth she had almost
+decided against our going. Ruth championed
+our cause on the strength of the shortness of
+our stay in Newport, also that we should be
+permitted to go as a special favor to our hostess.
+You know Miss Sallie hates to refuse Ruth anything.
+Consequently we will be ‘among those
+present’ at Mrs. Erwin’s ball whether Miss
+Gladys approves or not.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I just wish I could tell my lovely Mrs. Cartwright
+how mean Gladys is,” said Mollie. “She
+would not ask her to her charity fair.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Please don’t say anything, Mollie,” pleaded
+Barbara, taking her tennis racquet from the
+bed. She had already answered Ralph’s impatient whistle
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_124'></a>124</span>
+from the garden below. “It won’t
+do any good for us to be horrid to Gladys in return;
+it will only make us seem as hateful as
+she is. Things will come around, somehow. I
+don’t mind her—so very much.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, I do,” answered Mollie. “But you
+haven’t told me how your score and Ruth’s
+stand.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I think we are pretty nearly even.”
+Barbara was half way out the door. “Be careful,
+Molliekins,” she urged, “if you go rowing
+with that freshman this afternoon. Why do
+you want to know about Ruth’s score and mine?
+It’s a week before the game, and anything may
+happen before then. We all play pretty evenly;
+Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing, too.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I didn’t mean anything, Bab,” Mollie
+said, thoughtfully. “Only Ruth’s awfully anxious
+to play in the tournament. She’s just
+crazy about it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Of course she is, child. So are we all, for
+that matter,” answered Bab. “You don’t
+mean——”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t mean a single thing, Bab Thurston!”
+said Mollie, a little indignantly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes, I am coming, at last, Ralph,” Barbara
+sang softly over the banisters. She had not
+overcome her awe of Mrs. Ewing. Ralph’s
+mother was by no means pleased with the idea
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_125'></a>125</span>
+that her adored Ralph preferred Barbara to any
+of the other girls.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s like Ralph,” she complained to his
+father, “to pick out the poorest girl of the lot,
+when the rich ones are so much more charming.
+A great way for him to retrieve the family
+fortunes!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“We will hope,” said Ralph’s father quietly,
+“that Ralph will not try to restore our fortunes
+by marrying for money.”
+</p>
+<p>
+As Barbara walked down to meet Ralph she
+looked grave, and her face was flushed. Ruth
+<em>did</em> want to play in the tournament, but so did
+she, for that matter! Could she resign in Ruth’s
+favor? Then Barbara laughed to herself.
+“Catch a girl like Ruth letting me give up to
+her! I wonder if it would be fair of me to disappoint
+Ralph?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come on, Miss Day-dreamer,” ordered
+Ralph, hurrying her along. “The others have
+been waiting for us for fifteen minutes down at
+the Casino courts. Do you know that there is
+a party on for the afternoon? Ruth and Hugh
+are to pile as many of us as they can into their
+motor cars, and take us ten miles out the Ocean
+Drive. We are to stop at Mrs. Duffy’s English
+tea place on our way back.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab was certainly not playing in good form
+today. She even missed one of Gladys’s serves,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_126'></a>126</span>
+which were usually too soft to count. When the
+morning’s practice was over, Ruth’s and Hugh’s
+score was two points ahead.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Who is going to play in the tournament
+from these courts?” asked Mrs. Cartwright,
+crossing the lawn, her tennis racquet swinging
+in her hand. Mollie was close beside her, also
+“that freshman,” who followed Mollie wherever
+she went.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” answered Ruth, coming up to smile
+at Mrs. Cartwright, who was looking prettier
+than usual in her tennis blouse of pale pink
+madras with a linen skirt of the same shade.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What a funny Gladys!” Mrs. Cartwright
+laughed as the other girls joined her. “You
+are following our latest Newport fad, are you
+not, of having your head wrapped in a chiffon
+veil while you play tennis. You look like a
+Turkish girl, with only your eyes peeping out.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys had tied up her head in a pale blue
+chiffon veil, with a fetching bow just over the
+ear. The other women who were playing on
+the courts, with the exception of Mrs. Cartwright
+and the automobile girls, were draped
+in the same fashion.
+</p>
+<p>
+“That suggests a game to me,” continued
+Mrs. Cartwright. “You must come to my veranda
+some night and we will play it. It is
+called ‘eyeology.’ I won’t tell you anything
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_127'></a>127</span>
+more about it now. Just you wait! But to go
+back to my first question. Then I am to enter
+Barbara for the tournament?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I should say not, Mrs. Cartwright,” said
+Barbara, who was standing near. This time she
+would not let Ruth speak.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth is certainly the best player among us,”
+drawled Gladys; “she and Mr. Post; but,” she
+went on in insinuating tones, “you know there
+are strange things that can happen in tennis!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“If you mean, Gladys, that I cheated the
+other day,” broke out Barbara fiercely, “I
+simply won’t bear it! I know it is horrid of
+me to make a scene,” she turned to Ruth with
+her eyes full of tears, “but this is the second
+time.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Please don’t get excited, Miss Thurston,”
+cried Gladys scornfully. “I have not said you
+cheated. It looks a little bit like a case of
+guilty conscience.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend smiled knowingly.
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab, nearly in tears, couldn’t answer, but
+Ralph and Hugh Post both protested indignantly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Please don’t discuss a thing of this kind
+here,” said Mrs. Cartwright, angrily. “We
+don’t allow quarreling on the Casino courts. I
+am surprised at you, Barbara. You were
+accused of nothing.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_128'></a>128</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie’s eyes were black, instead of their
+usual lovely blue. She was very indignant, but
+she was always more of a diplomat than Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Lovely lady,” she said, putting her hand in
+Mrs. Cartwright’s as they moved away, “Gladys
+did mean that Bab cheated. This is the second
+time she has said it. Wouldn’t you answer
+back if you were accused of not playing fair
+with your very best friend?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright gave Mollie’s hand a squeeze.
+“Tell Barbara I am sorry if I was too hard on
+her, but I don’t like scenes!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I wish I could get an excuse to pummel that
+Harry Townsend!” muttered Ralph indignantly
+to Hugh, when the girls had gone home. “I
+can’t take it out on Gladys, for she’s a girl.
+That Townsend fellow’s nothing but a sneak.
+He just stands round and smiles and says nothing,
+until he puts me in a rage!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, don’t fight, Ralph,” Hugh protested.
+“I hate that Townsend man, though, as much
+as you do. He is too infernally polite, for one
+thing, and he walks on his tiptoes. He comes
+right up behind you, and you never know where
+he is until he speaks. I believe he wears rubber
+soles on his shoes!”
+</p>
+<p>
+That afternoon, when the automobile parties
+had finished drinking their tea, Barbara asked
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_129'></a>129</span>
+Ralph to take a little walk with her in the
+woods. She wanted to ask him something.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph,” she began, “if I should fall down
+in my tennis, in the next few days, would you
+and Hugh play a test game to see which of you
+is the better man to help Ruth out in the tournament?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph shook his head. “No,” he answered.
+“You are not losing your nerve, are you, Bab?
+Ruth and Hugh are wonderfully good players,
+but we are as good as the rest of ’em. I’ll take
+my chances with you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Would you be very, very much disappointed
+if we lost?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, yes,” said Ralph, cheerily, “but I could
+bear it all right.” He looked hard at Barbara
+for a minute. Then he said: “Go ahead, Barbara;
+I think I understand. I am game. And
+I’ll never breathe it to a soul. Hugh and Ruth
+would never forgive us, if they found out!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, Ralph,” said Barbara, “I don’t think
+there’s going to be any reason for my trying to
+let Ruth win; she’s a better player than I am,
+and she will win anyhow, but, in case she
+shouldn’t, Ruth has been a perfect dear to
+Mollie and me!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Gladys,” said Ruth that night, when the
+young people were having an informal dance
+at the Casino, “I shall never forgive you for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_130'></a>130</span>
+accusing Barbara of cheating, as you did today.
+Barbara is perfectly incapable of cheating.
+I can’t understand why you don’t like
+her.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth’s frank face clouded. She was incapable
+of understanding the petty meannesses in
+Gladys’s nature.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mr. Townsend and I thought differently
+concerning Miss Thurston,” Gladys replied,
+“but I have made no accusations, and will make
+none. You will find things out for yourself,
+though, when it is too late!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie was very sympathetic with Barbara
+that night. Things had not been going well
+with Bab for several days; she had an unfortunate
+habit of speaking her mind without
+thinking, and this trait had gotten her into
+trouble with Miss Sallie several times. That
+lady had a profound respect for the rich, while
+Barbara had been heard to say that some of the
+most fashionable ideas of Newport were “just
+nonsense.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” comforted Mollie, “Mrs. Cartwright
+told me to say she was sorry she had been cross
+to you. She wants you to be the gypsy fortune-teller
+at her bazaar. She says you are very
+clever, and would do it better than anyone else;
+besides, she thinks no one would know you. She
+has lots of gypsy things to dress up in.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_131'></a>131</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“I would much rather be a waitress, like you
+girls,” Bab declared.
+</p>
+<p>
+“But you will do what Mrs. Cartwright wants
+you to, won’t you?” urged Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’ll see,” said Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+The automobile girls were seeing Newport indeed!
+Mrs. Erwin and Mrs. Cartwright were
+both leaders in society. The girls had not only
+been invited to Mrs. Erwin’s ball, but to the big
+dance which took place after the tennis tournament,
+and Mrs. Cartwright was arranging for
+a Charity Fair, which was to be the most
+original entertainment of the Newport season.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXIII' id='chXIII'></a>CHAPTER XIII—THE NIGHT OF THE BALL</h2>
+<p>
+“Yes, Hugh,” Barbara said, as the last
+strains of the Merry Widow waltz died
+away, “I should like to rest here a
+minute.” Barbara sank down on the low, rose-colored
+divan shaded by magnificent palms in
+Mrs. Erwin’s conservatory. “I would love an
+ice, too,” she added.
+</p>
+<p>
+It was the night of Mrs. Erwin’s famous white
+and gold ball, long remembered in the history of
+splendid entertainments in Newport.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara truly wanted a minute to think. She
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_132'></a>132</span>
+had come to the ball under Miss Sallie’s excellent
+chaperonage, early in the evening, and had
+been dancing hard ever since. The little girl
+from Kingsbridge, who had never before seen
+anything finer than a village entertainment, felt
+almost overcome by the splendor and magnificence
+of everything about her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Erwin’s ballroom was built out from the
+side of her handsome villa like a Greek portico.
+The conservatory joined it at one end, forming
+an inner triangular court. This court was filled
+with rare trees which threw their branches out
+over a miniature artificial lake. The guests
+could pass from the ballroom into this open garden,
+or they could enter it through the conservatory.
+</p>
+<p>
+The walls of the wonderful ballroom were
+covered with a white silk brocade, and on this
+night Mrs. Erwin had allowed only yellow flowers
+to be used as decorations. Great bowls of
+yellow roses perfumed the air, and golden
+orchids looked like troops of butterflies just
+poising before they took flight.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now I know,” said Mollie, with a catch in
+her breath, as she first came into the magnificent
+ballroom, “what King Midas’s garden must
+have looked like, when he went round and
+caressed all the flowers in it with the golden
+touch.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_133'></a>133</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Clever Mollie!” laughed Ruth. “I expect
+it is the golden touch that has been round this
+ballroom, or the touch of golden dollars, anyway.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie blushed. “I didn’t mean that,” she
+said.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara leaned her head against the rose-colored
+cushion, just the color of the jeweled
+spray in her hair; she was wearing the coral
+jewelry her mother had given her. Fortunately
+the two girls had saved their best party dresses
+for this ball, having been content to wear their
+summer muslins at the informal dances at the
+Casino.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara, in her dainty pink flowered organdie,
+with her cheeks flushed to match it in color,
+resembled a lovely wild rose.
+</p>
+<p>
+Curiously enough, amid all this elegance, Bab
+felt a little homesick. She kept thinking of her
+mother and the little cottage.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s a wonderful experience for Mollie and
+me,” she said to herself. “I hope I can tell
+mother exactly what it looks like. I am sure
+fairyland can’t be half so gorgeous; fairies wear
+only dewdrops for jewels; but here, I believe,
+there must be nearly all the jewels in the
+world.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara did not know how big the world
+really is, nor how many people and jewels, both
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_134'></a>134</span>
+real and paste, there are in it. After all, artificial
+people are no better than paste jewels!
+</p>
+<p>
+Earlier in the evening Mollie and Barbara had
+stood with their hands tight together, watching
+the men and women enter the great reception
+room to speak to their host and hostess.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Diamonds,” whispered Mollie to Bab, “seem
+as plentiful as the strawberries we gathered for
+the hotel people this summer. We didn’t dream,
+then, that we were coming to Newport! Isn’t
+my Mrs. Cartwright the most beautiful of them
+all?” wound up the loyal child.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright wore a white satin gown,
+with a diamond star in the tulle of her bodice.
+In her hair was a spray of diamonds, mounted to
+look like a single stalk of lilies of the valley, each
+jewel hanging from the slender stem like a tiny
+floweret.
+</p>
+<p>
+The conservatory was almost empty while Bab
+rested and waited.
+</p>
+<p>
+During the intermission in the dance nearly
+all the guests had wandered into the dining-room
+or into the moonlit garden.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara realized that she was almost completely
+hidden by the great palm trees that
+formed an arch over her head and drooped their
+long arms down over her. She had crept into
+this seat in order that she might see without
+being seen.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_135'></a>135</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Yet in spite of the quiet, Barbara was not resting.
+Her heart was beating fast with the excitement
+of this wonderful evening, and her tiny feet
+in the pink silk slippers still kept time to the last
+waltz she had danced with Hugh.
+</p>
+<p>
+The conservatory door, leading into the garden,
+was open. Barbara saw Mrs. Post, Governor
+Post, Harry Townsend and a woman in a
+gold-colored brocade enter the conservatory and
+stop to talk for a few minutes. They had not
+noticed Barbara nor did she feel it was quite
+proper to interrupt them, as she did not know
+the strange woman who was with them.
+</p>
+<p>
+Governor Post bowed in military fashion to
+the ladies.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now,” he said, “I’ll go, and leave the young
+man to do the entertaining. We old fellows
+must make ourselves useful when our ornamental
+days are over. Mr. Townsend will look after
+you here, and I shall find a waiter and have him
+bring you something to eat.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara saw Harry Townsend talking in his
+most impressive manner to the two women.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It is curious,” Bab thought, to herself,
+“what a society man Harry Townsend is.
+Gladys says he is only twenty-two. I wonder
+where he comes from. Nobody seems to know.
+Oh, yes; Gladys said he was educated in Paris.
+She met him on shipboard.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_136'></a>136</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+The little girl from her green bower was an
+interested watcher. It was fascinating to be
+able to see all that was going on, without being
+seen. Bab sat as quiet as a mouse, taking no
+part in the conversation.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Post was a handsome woman of about
+fifty, who looked rather stern to the girls; but
+Hugh assured them that she was “dead easy,”
+once you got on the right side of her. Her husband
+was a prominent lawyer in Washington,
+and their winters were usually spent in the
+capital.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Post’s gown was nearly covered by a
+long, light-colored chiffon wrap, with a high
+collar lined with a curious ornamental embroidery.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Harry,” she said, turning to the young man
+with her, “it is warm in here with these tropical
+plants; will you be kind enough to remove my
+wrap?”
+</p>
+<p>
+The conservatory was dimly lighted. Barbara
+sat in the shadow. Between her and the party
+she was watching was a central row of flowers
+and evergreens, dividing the long room into two
+aisles.
+</p>
+<p>
+She saw Harry rise and lean over Mrs. Post,
+who only half rose from her chair. Deftly and
+with wonderful ease and swiftness, Townsend
+undid the clasp at her throat; but, for a moment,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_137'></a>137</span>
+the embroidery from the collar seemed to have
+caught in her hair.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s eyes grew wide and staring with
+surprise. As the coat slipped back from Mrs.
+Post’s shoulders, she saw a string like a tiny
+green serpent glide with magic smoothness and
+swiftness from her throat, and drop into the
+shrubbery back of her, or—into Harry Townsend’s
+hand?
+</p>
+<p>
+What should she do? Announce that she
+had seen her string of emeralds disappear?
+Mrs. Post was talking and laughing gayly with
+her friend in the gold-colored dress. Harry
+was smiling quietly by them. Barbara rubbed
+her eyes. Surely she was mistaken. She had
+been dazzled by the wonderful sights she had
+seen that night. While she hesitated her opportunity
+passed.
+</p>
+<p>
+Governor Post returned, saying to his wife:
+“Come, my dear, I have found Miss Stuart and
+a friend. They have a table out in the garden,
+and want us to join them.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Post again drew her wrap over her
+shoulders and turned to leave the conservatory.
+As she rose she saw Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You there, my child?” she said in a friendly
+way. “Why didn’t you speak to me?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara could only answer her stupidly. “I
+was waiting for Hugh.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_138'></a>138</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+When Hugh returned he found Barbara looking
+as pale as though she had just seen a ghost.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What’s the matter?” he asked at once.
+“Are you ill?”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Bab shook her head. “I’ll go find Miss
+Stuart,” the young man suggested.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’ll do no such thing, Hugh!” Barbara
+had recovered her breath. “There’s nothing
+much the matter with me—at least, I am not sure
+whether I ought to tell you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab and Hugh! Well, I like this!”
+Grace’s voice sounded from the doorway, as she
+and Donald Cartwright came in, followed by
+Ruth and Ralph. “Here you two have run
+away by yourselves, when we promised to stick
+together this evening, in order to keep up each
+other’s courage. You ought to see Gladys!
+She’s as angry as can he, and is wandering
+round with Mollie and the freshman. Harry
+has been gone somewhere for a long time, and
+she has no partner for the next dance.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Are you sick, Bab?” inquired Ruth. She,
+too, noticed that Bab was unusually pale. Before
+she received an answer, Governor and Mrs.
+Post came into the conservatory, followed by
+Harry Townsend, Miss Stuart and the woman
+in yellow.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You are just the fellow I want to see,
+Hugh,” said his father, so quietly that no one
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_139'></a>139</span>
+except those near him could hear. “Your
+mother has lost her emerald necklace, and she
+thought she had it on when she was last in here.
+We don’t want to create any excitement, or to
+let Mrs. Erwin or the servants know until we
+have made a thorough search. She very probably
+dropped it among these flowers. Lock the
+door out there, will you? Miss Carter, you and
+Donald, please keep guard at the other door
+while these young people help me look.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I thought——” said Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, you were in here, child, when we were.
+You were on the other side of these evergreens,”
+said Mrs. Post. “What did you say?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I thought it might be in these evergreens,”
+Barbara finished, lamely, getting down on her
+knees to assist in the search. Dared she speak
+of what she thought she had seen? Dared she
+speak with no evidence but her own word?
+Could she have been in error? First, she would
+look with the others.
+</p>
+<p>
+Every palm, every flower, every inch of space
+was carefully gone over. No sign of the missing
+emeralds!
+</p>
+<p>
+“Did anyone enter the conservatory after I
+left, Miss Thurston?” inquired Mrs. Post coldly.
+She was worried by the loss of her jewels, which
+were of great value, as well as annoyed by the
+excitement she was causing.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_140'></a>140</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nobody came in,” Bab said, “only Hugh.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am exceedingly sorry,” the governor said
+at last, “but Mrs. Erwin will have to be notified.
+The jewels were either lost or stolen, and must
+be found. If the servants find the necklace a
+liberal reward will induce them to return it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The older people left the conservatory.
+</p>
+<p>
+Just as the younger ones turned to leave,
+Barbara, whose strange expression had not
+escaped the sharp eyes of Ruth, laid her hand
+on Hugh’s arm.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ask Harry Townsend to stay here a minute
+with us, won’t you please, Hugh?” said Barbara
+hoarsely.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Say, Townsend,” Hugh called, “come back
+a moment. I want to speak to you. Or, rather,
+Miss Thurston does.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mr. Townsend,” said Barbara, her face pale
+as death, “did you not see Mrs. Post’s necklace
+when you took off her wrap in here?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No,” said Harry quietly. “Did you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ask him, Hugh,” said Barbara, desperately,
+“to show you what he has in his pockets!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, say, Barbara!” Hugh answered. “I
+can’t do that. It’s a little too much.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Ralph stepped forward. “We don’t
+know what Miss Thurston means, but she most
+certainly doesn’t mean to insult Mr. Townsend
+unnecessarily. Why, then, should he mind
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_141'></a>141</span>
+turning out his pockets? Here Hugh,” Ralph
+turned, “search me first. Then Mr. Townsend
+won’t object to the selfsame process.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Hugh’s face was crimson, but he looked
+through Ralph’s pockets in a gingerly fashion.
+</p>
+<p>
+When he finished Harry Townsend turned
+quietly to Barbara. “I don’t know why you
+wish to insult me,” he said to her, “but I am
+perfectly willing to have Mr. Post search me.
+You were the only person in the conservatory
+after the jewels were lost!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Hugh started his search.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara leaned sick and faint against her
+chair, expecting every moment to see Hugh
+draw the jewels forth. She kept her eyes
+averted while Harry turned his pockets wrong
+side out and finally opened his vest.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara,” said Hugh, coldly, and Bab
+turned around. “We owe Mr. Townsend an
+apology. He is certainly no thief!”
+</p>
+<p>
+The jewels were nowhere to be found.
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_142'></a>142</span><a name='chXIV' id='chXIV'></a>CHAPTER XIV—BARBARA’S SECRET</h2>
+<p>
+“Bab, Bab! What is the matter with
+you!” cried Mollie, for Barbara had
+thrown herself on the bed after their
+return from the ball, bursting into a torrent of
+tears.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I don’t know,” sobbed Bab. “I must
+be wrong, or crazy, or something. Yet how
+can people doubt their own eyes?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie stopped spreading out her butterfly
+dress, in which she had looked so pretty at the
+party, and flung her arms round her sister.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Just tell me what is the matter, dear! Has
+anyone hurt your feelings? If it’s that Gladys
+Le Baron I’ll certainly get even with her!”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Bab didn’t answer.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’m going to call Ruth,” said Mollie. “I
+don’t want to waken Aunt Sallie, but you
+seemed queer all the way home from the ball.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab sat up, when Ruth came in, and dried
+her eyes.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am so sorry you feel so badly, Barbara,
+dear,” said Ruth, “but, of course, it was a
+wretched mistake for you to have made. Let’s
+try to forget that horrid scene. Some servant
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_143'></a>143</span>
+will pick up the necklace in the morning, and
+return it to Mrs. Post. Hugh and I have decided
+that it will be wise for those of us who
+were in the conservatory just at the last not to
+speak of what happened. You will forgive us,
+Mollie, dear, won’t you, if we don’t tell even
+you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No, I won’t!” cried Mollie, stamping her
+little slippered foot. “Bab can’t have secrets
+that make her cry—not from her own sister.
+And I don’t see, anyway, what Bab has to do
+with Mrs. Post having lost her emerald necklace.
+If you think the loss is a secret, you’re
+wrong, because everybody in the ballroom was
+whispering it about half an hour afterwards.
+I heard of it from a perfect stranger!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie,” said Ruth quietly, “will you please
+do me a favor? Don’t ask Barbara to tell you
+what happened that has worried her. It was
+nothing but an unfortunate mistake, and will
+all blow over in the morning.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Very well, Ruth,” agreed Mollie. “I won’t
+ask. But I am not a baby, and I am very sure
+it would be better if I were told.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Thus poor Bab had no one in whom to confide,
+and had to bear her ugly secret all alone.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth kissed her good night, saying: “Cheer
+up, silly girl, and sleep late as you can in the
+morning. You know, it’s to be the last day of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_144'></a>144</span>
+our tennis practice, and you are going to beat
+me tomorrow!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth tiptoed over to Mollie, who was undressing
+in silence. “Mistress Mollie,” she said,
+“forgive me; do, please, like a dear. Talking
+about horrid things only makes them <em>horrider</em>!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth, in the depths of her heart, thought that
+Barbara had been most unwise in her hinted
+accusation of Harry Townsend. For Bab’s
+sake she thought it best for everyone to forget
+what had happened. It was a fault in Ruth’s
+nature that she loved only pleasant things, and
+would often give up, even when she knew she
+was right, in order not to make trouble.
+</p>
+<p>
+The next morning a Barbara of heavy eyes
+and white cheeks joined the players on the
+tennis court.
+</p>
+<p>
+Plainly Harry had confided what had happened
+to Gladys, for she did not speak to Bab
+as she came up to her, but tossed her head and
+bit her lips. Gladys said nothing, however, for
+Harry had made her promise she would not
+breathe what he had told her.
+</p>
+<p>
+As for Mr. Townsend, he treated Barbara
+with cold politeness. But Barbara was beginning
+to have her eyes opened. “If I am right
+about him,” she thought to herself, “then I
+shall have to be very careful. I believe he is
+more clever than any of us dream!”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_145'></a>145</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+It was Hugh whose manner was most constrained.
+He could not forgive the scene of the
+night before, in which he had been forced to
+take an unwilling part. Not until Ruth called
+him over to her, and gave him a lecture, did he
+beg Bab’s pardon, and ask that they all forget
+the experience of the night before.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come on!” he called, cheerily, to the group
+of tennis players. “It’s do or die to-day—the
+last test day for us. It will show us who is to
+represent our crowd at the tournament. The
+girl and the fellow who can beat all the rest of
+us stand a good chance of winning the silver
+cup. Mrs. Cartwright says she has been closely
+following the game of the star players and she
+thinks we have them beaten to a finish. Come
+on, Ruth, let’s show ’em that we’re out for
+blood!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Swish! Barbara’s ball flew over the net and
+curved toward the ground at Hugh’s left. Not
+too swiftly for that young gentleman; while
+Ruth’s heart gave a jump of apprehension,
+Hugh made a left-hand swing with his racquet
+and sent the ball whizzing back.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Fifteen!” Ralph called out, in a bored tone.
+He had failed in his return.
+</p>
+<p>
+The battle raged all morning.
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace and Donald Cartwright, Gladys and
+Mr. Townsend were soon out of the running.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_146'></a>146</span>
+When they had finished they sank gratefully on
+the ground, to watch the others play.
+</p>
+<p>
+The field was thus left to Barbara and Ralph,
+to Ruth and Hugh. The sets stood even, and
+two more games would decide.
+</p>
+<p>
+A small crowd of visitors stood around the
+court. Mrs. Cartwright, having finished her
+own game, came over to look on. Miss Sallie
+was trying to be impartial, but she was really
+deeply interested in Ruth’s success. Mrs.
+Erwin, Mrs. Post, the governor, all their friends,
+were lined up to behold the battle.
+</p>
+<p>
+A subdued discussion of the lost emeralds had
+been going on at the Casino all morning. After
+a thorough search of every inch of Mrs. Erwin’s
+house and grounds, there was still no sign of the
+jewels; but Governor Post and Mrs. Erwin had
+made every effort to have the scandal of the
+necklace hushed up. They had seen the Newport
+detectives, and had telegraphed to New
+York for two experts to be sent down to handle
+the case. In the meantime they had been advised
+not to talk.
+</p>
+<p>
+Now the only upright person, who could have
+given them any information had, for just a little
+while, forgotten all about it. Whatever Barbara
+did she did with her whole heart. Today
+she played tennis.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph,” Hugh called, “remember, now, it’s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_147'></a>147</span>
+two straight games to finish the way we stand!”
+</p>
+<p>
+There was no more conversation. Even the
+watchers held their breath. The referee sat on
+the ground, rapidly calling out the score—“forty—thirty—deuce!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Is this game to go on forever?” Miss Sallie
+inquired, plaintively. “My girls will be wholly
+worn out.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Advantage in!” shouted the referee.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph sprang forward for his ball; his foot
+slipped. Barbara, who had been expecting him
+to return it, was not ready.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Game!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth and Hugh shook hands with each other.
+But Hugh called over: “Say, Ralph, was this
+game all right? You turned your ankle, didn’t
+you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Surely I did,” said Ralph. “I was an idiot,
+but it is your game just the same. I’ll make it
+up next time, Barbara—see if I don’t!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“My dear Ruth,” said Miss Sallie, “I cannot
+permit it. You will be exhausted.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Here, Barbara,” said Mollie, “do try to get
+your breath, and let me fix up your hair.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No prinking!” Ralph called out. “This is
+business, ladies!”
+</p>
+<p>
+The good old Casino courts never saw a finer
+tennis battle. Ralph and Bab played as though
+they had forgotten their talk in the woods that
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_148'></a>148</span>
+day when they had tea at Mrs. Duffy’s. Ruth
+and Hugh were foeman worthy of their best
+steel.
+</p>
+<p>
+The game stood forty-all, and it was Bab’s
+serve. Bab’s serves were what made her tennis
+remarkable. They were as swift and straight
+and true as a boy’s.
+</p>
+<p>
+Hugh stood ready waiting. Barbara caught
+a look in Ruth’s face, on the other side of the net.
+Her big blue eyes, frank and clear as a baby’s,
+were glowing with interest, with hope, with ambition!
+Like a flash the thought of all Ruth had
+done for them came into Bab’s mind. Did it
+weaken the force of her drive? Or was it because
+her mind was distracted? The ball fell
+just inside the net on her own side.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Try again, partner mine!” shouted Ralph,
+“show ’em what you’re made of!”
+</p>
+<p>
+This time Barbara was plainly nervous. She
+felt that nearly all the friends around them
+wanted Ruth to win. They would be delighted,
+of course, with her success and kind to her, but
+open-hearted and open-handed Ruth was the
+favorite with them all; at least, Bab thought so.
+</p>
+<p>
+With returning courage, Bab hit her last ball
+a hard blow. It rose high in the air! Hugh
+sprang on his tiptoes to receive it and gave a
+mighty shout. The ball had fallen outside the
+line.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_149'></a>149</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph and Barbara were the first to congratulate
+the victors. Barbara cleared the net with a
+bound, forgetting both her age and her audience.
+</p>
+<p>
+“There, Ruth, you and Hugh are the best players
+that ever happened!” Barbara spoke with
+a glowing face. Then she turned to Ralph: “I
+lost the game for you,” she said. “I am so
+sorry.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no, you didn’t, my lady,” said Ralph.
+“I lost the game before this one, so we’re even.”
+</p>
+<p>
+An admiring circle had formed around Ruth
+and Hugh.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Your father will be delighted, I know,
+child,” said Miss Sallie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I haven’t won the cup yet, Auntie,” protested
+Ruth.
+</p>
+<p>
+“But you must, child,” said Mrs. Cartwright,
+smiling. “I am betting on you and Hugh in the
+tournament, and you mustn’t make me lose my
+box of candy.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara,” said Ralph, shyly, as they
+walked off toward home a little later, “I don’t
+like to ask you, but did you mean to miss those
+last serves?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara shook her head. “No,” she said, “I
+don’t think I meant to. I don’t know. But
+they were the best players, weren’t they,
+Ralph?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Certainly,” Ralph answered.
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_150'></a>150</span><a name='chXV' id='chXV'></a>CHAPTER XV—RUTH IN DANGER</h2>
+<p>
+Hugh, looking much embarrassed, came
+up early next morning to see Ruth.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have an invitation to deliver to
+you, Ruth, but I am rather ashamed to do it, for
+I am afraid you will be angry. Mother told me
+to come over and ask Miss Stuart and yourself
+and the girls—except Barbara—to come out
+with us for the day on the yacht.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, Hugh Post!” cried Ruth. “What do
+you mean?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, it’s like this,” Hugh said, desperately;
+“mother told me to explain to you exactly how
+things stand, so you will not think her rude.
+You see, mother is visiting Mrs. Erwin, and of
+course Mrs. Erwin, Gladys, and her devoted
+Harry Townsend have to go along on the yacht
+with us. Well, Gladys told mother that neither
+she nor Mr. Townsend could go if Barbara went.
+Gladys would not tell mother why, and, as you
+told me to keep that scene in the conservatory a
+secret, I didn’t know what it was wisest for me
+to do.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Thank you,” Ruth answered; “but tell your
+mother that none of us can accept.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_151'></a>151</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Ruth!” exclaimed Hugh. “I am fearfully
+disappointed, and mother I know will be
+angry.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am afraid I don’t care, Hugh,” was Ruth’s
+reply. “I don’t like your mother’s inviting any
+of us, if she had to leave Bab out.”
+</p>
+<p>
+As Hugh turned to leave the front porch,
+where he had found Ruth alone, she called after
+him: “Wait a minute, please. I don’t know
+what to tell Aunt Sallie. Your mother will be
+sure to speak to her of her invitation, and Auntie
+will think I should have let her refuse for herself.
+Oh, I know!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth’s face cleared. “I will go tell Aunt
+Sallie that she and Grace and Mollie are asked.
+I’ll stay with my dear Bab,” she finished a little
+defiantly. “If I am also left out of the party,
+no one will think anything of it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I say, Ruth,” Hugh urged, “please
+come.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Sorry,” she said, shaking her head decidedly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I expect you’re right,” Hugh replied.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie, Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs.
+Post’s invitation with pleasure. As Mrs. Post’s
+yacht was small, they did not think it strange
+that the other two girls were left out.
+</p>
+<p>
+How angry Mollie would have been, had she
+guessed the truth. Not a step would she have
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_152'></a>152</span>
+gone. As it was, she begged Barbara to go in
+her place.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Bab was too clever. She understood
+what had happened, and was glad to be left out
+of the party. She put her arm around Ruth’s
+waist, whispering coaxingly: “Do go along with
+the others, old story-teller. You know you were
+asked.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth shook her head decidedly. “Not on
+your life,” she slangily retorted. Fortunately,
+Miss Sallie did not hear her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What shall we do this afternoon, Bab?” inquired
+Ruth after luncheon. “Suppose you and
+I go for a long walk?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t think I am a lazy good-for-nothing,
+Ruth,” Barbara begged, “but I have a little
+headache, and I must write to mother. Mollie
+and I have been neglecting her shamefully of
+late. I haven’t even written her about the wonderful
+ball.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Are you going to tell her what happened,
+Bab?” Ruth inquired.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I suppose so,” sighed Bab. She was half
+inclined to discuss the unfortunate affair with
+Ruth, but changed her mind.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, Bab,” Ruth declared, “I shall go for
+the walk ‘all by my lonesomes.’ I’ll be back in
+time for dinner. The others are to dine on the
+yacht, so we need not look for them until bedtime.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_153'></a>153</span>
+I think I’ll take the cliff walk, for the sea
+is so splendid to-day.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Left alone, Barbara got out her writing
+materials and sat down by the window, but she
+did not begin to write.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I wonder,” she asked herself, “why we have
+been mixed up in burglaries ever since Ruth began
+talking about our trip to Newport? First,
+our poor little twenty-dollar gold-pieces disappear;
+then we have that dreadful robber at New
+Haven. Now Mrs. Post’s emerald necklace is
+stolen! It could not all have been Mr. Townsend!”
+Barbara sat with her hands clenched.
+</p>
+<p>
+“If it is true,” she went on, “and I saw the
+necklace disappear with my own eyes, then we
+have another Raffles to deal with. Mr. Raffles,
+the second! I believe I am the only person that
+suspects him. Well, Mr. Harry Townsend!”
+Barbara’s red lips tightened, “you are successful
+now, but we shall see whose wits are better,
+yours or mine!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s face turned a deep crimson. “I
+understood. He wanted to suggest I was the
+thief. Only he didn’t dare to accuse me openly
+the other night. I won’t tell mother,” Barbara
+at last decided. “I’ll just watch—and wait!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara wrote her mother a long, happy letter,
+without a hint of the troubles she began to
+feel closing in on her. Then she straightened her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_154'></a>154</span>
+own and Mollie’s bureau drawers and arranged
+their clothes in the two closets. Still Ruth did
+not come.
+</p>
+<p>
+Twice Barbara went into her room. It was
+half past five—six—Mrs. Ewing’s early dinner
+was served at half after six.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mrs. Ewing,” Barbara said, knocking timidly
+at her door. “Have you seen anything of
+Ruth? She has been gone such a long time that
+I am worried about her.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Mrs. Ewing knew nothing of her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I believe I’ll go to meet her,” said Barbara,
+“and hurry her along. She must be on her way
+home.” Ralph was on the yacht with Hugh, or
+Barbara would have asked him to accompany
+her.
+</p>
+<p>
+For the first half mile along the cliff walk
+Barbara strolled slowly, expecting every moment
+to see Ruth hurrying along. As the walk
+dipped down into hollows and rose again in the
+high places, it was difficult to see any distance
+ahead.
+</p>
+<p>
+The walk was entirely deserted, and Bab’s
+heart commenced to beat faster as the darkness
+began to gather.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I suppose,” thought Barbara, “Ruth has
+gone somewhere to make a visit, and has stayed
+late without thinking. She’s probably at home,
+now, waiting for me, so I’ll get the scolding
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_155'></a>155</span>
+from Mrs. Ewing for being late to dinner. I
+believe I’ll go on back home.” Barbara actually
+turned and started in the opposite direction.
+</p>
+<p>
+Something within her seemed to call: “Bab!
+Bab!” The voice was so urgent she was frightened.
+“Ruth needs you,” it seemed to say.
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab began calling aloud, “Ruth! Ruth!”
+Her voice sounded high and shrill in her own
+ears; but only the echo answered her, and the
+noise of the waves pounding against the shore.
+She could see the distant lights in the houses
+along the way, but Barbara dared not stop to
+ask for help while that inner voice urged her
+on.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was running, now, along the narrow,
+difficult path. “O Ruth, dear Ruth!” she cried.
+“Why don’t you answer me? Are you anywhere,
+needing me?” She heard a low sound
+and stopped. Nothing but her own imagination!
+There were always queer noises along the
+cliff shore, where the water swirled into little
+eddies and gurgled out again.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara waited. She heard nothing more, so
+she plunged on. Suddenly she drew back with
+a gasp of horror. Part of the cliff walk had
+disappeared! Where a bridge of stone had
+spanned a narrow chasm there was a terrible,
+yawning hole. Jutting out their vicious arms
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_156'></a>156</span>
+were rocks, rocks, forming a sheer drop of
+seventy feet to the beach below.
+</p>
+<p>
+Involuntarily, Barbara had flung herself down
+on her hands and knees to keep from falling
+over into the abyss.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth couldn’t have,” she thought. “No,
+no!” But hark! Was that again the low moaning
+sound of the waters? Barbara lay flat on
+the rocks, stretching her head over the embankment.
+There, in a cleft between two
+great rocks, fifteen feet below her, a dark object
+hung!
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth! Ruth!” Bab called, her voice coming
+from her throat in a hoarse cry. Again she
+heard the faint moan. This time she knew the
+sound. It was Ruth! What could she do?
+Run for help? Any second, Bab realized, Ruth’s
+strength might fail, and she would let go her
+grasp. Barbara could not bear to think of the
+horrible end.
+</p>
+<p>
+As far as she could see, Ruth’s feet rested
+on a narrow ledge of rock, while she clung with
+her hands to a cliff that jutted out overhead.
+“Ruth! Ruth!” Barbara called again, but this
+time her voice was clear and strong. “It is
+Bab! Do you understand? Hold on a little
+longer. I am coming.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Swiftly a prayer came into Barbara’s mind:
+“Lord, show me the way.” Yet even while
+she prayed she acted. “Help, help!” Bab
+called out.
+</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_157'></a>157</span></div>
+<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
+<a name='i004' id='i004'></a>
+<img src="images/illus-157.jpg" alt="Barbara Lay Flat on the Rocks." width="60%" title=""/><br />
+<span class='caption'>Barbara Lay Flat on the Rocks.</span>
+</div>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_159'></a>159</span></div>
+<p>
+She tore off the long woolen shawl which
+she had wrapped round her when she came out
+to seek Ruth. With hands that seemed to gain
+a superhuman strength Bab tore it into three,
+four strips. She dared not make the strips narrower
+for fear they would not hold. Then she
+took off her skirt of light wool and wrenched
+it into broad bands. How, Barbara never
+knew. She felt that the power was given her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Growing out from a rock between Bab and
+the moaning figure on the cliff below was a
+small tree, its roots deeply imbedded in the
+hard soil. Ruth had evidently reached out to
+grasp this tree as the cliff bridge gave way beneath
+her feet; but, missing it, her feet had
+touched a ledge of rock and she had flung out
+her arms and clasped the stone above her. How
+much longer would her failing strength serve
+her?
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab again lay down and measured the length
+of her queer rope. She found that by reaching
+the tree she could tie the rope to it and it
+would then be long enough to extend to Ruth.
+Removing her shoes, Barbara slowly, and with
+infinite caution, crawled down the jagged rocks,
+clinging with her hands and toes. Finally she
+arrived at the tree, and fastened her rope securely
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_160'></a>160</span>
+around it, only to find it dangled just
+above Ruth’s head. Yet what was the use? If
+Ruth for an instant let go the rock to which
+she clung her feet would slip from the ledge,
+and Bab’s poor woolen strings could never hold
+her.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Barbara understood this. She was face
+to face with the great moment of her life, and,
+though she was only a simple country girl,
+neither her brains nor her strength failed her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Did she stop at the tree after the rope was
+tied? No! Still clinging, sliding, her hands
+bruised and bleeding, Barbara was making her
+way to where Ruth hung. Bab had said truly
+that she could climb. Never had a girl a better
+opportunity to prove her boast! There were
+moments when she believed she could not go
+on. Then the thought of Ruth renewed her
+courage.
+</p>
+<p>
+Just above Ruth’s head, on the left side of
+her, was a great boulder with a curved, smooth
+surface. It was to this rock Bab made her way.
+She was so close to Ruth now that she could
+lean over and touch her. “Courage, dear,” she
+whispered, and she thought she saw Ruth’s pale
+lips smile. She had not fainted; for this, Barbara
+was grateful.
+</p>
+<p>
+When Barbara was a little girl her mother
+had been ashamed of her tomboy ways; but she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_161'></a>161</span>
+had given in, with a gentle sigh, when Bab grew
+and flourished by playing boys’ games, by
+learning various boyish arts; among them was
+the knack of tying a sailor knot.
+</p>
+<p>
+Edging closer and closer to Ruth she managed
+to reach out and catch hold of the rope
+she had fastened to the tree. With one hand
+on her own rock, with the other she drew the
+cord about Ruth, fastening it firmly under her
+arms. The rope was not strong enough to draw
+Ruth up to safety, but it would steady her
+should her hands give way.
+</p>
+<p>
+Somehow, in some way, Barbara must get
+further help.
+</p>
+<p>
+Now that her first duty was over, she began
+to call loudly: “Help, help!” Her shouts
+roused Ruth, who joined feebly in the cry. No
+sound answered them. Only the seagulls swept
+over them, uttering their hoarse call.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara felt her own strength going. She
+tried to crawl up the slippery rock again, but
+her power was gone. She, too, felt herself—slipping,
+slipping! With one wild cry she
+caught at her rock, and all was still!
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_162'></a>162</span><a name='chXVI' id='chXVI'></a>CHAPTER XVI—HELP ARRIVES</h2>
+<p>
+Mr. Cartwright was dining alone on
+his Japanese veranda, as his wife was
+with the yachting party, and was not
+expected to dinner.
+</p>
+<p>
+Jones, the butler, came in softly, placing the
+soup in front of his master. As he put down
+the plate his hand shook. Surely he heard a
+cry!
+</p>
+<p>
+At the same moment Mr. Cartwright started
+up. “Jones, what was that?” They both stood
+still. There was no further sound.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Must ’ave been children playing, sir,” suggested
+Jones, and Mr. Cartwright continued his
+dinner.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Help, help!” The sound came from afar
+off, loud and shrill. This time there was no
+mistake.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Coming!” Mr. Cartwright shouted. “Coming!”
+As he ran across the lawn, closely followed
+by Jones, he snatched a heavy coil of
+rope left by the workmen who had been swinging
+hammocks and arranging for Mrs. Cartwright’s
+outdoor bazaar.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Call again, if you can,” Mr. Cartwright
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_163'></a>163</span>
+yelled. Faintly, a voice seemed to come up out
+of the earth. “Help, help! Oh, please!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Cartwright caught the direction of the
+voice, and ran along the cliffs. In a moment he
+espied the fallen bridge and guessed what had
+happened; then he and Jones saw the two girls
+in their perilous position.
+</p>
+<p>
+Leaning over, he called: “Can you hear me?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab answered, “Yes.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then keep still,” shouted Mr. Cartwright,
+“and I’ll have you up here in a moment.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Quickly he knotted the rope around Jones’s
+waist; then, some yards farther on, he tied it
+round his own. “Go back,” he said to his butler,
+“and lie down.” Jones was large and
+heavy; Mr. Cartwright was a tall man, thin, but
+strong.
+</p>
+<p>
+Slowly he lowered himself to the tree where
+Bab had tied her poor rope, and flung an improvised
+lasso over to Bab. “Not me,” said
+Barbara, forgetting her grammar. “Ruth
+first.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Can she climb with the help of the rope?”
+asked their rescuer.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth had not spoken, but she opened her eyes,
+gave a shudder and fainted.
+</p>
+<p>
+Like a flash Bab had thrown the lasso over
+her shoulders, and Ruth hung swaying in the
+air! Fortunately her feet were still on the ledge
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_164'></a>164</span>
+of the rock. Mr. Cartwright caught his rope
+round the tree, at the same time calling to
+Jones, “Throw me another coil!” He then
+clambered down and half carried, half dragged
+the fainting Ruth to the top of the cliff.
+</p>
+<p>
+Once above, he dropped his burden, and again
+flung the lasso over the edge of the rocks to
+Barbara, who, crawling and being pulled by
+turns, came up in safety. When she had
+reached the top, and stood by the side of the
+fainting Ruth, Bab’s courage deserted her, and
+she burst into tears.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Get the young ladies to the house at once,”
+ordered Mr. Cartwright, far more frightened
+than he had been while playing rescuer.
+</p>
+<p>
+How fared the yachting party? They did not
+have a good day. Hugh was in a bad humor
+because Ruth had not come; Ralph missed
+Barbara, and, try as they might to avoid it, the
+conversation would drift back to the lost emeralds.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I shall never understand it,” said Mrs.
+Erwin to Aunt Sallie, in subdued tones. “The
+detectives say they have made a thorough
+search of my servants’ quarters, have watched
+their movements ever since the night of the
+theft, and they can find none of them of whom
+they are even suspicious. They do say”—this
+time Mrs. Erwin dropped her voice to a whisper, for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_165'></a>165</span>
+the woman who was with Mrs. Post at
+the time of the robbery was approaching them—“they
+say that the burglar was probably—one
+of the guests!”
+</p>
+<p>
+This woman, who had worn a gold-colored
+brocade, was an American, who had married a
+Frenchman, but her husband was supposed to
+have been dead several years. She had come
+to Newport, this season, with letters of introduction,
+and was already very popular.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Do you know,” she inquired, “where Miss
+Le Baron and Mr. Townsend are? No one has
+seen them recently.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh,” laughed Mrs. Erwin, “we leave those
+two young people alone. I believe they have
+an affair of their own. Have you known Mr.
+Townsend before this meeting?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no,” replied the woman, in a curious
+tone; “at least, I have met him once or twice.
+I can’t say I know him.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ladies,” Governor Post said, coming up to
+them, “I believe I will cheat you of part of your
+sail today. There are ugly clouds gathering,
+and I think it better to put into harbor. We
+can go ashore, or not, as we feel inclined.”
+</p>
+<p>
+As the yacht neared the shore, Miss Sallie
+grew restless. It was the first time since the
+beginning of their trip that she had been separated
+from any of her girls. As soon as dinner
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_166'></a>166</span>
+was over she begged Governor Post to put herself,
+Grace and Mollie ashore. Immediately the
+rest of the party agreed to disembark with her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph and the two girls followed Aunt Sallie
+home. For once, she hurried on before them,
+urged by a kind of foreboding.
+</p>
+<p>
+She found Mrs. Ewing, white and frightened,
+walking up and down in front of her gate. Mr.
+Ewing and the maids had left the house, half
+an hour before, to search for the lost girls.
+</p>
+<p>
+Thoughtlessly Mrs. Ewing rushed up to Miss
+Stuart. “Have Ruth and Barbara joined you?”
+she asked.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why, no,” replied the two girls in amazement.
+Ralph stared in surprise; but Miss Sallie
+spoke firmly. “Tell me, at once, what has happened.”
+In the midst of real danger Miss
+Stuart was a different woman, as Mr. Stuart
+well knew when he allowed her to chaperon the
+automobile girls.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Ewing had nothing to tell. All she knew
+was that the girls had gone out for a long walk,
+and, at eight o’clock, had not come back.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come with me, Ralph,” Miss Sallie demanded.
+Grace and Mollie followed them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t be frightened, Mollie,” Grace begged,
+trying to talk cheerfully, though she was trembling
+violently. “Rely upon Ruth and Bab to
+get safely out of a scrape.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_167'></a>167</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Just as they reached the end of the street
+that turned into the cliff walk, Miss Sallie
+espied a servant of the Cartwrights running in
+their direction. “Stop him!” she commanded
+Ralph.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Sure, mum, I am to tell you,” the gardener’s
+boy said, “the young ladies was not killed.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Not killed!” the girls cried, in horror.
+Ralph took hold of Mollie’s hand.
+</p>
+<p>
+“That is what I was to say, mum,” said the
+boy, evidently much excited. “They is not
+much hurt and will be home soon.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Take me to them, at once,” ordered Miss
+Sallie, asking no further questions. The gardener’s
+boy led the way.
+</p>
+<p>
+When the party arrived, Mrs. Cartwright,
+still in her yachting suit, ran out to meet them.
+Ruth came to the door, walking a little stiffly.
+Barbara followed her, and straightway begged
+Mollie not to cry.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s all over, silly little Mollie,” she whispered,
+“and neither Ruth nor I am hurt. We
+are just a little scratched, and very dirty, and
+we want to go to bed.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mr. Cartwright has already had the doctor
+in to see us, Auntie,” said Ruth. “He is in the
+drawing room now. We have no broken bones
+or strains, though my shoulders ache rather
+badly.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_168'></a>168</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Grace were both crying, just because
+there was nothing, now, for them to cry
+about.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie made Ruth sit down again, as her
+niece was almost too weak to stand. After listening
+in silence to Ruth’s story, Aunt Sallie
+held out her hand to Mr. Cartwright. “My
+brother and I can never thank you, and I shall
+not attempt it. Ruth means all our world.”
+Then she turned to Barbara, and gathered her
+in her arms. “My child,” she said, “you are
+the bravest girl I ever knew.” Miss Stuart
+choked, and could say no more.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Do you remember, Bab,” asked Mollie, when
+Barbara was safe in her own bed, “how once
+you said you would one day repay Ruth and
+Mr. Stuart for their kindness to us? Well, I
+think, and I know they will think, that you have
+kept your promise. Yes; I’m going to let her
+go to sleep, Miss Sallie,” Mollie called back, in
+answer to Miss Stuart’s remonstrance.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth and Barbara were utterly worn out, and
+had been put into warm baths and rubbed down
+with alcohol. “I am not even going to give
+two such sensible girls doses of aromatic spirits
+of ammonia,” declared the doctor, who had
+driven over from Mrs. Cartwright’s with them
+and had seen the girls safely in bed. “They will
+be all right in a day or two,” he assured Miss
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_169'></a>169</span>
+Sallie, “as soon as they get over the nervous
+shock.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It took six telegrams to Mr. Stuart and Mrs.
+Thurston to persuade them the girls were unhurt
+and able to remain in Newport.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXVII' id='chXVII'></a>CHAPTER XVII—THE FORTUNE-TELLERS</h2>
+<p>
+“My dears,” said Mrs. Cartwright, two
+days after the accident, coming into
+the sitting-room, where Ruth and
+Bab were idling, “I suppose you know that you
+are the heroines of Newport. No one is talking
+about anything but your accident. You have
+almost put the jewel robbery out of our minds.
+How do you feel this morning?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, as fit as anything,” smiled Ruth, though
+she still looked a little pale. “I have just written
+a long letter to father, to assure him that I
+shall be well enough to play in the tournament
+next week.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“That is fine,” declared Mrs. Cartwright.
+“And you, Bab?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“There never was much the matter with me,”
+Bab answered.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then you are just the girls I am looking
+for,” said Mrs. Cartwright, clapping her hands.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_170'></a>170</span>
+“You know, I asked you, Bab, to play gypsy
+fortune-teller at my bazaar; now I want to ask
+Ruth to join you. Everyone thinks you are both
+laid up from your accident, and no one will suspect
+who you are. The plans for the bazaar are
+going splendidly. I think I shall make lots of
+money for my poor sailors. I shall have it as
+simple and attractive as I can—a real country
+fair, with booths and lemonade stands. I am
+going to give these jaded Newport people a
+taste of the simple life. Do say you will help
+me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Both girls shook their heads. “We do not
+know how to tell fortunes,” they protested.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, it’s only fun,” argued Mrs. Cartwright.
+“You can make up any foolishness you like as
+you go along. I’ll show you how to run
+the cards, as they call it. Has either of you ever
+seen anyone do it?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab confessed she had watched “Granny
+Ann.” Suddenly she left her chair, and came
+hobbling over to Mrs. Cartwright, saying, in
+Granny Ann’s own high-pitched, whining voice:
+“Lovely lady, would you know the future, grave
+or gay, cross my hand with a silver piece and
+list to what I say.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gravely, Mrs. Cartwright extracted a dollar
+from her silver purse, and made the gypsy sign
+on Bab’s outstretched hand. Barbara immediately told
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_171'></a>171</span>
+her such a nonsensical fortune, in a
+perfectly grave voice, that she and Ruth both
+screamed with laughter.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’ll do, Bab,” said Mrs. Cartwright.
+“Won’t you join her, Ruth?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well,” said Ruth, “I never desert Mrs.
+Micawber these days, or, to put it plainly, Miss
+Bab Thurston. So I’m game.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Thursday, then, remember, and this is Tuesday,”
+said Mrs. Cartwright. “I am the busiest
+woman in Newport, so I must run away now.
+You should see my house and lawn. They are
+full of workmen. The fair is to begin promptly
+at four, and will last until midnight. We shall
+have dancing on the lawn, but I want you girls
+and a few friends to come into the house after
+supper. When you finish playing fortune-tellers
+you can slip up to my room and dress.
+Nobody must guess, when you come down, that
+you have not just arrived. Now, I positively
+must be off. Tell Mollie and Grace I am depending
+on them to act as waitresses. Gladys
+isn’t willing to help. She wants all her time for
+Harry Townsend.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth,” said Aunt Sallie, the afternoon of the
+bazaar, “I really cannot permit you to go anywhere,
+looking as you do, even if you are wearing
+a disguise. You are too horrible!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come and see Barbara,” Grace called from
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_172'></a>172</span>
+the next room. “I am sure she must look worse.
+Why,” she asked, laughing, “do you and Ruth
+want to disguise yourselves as such dreadful-looking
+gypsies. You might just as easily have
+arranged to look like young and charming
+ones.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no,” said Bab. “We want to look like
+the real thing, not like stage gypsies.” Barbara
+had arranged to appear as much like
+“Granny Ann” as she possibly could. A red
+and yellow handkerchief was bound around her
+head almost to her eyebrows, her face was
+stained to a deep brown, with lines and heavy
+seams drawn over it; even her hands were made
+up to look old and weather beaten.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Remember, you have never seen nor heard
+of these extraordinary fortune-tellers before,”
+warned Ruth. “And don’t forget, Barbara and
+Ruth are at home at Mrs. Ewing’s, but they may
+feel well enough to come to the fair in the evening.”
+Ruth caught Bab’s arm, and together
+they made a low curtsey.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Beautiful ones,” Ruth went on, pointing to
+Miss Sallie, who was looking handsome in a
+gown of pale gray crêpe, with a violet hat and
+sunshade, and to Mollie and Grace, who were
+dressed like Swiss peasant girls, “your fortunes
+I would like to tell before you go to the Fair.
+Easy it is for my wise eyes to perceive that you
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_173'></a>173</span>
+will be the belles and beauties of the entertainment.
+Now, farewell!”
+</p>
+<p>
+The “gypsies” were to drive over early to
+Mrs. Cartwright’s in a closed carriage. Ralph
+was to take Miss Sallie, Grace and Mollie in the
+motor car later on.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Granny Ann” and “old Meg” slipped inside
+the gypsy tent before any of the guests had arrived
+at the bazaar. They had gazed in wonder
+at Mrs. Cartwright’s beautiful lawn, changed to
+look like a country fair. It was hung with bunting
+and flags, and had small tables and chairs
+under the trees; also a May-pole strung with
+long streamers of different colored ribbons. Mrs.
+Cartwright had planned a May-pole dance as
+one of the chief features of the afternoon, and
+Mollie and Grace were both to take part.
+</p>
+<p>
+For the gypsies, life was a serious matter.
+The tent was divided by a red curtain; on a low
+wooden table burned a round iron pot filled with
+charcoal and curious odorous herbs; a pack of
+dirty cards lay near it. “The cards must be
+dirty,” argued Ruth, “or no one would believe
+we were the real thing in gypsies.” Two rough
+stools stood by the table, and the only daylight
+shone through the tent flap. On the other side
+of the curtain, Mrs. Cartwright had been kinder
+to her gypsies. Here were a wicker couch and
+big chairs, where they could rest and talk; also
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_174'></a>174</span>
+a table for refreshments, “for,” laughed Mrs.
+Cartwright, as she left the tent to welcome her
+first guests, “I have always heard that gypsies
+are a particularly hungry race of people.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright’s fair was a huge success.
+The most fashionable “set” in Newport were
+present, entering into the spirit of the occasion
+with great zest.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys and Harry Townsend were seen everywhere
+together; but to-day there was often a
+third person with them, the Countess Bertouche,
+the woman of the gold-colored brocade, but
+lately introduced in Newport society.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I believe Gladys is engaged to Harry Townsend,”
+whispered Grace to Mollie, when she had
+observed Harry bending over Miss Le Baron
+and talking to her in a more devoted manner
+than usual.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well,” retorted pretty Mollie, with a toss of
+her head, “I am sure I do not envy either one of
+them.”
+</p>
+<p>
+All afternoon the gypsy tent had been flooded
+with visitors. Barbara and Ruth had the time
+of their lives. No one recognized the two automobile
+girls in the aged crones who mumbled
+and told strange fortunes in hoarse tones.
+</p>
+<p>
+It was growing late, and the gypsy tent was
+for the time deserted. Ruth was resting on the
+couch in the back of the tent, while Bab sat near
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_175'></a>175</span>
+her, talking over their experiences of the afternoon.
+</p>
+<p>
+Suddenly the tent flap opened, and Grace and
+Mollie rushed in. Before either of them spoke,
+they turned and fastened the flap down again
+securely, so no one could enter without their
+knowing it.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What’s the matter?” asked Ruth and Bab at
+once, for it was plain to see their visitors were
+greatly excited.
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace and Mollie started talking together.
+“Mrs. Cartwright’s diamond butterfly——”
+then they both stopped. “Are you sure no one
+can hear? Mollie, you tell,” finished Grace.
+</p>
+<p>
+“The butterfly has gone, vanished right off
+Mrs. Cartwright’s frock, this afternoon, while
+she was talking to her visitors. You know, she
+changed the ornament she wore in her hair into
+a brooch. She showed it to me early this afternoon,
+when I first came, and now—it is gone! I
+tell you, girls, there’s a thief among these Newport
+people. I think it, and so does Mrs. Cartwright,
+and ever so many others. Promise
+you’ll never tell,” went on Mollie, “but there are
+two detectives here watching all the guests! I’d
+like to find the thief myself. I’d know Mrs.
+Cartwright’s butterfly anywhere.”
+</p>
+<p>
+There were noises at the tent door.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara heard Gladys’s high, querulous voice,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_176'></a>176</span>
+saying, coquettishly: “I don’t want my fortune
+told, Harry. I would much rather you told it to
+me any way.” But Mr. Townsend insisted.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Fly, girls—do, please! They are coming
+in!” said Barbara. “No; you can’t get out, but
+you must stay perfectly still behind this curtain,
+and not breathe a single word.”
+</p>
+<p>
+It was almost entirely dark in the gypsy tent,
+the only light coming from the burning pot of
+fire on the table. Barbara stooped low, when
+she opened the door to allow Harry, Gladys and
+the Countess Bertouche to come in.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It groweth late,” Bab began, croakingly.
+“Evil may come. No good fortunes fall between
+dusk and darkness. Beware!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys shuddered. “Let’s not go in,” she
+urged.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Harry Townsend only laughed. “Don’t
+let the old hag frighten you,” he retorted,
+lightly. “Here,” he turned to the gypsy and
+spoke in a voice no one of the girls had ever
+heard him use, “here, you old swindler, speak
+out! What kind of fate do you read for me in
+the stars?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara picked up the pack of dirty cards,
+and began to shuffle them slowly. An idea was
+revolving in her head. Dared she do it? But
+Barbara was a girl who was not easily daunted.
+</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_177'></a>177</span></div>
+<div class='figcenter' style='padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em'>
+<a name='i005' id='i005'></a>
+<img src="images/illus-177.jpg" alt="Harry Townsend’s Face Grew Livid." width="60%" title=""/><br />
+<span class='caption'>Harry Townsend’s Face Grew Livid.</span>
+</div>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_179'></a>179</span></div>
+<p>
+After a minute of silence she shook her head.
+“What I see I dare not reveal,” she whined.
+“All black, dark, dark mystery!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, stuff!” jeered Mr. Townsend. “Don’t
+try that dodge on me. Tell what you know.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara flung down the cards and blew three
+puffs into the smouldering pot of fire. Ashes
+and tiny flames shot up from it. She started
+back, then pointing a finger, she hissed: “Something
+is moving toward you, curving and coiling
+and twisting round you. Mercy!” she cried.
+“It is a green snake, and its fangs have struck
+into your soul!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend’s face grew livid. In a moment
+the look of youth vanished from his face,
+his lips turned blue, and his eyes narrowed to
+two fine points.
+</p>
+<p>
+The Countess Bertouche came forward.
+“Harry,” she said, “come away. You forget
+yourself. Don’t listen to such nonsense.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Harry!” thought Gladys to herself, angrily.
+“She certainly presumes on a short acquaintance!
+Harry, indeed!”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Barbara had not finished.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Stay!” she said, holding up a warning
+finger. “Another messenger appears. It is a
+beautiful, bright thing, sparkling and darting
+toward you. Why,” she added, quickly, “it is
+lighting on your coat. It has flown inside—a
+beautiful butterfly, born of summer time and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_180'></a>180</span>
+flowers. Or”—this time Barbara leaned over
+and whispered in his ear—“or it may be
+made of diamonds and come from a jeweler’s
+shop.”
+</p>
+<p>
+For an instant, Harry Townsend’s hand flew
+to his vest pocket. He rose, saying quietly to
+his companions: “Come away from here. Did
+you ever see such a stupid old fraud? A snake
+and a butterfly—a curious fortune indeed!”
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXVIII' id='chXVIII'></a>CHAPTER XVIII—A WORD TO THE WISE</h2>
+<p>
+Barbara’s suspicion was now a certainty.
+Another person might not have
+been much wiser from Harry Townsend’s
+behavior during the telling of his fortune.
+But Barbara’s eyes were keen. The
+thief the detectives were seeking, the “Raffles”
+who was bowing and smiling his way through
+Newport society was none other than “Harry
+Townsend.” How to prove it? That was another
+matter.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” said the other girls, appearing on her
+side of the tent, “what a string of nonsense you
+did put off on poor Harry Townsend. What on
+earth made you tell him about a butterfly and
+a snake? I suppose you had butterfly on the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_181'></a>181</span>
+brain, since we had just told you of the robbery.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“That is true,” assented Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth!” Barbara turned to her quickly. “I
+am tired of my job. I want to quit this fortune-telling
+business at once. Let’s desert and go
+up to Mrs. Cartwright’s room and change our
+clothes. Do hurry!” she urged, a little impatiently.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, all right, Bab,” Ruth agreed. She
+stared at Barbara curiously. What had come
+over her friend? Harry Townsend always
+seemed to have such a strange effect upon
+her.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was thinking. How could she find
+the detectives, to tell them of her suspicions,
+while Harry Townsend still had in his pocket
+the jewel he had stolen?
+</p>
+<p>
+“I want to ask you something, Mollie,” Bab
+announced, as the girls started for the house.
+“You’ll excuse a family secret, won’t you?”
+she asked of Grace and Ruth. “Mollie,” Bab
+whispered, “don’t speak out loud. Do you
+think you can discover who the two detectives
+are, and let me know as soon as I come downstairs?
+Don’t ask questions, please; only, I
+must know.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie shut her lips close together. “Yes, I’ll
+find out for you,” she promised.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_182'></a>182</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Half an hour later, as the guests were being
+served with supper under the trees, Ruth and
+Barbara made their appearance.
+</p>
+<p>
+“We just couldn’t keep away any longer,”
+they explained to their friends. “Oh, yes, we
+are feeling perfectly well again.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara called Mrs. Cartwright aside for a
+minute. “Is it true,” she asked, “that your
+diamond butterfly has disappeared?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright’s face clouded. “Yes,” she
+replied. “It has gone within the last hour or
+so. I had it fastened here on my dress with a
+long pin. If it was stolen by a guest, which I
+am coming to believe, then it was not such a
+difficult theft. I have been leaning over, laughing
+and talking, and any light-fingered—woman—or
+man—could easily have taken it out
+of my dress.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright shivered and turned pale, as
+she looked at the gay parties of people out on
+her lawn. “Isn’t it dreadful,” she said, plaintively,
+“to think that there may be a thief
+right over there among all my friends! But
+run along, now, child, and enjoy yourself. You
+and Ruth were the success of the afternoon.
+Everyone has asked me where I found my clever
+gypsies.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara wandered off alone. Before she had
+gone more than a few steps, Ralph Ewing
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_183'></a>183</span>
+joined her. “Please don’t come with me,
+Ralph,” she begged. “I want to find Mollie.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, why should that prevent my coming
+along, too?” Ralph asked. “I’d like to find
+Mollie myself. She hasn’t paid the slightest
+attention to me all afternoon.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t want to be horrid, Ralph,” Barbara
+protested, nervously, “but please let me find
+her by myself.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, certainly,” assented Ralph, walking
+quickly away.
+</p>
+<p>
+Over by one of the lemonade stands that
+had been deserted at supper time Bab found
+Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” she said, pulling her sister to one
+side, “do you see that tall, blond man, with
+the little, curly mustache? He is one of the
+detectives. I can’t find out where the other
+one is.”
+</p>
+<p>
+A little later Ralph Ewing, who was still
+strolling around by himself, felt his face flush,
+partly with wounded pride, partly with anger.
+Barbara was not talking to Mollie. She was
+standing some distance off from the other
+guests, having an earnest conversation with a
+man whom Ralph knew to be a stranger in
+Newport.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph was too proud to linger near them,
+since Bab had said so plainly she wanted none
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_184'></a>184</span>
+of his society. If he could have heard what she
+was saying he would have been even more
+horrified.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” Barbara promised, “if you will come
+somewhere near us, when we are all together,
+this evening, I will give you a signal to show
+you the man I mean. His name is Townsend.
+He looks very young, is slender and is of
+medium height. Suppose, when you see us, I
+bow my head slowly in the direction of the man
+I mean? If you understand me, you can return
+my bow. Can you search him before he leaves
+the grounds?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“No, miss.” The detective shook his head.
+“It would be impossible. He hasn’t the jewel
+on him now. If he’s the man we think he is, he
+is too smooth for that. He must have a confederate.
+If we search him here, and find no
+proof of his guilt, he will know all about us
+and our suspicions. Can’t you see, then, he
+would just clear out and leave us here to whistle
+for our pains?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes, I see,” said Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Thank you, miss, for telling us,” the detective
+continued. “I must say that emerald story
+sounds like the real thing. You’ve only guessed
+about the butterfly theft; but I think you’ve
+guessed right. Now we must go easy. If there
+is a Raffles, here in Newport, he is out for more
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_185'></a>185</span>
+plunder. He’ll make another bold attempt, and
+that will be our chance.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, I must go on back now to my friends,”
+murmured Barbara, uneasily. It seemed strange
+to be taken into confidence by the detective, as
+though she were in the same line of business.
+“I suppose you and the other detective can
+manage, now, to secure the thief. I would
+rather not have anything more to do with the
+matter.” Barbara gave a little shiver of repulsion.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, now, young lady,” protested the detective,
+“you mustn’t go back on us, just as
+the game commences. To catch a society thief
+we must have help from the inside. The best
+detective in the service can’t get on without it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Where have you been, Bab?” inquired Miss
+Sallie, anxiously, when Barbara joined her
+friends a few minutes later. “I was beginning
+to get uneasy about you. Mrs. Cartwright
+wants us to come into the house for an informal
+dance. Do you feel well enough to go? I don’t
+think you look very well, child.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend and Gladys came up at this
+minute. Harry had promised to take Miss
+Stuart indoors to watch the dancing. There was
+a curious, restless look in the man’s eyes, but his
+manners were as charming as ever.
+</p>
+<p>
+This was Barbara’s chance. She lagged behind the others,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_186'></a>186</span>
+and bowed her head slowly in
+the direction of Miss Sallie’s escort. A strange,
+blond man, with a curly light mustache, standing
+some distance off, returned her bow.
+</p>
+<p>
+All evening Ralph did not come near Barbara.
+He devoted himself to Grace, who was wise
+enough to guess that Bab and Ralph must have
+had a quarrel. But Barbara did not understand.
+Not having realized that Ralph had felt
+snubbed when she dismissed him a little while
+before, she supposed he had grown tired of her.
+</p>
+<p>
+To tell the truth, Barbara was dull. All the
+merry, sparkling fun had gone out of her for
+this one evening. Whether she danced, or
+talked or rested quietly, she saw Harry Townsend’s
+face as it had looked at her for a single
+minute in the gypsy tent. “I am not a coward,”
+thought Barbara, “but I shall have to be careful
+if he discovers I was the gypsy who told his
+fortune this afternoon.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was right.
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend knew there was just one person
+in Newport who suspected him of being a
+thief; this person must be put out of the way.
+The fine Raffles preferred not to use violence, but
+at any cost he must win.
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend had not recognized Bab in
+the gypsy tent, which served, for the time, to
+avert his suspicions from her. He believed she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_187'></a>187</span>
+had only arrived, when he met her with Miss
+Stuart late in the evening. Then who was the
+gypsy? Either Barbara had seen her, some
+time in the afternoon, and told her the story of
+the necklace, or there was some one else who
+believed he had had a part in the robberies. He
+must find out.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Gladys,” Harry Townsend said, “don’t let
+us dance all evening. I have not had any kind
+of chance to talk to you alone. Come out on the
+veranda with me, won’t you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys and Harry seated themselves on the
+front porch, whence they could look through an
+open window at the dancers.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Do you know Mrs. Cartwright very intimately,
+Gladys?” inquired Mr. Townsend.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no,” returned Gladys, pettishly. If
+Harry Townsend had brought her out on the
+veranda to talk about Mrs. Cartwright, then she
+might as well have stayed indoors. “Why do
+you ask?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend frowned, then put his hands
+before his eyes. Gladys was so silly. She had
+served to introduce him to her friends at Newport.
+Now, if he could only make her useful in
+other ways!
+</p>
+<p>
+“Are you angry?” Gladys asked after a moment,
+“What is it that you want to know about
+Mrs. Cartwright?”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_188'></a>188</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I don’t want to know anything about
+Mrs. Cartwright at all, Gladys. I am sorry I
+spoke of it, if the subject offends you. But I
+did feel a little curious to know where she got
+hold of the gypsies she had in the tent this afternoon.
+I thought you would be interested.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am interested, Harry,” declared Gladys.
+She was only a spoiled child, and could not help
+showing it. “But I am not a favorite of Mrs.
+Cartwright’s. It’s my delightful cousins that
+she adores—Mollie and Bab. I can ask one of
+them to inquire.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no,” drawled Harry, “it is not of
+enough importance for that.”
+</p>
+<p>
+For the next half hour Harry devoted himself
+to the whims of Gladys. He could see Barbara
+through the window, looking pale and tired.
+This gave all the more reason for believing that
+she had not recovered from the shock of her
+experience on the cliffs.
+</p>
+<p>
+The cleverest man will sometimes make a false
+move. Harry Townsend was tired of Gladys,
+weary of her whims and foolishness. Besides,
+she had served his purpose; he was almost
+through with her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Shall we take a walk, Gladys?” he asked.
+</p>
+<p>
+As they walked down the path toward the
+cliff, this up-to-date Raffles, whose fingers were
+more agile than a magician’s, pressed Gladys’s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_189'></a>189</span>
+hand for a moment. At the same instant, he
+slipped her jeweled bracelet into his pocket. “I
+don’t want the bauble,” he said to himself, “but
+she might as well be punished for not doing what
+I ask her.”
+</p>
+<p>
+At the same moment a blond man stepped out
+from among the bushes and asked Harry for a
+light for his cigarette.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Stuart and her girls were saying good-night
+to Mrs. Cartwright. Hugh Post and
+Ralph were to escort them home. As Barbara
+came down the steps with her wraps on, some
+one touched her on the arm.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss,” the detective whispered, “I know the
+man you pointed out to me; but I have got
+to see you again. Tell me how we can manage
+it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh,” said Barbara, hopelessly, “I don’t
+know. Miss Sallie will be so angry!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“You can’t quit us now,” the detective urged.
+“Why not come out in the morning, before any
+of your folks are up.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” agreed Barbara, quickly. She didn’t
+have time to refuse. Miss Sallie was coming
+toward her, and looked in surprise at Barbara’s
+strange companion. “Come on, child,” she
+said, “it is time you and Ruth were both in
+bed.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Down the street, two turnings to the right,”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_190'></a>190</span>
+Barbara heard a voice behind her whisper, as
+she turned away.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys was crying, as she made her way to
+Miss Stuart for comfort. “Miss Stuart,” she
+said, “I have lost my pearl bracelet. Mother
+told me it was too handsome for me to wear.
+Now she’ll be angry with me. I didn’t think
+it mattered if I wore it this one time. It was
+large, I suppose, and it slipped off my hand
+somewhere.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Never mind, Gladys,” advised Harry Townsend,
+coming up to her. “If it is stolen, the thief
+is sure to be caught.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why do you stare at us so, Barbara?” demanded
+Gladys, angrily. “I am sure you look
+all eyes.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I beg your pardon,” murmured Barbara.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXIX' id='chXIX'></a>CHAPTER XIX—“EYEOLOGY”</h2>
+<p>
+All night long Bab tossed and tumbled in
+her bed. Should she keep her appointment
+with the detective? About daylight
+she fell asleep and wakened with her mind
+fully made up. Whatever the danger, she was
+in for it now. A clever thief was abroad in
+Newport; circumstances had led to her discovering him;
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_191'></a>191</span>
+well, she would do what she could to
+bring him to bay.
+</p>
+<p>
+At six o’clock Barbara slipped quietly out of
+bed, without awaking Mollie, and stole noiselessly
+through the deserted halls of Mrs. Ewing’s
+great house. Not even the servants were about.
+</p>
+<p>
+At the appointed place she found waiting for
+her two detectives instead of one.
+</p>
+<p>
+“We’re wise to the thief,” said the larger,
+blond man, to whom Barbara had talked yesterday.
+“I never had my eyes off of him last
+night, after you pointed him out to me. I saw
+him slip a bracelet from a young lady’s arm out
+in the garden, just as coolly as you’d shake
+hands with a person. But it was no time to
+make a row then. I never let him know that I
+saw him. The fellow would have had a thousand
+excuses to make. I could see he was on pretty
+intimate terms with the young lady.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“The truth is, miss,” interrupted the other
+detective, whom Bab saw for the first time this
+morning, “we think you have given us the clue
+to a pretty clever customer. We’ve been looking
+for him before. He’s known to the service as
+‘The Boy Raffles.’ We tried to catch him two
+years ago when he played this same game at
+Saratoga. But he got off to Europe without
+our ever finding the goods on him. So you see,
+this time we’ve got to nail him. My partner
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_192'></a>192</span>
+and I,” the wiry little dark man pointed to
+the big blond one, “have been talking matters
+over and we believe this here ‘Raffles’ has got
+what we detectives call a ‘confed’ with him—some
+one who receives the stolen goods. So
+that’s why we want to ask your help. Have you
+any idea of anyone who could be playing the
+game along with him? We think he is giving
+the jewels to some one to keep in hiding for him.
+The gems have not been sent out of town, and
+we have made a thorough search of Mrs. Erwin’s
+house, where Townsend is staying. There
+is nothing there.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Could the young lady I saw him in the garden
+with last night be a partner of his?” asked
+the blond detective.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, my goodness, no!” cried Barbara, in
+horror. “She is my cousin, Gladys Le Baron.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now, that’s just it, miss. You can see we
+need some one like you, who’s on the inside, to
+keep us off the wrong track. Can you suggest
+anyone else?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was silent. Then she shook her
+head. “I don’t know of anyone now,” she said.
+“You’ll have to give me time to think and
+watch.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“All right, miss, and thank you. You can
+write a note to this address if you have anything
+to communicate.” One of the men handed her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_193'></a>193</span>
+a card with the number of a Newport boarding
+house on it. “My name is Burton,” said the
+big man, “and my assistant is Rowley. We
+both came up from the New York office, and
+we’re at your service, miss.”
+</p>
+<p>
+On the way home Barbara tried to make up
+her mind whether she ought to tell Miss Sallie
+what she was doing.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t think it best to tell her now,” she concluded.
+“She would only be worried and frightened
+to death. What is the good? Miss Sallie
+would be sure to think that girls did not hunt
+for jewel thieves in her day. And she’d probably
+think they ought not to hunt for them in
+my day,” Barbara confessed to herself, honestly.
+“I’ll just wait a while, and see how
+things develop. Now I am in this detective
+business, I might as well confess to myself that
+it is very interesting.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara walked slowly. “I wish Ruth would
+find out how things are going,” she thought to
+herself. “She is so shrewd and she already
+guesses I have something on my mind. But
+Ruth was so positive I was wrong about Harry
+Townsend, at Mrs. Erwin’s ball, that she would
+probably think I was wrong again. So the
+female detective will pursue her lonely way for
+a little while longer—and then, I just must tell
+some one,” Bab ended.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_194'></a>194</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie and the girls were coming down-stairs
+to breakfast, when Bab entered at the
+front door. Miss Stuart was plainly displeased
+with Barbara’s explanation. “I couldn’t sleep
+very well, Miss Sallie,” said Barbara, “and I
+went out for a walk.” “That is partly true,”
+she reflected, “but half truths are not far from
+story-telling.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, I must ask you, Bab,” said Miss Sallie,
+in firm tones, “not to leave the house again in
+the morning, unless some one is with you. I
+was most uneasy.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Didn’t Mollie give you the note I left on the
+bureau to explain where I had gone?” inquired
+Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mollie did not see the note until we were
+almost ready to come downstairs. Naturally,
+we did not understand your absence.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am so sorry, Miss Sallie,” cried Bab. “I
+never will do it again.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was beginning to understand Miss
+Sallie better since Ruth’s accident. She knew
+that her cold exterior hid a very warm heart.
+</p>
+<p>
+As for Miss Sallie, she finally smiled on Bab
+and gave her a forgiving kiss. “I could forgive
+Bab anything,” she thought to herself, “after
+her wonderful heroism in saving Ruth. I suppose
+I have to expect a girl of so much spirit to
+do erratic things sometimes.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_195'></a>195</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph kept his eyes lowered when he said
+good morning and hardly spoke during breakfast.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph is out of sorts,” his mother complained,
+“but, man-like, he won’t tell what is the
+matter with him.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Perhaps you are tired from the party last
+night, Ralph?” suggested Mollie. Then Ralph
+laughed a mirthless laugh. “No, I am not tired,
+Mollie,” he replied.
+</p>
+<p>
+Yet all through breakfast he did not once
+speak to Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Remember,” said Grace, “that our crowd
+and just a few other people are invited over to
+Mrs. Cartwright’s to-night. She is going to
+have a porch party, and we are to play the
+famous game ‘eyeology’ that she was talking of
+to Gladys the other day. Do you know what she
+means?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Nobody at the table had ever heard of it.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I begged Donald to tell me,” Grace added,
+“but he declares he is as much in the dark about
+it as the rest of us, and Mrs. Cartwright simply
+says, ‘wait and see!’”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I suppose,” said Miss Sallie, “that you children
+never intend to rest again. I should think
+that Mrs. Cartwright would be perfectly used up
+from so much entertaining.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Aunt Sallie,” pleaded Grace, “we shall
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_196'></a>196</span>
+rest well enough when we are back in sleepy old
+Kingsbridge. There is too much doing in Newport.
+And, you know, we’ve only about a week
+longer to stay. What a wonderful time we have
+had!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Let’s see what we have ahead of us,” pondered
+Mollie. “The only especially big things
+we know about are the tennis tourney and the
+ball after it. Then Miss Ruth Stuart and Mr.
+Hugh Post are to win a silver cup, in order to
+spread more luster upon the reputation of the
+automobile girls at Newport. Bab helped pull
+Ruth out of an abyss! The two girls held up
+a burglar! Ruth is a famous tennis champion!
+Only you and I are no good, Grace. What can
+we do for our country?” finished Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nothing at all, dear!” laughed Miss Sallie,
+and the rest of the party. “Much as I admire
+these two clever lassies, I am very glad to have
+my other two girls of a more peaceful and quiet
+variety, or my hair would certainly turn whiter
+than it is now, if that were possible.” Miss
+Stuart touched her snow-white hair, which was
+very handsome with her delicate skin and bright
+color.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now I insist,” she said, “that you girls have
+a quiet day if you are going out again this evening.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“May I have a row on the bay with Ralph?”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_197'></a>197</span>
+asked Barbara. “Have you forgotten, Ralph,
+that you invited me several days ago?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am sorry, Barbara,” Ralph answered,
+quietly, “but I had forgotten it. If you will excuse
+me, I have something else on hand for today
+that I must attend to. Perhaps you will go
+with me some other time,” he proposed, without
+any enthusiasm.
+</p>
+<p>
+“All right, Ralph,” Bab nodded. “Of course,
+I do not mind. We did not have a real engagement,
+anyway.” “He won’t let me make up with
+him,” Bab thought. “I wonder why he is so
+angry?”
+</p>
+<p>
+At five o’clock Barbara came down on the
+veranda, dressed for the evening. She spied
+Ralph walking alone down the garden path,
+which was arched with trellises of crimson and
+pink rambler roses. There were several seats
+along the walk, and it had formed a favorite retreat
+for the girls ever since they had arrived at
+Mrs. Ewing’s home.
+</p>
+<p>
+Perhaps another girl than Barbara would not
+have tried again to make friends with Ralph,
+after his refusal to take her boating in the morning;
+but Bab was so open-hearted and sincere
+that she could not bear a misunderstanding.
+She was fond of Ralph, he had been kind to her,
+and his manner toward her had changed so suddenly
+that she felt she must have done something
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_198'></a>198</span>
+to wound him. Bab did offend people, sometimes,
+with her quick speeches and thoughtlessness,
+but she was always ready to say she was
+wrong and to make amends.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph!” she called. “Ralph!” The boy
+was obliged to stop and turn round, as Barbara
+was hurrying after him.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I want to talk to you, please,” she said, coaxingly.
+“You are not too angry with me to let
+me speak to you, are you?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have not said I was angry with you, Miss
+Thurston,” replied Ralph.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now, Ralph!” Barbara put her hand
+lightly on his sleeve. “You know you don’t call
+me Miss Thurston. We decided weeks ago it
+was silly for us to call each other Miss and Mister
+when we were such intimate friends. I want
+you to do me a favor. Will you take me over to
+Mrs. Cartwright’s to-night? Donald and his
+guest, ‘the freshman,’ are coming for Grace and
+Mollie. Ruth, of course, is going over with
+Hugh, and I could go with them, but I want to
+talk to you. I can’t say what I have to say to
+you now, because already the girls are calling
+me. Please say you will take me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s eyes were so pretty and pleading
+that Ralph felt his anger already melting. Yet
+Ralph’s feeling toward Barbara was not only
+anger. It was a much more serious thing, a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_199'></a>199</span>
+growing sense of distrust. But he answered:
+“Of course, Bab, I shall be delighted to take
+you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara and Ralph let the rest of their friends
+start ahead of them. They wanted to have their
+walk alone.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie had pleaded fatigue, and remained
+at home. “Besides, children,” she explained,
+“I am much too old to take any further interest
+in games, ‘eyeology,’ or any other ‘ology.’”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph and Barbara walked in silence down the
+street for several minutes. Then Bab spoke.
+“Tell me, Ralph, what is the matter? If you
+were angry with a man you would tell him what
+the trouble was, if he asked you. It is not fair
+not to be open with me because I am a girl. If
+you think you are being more polite to me by not
+telling me why you are angry, then I don’t agree
+with you. I think you are acting a whole lot
+worse.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph continued to go on in moody silence.
+</p>
+<p>
+“All right, then, Ralph,” said Barbara; “I
+can’t ask you any more questions, or beg your
+pardon, when I don’t know what I have done to
+offend you. Only I am sorry.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, it isn’t that you have offended me, Bab,”
+Ralph burst out. “Do you suppose I would act
+like such a bear if you had just thrown me down,
+or some little thing like that, when we have been
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_200'></a>200</span>
+such jolly good friends before? I didn’t like
+your sending me off yesterday, when you went
+to look for Mollie, because—because——”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Go on, Ralph,” insisted Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Very well, then, Bab; I was angry and hurt
+because, if you did join Mollie, you couldn’t have
+stayed with her a minute. I saw you, just afterwards,
+holding a long conversation with a
+strange man.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, Ralph,” argued Bab, “was that such
+a dreadful offense? I am sure I should not have
+been angry with you, if you had talked to any
+number of strange women.” Bab’s eyes were
+twinkling. She had made up her mind that she
+wanted a confidant. Here was Ralph, the best
+one she could have.
+</p>
+<p>
+“That’s not all,” Ralph continued, “I did not
+mean to be an eavesdropper, but I was standing
+just behind you and I could not help overhearing
+that strange man make an appointment to meet
+you this morning. Say, Bab,” Ralph turned
+toward her, all his anger gone, “don’t do things
+like meeting that man this morning without telling.
+It’s not nice, and I’ve thought you the
+nicest, most straightforward girl I ever knew.
+If there is anything between you and that fellow,
+why should it be a secret? A girl can’t
+afford to have secrets, except with other girls.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But I want to have a secret with <em>you</em>,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_201'></a>201</span>
+Ralph,” rejoined Barbara. “Now listen, while
+I tell you everything. I have never talked to
+you about the scene in the conservatory, the
+night of Mrs. Erwin’s ball, though I did appreciate
+what you did to help me out when I made
+that strange request of Harry Townsend. I was
+not crazy. I saw Harry Townsend steal Mrs.
+Post’s emerald necklace. Ralph,” Barbara’s
+voice was now so low that he had to bend over
+to hear her, “Harry Townsend is not what the
+people here think him. He is a professional
+thief, and a dangerous one.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Whew!” whistled Ralph. “What did you
+say?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Then Barbara told him the story of the three
+thefts, from the beginning, and her own part in
+discovering them. “The detectives are on the
+lookout now, Ralph,” she added, “but they want
+me to keep a watch from the inside.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, you are a clever one, Bab!” declared
+Ralph. “Look here, I am glad you told me this.
+I appreciate it a whole lot, and I will not mention
+it to anyone until you tell me I may. But,
+remember one thing. I shall be on the watch,
+too, and it’s Miss Barbara Thurston I’ll be
+watching. That Townsend is a dangerous
+rogue. I’ve known there was something crooked
+about him from the first. Oh, it’s easy to say
+that, now, after what you have told me. I am
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_202'></a>202</span>
+not pretending I knew his special game. Only I
+knew he was not our sort. He is a whole lot
+older than he pretends to be, for one thing.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph,” sighed Barbara, “do you think
+there is any way I could warn Gladys against
+Harry Townsend?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph shook his head. “Not any way that I
+know of. She would just snub you hard, if you
+tried. Even if you dared to tell her the truth
+she would go right off and tell that Townsend
+fellow. She’s been pretty hateful to you, Bab.
+I don’t see why you should care.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, but I do care,” retorted Bab. “She has
+been horrid and stuck up, but she hasn’t done
+Mollie and me any real harm, and she is my cousin.
+Her father is my mother’s brother. Uncle
+Ralph has never been very fond of us, nor has
+he come to see us very much, but he looks after
+mother’s money. I don’t suppose,” wound up
+Barbara, thoughtfully, “he would do us any
+wrong. I shouldn’t like Gladys to get into
+trouble.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“What has kept you children so long?” asked
+Grace, as Ralph and Barbara appeared on Mrs.
+Cartwright’s veranda. Then she squeezed
+Bab’s hand and whispered, so no one else could
+hear, “Made it up, Bab?” Barbara nodded,
+“yes.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright was heard speaking. “Sit
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_203'></a>203</span>
+down, everyone, over there where Jones has
+placed the chairs for us. Professor Cartwright,”
+she bowed to show she meant herself,
+“will now explain to his pupils, or his guests,
+the principles of the science of ‘eyeology.’ Human
+character is expressed in the human eye—our
+love, our hate, our ambitions, everything.
+But can we read the characters of people about
+us as we look into their eyes? No! Why not?
+Because the rest of the face confuses our attention.
+Instead of the steadfast beacon of the
+eye, we see the nose, the mouth, the hair,
+all the other features, and so we fail to understand
+the story the eye would tell us if it were
+alone. To-night I intend to instruct you in the
+proper understanding of ‘eyeology.’”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright changed to her usual manner
+of speaking. “Don’t you think it would be
+amusing to make a test? Here Ruth,” laughed
+the hostess, “be my first pupil. Go into the
+drawing-room and wait there until I send for
+you. I want to find out how many of your
+friends you will know, when you see only their
+eyes.”
+</p>
+<h2><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_204'></a>204</span><a name='chXX' id='chXX'></a>CHAPTER XX—RUTH WAKES UP!</h2>
+<p>
+A curious sight met Ruth’s gaze when
+she was invited to return to the veranda.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Goodness!” she laughed. “It is just as well
+I am not afraid of ghosts. I’ve come upon a
+whole army of them all at once!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Cartwright had the porch darkened, except
+for a single row of bright lights. Her visitors
+stood with their backs against the wall, a
+sheet drawn up on a level with their eyes.
+Another white cloth covered their heads, drawn
+down so low over their foreheads that even the
+eyebrows were concealed. By standing on
+books and stools the eyes were all on a level.
+</p>
+<p>
+“No giggling,” said Mrs. Cartwright severely
+to the ghostly set in front of her, “or Ruth can
+guess who you are by the tones of your voices.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth looked confused. No signs of her
+friends remained, save a long row of shining
+eyes, black, blue, brown and gray, even the color
+being hard to distinguish in the artificial light.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now, mademoiselle,” said Mrs. Cartwright,
+still speaking in the voice of a professor, “behold
+before you an opportunity to prove your
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_205'></a>205</span>
+skill in the remarkable science of ‘eyeology.’ I
+have a piece of paper and a pencil in my hand.
+As you gaze into each pair of eyes, you are to reveal
+that person’s identity. I will write the
+names down as you tell them to me. When you
+have gone through the whole list, the curtain
+shall be lifted. Then we shall discover how
+many of your friends you know by the character
+of their eyes. After Ruth has finished, anyone
+else who wishes may try his or her skill.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“My dear Mrs. Cartwright,” said Ruth,
+laughing and peering in front of her, “I tell you,
+right now, that I shall not guess a single name
+correctly. To tell the truth, I never saw any
+of these eyes before. It’s horrid to have them
+all staring and blinking at me. I am frightened
+at them all! Besides, I can’t see. May I have
+a candle and hold it up in front of each person
+as I pass along?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” said Mrs. Cartwright; “only kindly
+keep at a safe distance. We don’t want to burn
+up any of our ghosts.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth started down the line. She had the
+privilege of staring as long and as hard as she
+liked into each pair of eyes.
+</p>
+<p>
+The company was strangely silent. They
+were really interested in the idea, and knew that
+any talking would spoil the whole experiment.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’ve mixed the babies up, Ruth,” said Mrs.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_206'></a>206</span>
+Cartwright, “so you needn’t think you can guess
+anyone by his choice of a next-door neighbor.
+No social preferences have been allowed in this
+game.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth tried the first pair of eyes. She looked
+at them intently. Then she turned round to
+Mrs. Cartwright. “I am sure I never saw those
+eyes before. You have introduced some
+stranger since I left the porch.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“There is not a person here whom you do not
+know well,” Mrs. Cartwright assured her.
+“Don’t try to slip out of your task.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth kept staring. The eyes in front of her
+drooped, and soft, curling lashes for an instant
+swept over them. A little wistful look lay in
+the depths of them, when the lids lifted. “Why,
+it’s Molliekins! How absurd of me not to know
+her! I was about to guess Ralph!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mistress Ruth must have guessed wrongly
+next time, for there was a burst of laughter,
+afterwards, that made the white sheets shake.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Be quiet,” warned Mrs. Cartwright sternly.
+</p>
+<p>
+So Ruth passed on down the line. There
+were about twenty people in the game, but Ruth
+knew all of them very well. Sometimes her
+guesses were right, sometimes they were wrong.
+Once or twice she had to confess herself beaten,
+and “gave up” with a shake of her head at Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_207'></a>207</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth had nearly finished her task. Only a
+few more pairs of eyes remained to be investigated.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, I am nearly through,” she said gayly.
+“If anyone thinks I have had an easy time of it,
+he has only to take my place and try the next
+turn. No more mistakes now, for Ruth Stuart!
+Who is my next victim?” Ruth held her candle
+above her head and looked up.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gleaming at her through the darkness lit by
+the flare from her candle-light was a pair of eyes
+that were strangely familiar.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth stared at them. They belonged to none
+of the friends she knew—yet, somewhere, she
+had seen them before.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth looked and looked. The eyes shifted
+and narrowed. Ruth still held her candle aloft;
+but she had forgotten where she was. Where
+had she seen those eyes before?
+</p>
+<p>
+“Look straight ahead of you,” said Mrs.
+Cartwright to the gleaming eyes, “how can
+Ruth guess when your eyes are closed?” But
+again the eyes shifted.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am going to find out to whom those eyes
+belong, if I stay here all night,” said Ruth,
+speaking to herself.
+</p>
+<p>
+The eyes glinted, narrowed and shone like two
+fine points of steel.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh!” said Ruth. She staggered a little and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_208'></a>208</span>
+the candle shook in her hand. “I thought I
+knew those eyes, but I don’t. I must be mistaken.
+I beg your pardon, Mrs. Cartwright,”
+said Ruth, “but I am tired. I don’t think I can
+go on. Will some one take my place?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth’s expression was so peculiar that Mrs.
+Cartwright came up to her. “You foolish
+child!” she said, putting her hand on Ruth’s
+shoulder, “I believe this game is making you
+nervous. Who is it sitting there with the eyes
+that Ruth remembers, yet will not reveal to us?”
+she called.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Harry Townsend, Harry Townsend!” the
+people sitting closest to him answered.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Harry,” said Mrs. Cartwright, “you come
+and take Ruth’s place. Let’s see if you are a
+better ‘eyeologist’ than she is.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Before Harry Townsend had slipped out from
+under his strange covering, Ruth turned to Mrs.
+Cartwright. “Excuse me for a minute,” she
+begged. “My labors as an optician have used
+me up. I will be back in a little while.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara crept from under the sheet, and,
+without speaking to anyone, ran after Ruth,
+who was on her way upstairs to Mrs. Cartwright’s
+boudoir.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth, dear, what on earth has happened to
+you? Are you sick?” asked Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I am worse than sick, Bab!” muttered
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_209'></a>209</span>
+Ruth, with a shudder. “Don’t ask me to talk
+until we get upstairs.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls closed the dressing-room door.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I must be wrong, Bab, yet I don’t believe I
+am. I saw to-night the same eyes that glared at
+us from behind a black mask the time of that
+horrible burglary at New Haven, when, for a
+little while, I thought you were killed. I have
+never said much about it. I wanted to forget
+and I wanted everyone else to forget it, but
+those eyes have followed me everywhere since.
+To-night——”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab took Ruth’s hand.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, Bab,” groaned Ruth, “what does it
+mean? I saw those eyes again to-night and they
+were Harry Townsend’s. I wanted to scream
+right out: ‘Burglar! robber!’ But I could not
+make a scene. I came upstairs, hardly knowing
+how I reached here.”
+</p>
+<p>
+One of the maids knocked at the door. “Do
+the young ladies wish anything? Mrs. Cartwright
+sent me up to inquire,” she said.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nothing at all. Tell her we are all right,
+and will be down in a few minutes.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth,” said Barbara, “I want to tell you
+something. If I do, can you pretend that nothing
+has happened, and be perfectly composed
+for the rest of the evening? Now don’t say
+‘yes’ unless you feel sure.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_210'></a>210</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth looked straight at Barbara, “Yes; tell
+me what it is,” she urged. “I am beginning to
+guess.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“The eyes you saw to-night were Harry
+Townsend’s, and he is a burglar and a thief.
+I did not know he was the robber at New Haven;
+I have only suspected it. Now I feel sure, and
+you recognized him to-night. He is a more dangerous
+character than I had thought, and he
+must not know that you suspect him.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“He shall know nothing from me,” said Ruth,
+coolly. Her color had come back, now that she
+knew the truth. “It was only the shock that
+unnerved me. Why haven’t you told me before,
+Bab?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I was afraid you’d ask me that, Ruth, dear,
+and I want to explain. You see, I have believed
+Harry Townsend a thief ever since I saw him,
+with my own eyes, take the necklace from Mrs.
+Post’s neck at Mrs. Erwin’s ball; but you were
+positive I was wrong, and asked me not to talk
+about it. So I didn’t know what to do. I have
+only watched and waited. To-night I told Ralph
+what I knew.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara then explained to Ruth the whole
+story, and the part the detectives had asked her
+to play in Townsend’s apprehension. “What
+shall I do, Ruth?” she ended.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Come on downstairs, Bab,” said Ruth.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_211'></a>211</span>
+“Some one may suspect us if we don’t. Do,
+Bab. We are going on to play the game, just
+as you have been playing it by yourself. We
+will say nothing, but we will do some hard
+thinking; and, when the time comes, we shall act!
+To tell you the truth, if you will never betray me
+to Aunt Sallie, I think playing detective beats
+nearly any fun I know.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Eyeology” was no longer amusing the
+guests when the two girls came downstairs; indeed,
+the company had scattered and was talking
+in separate groups. Ruth and Bab joined Mollie
+and Grace, who were standing near Mrs. Post
+and their new acquaintance, the Countess Bertouche.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Girls,” asked Mrs. Post, “would you like to
+join the Countess Bertouche and myself Saturday
+afternoon? We are going to explore old
+Newport; the old town is well worth seeing.
+The countess tells me this is her first visit to
+Newport, so, before she goes back to Paris, I
+want her to see that we have a little of the dignity
+that age gives.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Why,” and Mrs. Post turned smilingly to
+the little group, “Newport boasts even a
+haunted house! It is not occupied, and I have
+the privilege of showing you over it. A story
+has been written about the old mansion. Here
+a young woman lived who loved an officer in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_212'></a>212</span>
+Rochambeau’s fleet, when the gallant French
+sailor came over to these shores. But the sailor
+loved and sailed away, never to return. So the
+lady pined and died; but her presence still
+haunts the old house. You can feel her approaching
+you by a sudden perfume of mignonette.
+After we see all the sights of the town, we
+shall go to the old house at about dusk, so that
+we may have a better chance to discover the
+‘spirit lady.’”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post’s invitation
+with enthusiasm. Barbara and Ruth had
+to decline regretfully.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You see, Mrs. Post,” Barbara explained,
+“Ruth and Hugh have to practice their tennis,
+every hour they can manage, until the tournament
+on Monday. Ruth has become a little out
+of practice since her accident, and must work
+hard at her game for the next few days. Ralph
+and I have promised to help by furnishing the
+opposition.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’ll excuse Mollie and me from playing
+audience, won’t you, Ruth?” asked Grace. “We
+are going home so soon after the tournament is
+over that we can’t resist Mrs. Post’s invitation.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Barbara,” said Ruth, coming into Bab’s
+room, just as that young woman was about to
+step into bed, “can you imagine anyone whom
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_213'></a>213</span>
+Harry Townsend can be using as a confederate?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Sh-sh!” warned Bab. “Here comes Mollie.
+Don’t say anything. I haven’t the faintest
+idea.”
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXXI' id='chXXI'></a>CHAPTER XXI—THE CAPTURE OF THE BUTTERFLY</h2>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend was not aware of
+the chain of suspicion that was tightening
+around him; but he was too
+clever not to use every precaution. Once or
+twice he had come across the small, dark detective
+who was making investigations in Mrs. Erwin’s
+house—the large, blond man, named Burton,
+had kept in the background—but knowing
+that the servants had been under suspicion, he
+supposed that the search was being made on
+their account. He knew of no act of his own
+that could possibly implicate him in the robberies.
+He came and went among Mrs. Erwin’s
+guests, and was on a friendly footing with their
+most fashionable friends at Newport. He had
+seen no one else during his visit, as the whole
+world was privileged to know.
+</p>
+<p>
+The only act that the detective, Rowley, was
+able to report to his superior was that Mr.
+Townsend mailed his own letters. In Mrs. Erwin’s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_214'></a>214</span>
+household it was the custom of her guests
+to place all their mail in a bag, which the butler
+sent to the postoffice at regular hours; but Mr.
+Townsend preferred to mail his own letters.
+This act occasioned no comment. Other guests,
+writing important business letters, had done the
+same thing.
+</p>
+<p>
+“And Townsend has mailed only letters,”
+continued Rowley in making his report. “Not
+a single package, even of the smallest size, has
+gone out through the postoffice. The jewels are
+still in Newport.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Townsend had already begun to discuss
+with his hostess the possibility of his soon having
+to leave her charming home. “I have presumed
+on your hospitality too long,” he said to
+Mrs. Erwin, several times. “When the famous
+Casino ball is over I must be getting back to
+New York.”
+</p>
+<p>
+To Gladys he explained: “My dear Gladys,
+my holiday time must end some day. I shall
+be able to see you often when you go back to
+Kingsbridge. I am going into a broker’s office
+as soon as I get back to New York. I have been
+loafing around in Europe for the last two years,
+but I have decided that, even if a fellow has
+money enough to make him fairly comfortable,
+work is the thing for the true American!”
+</p>
+<p>
+To-day Harry Townsend walked to the post-office alone.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_215'></a>215</span>
+He carried three letters. One of
+them was to a steamship company engaging
+passage to Naples for “John Brown.” The
+steamer was due to sail the following Wednesday.
+The other two letters had New York addresses.
+When they arrived at their first destination,
+they were to be remailed to other addresses.
+A tall, blond man, who happened to
+be lounging in the postoffice at the time Mr.
+Townsend entered it, observed that the young
+gentleman was anxious to know when the letters
+would be delivered in the city.
+</p>
+<p>
+The letters posted, Townsend walked over to
+the Casino courts, where Bab and Ruth were
+playing tennis. He had promised Gladys to
+join her there. He still had some investigations
+he desired to make. But he walked slowly.
+Clever fingers must be directed by a clever
+brain, whether their work be good or evil. No
+matter how well he knew he could depend on his
+wonderful fingers to do their share of the work,
+the “boy Raffles” always thought out carefully
+the plan of his theft before he tried to execute it.
+</p>
+<p>
+On Monday night, at the Casino tournament
+ball, he planned to make his final theft. This
+accomplished, he could leave Newport feeling he
+had reaped a rich harvest, even in the summer
+season, when harvests are not supposed to be
+gathered.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_216'></a>216</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend, alias half a dozen other
+names, had seen the jewel he most coveted for
+his final effort. It was a diamond tiara belonging
+to one of the richest and most prominent
+women in Newport. His schemes were carefully
+laid. He was waiting for Monday night.
+</p>
+<p>
+At about three o’clock, on this same Saturday
+afternoon, Mrs. Post and the Countess Bertouche
+stopped in a small automobile for Grace
+and Mollie. They had no one with them except
+the chauffeur.
+</p>
+<p>
+It took them some time to drive through the
+old town of Newport. The ladies descended at
+the old Trinity church, to investigate it, and the
+girls were much interested in the ancient jail.
+There, they were told, was once kept a woman
+prisoner who complained because she had no
+lock on her door.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Grace were not ardent sightseers.
+It was really the thought of the haunted house
+that had brought them on their pilgrimage.
+But Mrs. Post and the countess insisted on poking
+their way down the Long Wharf, with its
+rows of sailors’ houses and junk shops. Both
+girls were dreadfully bored, and secretly longed
+to be on the tennis courts with Bab and Ruth.
+Yet the thought of the haunted house buoyed
+them up.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Post was a collector. If you have ever
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_217'></a>217</span>
+traveled with one, you will understand that it
+means hours and hours of looking through dirt
+and trash in order to run across one treasure
+that a collector regards as “an antique.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Even when Mrs. Post was through with her
+search she decided that it was not yet sufficiently
+late for them to visit the haunted house. “I
+told the caretaker not to meet us there until
+a quarter of seven. We shall want only a few
+minutes to go through the old place; but, of
+course, we must see it under conditions as
+romantic as possible.” Mrs. Post then ordered
+the chauffeur to take them for a drive before
+driving them to the haunted house.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Grace were unusually quiet, so
+they noticed that the Countess Bertouche had
+little to say during the afternoon. She seemed
+tired and nervous. When Mrs. Post asked her
+questions about her life abroad, after she married,
+the countess replied in as few words as
+possible.
+</p>
+<p>
+At exactly the appointed time the automobile
+delivered its passengers before the door of the
+house they sought. It was an old, gray, Revolutionary
+mansion, three stories high, with a sloping
+roof and small windows with diamond-latticed
+panes. It was quite dark when the girls
+entered the ghostly mansion, following Mrs.
+Post and the countess, who were led by a one-eyed
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_218'></a>218</span>
+old caretaker carrying a smoky lamp.
+There was just enough daylight shining through
+the windows to see one’s way about, but the
+corners of the vast old house were full of terrifying
+shadows.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Let us not stay too long, Mrs. Post,” urged
+the countess. “I am not fond of ghosts, and I
+am tired.” But Mrs. Post was the kind of sight-seer
+who goes on to the end, no matter who lags
+behind. She led the party up the winding steps,
+peering into each room as they went along. The
+house was kept furnished with a few rickety
+pieces of old furniture.
+</p>
+<p>
+When they reached the second floor, the caretaker
+announced that the middle bedroom was
+the sleeping apartment of the haunted lady.
+The little party searched it curiously. There
+was no sign of the ghostly inhabitant; no perfume
+of mignonette.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I don’t see anything unusual about this
+room,” said the countess, suppressing a sigh,
+“except that it has the most comfortable chair
+in the house. I shall sit here and rest while you
+take the two girls over the other part of the
+building.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The three left her. The woman dropped into
+a chair, and a worn, nervous look crossed her
+face.
+</p>
+<p>
+As Mollie ascended the attic stairs behind
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_219'></a>219</span>
+Grace she called out, “If you will excuse me,
+Mrs. Post, I shall go down and join the countess.”
+</p>
+<p>
+An imp of mischief had entered Mollie.
+Wrapped up in her handkerchief, carefully concealed
+in her purse bag, was a handful of
+mignonette, which she had gathered from
+Mrs. Ewing’s garden only that morning.
+Mollie meant to impersonate the “spirit lady.”
+Suddenly she had decided that the countess
+was the best one upon whom she could try her
+joke.
+</p>
+<p>
+Creeping down the stairs as quietly as a
+mouse, Mollie stole into the back room, adjoining
+the one where the countess sat. Had she
+looked in, she would hardly have played her
+naughty trick. The woman who sat there was
+a very different person from the gay society
+lady they had been meeting everywhere in the
+last few weeks. This woman looked weary and
+frightened. But Mollie was thinking only of
+mischief.
+</p>
+<p>
+Silently she took the mignonette out of her
+bag and crushed it in her hand. There was a
+sudden fragrance all about her. Then she
+slipped her hand slyly through the open doorway
+and dropped her bunch of mignonette into
+the room where the countess was sitting. There
+was no response. The countess had not detected
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_220'></a>220</span>
+the odor of the flowers and Mollie was deeply
+disappointed.
+</p>
+<p>
+Faintly, however, the countess began to be
+aware of the fragrance of a subtle perfume; but
+she was thinking too deeply of other things to be
+conscious of what it was. Besides, the growing
+darkness was making her nervous.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie gave up in despair. Her effort with
+the mignonette had plainly proved a failure.
+The countess refused to be frightened by the
+suggestion of the ghost.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Countess!” said Mollie, appearing suddenly
+in the open doorway. She certainly expected
+no result from this simple action; but the countess,
+who thought she was entirely alone, was
+dreadfully startled. She rose, with a short
+scream of surprise, and started forward. Her
+foot catching in a worn old rug, she stumbled.
+Mollie was by her side in a second, trying to help
+her to rise.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am so sorry to have frightened you!” the
+child said penitently. “Wait a minute, you
+have dropped something.” Mollie picked up a
+square chamois skin bag. In her excitement
+and embarrassment she caught hold of the
+wrong end of it. Out of it tumbled a purse, and—Mollie
+saw it as plainly as could be, though it
+was nearly dark in the room—Mrs. Cartwright’s
+diamond butterfly!
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_221'></a>221</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Child!” said the countess, angrily. “See
+what your nonsense has done! This is the bag
+that I wear under my dress to carry my money
+and jewels. It is always securely fastened. I
+suppose, falling as I did, I must have broken the
+catch.” She picked up the things quickly and
+thrust them into her bag. It was so dark in the
+room she supposed Mollie had not seen them.
+Then, holding the bag tightly in her hand, she
+went on downstairs, Mollie after her, and joined
+Grace and Mrs. Post, who had preceded them to
+the automobile.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, did anyone see the ghost?” asked Mrs.
+Post. “You, Mollie, my child, look as if you
+had seen something.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no,” denied Mollie; “but I am afraid I
+frightened the countess. I threw some mignonette
+in the room, trying to make her think I
+was the ghost, but she didn’t notice it. Then,
+when I spoke to her to tell her it was time to
+come downstairs, she was dreadfully startled.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Mrs. Post ordered the chauffeur to drive home
+first, as she and the countess had a dinner engagement;
+the two girls being later taken to
+Mrs. Ewing’s.
+</p>
+<p>
+The two women had barely left the car before
+Mollie put her lips near Grace’s ear and whispered:
+“Grace Carter, the Countess Bertouche
+has stolen Mrs. Cartwright’s butterfly! I saw
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_222'></a>222</span>
+it with my own eyes. She dropped it out of a
+bag on the floor, when she fell down.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Goose!” smiled Grace. “What are you
+talking about? Don’t you suppose a countess
+may have a jeweled butterfly of her own?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Not like that one,” retorted Mollie, firmly.
+“I would know it among a thousand. You
+needn’t believe me, but it’s as true as that my
+name is Mollie Thurston. I am going to tell
+Ruth and Bab, as soon as I get home. I know
+they will believe me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I do believe you, only I am so dumfounded
+I can’t take it in,” said Grace.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What on earth is the matter with you, Mollie?”
+asked Bab of her sister, as soon as they
+had finished dinner. “You look awfully excited.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” whispered Mollie, “call Ruth and
+Grace right away. Don’t let anyone else come.
+Let’s go down to the end of the garden. I have
+something I must tell you, this minute!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Grace had already found Ruth, and the two
+came hurrying along. “No, Ralph,” ordered
+Grace, “you can’t come. This is strictly a girl’s
+party.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” began Mollie, “you will believe me,
+won’t you? I do know what I am talking about.
+This afternoon I saw the Countess Bertouche
+with Mrs. Cartwright’s diamond butterfly. She
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_223'></a>223</span>
+dropped it, right before my eyes, out of the same
+kind of bag that Miss Sallie uses to keep her
+jewelry in. What can it mean?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth!” gasped Bab. “Bab!” uttered Ruth.
+</p>
+<p>
+The two girls looked at each other in silence.
+Then Bab exclaimed: “It took my Mollie to
+make the discovery, after all!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“What are you talking about, Barbara
+Thurston? What discovery have I made?”
+demanded Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth, do you think I had better tell the
+girls?” asked Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth nodded, and Barbara related the principal
+facts of the jewel robbery. She also told
+the girls that she and Ruth suspected that Harry
+Townsend had been the robber who frightened
+them at New Haven. “You remember,” Bab
+continued, “he was a guest at the hotel the same
+night we were, and left early the next morning.
+If he had one of the rooms under us, he could
+have climbed down the fire escape and into his
+own room before anyone could discover him.”
+</p>
+<p>
+But Bab kept to herself that she and Ruth
+were expecting another burglary, and that she,
+Bab, was to play a part in bringing the thief to
+bay. Mollie and Grace would both be terribly
+frightened at the thought, but it was just as well
+that they knew enough not to be surprised at
+what was to follow.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_224'></a>224</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara went upstairs and wrote a note to the
+address in Newport that the detectives had given
+to her. It told the story just recited by Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ralph,” requested Barbara, sauntering
+slowly through the hall, “will you mail this at
+once with your own hands? Little Mollie has
+done the deed, after all. She has found the
+woman who receives Harry Townsend’s stolen
+goods!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ralph took the letter with an exclamation of
+surprise and hurried off to the post.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXXII' id='chXXII'></a>CHAPTER XXII—THE TENNIS TOURNAMENT</h2>
+<p>
+The girls were dressing for the tennis
+tournament. The games were to begin
+at noon, and continue until six o’clock.
+Three hours later the annual tennis ball took
+place at the Casino.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You know, Ruth,” said Bab, fixing a pin in
+her friend’s collar, as they stood before the mirror,
+“that the really most important thing in our
+whole stay at Newport is your winning the silver
+cup in the tournament to-day.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh!” cried Ruth. “Don’t be quite so energetic,
+Bab. You jabbed that pin right into my
+neck. I believe I am going to win. I can’t
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_225'></a>225</span>
+imagine a good soldier going into battle with the
+idea that he is going to be beaten. Why, an
+idea like that would take all the fight out of a
+man, or a girl either, for that matter. No, Hugh
+and I are going to do everything we possibly can
+to come out winners. But, if we do, Bab, Hugh
+and I will think we owe it to you and Ralph.
+You have been such trumps about keeping us up
+to the mark with your fine playing.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nonsense, Ruth!” retorted Bab, decidedly.
+“All Ralph and I ask this afternoon is a chance
+to do some shouting for the winners. What
+time is the tourney on for the ‘eighteen-year-olds’?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Just after lunch; about two o’clock, I believe.
+Bab, are you nervous about to-night?”
+Ruth asked. “Do you think there is going to be
+a scene at the ball? The detectives will be
+watching Mr. Townsend closely. They suspect
+that he means to make another big attempt,
+don’t they?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I really don’t know, Ruth,” Barbara answered.
+“I had a short note from Mr. Burton
+this morning. I meant to show it to you, but
+I did not have a chance. It simply said:
+‘Thanks. The game is ours. Keep a sharp
+lookout!’ But I want to forget the whole burglary
+business to-day. Tennis is the only really
+important thing. Hurrah for Miss Ruth Stuart,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_226'></a>226</span>
+the famous girl champion!” cried Barbara, then
+suddenly sobered down. The two girls had been
+in the wildest spirits all day. Indeed, Miss Sallie
+had sent them into the same room to dress, in
+order to get rid of them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“What is the matter, Bab?” said Ruth, turning
+round to look into her friend’s face.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I’ve a confession to make to you. In my
+heart of hearts, way down underneath, I am
+kind of sneakingly sorry for Harry Townsend.
+I know he is a rogue and everything that’s
+wicked. When I think of him in that way I am
+not sorry for him a bit. Then the thought comes
+of the man who has been around with us for
+weeks, playing tennis with us and going to our
+parties, and I can’t quite take it in.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I know just what you mean, Bab,” replied
+Ruth, reflectively. “Don’t you think it must be
+the same idea as Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde?
+Everyone has a good and a bad side. We can’t
+help being sorry for the good part of a person,
+when the evil gets ahead of it. But, then, you
+and I have never really liked even the good side
+of Harry Townsend much. So I wonder why we
+both feel sorry.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“It’s the woman in us, I suppose,” sighed
+Bab.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth, come in here and let me see how you
+look,” called Miss Sallie. She had sent up to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_227'></a>227</span>
+New York for a special tennis costume for Ruth.
+The suit was a light-weight white serge skirt
+with an embroidered blouse of handkerchief
+linen, and the only color was Ruth’s pale blue
+necktie and the snood on her hair, which was
+carefully braided and securely fastened to the
+back of her head.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gowns were an important part of tournament
+days; indeed, the New York Horse Show seldom
+shows more elaborate dressing than does
+the annual tennis tournament at the Newport
+Casino.
+</p>
+<p>
+Mollie and Barbara were the proud owners of
+two new gowns made by their mother for this
+special occasion. Bab’s frock was a simple yellow
+dimity, and she wore a big white hat with a
+wreath of yellow roses round it.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’re a baby blue, Mollie, aren’t you?”
+asked Grace standing and admiring her little
+friend. Grace had on a lingerie frock of lavender
+muslin and lace, and a big hat trimmed in
+lavender plumes.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well,” said Mollie, making her a low bow,
+“lucky am I to be dressed in blue, if it means I
+may sit near so lovely a person as you. Fortunately,
+lavender and blue make a pretty color
+combination.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Stuart had a box for the tennis tournament.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_228'></a>228</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+When she and the girls entered it, they found
+it nearly filled with roses. There were no cards
+except a single one inscribed: “For the Automobile
+Girls,” for Miss Sallie was as much an
+automobile girl as any of the others. The girls
+selected the bunches of flowers that seemed most
+suited to their costumes. Miss Sallie and Grace
+immediately decided on the white roses, Mollie
+chose the pink ones, looking in her pale blue
+dress and hat like a little Dresden shepherdess.
+</p>
+<p>
+In some one’s garden a yellow rose bush of
+the old-fashioned kind must have bloomed for
+Bab. “Why!” uttered Miss Sallie, holding up
+Bab’s flowers, from which streamed a long yellow
+satin bow, “I have not seen these little yellow
+garden roses since I was a girl. See how
+they open out their hearts to everyone! Is that
+like you, Bab? Be careful how you hold them,”
+teased Miss Sallie; “they have a few thorns underneath,
+and must be gently handled.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth half suspected Hugh had been the
+anonymous giver of the flowers, as soon as she
+discovered her own bunch. They formed a big
+ball of pale blue hydrangeas, tied with Ruth’s
+especial shade of blue ribbon.
+</p>
+<p>
+“See!” said Ruth, laughing, and holding them
+up for the other girls to admire. “Hugh was
+not discouraged by the fact that blue flowers are
+so hard to find. I wouldn’t have dreamed that
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_229'></a>229</span>
+hydrangeas could look so lovely, except on the
+bush.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth sat in the front of the box, waiting for
+her name to be called for her tennis match.
+She was one of the most popular visitors in
+Newport; nearly everyone who passed her
+box stopped to wish good luck to her and to
+Hugh.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I have seen a good many sights, in my day,”
+said Miss Sallie, gazing around through her
+lorgnette, “but never one more beautiful than
+this.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The grass of the wide lawns was so perfectly
+trimmed that it looked like a carpet of moss.
+Over the green there swept a crowd of laughing,
+happy people, the women in frocks of every delicate
+color. Even the sober note that men’s
+clothes generally make in a gay throng was
+missing to-day, for the boys, young and old, wore
+white flannels and light shirts that rivaled the
+dresses of the girls in the brightness of their
+hues.
+</p>
+<p>
+Tier upon tier of seats rose up around the
+tennis courts; before the first game was called
+every one was filled.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Give me my smelling salts, Grace,” said Miss
+Sallie, when Ruth and Hugh were called out to
+commence their game. “I shall not look at
+them until the set is over.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_230'></a>230</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Miss Sallie!” declared Ralph, who had
+quietly slipped into Ruth’s place next Barbara.
+“I am ashamed of you for not having more
+courage. I am certain they will win. We shall
+have two silver cups in this box in the next hour
+or so.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Over the heads of the great crowd Barbara
+could see the Countess Bertouche. She was
+standing near Mr. and Mrs. Erwin’s box, in
+which sat Governor and Mrs. Post, Gladys and
+Harry Townsend.
+</p>
+<p>
+For the first time in her acquaintance with
+them, Barbara saw Harry Townsend leave his
+seat and walk across the lawn with the countess.
+Evidently she had made some request of him.
+Not far off Barbara could also see a tall, blond
+man, with a curly, light mustache, who followed
+the pair with his eyes and then moved nonchalantly
+in their direction.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Harry Townsend was back with his
+friends in a minute. He had only taken the
+countess to her place, so that she need not be
+alone in the crowd.
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth and Hugh were easy winners. They
+had no such tennis battle as they fought the day
+they earned the right to represent their crowd
+over the heads of Ralph and Barbara.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Hurrah! Hurrah! Hurrah!” shouted the
+crowd.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_231'></a>231</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth and Hugh were standing near each other
+in front of the judges’ stand, where the prizes
+were awarded.
+</p>
+<p>
+With a low bow, Mr. Cartwright presented
+Ruth with a beautiful silver cup and to Hugh
+another of the same kind. On the outside of
+each cup was engraved a design of two racquets
+crossing each other, with the word “champion”
+below.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara and Ruth had given up all their interest
+and thought to the tennis match during
+the day; but Ruth having won her cup, both
+girls’ minds turned to the jewel robbery.
+</p>
+<p>
+Except for the note Bab had received in the
+morning, she had had no sign nor signal from
+the two detectives. The Countess Bertouche,
+apparently as calm and undisturbed as any of
+the other guests, had been an interested watcher
+of the tournament.
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls were late in arriving at the ball.
+Miss Stuart had insisted on their resting an hour
+after dinner, and the affair was in full swing
+when they entered the beautiful Casino ballroom.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’re just in time for the barn dance, all
+of you,” called Mrs. Cartwright. “We are going
+to be informal for the next half hour, at
+least. Come, Ruth, I insist on you and Hugh
+leading off. You are our special tennis champions.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_232'></a>232</span>
+Wasn’t it hard luck that I didn’t win,
+when my husband was a judge?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Thurston,” said Harry Townsend,
+turning suddenly to Barbara, “won’t you dance
+with me?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s hands turned cold as ice and her
+cheeks suddenly flamed. She hated to dance
+with a man whom she knew to be of the
+character of Harry Townsend. Yet how could
+she refuse?
+</p>
+<p>
+He looked at her coolly, and Bab saw a mocking
+smile curl the corners of his lips. But he
+was as smooth and courteous as usual.
+</p>
+<p>
+“He is the prince of actors,” thought Bab.
+“I was a goose to let him see how I felt. I will
+show him that I know how to act as well as he
+does, when I am forced to it.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara accepted the invitation quietly.
+They took their places with the two long rows of
+dancers extending down the whole length of the
+great ballroom.
+</p>
+<p>
+The barn dance, with its merry, unconventional
+movement, its swinging music and grace,
+was generally the greatest joy to Bab. But tonight,
+in spite of her pretense at acting, her feet
+lagged. She dared not look into the face of her
+partner. He was as gay and debonair as usual.
+</p>
+<p>
+When the dance was over, Townsend asked
+Bab to walk out on the lawn with him.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_233'></a>233</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+As Ruth saw Harry and Barbara walk out at
+the door, she turned suddenly to the stranger
+with whom she was talking. “Will you,” she
+said to him, “tell Ralph Ewing I would like to
+speak to him at once? I want to tell him something
+that is very important. Please forgive
+my asking you, but I must see him. I will wait
+right here until you find him.” It was five—ten
+minutes, before Ralph was found.
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend meant to discover what Barbara
+Thurston knew. She was a young girl,
+still at school. He was a man approaching
+thirty, with a record behind him of nearly ten
+years of successful villainy.
+</p>
+<p>
+Would Barbara betray herself? Would she
+“give the game away?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Thurston,” began Harry Townsend,
+politely, “as I shall be going away from Newport
+very soon, I want to have a talk with you.
+I must confess, that, since the night of Mrs.
+Erwin’s ball, I have been very angry with you.
+No high-minded man could endure the suggestion
+you made against my honor, when you
+asked Hugh Post to search me, so soon after his
+mother’s jewels had disappeared. But time has
+passed, and I do not now feel so wounded. Before
+I go away, would you mind telling me why
+you made such an accusation against me?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Mr. Townsend,” said Barbara, biting her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_234'></a>234</span>
+lips, but keeping cool and collected, “is it
+necessary for you to ask me why I made such an
+accusation? If it is, then, I beg your pardon.
+The jewels were not in your possession, certainly,
+when the search was made. I own I was
+most unwise.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then you withdraw the accusation?”
+Townsend was puzzled. He had expected Barbara
+to defy him, to insist he had stolen the
+jewels, that she had seen him in the act of doing
+it. He was wise enough to know that, if he
+could once make her angry, she would betray
+what she knew. He had still to discover who
+the gypsy was that had so strangely revealed to
+him her knowledge of his crimes.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s heart was beating like a sledgehammer.
+</p>
+<p>
+There was a slight movement in the nearby
+shrubbery. Harry Townsend wheeled like a
+flash. Barbara turned at the same instant. It
+was only a stranger who had wandered across
+the lawn and mistaken the path, but Barbara
+knew that his presence there meant eternal
+vigilance.
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Mr. Townsend,” she said, “the music is
+commencing. I would rather return to the ballroom.
+I have an engagement for this dance.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Harry Townsend realized he must manage to
+entice Barbara to a more secluded part of the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_235'></a>235</span>
+Casino grounds before he could have a satisfactory
+talk with her.
+</p>
+<p>
+“No,” he said, “we will not go back yet, I
+want to talk to you. We must understand each
+other better, before the night is over. Come!”
+He spoke in a voice as cold and hard as ice and
+took Barbara by the wrist.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara could not jerk away or call for help.
+She decided it was best to follow him.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You are not running away, are you, Miss
+Thurston?” It was Ralph’s voice calling. “I
+am sure Mr. Townsend will excuse you, as you
+have a previous engagement with me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, certainly,” said Harry Townsend, pleasantly,
+“sorry as I am to lose Miss Thurston’s
+society.” As Barbara and Ralph walked away,
+he bit his lips savagely. Then he decided to follow
+the tall man he had seen moving about in
+the shrubbery. It might be that the man suspected
+something. But Townsend found him
+ten minutes later in the smoking-room, quietly
+moving around among the men.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” Ruth had a chance to whisper to her
+later in the evening, “is it all right with you? I
+was desperately frightened when I saw you disappear
+outside with Harry Townsend. Have
+you noticed something?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“What?” said Bab, gazing searchingly about
+her.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_236'></a>236</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Only,” Ruth answered, “that the Countess
+Bertouche is not here this evening.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Both realized that the first card in the game
+had been played.
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXXIII' id='chXXIII'></a>CHAPTER XXIII—BROUGHT TO BAY</h2>
+<p>
+One other person had noticed, with even
+greater interest than had Ruth and
+Bab, that the Countess Bertouche had
+failed to appear at the ball. That person was
+the jewel thief, Harry Townsend. He was filled
+with a silent rage. How dared she fail him this
+night of all others?
+</p>
+<p>
+All the fellow’s plans were carefully laid.
+The woman with the jewels he coveted sat in the
+ballroom; large and slow witted, she would not
+be quick either to discover her loss or to raise
+an alarm. And Harry Townsend was on
+friendly terms with her. Once she decided to
+leave the brightly lighted halls for the darkness
+of the grounds outside, lifting the tiara would be
+an easy matter. But Townsend never kept the
+jewels he stole in his possession ten minutes
+after their theft. How was he to get rid of
+them to-night?
+</p>
+<p>
+It was after midnight. Many of the guests
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_237'></a>237</span>
+had withdrawn to the veranda; the lawns were
+filled with people walking about. Now Harry
+Townsend stood back of a row of lights that cast
+a deep shadow. He was talking to some acquaintances.
+The women were elegantly
+gowned, and one of them wore a beautiful
+diamond tiara.
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab was standing alone in the door of the
+girls’ dressing-room. Miss Sallie had called
+her in, after supper, to smooth her hair. The
+other girls had been with her, but they had returned
+to join the dancers. Bab was resting
+and thinking. Mollie and Grace knew nothing
+of what she and Ruth had on their minds.
+The younger girls knew that Harry Townsend
+and the Countess Bertouche were
+suspected as thieves, but they did not know
+that the detectives were on the alert, and that the
+arrest might come to-night.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was wondering if she ought to tell
+Gladys Le Baron what she knew. After all,
+Gladys was her cousin; and, as she had told
+Ralph, the other day, Bab felt that there ought
+to be a certain loyalty among people of the same
+blood, even when they were not fond of one
+another.
+</p>
+<p>
+To-night Gladys Le Baron had been more conspicuous
+with Harry Townsend than ever before.
+Not only was she seen with him constantly, but she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_238'></a>238</span>
+wore an air of conscious pride,
+as if to say, “See what a prize I have won!”
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys had passed Bab two or three times
+during the evening, but had pretended not to see
+her. Now she was coming in at the dressing-room
+door.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Gladys,” said Bab, timidly.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys turned to her haughtily. “I would
+rather,” she said, “that you did not speak to
+me. We cannot have much to say to each other.
+Harry Townsend told me”—Gladys spoke
+so passionately and with such deep anger in her
+tones that Barbara stared at her aghast—“of
+the accusation you made against him. He made
+me promise not to speak of it, but I will speak
+of it to you. I want you to know that I shall
+never forgive you as long as I live, and that I
+shall get even with you some day. You are
+jealous and envious of me because we have more
+money, and because Harry Townsend likes me.
+I want you never to talk to me.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“O Gladys!” said Barbara. She was angry
+and hurt, but she was more frightened by the
+real feeling her cousin showed. Did she care
+for Mr. Townsend so much? Gladys was nearly
+eighteen, and Bab knew that ever since she was
+a girl of fourteen she had been brought up to
+think she was a young lady.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Gladys,” said Bab, firmly, “listen to me!
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_239'></a>239</span>
+Be quiet. I cannot tell you what I wish to say
+in this ballroom, to-night, among all these people,
+but I have something to tell you that you
+simply must know. Do you understand? Come
+to my house in the morning, and don’t fail.”
+Barbara’s tones were so new and commanding
+that Gladys could only stare at her in silent
+amazement.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes,” she said, meekly; “I will come.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab’s eyes were burning, and her cheeks
+stung with the shame of the scene between herself
+and Gladys. In order to be alone in the
+fresh air, she slipped out of the dressing-room
+door which opened into a side yard. This yard
+had a double hedge of althea bushes which led
+into the back part of the Casino grounds. At
+the same instant that Bab left the dressing-room
+door, a man passed her on the other side of the
+hedge. He was going into the back part of the
+garden.
+</p>
+<p>
+The show grounds of the Casino were in a central
+court. In the rear, back of the kitchens,
+was a long arbor covered with heavy grapevines.
+The man Bab followed slipped into this arbor.
+</p>
+<p>
+When Barbara glanced into it a second later—she
+dared not move quickly, for fear of making
+a noise—there was no human figure in sight.
+“He has gone on down through the arbor and
+slipped over the fence,” she thought to herself.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_240'></a>240</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+She was feeling her way along, trying to keep
+in the center path. The night was dark, and
+there were few stars overhead.
+</p>
+<p>
+Suddenly, Bab gave a little shriek of terror
+and started back. Crouching in the darkness
+was a man. His back was turned to Barbara,
+and, if the darkness was not deceiving her, he
+was digging in the earth.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Barbara’s shriek roused him. “You,
+again!” he cried. He leaped at her, and, before
+she could call for help, his hand covered her
+mouth, and her head was pressed back.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t make a noise,” another voice said
+quietly. “My instructions were not to make a
+scene.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Townsend felt his own arms seized and drawn
+down to his sides. The big, blond man, who had
+interrupted his tête-à-tête with Barbara earlier
+in the evening, was again by his side. A smaller,
+dark man stood near him.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Well, we have got you this time with the
+goods on you, or pretty close to you,” said the
+smaller detective, striking a match and looking
+down at his feet. Just near where they stood,
+only partially concealed by the dirt, which had
+been hastily dug up, something brilliant flashed
+and sparkled.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Did you think, Mr. Townsend,” laughed Detective
+Burton quietly, “that you were the only
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_241'></a>241</span>
+clever person in Newport? These jewels you
+have just stolen are hardly worth the risk you
+ran. You might get about twenty-five dollars
+for the lot. I suppose you didn’t know, since
+it has become the fashion to have a jewel thief in
+Newport, it has also become the fashion to wear
+paste jewels.” The man held the tiara in his
+hand. “But I will restore them to the rightful
+owner,” he said. “Mrs. Oliver informed me
+they were gone, two minutes after you slipped
+them out of her hair.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Townsend had not spoken. “Don’t,” he now
+said, with a shudder, “put those handcuffs on
+my hands. I will go quietly. I see the game is
+up—thanks to you!” He turned to Barbara
+with a snarl. But Ruth and Ralph were standing
+close by her side.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara was much shaken and frightened by
+her encounter, but she tried to summon a little
+of her old spirit. “You do me too much honor,
+Mr. Townsend,” she answered quietly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Where is the Countess Bertouche?” asked
+Townsend stolidly.
+</p>
+<p>
+“She is ready to leave Newport with you to-night.
+Only we persuaded her to get ready a
+little earlier; indeed, we called upon her this
+afternoon, while she was at the tournament, and
+were waiting for her when she got back. She
+had two or three little trinkets in her possession,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_242'></a>242</span>
+which she was holding for you, that we wished to
+return to their rightful owners. The lady will
+be able to travel as soon as you are. We think
+it best not to have any excitement in Newport.
+By the way,” went on the detective—the three
+young people were listening breathlessly—“the
+lady is not such a cool customer as you are.
+She confessed that she was not a countess,
+but a poor newspaper woman out of a job,
+whom you enticed down here to help you. She
+explained that you had been mailing letters of
+instruction to her by sending them on to New
+York and having them remailed to her here. A
+poor business it has been for both of you, I am
+thinking.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ruth,” said Barbara, quickly, “it’s too
+awful! Let us go back to Miss Sallie!”
+</p>
+<h2><a name='chXXIV' id='chXXIV'></a>CHAPTER XXIV—GOOD-BYE TO NEWPORT</h2>
+<p>
+Early next morning Ruth and Barbara
+made full confession to Miss Sallie.
+Mollie and Grace were not surprised,
+for they had been told enough of the circumstances
+to expect the outcome. But imagine
+Miss Sallie!
+</p>
+<p>
+“You mean to tell me, Ruth and Bab,” she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_243'></a>243</span>
+gasped, dropping limply into the nearest chair,
+“that Harry Townsend is the jewel thief, the
+Newport Raffles? Why, you girls have walked
+with him, talked with him, played tennis with
+him! And Barbara has suspected him all the
+time! My heavens!” she wailed, in despair.
+“Did it never dawn on you, Barbara, that you
+might have been killed?”
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Stuart was overcome. “Ruth Stuart,
+my own niece, do you mean to tell me that you
+lately discovered that ‘this Townsend’ was the
+thief who tried to rob us in New Haven? Why
+was I not told at once? But then, I am grateful
+I was not. And you, Mollie, fourteen-year-old
+Mollie, you found out this wretch’s accomplice,
+and discovered Mrs. Cartwright’s stolen butterfly!
+I never would have thought it of you!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But I didn’t mean to, Miss Sallie. It was
+all an accident. I am awfully sorry for that
+poor woman,” answered Mollie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Nonsense, child!” said Miss Sallie. “I am
+grateful enough that such dangerous people are
+out of the way.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The girls were standing in a circle round her.
+“Come to my arms,” she demanded of Grace.
+“Thank heavens, child, you have not turned
+detective, and can be relied on to keep me company!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But it was just as much Grace’s fault as it
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_244'></a>244</span>
+was mine that I discovered the butterfly,”
+argued Mollie, who could not see that Miss Sallie
+was joking. “She was with me when I found
+it out.” Everyone joined in the laugh at
+Mollie’s expense.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Some one to see you in the library, miss,”
+announced Susan, the parlor maid. “She says
+she’d like to see you alone, first, and she’d
+rather not give her name.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Then you are not to go one step, Barbara
+Thurston,” said Miss Stuart in the voice the
+girls knew had to be obeyed. “There is no telling
+who it is waiting for you, nor what her intentions
+may be toward you. You’d go if you
+thought you’d be murdered the next minute. I
+never saw a girl like you. I will go myself,”
+announced Miss Sallie.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no,” said the girls, all pulling together
+at her skirts.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie had to pause. “If you think,
+young ladies,” she said, calmly, “that, because
+I have not unearthed a jewel robber, nor attacked
+a burglar in the dark, I am therefore
+more of a coward than a parcel of silly girls,
+you are vastly mistaken. Let go of me!” Miss
+Sallie marched majestically forward.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Susan, <em>I</em> will go down.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, no’m,” pleaded Susan, giggling. She
+had no idea what all the fuss was about, but she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_245'></a>245</span>
+knew it was most unnecessary. “Please’m, let
+me whisper to you. It’s only that Miss Gladys
+Le Baron, but I promised not to give her name.
+I am sure she means no harm, miss. She looks
+like she was worried and had been crying a bit,
+ma’am.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“It is all right, Barbara,” said Miss Sallie.
+“From what Susan tells me you may go
+downstairs alone.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Bab had not the faintest idea who could be
+waiting for her. In all the excitement, she had
+entirely forgotten that she had told Gladys Le
+Baron to come to see her this morning without
+fail. As soon as she opened the library door,
+she remembered. “Good morning,” she said,
+coldly.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Gladys flung her arms about her neck and
+burst into a torrent of tears. “I know it all,
+all!” she said. “Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin
+called me into their rooms last night, and told
+me everything. I had expected Harry Townsend
+to take me home from the ball, and, when
+he didn’t put in his appearance, I was so angry
+and behaved so badly Mrs. Post said I had to be
+told at once. Mrs. Erwin wanted to wait until
+morning. O Bab, I didn’t sleep a wink last
+night!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am sorry,” said Bab, but she didn’t
+really show a great deal of feeling.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_246'></a>246</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Bab,” Gladys went on, “I simply can’t believe
+it! And to think you knew it almost all the
+time! Mrs. Post says I have to believe it, now,
+because the whole story is out. She says she
+was completely deceived, too, and can understand
+why I thought Townsend was a gentleman.
+Father seemed to think he was all right. He
+told us all about his being an orphan, and who
+his rich relations were. Mrs. Erwin is so good.
+She just says she is sorry for me, and hasn’t uttered
+a word of blame. Only think, I brought
+that dreadful wretch to her house, and I am responsible
+for all the trouble! O Barbara, I
+can never face it!” Gladys wiped her eyes
+again with her handkerchief, which was already
+wet with her tears.
+</p>
+<p>
+“I want to go home to mother to-day, but Mrs.
+Erwin says I have to stay with her a little while
+longer. She says that, if I rush right off now,
+if I disappear the very same day Harry Townsend
+and that woman leave, people will believe
+there is more between us than there really is.
+There wasn’t anything exactly serious, though I
+did like him. I am sure I shall never hold up
+my head again.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I wanted to warn you sooner, Gladys; believe
+me, I did,” answered Barbara; “but I
+knew you wouldn’t listen to me, and would not
+believe a word I said.”
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_247'></a>247</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“I know, Barbara,” said Gladys, humbly.
+“I have been a horrid stuck-up goose. I know,
+now, if you hadn’t seen him steal the necklace
+at Mrs. Erwin’s, we might never have found out
+who the thief was. Then I don’t know what
+dreadful thing might have happened to me, if I
+had gone on seeing him and never understood
+his true nature. Do you think he could have
+stolen my bracelet?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I know he did,” Bab answered.
+</p>
+<p>
+“The horrid, hateful thing!” cried Gladys,
+with a fresh burst of tears. “Barbara, I want
+to ask you a favor. Will you beg Ruth to let
+me go back to Kingsbridge in the automobile
+with you? I suppose I ask you because I have
+been more hateful to you than to anyone else. I
+know if you will forgive me the other girls will.
+Ruth will do anything you ask her.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“But I can’t ask Ruth such a favor as that,
+Gladys,” argued Barbara. “There wouldn’t be
+room in the car, for one thing.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, I could sit on the little seat and I would
+be as nice and give as little trouble as I possibly
+could, if you will only ask her. I somehow feel
+that if you girls will stick by me, now, other
+people will not think so badly of me. They will
+know I have been a goose, and have been dreadfully
+deceived by Harry Townsend, but they’ll
+understand that I never meant any wrong, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_248'></a>248</span>
+am not really bad. You see, Bab, you and Mollie
+are my cousins. Everyone is sure to find out
+you helped to expose the awful villain; so,
+if I am seen with you now, it will show that you
+take my part, and that you knew I had only been
+deceived.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t you think it is a good deal to ask of
+me, Gladys?” said Barbara, speaking very
+slowly. She was thinking of every snub, every
+cruel thrust Gladys had given her since they
+were children.
+</p>
+<p>
+Gladys did not answer at first. Then she
+shook her head, and rose to go. “Yes, Barbara,”
+she said; “I know I don’t deserve a bit
+of kindness at your hands. I have been perfectly
+hateful to you, always. Good-bye.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh, stay, Gladys,” begged Bab, penitent in
+an instant. “I didn’t mean that. Of course
+we will all stand by you. Indeed, I shall ask
+Ruth if you may go back in the automobile
+with us, and I am sure, if Miss Stuart thinks
+there is room enough, Ruth will be delighted to
+have you. She is always the dearest, most
+generous girl in the world,” said Bab, her face
+glowing with the enthusiasm she always felt in
+speaking of Ruth.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Now,” she continued, “do come on upstairs
+and take off your hat. You must stay to lunch
+with us. Oh, no; you needn’t be afraid of Miss
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_249'></a>249</span>
+Stuart. She won’t be unkind to you; she’s a
+perfect dear! She’ll just be awfully sorry for
+you, when you tell her how badly you feel.
+Come on, Gladys.” Bab took hold of her hand.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Won’t you call Ruth down first?” urged
+Gladys. “I feel too much ashamed to go right
+on up there among all of you.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Ruth and Bab, between them, persuaded
+Gladys to go to their rooms. To their surprise,
+Mistress Mollie was the one to be appeased. She
+was not so ready to kiss and make up as Bab
+had been, yet even Mollie’s “hard” little heart
+softened when she saw what a changed and
+chastened Gladys the girls brought upstairs with
+them.
+</p>
+<p>
+“You’ll see I am going to be different,”
+Gladys said to Bab, “and if ever there’s a
+chance for me to prove how I appreciate your
+being so kind to me now, I shall do it. Of
+course, I don’t expect you to have much faith
+in me yet.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Miss Barbara Thurston is requested to
+spend her last day in Newport as the guest of
+honor of Governor and Mrs. Post on board their
+yacht, the ‘Penguin,’ which is at this instant
+awaiting her answer outside in Narragansett
+Bay,” said Ruth, with a flourish of a letter
+she held in her hand and a low bow to
+Barbara.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_250'></a>250</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“Goose!” shot Barbara at Ruth. “But are
+we all invited for a sail? How jolly!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“I am no goose, madam,” retorted Ruth. “I
+mean what I say. Read this.”
+</p>
+<p>
+She handed Barbara a letter which Miss
+Stuart had received from Mrs. Post only a few
+minutes before, and which read:
+</p>
+<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
+<span class='sc'>My Dear Miss Stuart</span>,
+</p>
+<p style='margin-left: 2em;margin-right: 2em;'>
+We want, in some quiet fashion, to show our appreciation
+of, and thanks to, the little girl who so patiently and
+cleverly kept her own counsel, and so materially aided in
+the discovery of the jewel thief. I feel that I did not do her
+justice. Governor Post and I both believe that it is to her
+wit and courage that I owe the return of my emerald necklace.
+I have talked matters over with Hugh, and, with
+your consent, I should like to give a luncheon, in her honor,
+on board the yacht at one o’clock to-morrow. We will
+spend the afternoon sailing in the bay. Only our intimate
+friends will be invited and we feel that no party could be
+complete, at Newport, without the presence of “The Automobile
+Girls.”
+</p>
+<p style='text-align:right; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; margin-right:2em;;'>Faithfully yours,</p>
+<p style='text-align:right; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; margin-right:2em;;'><span class='sc'>Katherine Post</span>.</p>
+<p>
+“What larks!” cried Barbara, blushing with
+pleasure. “Has Miss Sallie said we could go?”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Certainly she has,” rejoined Ruth. “I told
+Hugh so at once.”
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Columbia,&nbsp;the&nbsp;gem&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;ocean,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The&nbsp;home&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;brave&nbsp;and&nbsp;the&nbsp;free,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The&nbsp;shrine&nbsp;of&nbsp;each&nbsp;patriot’s&nbsp;devotion——<br />
+</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_251'></a>251</span></div>
+<p>
+The young people were in the bow of the yacht
+when the music commenced. “Why, Hugh,”
+Bab whispered to him in an undertone, “have
+we a band on board? How perfectly delightful!”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Young Miss America,” Hugh answered,
+“you needn’t think, for one minute, that this
+party on the ‘Penguin’ is going to enjoy any
+ordinary entertainment to-day. The band is not
+half. Just you wait, and see all the remarkable
+things that are to take place on this blessed boat
+excursion.”
+</p>
+<p>
+Earlier in the day, when Ruth and Grace first
+came aboard, they passed through the salon on
+their way to the upper deck. Grace caught hold
+of Ruth’s sleeve and drew her back to whisper
+to her: “Has it ever occurred to you that Harry
+Townsend might have stolen your fifty dollars
+that disappeared after we spent our first day on
+the yacht? I have been thinking that he must
+have been dreadfully hard up, or he never
+would have tried the robbery at New Haven, or
+have stolen such a small sum from you afterwards.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Yes, I have thought about it,” said Ruth,
+shaking her head, with a forlorn gesture.
+“Isn’t it too dreadful? Let’s forget all about
+him to-day.”
+</p>
+<p>
+The luncheon was announced promptly at one.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_252'></a>252</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+“‘The Automobile Girls,’ including Miss
+Sallie, will kindly stay on deck until they are
+summoned,” called Mrs. Post, sweeping on
+ahead, followed by her other guests.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie and the girls waited in some excitement.
+The sun was shining gayly on the
+deck of the little ship, which sailed through the
+water like a white bird. All the flags were
+flying in Barbara’s honor, as the governor
+explained, when she came on board.
+</p>
+<p>
+Suddenly Hugh’s smiling face appeared at
+the open door. “Come in, now,” he requested.
+</p>
+<p>
+Miss Sallie and the girls marched into the
+long salon dining-room, while the band played
+“Liberty Bell.”
+</p>
+<p>
+In the center of the luncheon table, raised on a
+moss-covered stand, was a miniature automobile.
+In it sat five dolls wearing automobile
+veils of different colors and long dust coats.
+Two of the dolls were blondes, the other two were
+brunettes. But the stateliest and handsomest
+doll of the lot had soft, white hair and reclined
+against a violet cushion. A pale blue flag flew
+over the car. It bore the inscription: “The
+Automobile Girls—Long May They Flourish!”
+</p>
+<p>
+At either end of the table stood Hugh’s and
+Ruth’s silver cups, won at the tennis tournament.
+</p>
+<p>
+As Miss Sallie and the four girls took their
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_253'></a>253</span>
+places, Hugh raised one cup, his mother the
+other. “We will drink from these loving
+cups,” he said, “to the health of our guests
+of honor, ‘The Automobile Girls.’” He then
+passed the cups, filled with a fruit punch, around
+the table.
+</p>
+<p>
+At the close of the luncheon, Hugh again rose
+to his feet.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Ladies and gentlemen,” he announced, “I
+am going to make a speech.”
+</p>
+<p>
+“Don’t do it, Hugh,” laughed Ralph.
+</p>
+<p>
+“All right, Ralph,” said Hugh; “I won’t.
+Barbara,” Hugh leaned over to attract her attention,
+and Barbara turned a rosy red,
+“here’s a souvenir of Newport for you. I
+guess it’s a gift from us all.” He motioned to
+his friends around the table and handed to Bab
+a small green velvet box. “For the girl who is
+always on the watch,” he ended.
+</p>
+<p>
+Barbara’s eyes were full of tears. They
+came partly from embarrassment, but most of
+all from pleasure. Inside the velvet case was
+a tiny gold watch, set in a circle of small
+emeralds.
+</p>
+<p>
+But Mollie was calling Bab to look at her gift.
+Mrs. Cartwright, who sat next her favorite of
+the girls, had pinned a little, pearl butterfly in
+the lace yoke of Mollie’s gown. Ruth and Grace
+were each rejoicing in their gifts, silver pins
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_254'></a>254</span>
+representing tennis racquets, their souvenirs of
+the luncheon and their month’s stay in Newport.
+</p>
+<p>
+“It has been just too lovely!” said Mollie to
+Mrs. Post, as she bade her good-night. “Yes,
+we start for home the first thing in the morning.
+In a few days there will be no more ‘Automobile
+Girls,’” she ended with a sigh.
+</p>
+<p>
+“Oh,” said Ruth, laughing and coming up beside
+her, “who knows? You never can tell!
+Good-bye, everyone,” she said, taking hold of
+Bab’s hand. “We have had the time of our
+lives, just as we hoped we would. Till we meet
+again,” she finished with a smile.
+</p>
+<p>
+The four girls ran down the gangplank and
+rejoined Miss Sallie.
+</p>
+<p>
+As many of our readers will guess, the return
+to Kingsbridge did not bring an end to the
+adventures of the natural and charming girls in
+their automobile. Further adventures and a
+host of new things remain to be told, but these
+must be deferred for narration in the next
+volume, which will be entitled, “<span class='sc'>The Automobile
+Girls in the Berkshires</span>; or, The Ghost of
+Lost Man’s Trail.”
+</p>
+<div class='center'>
+<p>&#160;</p>
+<p><span style='font-variant:small-caps'>[The End]</span></p>
+</div>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY’S
+</p>
+<p>
+Best and Least Expensive
+</p>
+<p>
+Books for Boys and Girls
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Motor Boat Club Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+The keynote of these books is manliness. The stories are
+wonderfully entertaining, and they are at the same time sound
+and wholesome. No boy will willingly lay down an unfinished
+book in this series.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;OF&nbsp;THE&nbsp;KENNEBEC;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The&nbsp;Secret&nbsp;of&nbsp;Smugglers’&nbsp;Island.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;AT&nbsp;NANTUCKET;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Mystery&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Dunstan&nbsp;Heir.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;OFF&nbsp;LONG&nbsp;ISLAND;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;A<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Daring&nbsp;Marine&nbsp;Game&nbsp;at&nbsp;Racing&nbsp;Speed.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;AND&nbsp;THE&nbsp;WIRELESS;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The&nbsp;Dot,&nbsp;Dash&nbsp;and&nbsp;Dare&nbsp;Cruise.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;5&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;IN&nbsp;FLORIDA;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Laying<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Ghost&nbsp;of&nbsp;Alligator&nbsp;Swamp.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;AT&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GOLDEN&nbsp;GATE;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;A&nbsp;Thrilling&nbsp;Capture&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;Great&nbsp;Fog.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;7&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MOTOR&nbsp;BOAT&nbsp;CLUB&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GREAT&nbsp;LAKES;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Flying&nbsp;Dutchman&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Big&nbsp;Fresh&nbsp;Water.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+Sold by all booksellers or sent postpaid on receipt of price.
+</p>
+<p>
+Henry Altemus Company
+</p>
+<p>
+1326-1336 Vine Street, Philadelphia
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Battleship Boys Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+</p>
+<p>
+These stories throb with the life of young Americans on to-day’s
+huge drab Dreadnaughts.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AT&nbsp;SEA;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Two&nbsp;Apprentices<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;in&nbsp;Uncle&nbsp;Sam’s&nbsp;Navy.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;FIRST&nbsp;STEP&nbsp;UPWARD;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Winning&nbsp;Their&nbsp;Grades&nbsp;as&nbsp;Petty&nbsp;Officers.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;FOREIGN&nbsp;SERVICE;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Earning&nbsp;New&nbsp;Ratings&nbsp;in&nbsp;European&nbsp;Seas.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;TROPICS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Upholding<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;American&nbsp;Flag&nbsp;in&nbsp;a&nbsp;Honduras&nbsp;Revolution.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;5&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;UNDER&nbsp;FIRE;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Dash&nbsp;for<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Besieged&nbsp;Kam&nbsp;Shau&nbsp;Mission.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;WARDROOM;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Winning&nbsp;their&nbsp;Commissions&nbsp;as&nbsp;Line&nbsp;Officers.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;7&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;WITH&nbsp;THE&nbsp;ADRIATIC&nbsp;CHASERS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Blocking&nbsp;the&nbsp;Path&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Undersea&nbsp;Raiders.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;8&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BATTLESHIP&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;SKY&nbsp;PATROL;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Fighting<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Hun&nbsp;from&nbsp;Above&nbsp;the&nbsp;Clouds.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Price, $1.00 each
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Range and Grange Hustlers</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+</p>
+<p>
+Have you any idea of the excitements, the glories of life on
+great ranches in the West? Any bright boy will “devour” the
+books of this series, once he has made a start with the first
+volume.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RANGE&nbsp;AND&nbsp;GRANGE&nbsp;HUSTLERS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RANCH;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Boy&nbsp;Shepherds&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Great&nbsp;Divide.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RANGE&nbsp;AND&nbsp;GRANGE&nbsp;HUSTLERS’&nbsp;GREATEST&nbsp;ROUND-UP;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Pitting&nbsp;Their&nbsp;Wits&nbsp;Against&nbsp;a&nbsp;Packers’&nbsp;Combine.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RANGE&nbsp;AND&nbsp;GRANGE&nbsp;HUSTLERS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PLAINS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Following&nbsp;the&nbsp;Steam&nbsp;Plows&nbsp;Across&nbsp;the&nbsp;Prairie.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RANGE&nbsp;AND&nbsp;GRANGE&nbsp;HUSTLERS&nbsp;AT&nbsp;CHICAGO;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Conspiracy&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Wheat&nbsp;Pit.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Submarine Boys Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By VICTOR G. DURHAM
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;DUTY;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Life&nbsp;on&nbsp;a&nbsp;Diving&nbsp;Torpedo&nbsp;Boat.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;TRIAL&nbsp;TRIP;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;“Making&nbsp;Good”&nbsp;as&nbsp;Young&nbsp;Experts.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AND&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MIDDIES;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Prize&nbsp;Detail&nbsp;at&nbsp;Annapolis.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AND&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SPIES;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dodging&nbsp;the&nbsp;Sharks&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Deep.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;LIGHTNING&nbsp;CRUISE;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Young&nbsp;Kings&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Deep.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;FOR&nbsp;THE&nbsp;FLAG;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Deeding&nbsp;Their&nbsp;Lives&nbsp;to&nbsp;Uncle&nbsp;Sam.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SUBMARINE&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AND&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SMUGGLERS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Breaking&nbsp;Up&nbsp;the&nbsp;New&nbsp;Jersey&nbsp;Customs&nbsp;Frauds.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Grace Harlowe Overseas Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE&nbsp;OVERSEAS.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE&nbsp;WITH&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RED&nbsp;CROSS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;FRANCE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE&nbsp;WITH&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MARINES&nbsp;AT&nbsp;CHATEAU&nbsp;THIERRY.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE&nbsp;WITH&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AMERICAN&nbsp;ARMY&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;ARGONNE.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The College Girls Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;FIRST&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;OVERTON&nbsp;COLLEGE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;SECOND&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;OVERTON&nbsp;COLLEGE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;THIRD&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;OVERTON&nbsp;COLLEGE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;FOURTH&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;OVERTON&nbsp;COLLEGE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;RETURN&nbsp;TO&nbsp;OVERTON&nbsp;CAMPUS.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;PROBLEM.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;GOLDEN&nbsp;SUMMER.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid
+on receipt of only $1.00 each.
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Pony Rider Boys Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+</p>
+<p>
+These tales may be aptly described the best books for boys and girls.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;ROCKIES;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Secret&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Lost&nbsp;Claim.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;TEXAS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Veiled&nbsp;Riddle&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Plains.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;MONTANA;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Mystery&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Old&nbsp;Custer&nbsp;Trail.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;OZARKS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Secret&nbsp;of&nbsp;Ruby&nbsp;Mountain.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;5&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;ALKALI;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Finding&nbsp;a&nbsp;Key&nbsp;to&nbsp;the&nbsp;Desert&nbsp;Maze.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;NEW&nbsp;MEXICO;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;End&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Silver&nbsp;Trail.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;7&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PONY&nbsp;RIDER&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GRAND&nbsp;CANYON;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Mystery&nbsp;of&nbsp;Bright&nbsp;Angel&nbsp;Gulch.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Boys of Steel Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By JAMES R. MEARS
+</p>
+<p>
+Each book presents a vivid picture of this great industry. Each story
+is full of adventure and fascination.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;IRON&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MINES;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Starting&nbsp;at&nbsp;the&nbsp;Bottom&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Shaft.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;IRON&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AS&nbsp;FOREMEN;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Heading&nbsp;the&nbsp;Diamond&nbsp;Drill&nbsp;Shift.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;IRON&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;ORE&nbsp;BOATS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Roughing&nbsp;It&nbsp;on&nbsp;the&nbsp;Great&nbsp;Lakes.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;IRON&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;STEEL&nbsp;MILLS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Beginning&nbsp;Anew&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;Cinder&nbsp;Pits.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Madge Morton Books</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By AMY D. V. CHALMERS
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;MADGE&nbsp;MORTON—CAPTAIN&nbsp;OF&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MERRY&nbsp;MAID.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;MADGE&nbsp;MORTON’S&nbsp;SECRET.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;MADGE&nbsp;MORTON’S&nbsp;TRUST.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;MADGE&nbsp;MORTON’S&nbsp;VICTORY.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>West Point Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+The principal characters in these narratives are manly, young
+Americans whose doings will inspire all boy readers.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;DICK&nbsp;PRESCOTT’S&nbsp;FIRST&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;WEST&nbsp;POINT;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Two&nbsp;Chums&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;Cadet&nbsp;Gray.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;DICK&nbsp;PRESCOTT’S&nbsp;SECOND&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;WEST&nbsp;POINT;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Finding&nbsp;the&nbsp;Glory&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Soldier’s&nbsp;Life.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;DICK&nbsp;PRESCOTT’S&nbsp;THIRD&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;WEST&nbsp;POINT;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Standing&nbsp;Firm&nbsp;for&nbsp;Flag&nbsp;and&nbsp;Honor.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;DICK&nbsp;PRESCOTT’S&nbsp;FOURTH&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;WEST&nbsp;POINT;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Ready&nbsp;to&nbsp;Drop&nbsp;the&nbsp;Gray&nbsp;for&nbsp;Shoulder&nbsp;Straps.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Annapolis Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+The Spirit of the new Navy is delightfully and truthfully depicted
+in these volumes.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN’S&nbsp;FIRST&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;ANNAPOLIS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Two<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Plebe&nbsp;Midshipmen&nbsp;at&nbsp;the&nbsp;U.&nbsp;S.&nbsp;Naval&nbsp;Academy.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN’S&nbsp;SECOND&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;ANNAPOLIS;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Two&nbsp;Midshipmen&nbsp;as&nbsp;Naval&nbsp;Academy&nbsp;“Youngsters.”<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN’S&nbsp;THIRD&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;ANNAPOLIS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Leaders<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Second&nbsp;Class&nbsp;Midshipmen.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN’S&nbsp;FOURTH&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;ANNAPOLIS;&nbsp;Or,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Headed&nbsp;for&nbsp;Graduation&nbsp;and&nbsp;the&nbsp;Big&nbsp;Cruise.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Young Engineers Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+The heroes of these stories are known to readers of the High
+School Boys Series. In this new series Tom Reade and Harry
+Hazelton prove worthy of all the traditions of Dick &amp; Co.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;YOUNG&nbsp;ENGINEERS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;COLORADO;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;At&nbsp;Railroad<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Building&nbsp;in&nbsp;Earnest.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;YOUNG&nbsp;ENGINEERS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;ARIZONA;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Laying&nbsp;Tracks<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;on&nbsp;the&nbsp;“Man-Killer”&nbsp;Quicksand.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;YOUNG&nbsp;ENGINEERS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;NEVADA;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Seeking&nbsp;Fortune<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;on&nbsp;the&nbsp;Turn&nbsp;of&nbsp;a&nbsp;Pick.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;YOUNG&nbsp;ENGINEERS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;MEXICO;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Fighting&nbsp;the<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Mine&nbsp;Swindlers.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Boys of the Army Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+These books breathe the life and spirit of the United States
+Army of to-day, and the life, just as it is, is described by a master pen.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;RANKS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Two&nbsp;Recruits<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;United&nbsp;States&nbsp;Army.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;FIELD&nbsp;DUTY;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Winning<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Corporal’s&nbsp;Chevrons.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AS&nbsp;SERGEANTS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Handling<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Their&nbsp;First&nbsp;Real&nbsp;Commands.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;PHILIPPINES;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Following<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Flag&nbsp;Against&nbsp;the&nbsp;Moros.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;AS&nbsp;LIEUTENANTS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Serving<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Old&nbsp;Glory&nbsp;as&nbsp;Line&nbsp;Officers.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;7&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;WITH&nbsp;PERSHING;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;Prescott<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;at&nbsp;Grips&nbsp;with&nbsp;the&nbsp;Boche.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;8&nbsp;UNCLE&nbsp;SAM’S&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;SMASH&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GERMANS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Winding<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Up&nbsp;the&nbsp;Great&nbsp;War.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Dave Darrin Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN&nbsp;AT&nbsp;VERA&nbsp;CRUZ;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Fighting&nbsp;With&nbsp;the&nbsp;U.&nbsp;S.&nbsp;Navy&nbsp;in&nbsp;Mexico.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN&nbsp;ON&nbsp;MEDITERRANEAN&nbsp;SERVICE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN’S&nbsp;SOUTH&nbsp;AMERICAN&nbsp;CRUISE.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;ASIATIC&nbsp;STATION.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;5&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN&nbsp;AND&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GERMAN&nbsp;SUBMARINES.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;DAVE&nbsp;DARRIN&nbsp;AFTER&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MINE&nbsp;LAYERS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Hitting&nbsp;the&nbsp;Enemy&nbsp;a&nbsp;Hard&nbsp;Naval&nbsp;Blow.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Meadow-Brook Girls Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By JANET ALDRIDGE
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MEADOW-BROOK&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;UNDER&nbsp;CANVAS.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MEADOW-BROOK&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;ACROSS&nbsp;COUNTRY.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MEADOW-BROOK&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;AFLOAT.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MEADOW-BROOK&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HILLS.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;5&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MEADOW-BROOK&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;BY&nbsp;THE&nbsp;SEA.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MEADOW-BROOK&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;TENNIS&nbsp;COURTS.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid
+on receipt of only $1.00 each.
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>High School Boys Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+In this series of bright, crisp books a new note has been struck.
+</p>
+<p>
+Boys of every age under sixty will be interested in these fascinating
+volumes.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;FRESHMEN;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.’s&nbsp;First<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Year&nbsp;Pranks&nbsp;and&nbsp;Sports.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;PITCHER;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;on&nbsp;the<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Gridley&nbsp;Diamond.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;LEFT&nbsp;END;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;Grilling&nbsp;on<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Football&nbsp;Gridiron.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;CAPTAIN&nbsp;OF&nbsp;THE&nbsp;TEAM;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;Leading&nbsp;the&nbsp;Athletic&nbsp;Vanguard.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>Grammar School Boys Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+This series of stories, based on the actual doings of grammar
+school boys, comes near to the heart of the average American boy.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GRAMMAR&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;OF&nbsp;GRIDLEY;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;Start&nbsp;Things&nbsp;Moving.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GRAMMAR&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;SNOWBOUND;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;at&nbsp;Winter&nbsp;Sports.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GRAMMAR&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;WOODS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;Trail&nbsp;Fun&nbsp;and&nbsp;Knowledge.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;GRAMMAR&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;SUMMER&nbsp;ATHLETICS;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;Make&nbsp;Their&nbsp;Fame&nbsp;Secure.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>High School Boys’ Vacation Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+</p>
+<p>
+“Give us more Dick Prescott books!”
+</p>
+<p>
+This has been the burden of the cry from young readers of the
+country over. Almost numberless letters have been received by the
+publishers, making this eager demand; for Dick Prescott, Dave Darrin,
+Tom Reade, and the other members of Dick &amp; Co. are the most
+popular high school boys in the land. Boys will alternately thrill
+and chuckle when reading these splendid narratives.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;CANOE&nbsp;CLUB;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.‘s<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Rivals&nbsp;on&nbsp;Lake&nbsp;Pleasant.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;SUMMER&nbsp;CAMP;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;Prescott&nbsp;Six&nbsp;Training&nbsp;for&nbsp;the&nbsp;Gridley&nbsp;Eleven.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;FISHING&nbsp;TRIP;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;&nbsp;Co.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;Wilderness.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL&nbsp;BOYS’&nbsp;TRAINING&nbsp;HIKE;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Dick&nbsp;&amp;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Co.&nbsp;Making&nbsp;Themselves&nbsp;“Hard&nbsp;as&nbsp;Nails.”<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<hr class='tb' />
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Circus Boys Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By EDGAR B. P. DARLINGTON
+</p>
+<p>
+Mr. Darlington’s books breathe forth every phase of an intensely
+interesting and exciting life.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;CIRCUS&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;FLYING&nbsp;RINGS;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Making<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Start&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;Sawdust&nbsp;Life.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;CIRCUS&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;ACROSS&nbsp;THE&nbsp;CONTINENT;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Winning<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;New&nbsp;Laurels&nbsp;on&nbsp;the&nbsp;Tanbark.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;CIRCUS&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;DIXIE&nbsp;LAND;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Winning&nbsp;the<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Plaudits&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Sunny&nbsp;South.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;CIRCUS&nbsp;BOYS&nbsp;ON&nbsp;THE&nbsp;MISSISSIPPI;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Afloat&nbsp;with<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;the&nbsp;Big&nbsp;Show&nbsp;on&nbsp;the&nbsp;Big&nbsp;River.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The High School Girls Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+</p>
+<p>
+These breezy stories of the American High School Girl take the
+reader fairly by storm.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;PLEBE&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Merry&nbsp;Doings&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Oakdale&nbsp;Freshman&nbsp;Girls.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;SOPHOMORE&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Record&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Girl&nbsp;Chums&nbsp;in&nbsp;Work&nbsp;and&nbsp;Athletics.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;JUNIOR&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Fast&nbsp;Friends&nbsp;in&nbsp;the&nbsp;Sororities.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;GRACE&nbsp;HARLOWE’S&nbsp;SENIOR&nbsp;YEAR&nbsp;AT&nbsp;HIGH&nbsp;SCHOOL;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Parting&nbsp;of&nbsp;the&nbsp;Ways.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+<p>
+&#160;<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+<span style='font-size:larger;font-weight:bold;'>The Automobile Girls Series</span>
+</p>
+<p>
+By LAURA DENT CRANE
+</p>
+<p>
+No girl’s library—no family book-case can be considered at all
+complete unless it contains these sparkling twentieth-century books.
+</p>
+<p>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;1&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AUTOMOBILE&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;AT&nbsp;NEWPORT;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Watching&nbsp;the&nbsp;Summer&nbsp;Parade.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;2&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AUTOMOBILE&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;IN&nbsp;THE&nbsp;BERKSHIRES;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;The&nbsp;Ghost&nbsp;of&nbsp;Lost&nbsp;Man’s&nbsp;Trail.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;3&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AUTOMOBILE&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;ALONG&nbsp;THE&nbsp;HUDSON;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Fighting&nbsp;Fire&nbsp;in&nbsp;Sleepy&nbsp;Hollow.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;4&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AUTOMOBILE&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;AT&nbsp;CHICAGO;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Winning&nbsp;Out&nbsp;Against&nbsp;Heavy&nbsp;Odds.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;5&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AUTOMOBILE&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;AT&nbsp;PALM&nbsp;BEACH;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Proving&nbsp;Their&nbsp;Mettle&nbsp;Under&nbsp;Southern&nbsp;Skies.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;6&nbsp;THE&nbsp;AUTOMOBILE&nbsp;GIRLS&nbsp;AT&nbsp;WASHINGTON;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Or,&nbsp;Checkmating&nbsp;the&nbsp;Plots&nbsp;of&nbsp;Foreign&nbsp;Spies.<br />
+</p>
+<p>
+Cloth, Illustrated—Price, per Volume, $1.00
+</p>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Automobile Girls at Newport, by
+Laura Dent Crane
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+***** This file should be named 36273-h.htm or 36273-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/6/2/7/36273/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/36273-h/images/illus-083.jpg b/36273-h/images/illus-083.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ca6c4bf
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h/images/illus-083.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-h/images/illus-157.jpg b/36273-h/images/illus-157.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ec56ecd
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h/images/illus-157.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-h/images/illus-177.jpg b/36273-h/images/illus-177.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..680c7dc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h/images/illus-177.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-h/images/illus-cvr.jpg b/36273-h/images/illus-cvr.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2c5c6d5
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h/images/illus-cvr.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg b/36273-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..aec84c2
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/36273.txt b/36273.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..535955b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,6925 @@
+Project Gutenberg's The Automobile Girls at Newport, by Laura Dent Crane
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Automobile Girls at Newport
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+Author: Laura Dent Crane
+
+Release Date: May 30, 2011 [EBook #36273]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration: "The Automobile Girls" Were Fairly Started.
+_Frontispiece._]
+
+
+
+
+ The Automobile Girls at Newport
+
+ OR
+
+ Watching the Summer Parade
+
+ By
+ LAURA DENT CRANE
+
+ Author of The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires, The
+ Automobile Girls Along the Hudson, Etc., Etc.
+
+ Illustrated
+
+ PHILADELPHIA
+ HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY
+
+
+
+
+ Copyright, 1910, by Howard E. Altemus
+
+
+
+
+ CONTENTS
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+ I. Barbara to the Rescue 7
+ II. Lost, Strayed or Stolen 16
+ III. Ruth's Perfect Plan 30
+ IV. Mother's Secret 39
+ V. The Glorious Start 47
+ VI. What Happened the First Day 59
+ VII. Showing Their Mettle 71
+ VIII. "For We Are Jolly Good Fellows!" 86
+ IX. Only Girls 93
+ X. Enter Gladys and Mr. Townsend 104
+ XI. Newport at Last 111
+ XII. A Week Later 121
+ XIII. The Night of the Ball 131
+ XIV. Barbara's Secret 142
+ XV. Ruth in Danger 150
+ XVI. Help Arrives 162
+ XVII. The Fortune-Tellers 169
+ XVIII. A Word to the Wise 180
+ XIX. "Eyeology" 190
+ XX. Ruth Wakes Up! 204
+ XXI. The Capture of the Butterfly 213
+ XXII. The Tennis Tournament 224
+ XXIII. Brought to Bay 236
+ XXIV. Good-Bye to Newport 242
+
+
+
+
+THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I--BARBARA TO THE RESCUE
+
+
+"Pink hair ribbons!"
+
+Barbara Thurston's brown, bright face seemed to twinkle all over, as she
+clinked a yellow coin on the marble top of the little sewing table.
+
+"Silk stockings!" chorused Mollie Thurston gleefully. "Wasn't it the
+luckiest thing that the hotel people wanted so many berries this year!"
+And she, too, sent a gold piece spinning over the smooth surface. "But,
+perhaps, we won't be invited after all," she sighed.
+
+"Nonsense!" rejoined Barbara energetically. "When Grace Carter says
+she'll fix a thing, you can wager she will. She's known Ruth Stuart for
+three summers now, and she's told us we'd be invited to Ruth's party
+this year. I can read the invitations already. The only thing worrying
+me was what we'd wear. Now the strawberry crop has turned out so well,
+and mother's a brick, and will let us use our money as we wish--I think
+we're fixed. Then--who knows?"
+
+"I am sure Ruth Stuart's lots of fun when you get to know her,"
+interrupted Mollie eagerly. "If Cousin Gladys wasn't boarding at the
+hotel with her, we'd have met her long before. Isn't Gladys a stuck-up
+goose? Never mind. We'll have the laugh on her when she sees us at the
+party. Let's be de-lighted to meet her. I should love to watch her when
+she is fussed!"
+
+"After all," mused Barbara, thoughtfully, "her father was in partnership
+with papa. It's mighty funny that uncle got all the money. I wonder----"
+She stopped playing with her gold piece and gazed thoughtfully out of
+the sitting room window at the hot, empty, yellow road that ran so near
+the tiny cottage.
+
+Barbara Thurston was sixteen, Mollie just two years younger, and nearly
+all their lives had been spent in that little cottage. John Thurston,
+the girls' father, had died suddenly when Mollie was only three years
+old.
+
+He had been at that time in the wholesale clothing business with his
+wife's brother, Ralph Le Baron, and was supposed to be a rich man. But
+when his affairs were settled up, his brother-in-law, the executor,
+announced that a very small interest in the business remained to Mrs.
+Thurston. He hinted, darkly, at stock speculation on her husband's part,
+and poor Mrs. Thurston, overcome by grief, had not wanted to question
+deeply.
+
+She, herself, happened to own the little cottage, in Kingsbridge, in
+which she and her brother had lived as children. Acting on his advice,
+she settled there with her two little girls, and had remained ever
+since, subsisting on the small income her brother regularly transmitted
+to her from her dead husband's tiny business interest. Le Baron and his
+wife, with their daughter, Gladys, usually spent the summer in
+Kingsbridge, at the one "summer hotel" in the place; but intercourse
+between the two families had come to be little sought on either side.
+Kingsbridge was a quiet little village in New Jersey, and, except for
+the summer visitors, there was little gayety. Gladys Le Baron,
+especially, had shown herself icily oblivious of the existence of her
+younger cousins, Barbara and Mollie.
+
+These two were delightful examples of self-reliant young America.
+Barbara, the elder, looked a regular "nut-brown maid," with chestnut
+hair that never would "stay put," and usually a mischievous twinkle in
+the brown eyes beneath the straying locks. But there was plenty of
+genuinely forceful energy stored away in her slim, well-knit young body,
+and her firm chin and broad forehead told both of determination and
+intelligence.
+
+Her sister, Mollie, was fair, with lovely curling blond hair, and a
+quaint drollery of speech that won her many friends. Both sisters had
+grown up quietly, helping their mother about the house, as they could
+afford no servant, going to the village school, and, when they wanted
+anything beyond the plainest necessities of life, earning it.
+
+This summer both had set their hearts on "really-truly" party clothes,
+not "hand-me-downs." Their friend, Grace Carter, daughter of Squire
+Carter, the village dignitary, had promised them invitations to "the
+event of the season," the party to be given by her friend Ruth Stuart, a
+rich Western girl who quite recently had come to spend her summer at
+Kingsbridge. And didn't Ruth Stuart live at the same hotel with Gladys
+Le Baron, the snobbish cousin?
+
+To meet the enemy on her own ground, and to have the fun of a party
+besides, was certainly worth picking strawberries for, thought Barbara
+and Mollie. So they scoured the country round for the sweet wild ones
+the hotel visitors liked best. Now each of the girls was fingering
+gleefully her twenty-dollar gold-piece that meant many days' work in the
+past, but pretty dresses in the future.
+
+The prospect was too alluring for Barbara to spend much time in
+wondering about the real "why" of their fallen fortunes, though the
+question had come to her before, and would again. Now she was ready to
+join Mollie in eager planning as to "just what they'd get."
+
+"Go get a pencil and paper, Molliekins, and we'll set it all down," she
+laughed.
+
+Mollie went into the further room and Barbara waited, eyes
+absent-mindedly fixed on the yellow stretch of road.
+
+Suddenly she became conscious of a curious pounding. There was a queer,
+wild rhythm to it, and it seemed to be coming nearer and nearer.
+
+Barbara put her head out of the open window. She could see nothing but a
+cloud of dust far down the road. Yet the pounding sounded louder every
+moment.
+
+Then she knew. The noise came from the furious feet of runaway horses.
+And they were coming past the house with their helpless, unknown
+victims.
+
+What could Barbara do? Her mother was asleep upstairs and there was no
+man about the place. There was no other house near. Besides, the
+slightest delay might prove fatal.
+
+All this seemed to flash through Barbara's brain in a second. She knew
+she must act. Swiftly and easily as a boy she vaulted the open window,
+pausing only to snatch a closed umbrella that leaned against the sill.
+How glad she was she had forgotten to put it away in the closet when she
+came in from the shower yesterday!
+
+In an instant the girl sped through the gate and out into the road,
+opening her umbrella as she ran.
+
+There she paused, squarely in front of the approaching dust cloud, very
+near now. She could hear the click of the stones, cast aside by the
+flying feet of the horses, and she caught a glimpse of two black heads,
+wild-eyed and foam-flecked, through the whirling dust.
+
+Barbara strained her eyes to locate hanging bridles. But meantime,
+swiftly and mechanically, she was opening and shutting the big black
+umbrella.
+
+"If they'll only stop!" she murmured.
+
+And they did. Fear-crazed already, their legs trembling after a terrific
+run, the horses dared not seek encounter with that horrible bat-like
+creature that seemed to await them.
+
+Scarcely five feet away, their wild pace broke. They hesitated, and
+Barbara flung herself forward and seized the dangling bridles. For a
+moment she pulled on them with wrists of steel, but it was not
+necessary. The horses drooped their weary heads and gladly stood still.
+
+Then, and only then, Barbara glanced at the carriage and its occupants.
+
+It was an open four-seated carriage, and in it were Ruth Stuart, Grace
+Carter, Gladys Le Baron and a strange young man somewhat older than the
+rest of the party. The girls were leaning back, with closed eyes and
+white faces. The young man was staring straight ahead, with a blank
+expression, fear depicted on every feature.
+
+Barbara dared not leave the horses even now. "Mollie! Mollie!" she
+called.
+
+Mollie was already out of the house. From the window, terror-stricken,
+she had seen it all.
+
+"Get the girls out," Barbara directed. "I can't leave these brutes,
+though I guess they're all right now."
+
+In the meantime, Grace and Gladys had opened their eyes. Mollie now
+stood at the carriage step, her hand outstretched.
+
+As they recognized their rescuers, Grace's pale face lit up. Even
+Gladys, for once, tried to summon a gracious and grateful smile.
+
+"We're all right, Mollie," spoke up Grace, "but I think Ruth has
+fainted. I'll help you get her into the house."
+
+Suddenly the young man started up. "I beg your pardon," he remarked in a
+smooth, pleasantly-modulated voice, "but you really must let me help. I
+have been utterly helpless so far," and his glance wandered admiringly
+and a trifle shamefacedly toward Barbara.
+
+In an instant, he had sprung over the wheel and gently half lifted, half
+dragged Ruth Stuart off the seat.
+
+As her feet touched the ground, she too opened her eyes, only to close
+them again with a shivering sigh. Grace was at her side in a moment.
+
+"Try to walk to the house, dear," Grace urged. "It's only a few steps."
+
+Mollie took the place of the young man, and, between the two girls, Ruth
+stumbled to the gate.
+
+The young man stepped up to Barbara. "Can I help you?" he ventured,
+looking at the now quieted horses.
+
+But a cold voice sounded from the carriage, where Gladys still sat. "I
+think you might think a little about me, Harry," she exclaimed.
+
+The young fellow bit his lip and hesitated.
+
+"Please," broke in Barbara, "please take her to the house. I can't get
+these horses and this carriage through the gate. It isn't big enough.
+But I'll hitch them to the fence and stay with them for a few minutes.
+You must need rest, all of you!"
+
+Harry Townsend bit his lip as he caught the sarcastic inflection in
+Barbara's last sentence, but did as he was directed, and walked slowly
+toward the house with Gladys.
+
+Left to herself, Barbara led the horses, still attached to the carriage,
+toward the fence, and hitched them by the reins in a clever way all
+country girls know. "Good boys! Poor boys!" she murmured, petting them,
+for they were still shivering pitifully with fright.
+
+For several minutes she stood talking to them. Then Mollie's anxious
+face appeared at the door, and in a moment she stood beside her sister.
+
+"What shall we do?" she asked. "Miss Stuart is feeling very ill, and
+wants to go home at once. She and all the others refuse to step foot
+into that carriage again--and I can't blame them; but, you know, it's two
+miles to the hotel, if it's a step, and we haven't a telephone. Grace
+says Ruth's father would send the au-to-mo-bile,"--Mollie pronounced the
+word with reverent care--"but what's the quickest way of getting the
+message to them? Mother suggests running over to Jim Trumbull's and
+seeing if he'll hitch up and drive to the hotel. But it's half a mile to
+his place, and he's very likely to be away anyhow. What do you----?"
+
+Barbara interrupted her decisively. "I'll just drive those horses back
+to the hotel myself, Mollie Thurston," she said calmly.
+
+"Barbara, you can't! It's risking your life!"
+
+"Nonsense! There isn't an ounce of spirit left in the poor, frightened
+things. I guess I haven't broken Jim Trumbull's colts for him without
+knowing how to handle horses. You go tell Miss Stuart that her
+automobile will be here in two shakes of a lamb's tail. And see,
+Mollie," the twinkle shone in Barbara's eyes, "of course they'll give me
+a ride back in the auto!"
+
+Laughing at Mollie's protests, the plucky girl untied the horses and
+turned them carefully.
+
+"Stand at their heads, just a minute," she cheerfully directed. Then
+Barbara gathered up the reins and climbed up to the high seat.
+
+"Drop anchor, Mollie," she called, and trotted slowly down the road
+behind the quieted blacks.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II--LOST, STRAYED OR STOLEN
+
+
+"Mollie Thurston, has Barbara driven off with those awful horses?"
+
+It was Grace Carter who spoke. She had reached the doorway of the
+cottage just in time to catch a glimpse of the departing equipage.
+
+Without waiting for a reply, she turned from the open door to the group
+inside just as Mollie rejoined them, exclaiming:
+
+"Barbara is driving the runaways to the hotel for the machine!"
+
+Mrs. Thurston started. She had been downstairs for some time helping to
+make the victims of the accident comfortable. She was a slim,
+sweet-faced little woman, whose entire world lay in her two lively young
+daughters, in whom she had unlimited faith.
+
+But, in a moment, she smiled and said, "I am not afraid to trust Barbara
+with anything."
+
+Ruth Stuart's lately pale face was glowing. "I think that is regularly
+splendid of her!" she exclaimed, with more animation than she had shown
+since she had left the carriage.
+
+"Oh, Barbara is used to taking care of herself," Gladys Le Baron
+interposed with a supercilious smile.
+
+Mollie looked at her cousin a moment. "Yes," she answered steadily, "we
+think it is a pretty good thing in our family."
+
+Gladys flushed, and had no reply ready. Ruth looked surprised and Grace
+plunged into the breach.
+
+"Oh," she tried to murmur off-handedly, "Barbara and Mollie and Gladys
+are cousins, you know."
+
+"And you never----" Ruth turned to Gladys, then stopped and smiled. "Well,
+it's awfully jolly to have met you all in this nice, informal way. Grace
+has often spoken of you," she said.
+
+The girls had to laugh at this, so Ruth continued: "I'm well enough now
+to be proper and conventional, I suppose. I believe you know I'm Ruth
+Stuart. Mrs. Thurston, Mollie, have you met Gladys's friend, Mr.
+Townsend?"
+
+The young man came out from the corner near the window, where he had
+been seated, and bowed gayly. Ruth nodded in a satisfied fashion.
+
+"There, doesn't that finish it?" she sighed. "The rest of you are all
+acquainted, aren't you? Now, won't one of you, please tell me why those
+awful horses aren't running still? I know some horrible white hay-caps
+started them, and Jones fell off the seat, and now we are here. Who
+stopped us?"
+
+Everybody turned to Ruth at once. "Why, Barbara stopped them," Grace
+managed to say first. "Barbara----"
+
+A gay laugh sounded in the doorway, and Barbara herself appeared before
+them.
+
+"Now I've caught you!" she cried merrily, her bright eyes sweeping the
+circle. Then she turned to Ruth with a mock curtsey.
+
+"Your ladyship's chariot waits," she declaimed, then continuing in quick
+explanation: "You see, your driver was scarcely hurt and he rushed back
+to the hotel at once and sent the automobile along the road where he had
+seen the horses disappearing. Before I'd gone a quarter of a mile, I met
+the machine with the chauffeur, and doctor and Jones himself. We sent
+Jones back with the horses, though they weren't bothering me a bit, and
+I came back in the automobile. How are you feeling?" and the bright
+voice softened sympathetically, as she noted Ruth's pale cheeks.
+
+For answer the girl arose quickly, and held out both hands to Barbara.
+"You're a brick," she said simply. "I fainted, like a goose, and they've
+just told me what you did. I am so glad I know you, and I guess my
+father will be glad, too--not to say thankful! Now, please won't you and
+your sister dine with us to-morrow? No? Make it lunch; then I'll see you
+sooner. I won't take no for an answer, because I have a very important
+plan. Dad decides as quickly as I do. So if you'll only say yes--but I
+can't tell you about it now. Perhaps, if I make you curious, you'll be
+more interested when the time comes!" Ruth laughed mischievously.
+
+"What have you up your sleeve now, Ruth Stuart?" asked Grace, curiously.
+"I never saw such a girl as you are for chain-lightning projects!"
+
+"You'll see," laughed Ruth. "You're in it too, you know. You must be one
+of my lunch party to-morrow. I know you and Mr. Townsend have another
+engagement, Gladys, so you will pardon my delivering my invitation
+before you. Now, I won't say another word.
+
+"Come," she continued, addressing the party, "we must be off at once. If
+the news of this runaway circulates through the hotel and reaches either
+your father or mine, Gladys, they'll be wild with fright. Good-bye, Mrs.
+Thurston, and thank you. You've been awfully good to us. As for you
+two"--holding out her hands to Barbara and Mollie--"wait till tomorrow at
+lunch!"
+
+Drawing the two Thurston girls with her, she stepped outside the door
+and to the gate, the rest of the party following. The machine was
+waiting in the road, and out of it hurried the hotel doctor toward Ruth.
+
+"Aren't you hurt, Miss Stuart?" he cried. "I would have come in, but
+Miss Thurston said she would go in first and see how you were."
+
+"I'm perfectly well, doctor," smiled Ruth. "It's too bad you had to come
+way out here. I hope father will not hear you have been sent for!"
+
+She patted affectionately the nearest tire-rim of the big automobile.
+"Bless the 'bubble's' heart," she murmured. "He wouldn't run away with
+his missus. Barbara, Mollie, this is my best friend, Mr. A. Bubble. I
+think you'll get better acquainted with him before long. I wish you
+could come with me now, but I'm afraid neither you nor 'Bubble' would be
+quite comfortable. And you three must get along well together from the
+start."
+
+The doctor helped Ruth into the big red touring car and Gladys and Grace
+followed. The two men and the chauffeur crowded together in the front
+seat.
+
+"Au revoir," chorused the autoists, and "see you tomorrow," nodded Ruth
+emphatically to the girls. Then, in a whirl of dust, the big machine
+sped out of sight.
+
+"Isn't she a dear?" burst forth Mollie, as the sisters turned to go back
+to the house. "How her eyes shine when she talks! I wonder if I could do
+my hair that way. I was sure she'd be nice--but what do you suppose she
+means by that plan? Barbara, for heaven's sake, how did you happen to
+think of that umbrella stunt? It was great, but you did look so
+funny--like a sort of desperate, feminine Darius Green with his flying
+machine! No wonder you stopped the horses!"
+
+"Oh, I heard of a man who stopped a stampede of cattle that way out West
+once," Barbara answered abstractedly. There was a puzzled look on her
+face. "Mollie," she said abruptly, as they entered the house, "you
+didn't take our money with you, when you went into the bedroom for
+pencil and paper?"
+
+"Why, no," replied Mollie wonderingly. "It must be over there on the
+table now. I remember I noticed it as I came into the room. I wondered,
+for a second, why you'd gone away and left it so near the open window.
+That was before I looked through the window and saw what you were doing.
+It must be there," and Mollie hurried over to the window.
+
+The next moment she turned an astonished face to her sister. "Barbara!"
+she exclaimed, "it isn't here, anywhere!" Indeed, the marble top of the
+little table was absolutely bare. There was no sign of either of the
+gold pieces.
+
+"Let's look on the floor," said Barbara, quietly. "One of our guests may
+have unconsciously brushed them off."
+
+Both girls stopped and began a careful survey of the carpeted floor,
+under the table, and near the window. Their search was unrewarded.
+
+"Let's look in the grass outside," suggested Mollie. "You might have
+brushed them off as you went through the window."
+
+"But didn't you say you saw them on the table, when you came back into
+the room and found me gone?" queried Barbara, thoughtfully.
+
+"I was sure I did," Mollie replied. "But sometimes one remembers
+imaginary things. And if the money had been in the room when I came in,
+it would be there now. I'll ask mother----"
+
+"No, don't," said Barbara quickly; "at least, not yet." Mrs. Thurston
+had gone into the kitchen directly after her return from the gate, and
+had heard none of the conversation. "There's no need to worry mother
+about it now. Of course we must find it somewhere. Money doesn't walk
+off by itself. We'll go out and look in the grass under the window."
+
+On hands and knees the girls worked through the closely cropped grass
+underneath the sitting room window. Not two days before, they themselves
+had clipped this bit of lawn with big shears, and it was so close that
+there seemed no possibility of anything being hidden in it. Certainly
+nothing was to be found. The girls even looked over the short path, and
+ground near it. "Your skirts might have switched those small things a
+long way," observed Mollie, wisely. Yet, as before, the result
+was--nothing.
+
+Giving it up, at last, the girls sat down in a little garden seat at one
+side of the tiny yard, and looked at each other ruefully.
+
+"I am so glad I feel sure Miss Stuart will invite us to her party, now,"
+commented Mollie dryly. "Our new gowns and the pink hair ribbons and the
+silk stockings will be so awfully fetching! But where, where, where, by
+all that's mysterious, can those double-eagles have flown?"
+
+Suddenly she looked curiously at her sister. "Barbara, you are thinking
+of something!" she exclaimed. "Have you any nameable idea?"
+
+"No," said Barbara, quickly; "it isn't nameable."
+
+"All right; you never would talk when you didn't want to," complained
+Mollie. "And I know you want that money back as badly as I do. Tell you
+what--I'll say the fairies' charm. Don't you remember the one the old
+gypsy woman taught us? Wish she were here to say it for us! She promised
+to do all sorts of things for me when I found her in the field with a
+sprained ankle and helped her back to camp. Why! why! Barbara, this is
+_uncanny_--she's coming now!"
+
+In truth, down the road a queer little bent figure was seen approaching.
+"I know her," continued Mollie eagerly, "by that funny combination of
+red and yellow handkerchiefs she wears on her head. Do let's go and meet
+her and tell her--it can't do any harm."
+
+"What nonsense, Mollie!" laughed Barbara. But she followed her younger
+sister, who had already started down the road toward the quaint, little,
+gaudily-turbaned dame.
+
+Between them, the girls brought her into the yard, Mollie meanwhile
+busily explaining their predicament. "You'll help us, won't you, Granny
+Ann?" she coaxed childishly. "You said, that time that I helped you
+home, you'd always be near when I wanted you."
+
+Granny Ann sat on the garden seat, looking gravely down at the
+half-laughing, half-serious girls huddled at her feet.
+
+"I knowed," she began in a high, cracked voice, "I knowed my little fair
+one," lightly touching Mollie's curls, "would need me to-day. Far away I
+was, when I heard the shadow of her voice callin' out to me--and miles I
+have traveled to reach her. Granny Ann is thirsty, and she has had no
+food since morning." The old woman looked reproachfully at her
+listeners.
+
+Barbara's eyes twinkled at Mollie's rather crestfallen face, when the
+sybil voiced this most human request. But she said cheerily: "All right,
+Granny; supper isn't ready yet, but I know mother'll have something."
+Then Barbara hurried into the house, the gypsy dame waiting solemnly
+until she reappeared, a moment later, with sandwiches, doughnuts and a
+big glass of milk.
+
+Granny Ann smiled, but she didn't speak until the lunch had quite
+disappeared. Then the old woman rose impressively. "There's one sure
+magic for fetching back money that has gone," she declaimed. "Because
+you have been good to me, 'Little Fair One,' you and your sister, I will
+say the golden spell for you." With her hands crossed, Granny Ann began
+to croon dreamily:
+
+ Gold is gladsome, gold is gay,
+ Here to-night and gone to-day,
+ Here to-day and gone to-morrow,
+ Guest of joy and host of sorrow.
+ Gold of mine that's flitted far,
+ Forget me not, where'er you are.
+ Mine you are, as Pluto wrought you,
+ Mine you are, whoever's sought you,
+ Come by sea or come by land--
+ Homeward fly into my hand!
+
+Three times Granny Ann repeated this. Then, with a queer dignity, oddly
+assorting with her variegated raiment, she turned to the girls. "It will
+return," she said; "now, I must go to my own people."
+
+"But I thought you said you came here for us by yourself!" protested
+Mollie.
+
+The gypsy dame drew herself up. "I travel not alone!" she said, stiffly.
+"Good-bye."
+
+"Oh, good-bye, and thanks ever so much, Granny Ann!" cried both of the
+girls.
+
+But Granny Ann did not turn her head. Barbara looked at Mollie, her eyes
+dancing. "The blessed old fraud!" she teased; "her people decided to
+camp somewhere about, and she thought she'd come over for a call and a
+lunch, and whatever else she could get! I believe she actually expected
+us to cross her palm with silver for saying that little rhyme. But I
+wish I knew really----"
+
+All at once a faint chug-chug sounded in the distance. In a moment a big
+red touring car appeared, enveloped in dust. "Why, it looks like Ruth's
+car!" exclaimed Mollie, excitedly. "Yes, I do believe that young man
+seated beside the chauffeur is the Mr. Townsend who was with them.
+Barbara----"
+
+But Barbara was walking quickly toward the gate. A moment later the
+automobile stopped before it, and Harry Townsend stepped out.
+
+"Miss Thurston," he began, soberly, "have you lost any money?"
+
+"Oh, yes!" burst out Mollie, who was just behind, before Barbara could
+speak; "two twenty-dollar gold-pieces! We've hunted and hunted. We had
+them this afternoon----"
+
+"Then these must be yours," said the young man, extending his hand to
+Barbara. In it were two golden double-eagles. "When the young ladies
+were getting out at the hotel these were found on the seat, and Miss
+Stuart was sure you had dropped them out of your pocket, Miss Thurston,
+during the few moments you were in the machine. I am very glad to be
+able to restore them to you."
+
+"Yes," said Barbara, "but I----" Then she stopped. "Thank you, Mr.
+Townsend," she said, giving him a clear, direct glance. For some unknown
+reason the young man's eyes wavered under it, and he climbed hurriedly
+into the automobile. "I am very glad," he murmured again.
+
+"Miss Stuart expects you to-morrow," he added quickly, and the machine
+backed round and hurried off.
+
+Barbara stood looking at it, the money still in her hand. But Mollie was
+laughing happily. Then she saw Barbara's face. "Barbara, what is it,
+dear?" she demanded. "You look exactly as you did before Granny Ann
+appeared, and I asked you if you were thinking of something. What is it?
+Can't you tell me?"
+
+Barbara shook her head. "It really isn't anything, Molliekins. I did
+have an idea in my head, but I must be mistaken somehow. You are sure
+you saw the money on the table after I left the room? It must have been
+there, then, when the crowd from the automobile came in. I thought I saw
+some one standing near the table with one hand resting on it, when I
+came back and called out: 'Now, I've caught you!' But I must not think
+anything more about it. Please don't ask me any questions. Let us just
+be glad we have the money back. It is queer, though. Mr. Townsend says
+the money was found on the seat. I wonder who found it, and whether it
+was found on the front or back seat? Let's ask Grace. I don't understand
+it. But he brought the money back, and he's Miss Stuart's friend. Of
+course we will keep quiet, you and I, Mollie, whether the money was
+lost, strayed or stolen!"
+
+"Well, I am sure, Barbara Thurston," Mollie answered a little
+indignantly, "I am not likely to talk of what I know nothing about. If
+there is any mystery about the disappearance of that money, I am sure
+you have left me utterly in the dark."
+
+"Don't be cross," said Barbara, putting her arm in Mollie's. "But do you
+know if Mr. Townsend is a special friend of Gladys's?"
+
+Mollie shook her head. "How should I know?" she said. "Let's go in, it's
+nearly dark."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III--RUTH'S PERFECT PLAN
+
+
+Wonderment over the mystery of the money, and excited anticipation of
+Ruth Stuart's luncheon and "plan," kept the Thurston girls from getting
+to sleep very early that night. They awoke bright and fresh next
+morning, nevertheless. Just before eleven they started on their two-mile
+tramp to the hotel. They were hardly out of sight of the house, however,
+when what should they see but the now familiar red car speeding toward
+them. "Look--yes, it is!" cried Mollie. "Ruth herself is making it go!"
+
+The young driver waved a free hand for a second, as she neared them,
+then wheeled in a broad turn and stopped. "I was so afraid you might
+have started," she protested tactfully, "for it is such a fine morning
+for a nice leisurely walk. I was so anxious to see you that I simply
+couldn't wait, and I told Dad I'd take the 'bubble' and spin out to meet
+you. Now, won't you please hop in, and ride back with me?"
+
+The girls "hopped" with delighted celerity, and Ruth turned back to them
+for a moment. "I have reams to talk about," she continued, "but, to tell
+you the truth, I want my father to be with us, when I begin. So, now, if
+you don't mind, we'll just ride."
+
+Neither Mollie nor Barbara will ever forget their first ride. "I felt as
+if I had chartered my own private flying machine, and I was sure the
+angels were jealous," Mollie confessed, naively, at lunch.
+
+They reached the hotel very quickly, and after a cosy chat on the
+private balcony belonging to Ruth's tiny suite of rooms, found
+themselves seated around a little table in a cool, palm-shaded corner of
+the big dining-room. Between them, opposite Ruth, sat big, blue-eyed,
+open-hearted, Robert Stuart, Ruth's "Dad."
+
+Robert Stuart had made his fortune out West, in the mining country. That
+was how he started, anyway. For years, now, he had lived in Chicago,
+buying and selling real estate in the vicinity. There his wife had died,
+and there his eighteen-year-old daughter Ruth had spent nearly all her
+life. During the summers she had traveled more or less, and the last few
+years had frequently gone East. Her father's sister, Aunt Sallie Stuart,
+had brought the girl up since her mother's death, which had occurred
+when Ruth was a little girl. Aunt Sallie was not present at the
+luncheon, because of a bad headache. "Grace Carter has come over and is
+staying with her, like a dear," Ruth explained. Later, if Auntie felt
+better, the girls were to go up to her room.
+
+Ruth, as has appeared, was an extremely impulsive young person.
+Fortunately, most of her impulses were inspired by a natural kindliness,
+and a cheerful, youthful energy, with a stratum of good common sense at
+bottom. There was apt to be method in her madness. Her "plan," for
+instance, had long been her desire, but before she had never seen the
+way.
+
+Ruth couldn't wait for the cold boullion to be taken off. "Father, I
+want to tell them now!" she exclaimed. After his cheerful, "Go ahead,
+daughter," she burst out: "Barbara, Mollie, won't you go on an
+automobile tour to Newport with Grace Carter and me, with Aunt Sallie
+for chaperon? Won't you, can't you come?"
+
+While the amazed girls could only look at her and at each other, she
+hurried on: "Oh, yes, you probably think I'm crazy. But I'm not. You see
+it's like this: all my life I have longed to travel by myself; at least,
+with the people I want, not in a train, or a big crowded boat. Dad knows
+the feeling; it's what makes him run away from Chicago, and get out on
+the prairies and ride and ride and ride! I'm a girl, so I can't do that
+or lots of things. But I can run an automobile. For two years I have
+just been waiting to get the right crowd. Grace is a dear, but I wanted
+two more. The other girls I know are all right to meet at dances and to
+see now and then; but they'd collapse at the thought of starting off on
+a lark like this. You two--you're different, I knew it the minute I saw
+you. Besides," she continued, "Grace has been telling me things about
+you. I always know right off whether I like anybody, and it doesn't take
+long to find out how much I like them. I like both of you a whole
+lot--and I know we will have a perfectly delightful trip if you will go
+with me. If you don't, I simply can't go--that's all. It would be absurd
+setting off in that great machine with only Grace and Aunt Sallie to
+rattle around like two peas in a pod. Daddie understands, and he likes
+you just the way I do--I can see it in his eyes. So it's just up to you!
+Do you like me a little bit--well, say enough to visit me in my
+automobile for a month or so? Oh, please say you do!"
+
+She stopped, her voice catching impulsively over the last words.
+Barbara's eyes were shining. "I don't believe we need to tell you that,"
+she said softly; "you must just know. But there's mother. And we haven't
+the money."
+
+"Now that's not fair," Ruth broke in. "The money is out of the question
+altogether. You are my guests. Why, it's you who will do me the favor,"
+she pleaded, as she caught the look of dissent on Barbara's face.
+"Remember, if you fail me, I can't have my trip at all--and I have been
+looking forward to it for two whole years. As for your mother, if she
+will consent to it, Dad and I have a beautiful plan, to keep her and Dad
+both from being lonely. Poor Dad is sick and tired of hotel cooking and
+I told him all about your dear little cottage and the dandy tea and
+cookies your mother makes, and--and--do you suppose your mother would let
+Dad take his meals with her while we are away? Then he won't be too
+wretched living all alone up here. Also, you wouldn't have to worry
+about your mother, nor would I have to worry about Dad. Aunt Sallie has
+been with him so long that I don't know what he'd do all by himself. He
+could get on very well, if only your mother would look after him at
+meals, I know that.
+
+"Now I won't say another word about it for the rest of our lunch. Then
+we'll run in and call on Aunt Sallie. Afterward we will take the car out
+and see your mother, and get her to say yes! Then you'll say it, too,
+won't you? But don't let's spoil this good chicken salad, through
+worrying about it."
+
+In a more or less complete, yet altogether happy silence, the luncheon
+was finished. Ruth and her father did not try to force their guests to
+talk, realizing that the girls would want to think. From the smiling
+glances the two Stuarts exchanged now and then it was evident they hoped
+the thinking would have a happy outcome.
+
+After the last course had been served, and the finger bowls, a sprig of
+rose geranium floating in each, had been pushed aside, Ruth said
+quietly: "Now we will go to see Aunt Sallie for a few minutes. Daddie,
+you'll have the machine at the door?"
+
+The girls filed into the elevator, and soon were speeding down a long
+hall to Aunt Sallie's suite, just across from Ruth's. The latter knocked
+softly, and Grace Carter came to the door. "Yes, ever so much better,"
+Grace murmured, in reply to Ruth's whispered inquiry. "She wants you to
+be sure to come in with your friends before they go. Yes; I am sure she
+would be glad to see them now."
+
+As the girls entered the vestibule of the apartment, Grace gave
+Barbara's hand a furtive squeeze, and whispered: "I'll just never
+recover if you don't come." There was no chance for a reply, for a
+precise, though rather kindly voice called from the room beyond: "Ruth,
+please bring your friends in here."
+
+With some trepidation the girls advanced toward "Aunt Sallie." She was a
+somewhat stout woman, who reclined on a couch in a handsome violet
+negligee. She scanned the girls sharply for a moment, then in her
+carefully enunciated syllables, which contrasted oddly with her smooth,
+plump face, she said: "So you're the young ladies who stop runaway
+horses! Well, I never could have done it when I was young. But I'm sure
+I am indebted to you, and I am happy to know you, my dears. I hope and
+trust, since my madcap niece is bound to take her trip, that you will
+come along to keep her company."
+
+The girls smiled, and Ruth murmured to them: "You see, you really must
+come for the sake of my family!" Then Aunt Sallie stretched out two
+plump, jeweled hands and remarked: "I am sure I shall see a great deal
+of you very soon, my dears, and you will see all you want to of me. So,
+if you don't mind, I'll ask you to excuse me now, my head is so tired."
+
+"She likes to take a cat-nap pretty often," explained irreverent Ruth,
+as soon as they were safely outside the door. "But Aunt Sallie is a good
+sort, just the same, and the best possible dragon for our trip. Your
+mother needn't be in the least afraid to trust you to her. Now for your
+mother," Ruth added as the girls entered the elevator.
+
+In front of the broad piazza, the automobile waited on the driveway,
+with Mr. Stuart as chauffeur. "Pile in," he smiled, and, in a trice, the
+girls were whirled homeward once more.
+
+There a mighty conference was held. At first, Mrs. Thurston simply
+gasped. Then she dumbly shook her head. Barbara and Mollie both
+protested that nothing would persuade them to leave their mother against
+her wishes. As Ruth said afterwards, "Daddie did the whole thing." He
+explained to the girls, and to their mother, how brief the separation
+would be. To the mother he expatiated on the delights and educational
+value of such a trip. To the girls he hinted, delicately, that perhaps
+the little mother would get a bit of a rest, all by herself, for a few
+weeks, even with him to take care of. To all present Mr. Stuart enlarged
+upon the duty of charity toward him, a homeless vacation visitor,
+starving from eating only hotel food, and toward his daughter, a
+sisterless girl with a longing for friends. Though the Thurstons shook
+their heads, between smiles and tears, at the absurdity of these
+arguments, they finally said a grateful "yes."
+
+"One really doesn't need any clothes except veils and dusters for an
+automobile trip, and I have a big extra stock of those," concluded Ruth.
+"I want to run up here for you people--let me see--to-day is Friday--next
+Monday morning. That's such a nice day to start."
+
+"Yes," again cried Mollie and Barbara.
+
+The girls joined hands and made a low curtsey to Mrs. Thurston and Mr.
+Stuart. "Allow me to introduce you," said Ruth in her most impressive
+voice, "to 'The Automobile Girls' on their way to Newport."
+
+"Long may they flourish!" concluded Mr. Stuart, turning to the girls'
+mother. "I'll come up with Ruth and help you start them off, Mrs.
+Thurston. Then, if I may, I will come back and have lunch with you later
+in the day."
+
+"Till Monday!" called Ruth, and the machine whirled off.
+
+Barbara and Mollie watched it from the gate. "I wish--I wish I could do
+something for them," mused Barbara, her chin sunk in her hand, her brown
+eyes showing that soft brightness that only came to them when she was
+greatly moved.
+
+How well she was to repay the Stuart kith and kin she could not then
+guess.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV--MOTHER'S SECRET
+
+
+Mollie danced into the kitchen, waving the feather duster. "I'm so
+happy, I can't keep still!" she declared, waltzing in a circle around
+her mother and Barbara, who were in the kitchen washing the breakfast
+dishes.
+
+"It is just as well you don't have to," Mrs. Thurston laughed. "But,
+children, do be sensible a minute," she urged, as Barbara joined in the
+dance, still polishing a breakfast tumbler. "I've been thinking, that
+going to Newport, if only to stay a few days, _does_ mean more clothes
+than automobile coats and motor veils."
+
+"Now, you are not to worry, mother dearest," interrupted Barbara, "or we
+won't go a single step. Beside, have you forgotten the twenty-dollar
+gold-pieces? They are a fortune, two fortunes really." Barbara had been
+doing some pretty deep thinking herself, on the clothes question, but it
+would never do to let her thoughts be known. As elder daughter she tried
+to save her mother from all the worries she could. "While there are no
+men around in the family, you'll just have to pretend I'm older son
+instead of daughter," she used to say. "When Mollie marries I'll
+resign."
+
+"I'm through dusting," Mollie called from the dining-room. "This time I
+am surely going to get paper and pencil to put down what clothes we most
+need, if Barbara won't stop any runaway horses while I am away."
+
+Mollie's golden head and Barbara's tawny one bent anxiously over the
+paper.
+
+"Ruth's such an impetuous dear! Starting off on our trip Monday does not
+give us time to get anything new. Mother, will you go in to town
+shopping for us, and then send the clothes on later? I suppose we shall
+be on the road some time. Ruth says we are to stop in any of the places
+we like, and see all the sights along the way," continued Barbara.
+
+Gloves, ribbons, stockings, hair ribbons, and--oh, dear, yes! A pink sash
+for Bab and a blue one for Mollie. Forty dollars wasn't such a fortune
+after all. Where was the money left over for the party dresses? Both
+girls looked a little crestfallen, but Barbara shook her head at Mollie
+as a signal not to say anything aloud.
+
+Mother had come into the open dining-room door and was watching the
+girls' faces.
+
+"I've a secret," Mrs. Thurston said, after a minute. "A beautiful secret
+that I have been keeping to myself for over a year, now. But I think
+to-day is the best time I can find to tell it." Mrs. Thurston was
+fragile and blond, like Mollie, with a delicate color in her cheeks, and
+the sweetest smile in the world.
+
+"It's a nice secret, mother, I can tell by your face." Mollie put her
+arm around her mother and pulled her down in a chair, while she and Bab
+sat on either side of her. "Now, out with it!" they both cried.
+
+"Daughters," Mrs. Thurston lowered her voice and spoke in a whisper,
+"upstairs, in my room in the back part of my desk is an old bank book.
+What do you think is pressed between the pages?" She paused a minute,
+and Mollie gave her arm a little shake. "In that book," the mother
+continued, "are two fifty-dollar bills; one is labeled 'Bab' and the
+other is labeled 'Baby.'" Mrs. Thurston still called her big,
+fourteen-year-old daughter "baby" when no one was near.
+
+Mollie and Barbara could only stare at each other, and at their mother
+in surprise.
+
+"Please, and where did they come from?" queried Barbara.
+
+"They came from nickels and dimes, and sometimes pennies," Mrs. Thurston
+replied, as pleased and excited as the girls. "Only a week ago, I went
+to the bank and had the money changed into the two big bills. Oh, I've
+been saving some time. I saw my girls were growing up, and I imagined
+that, some day, something nice would happen--not just this, perhaps, but
+something equally exciting. So I wanted to be ready, and I am. I will
+get the prettiest clothes I can buy for the money, and I'll have Miss
+Mattie, the seamstress, in to help me. When you arrive in the
+fashionable world of Newport, new outfits will be awaiting my two
+girls."
+
+Mrs. Thurston's face was radiant over the joys in store for her
+daughters, but Barbara's eyes were full of tears. She knew what pinching
+and saving, what sacrifices the two banknotes meant.
+
+Soon Bab asked: "You don't need me any more, do you, mother? Because, if
+you don't, I am going up to look in the treasure chest. I want to find
+something to re-trim Mollie's hat. The roses are so faded, on the one
+she is wearing, it will never do to wear with her nice spring suit."
+
+There was a little attic over the cottage, and it almost belonged to
+Barbara. Up there she used to study her lessons, write poetry, and dream
+of the wonderful things she hoped to do in order to make mother and
+Mollie rich.
+
+Barbara skipped over to the trunk, where they kept odds and ends of
+faded finery, gifts from rich cousins who sent their cast-off clothes to
+the little girls. "This is like Pandora's chest," laughed Barbara to
+herself. "It looks as if everything, now, has gone out of it, except
+Hope."
+
+Bump! bang! crash! the chandelier shivered over Mrs. Thurston and
+Mollie's heads. Both started up with the one word, "Bab," on their lips.
+It was impossible to know what she would attempt, or what would happen
+to her next.
+
+Just as they reached the foot of the attic steps an apologetic head
+appeared over the railing. "I am not hurt," Bab's voice explained. "I
+just tried to move the old bureau so I could see better, and I knocked
+over a trunk. I am so sorry, mother, but the trunk has broken open. It
+is that old one of yours. I know it made an awful racket!"
+
+"It does not matter, child," Mrs. Thurston said in a relieved tone, when
+she saw what had actually happened. "Nothing matters, since you have not
+killed yourself."
+
+She bent over her trunk. The old lock had been loosened by the fall, and
+the top had tumbled off. On the floor were a yellow roll of papers, and
+a quaint carved fan. Mrs. Thurston picked them up. The papers she
+dropped in the tray of the trunk, but the fan she kept in her hand.
+"This little fan," she said, "I used at the last party your father and I
+attended together the week before we were married. I have kept it a long
+time, and I think it very beautiful." She opened, with loving fingers, a
+fan of delicately-carved ivory, mounted in silver, and hung on a curious
+silver chain. "Your great-uncle brought it to me from China, when I was
+just your age, Mollie! It was given him by a viceroy, in recognition of
+a service rendered. Which of my daughters would like to take this fan to
+Newport?"
+
+Barbara shook her head, while Mollie looked at it with longing eyes. "I
+don't believe either of us had better take it," protested Bab, "you have
+kept it so carefully all this time."
+
+But her mother said decidedly: "I saved it only for you girls. Here,
+Mollie, suppose you take it; we will find something else for Bab."
+
+As Mollie and her mother lifted out the tray of the old trunk, Bab's
+eyes caught sight of the roll of papers, and she picked them up.
+
+"Hello, hello!" a cheerful voice sounded from downstairs.
+
+"It's Grace Carter," said Mollie. "You don't mind her coming up, do you,
+mother?"
+
+Grace was almost a third daughter at the little Thurston cottage. Her
+own home was big and dull! her mother was a stern, cold woman, and her
+two brothers were much older than Grace.
+
+"No," said Mrs. Thurston, going on with her search.
+
+"I couldn't keep away, chilluns," apologized Grace as she came upstairs.
+"Mother told me I'd be dreadfully in the way, but I just had to talk
+about our trip. Isn't it too splendid! You are not having secrets, are
+you?"
+
+"Not from you," Mrs. Thurston said. "See what I have found for Bab."
+Mrs. Thurston held out an open jewel-case. In it was a beautiful spray
+of pink coral, and a round coral pin.
+
+"I think, Bab, dear," she said, "you are old enough, now, for such
+simple jewelry. I will buy you a white muslin, and you can wear this pin
+at your throat and the spray in your hair. Then, with a coral ribbon
+sash, who knows but you may be one of the belles of a Newport party?"
+
+Barbara flushed with pleasure over the gifts, but she looked so
+embarrassed at her mother's compliment that Mollie and Grace both
+laughed.
+
+"I declare," Grace said, "you have less vanity than any girl in the
+world. Oh, wasn't it fortunate I discovered your money yesterday? Just
+as we all jumped out of the car I heard something clink, and picked up
+one of your twenty dollars. Harry Townsend said he found the other
+tucked away in the leather of the front seat."
+
+"And I sat in the back seat all the time I was in the car," reflected
+Barbara, under her breath.
+
+When a turquoise blue heart on a string of tiny beads had been added to
+Mollie's "going-away" treasures, she and Grace went down stairs.
+
+Barbara still held the roll of papers in her hand and kept turning them
+over and over, trying to read the faded writing. She caught sight of her
+father's signature. "Are these papers valuable?" she asked her mother.
+
+Mrs. Thurston sighed deeply as she answered: "They are old papers of
+your father's. Put them away again. I never like to look at them. I
+found them in his business suit after he was dead. He had sent it to the
+tailor, and had forgotten all about it." Mrs. Thurston took the papers
+from Barbara's hand and put them back into her trunk.
+
+"Do you think they are valuable, mother?" persisted Barbara.
+
+"I don't think so," her mother concluded. "Your uncle told me he looked
+over all your father's papers that were of any value."
+
+After the two had mended the lock of the old trunk, and turned to leave
+the attic, Barbara was still thinking. "Dearest," she said thoughtfully,
+"would you mind my going through those papers some time?" To herself Bab
+added: "I'd like to ask a clever business man, like Mr. Stuart, to
+explain them to me."
+
+But Mrs. Thurston sighed as she said: "Oh, yes, you may look them over,
+some day, if you like. It won't make any difference."
+
+What difference it might make neither Mrs. Thurston or Barbara could
+then know.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V--THE GLORIOUS START
+
+
+Before daylight, on the great day, Mollie's two arms encircled a sleepy
+Barbara, and a soft voice whispered in her ear: "It isn't true, is it,
+Bab, that you and I, two insignificant little girls, who never could
+have conceived of anything so glorious, are off to-day for Newport,
+escorted by Ruth's distinguished friend, 'Mr. A. Bubble'?"
+
+Barbara was wide awake in a minute.
+
+"I suppose it's true," she said, "because it was last night, before we
+went to bed. Otherwise I would think we had both dreamed it."
+
+The two girls talked in excited whispers. It wouldn't do to waken mother
+any earlier than they must, for she was tired with their preparations,
+though her daughters had persuaded her to have a little country girl in
+to help with the work, now that she was to have so important a person as
+Mr. Stuart for "boarder."
+
+But at seven o'clock it was mother who called:
+
+"Get up, girls. It is time for coffee and clothes, if you are to start
+off at ten as you promised. It will not do to keep Miss Stuart and the
+girls waiting. As for Mr. A. Bubble, I don't believe he can stand still,
+even if he tries."
+
+Aunt Sallie having called on Sunday afternoon, had waived ceremony and
+stayed to tea in the tiny cottage, so impressed was she with Mrs.
+Thurston's quiet charm and gentle manners.
+
+The two girls hurried into their kimonos. Mother had suggested these
+garments for this morning, since they were to dress so soon afterwards
+in their "going away" clothes.
+
+By the time that Barbara and Mollie had put on their pretty brown and
+blue serge suits, with their dust coats over them, they heard strange
+noises on the front porch, mingled with giggles and whispers. Barbara
+was putting the sixth hat pin into her hat, and tying the motor veil so
+tightly under her chin that it choked her, when Mollie peeped out the
+front window.
+
+"It's a surprise party, I do believe," she whispered. "There's Harold
+Smith, with a big bunch of pink roses. I know they are for you. The
+girls have little bundles in their hands. What fun! I didn't know they
+had heard of our trip. How fast news _does_ fly around this village."
+
+While Mollie and Barbara were saying their good-byes on their little
+veranda there was equal excitement at the big hotel.
+
+Before breakfast Ruth had gone out to the garage with her arm in her
+father's.
+
+"I want to see with my own eyes, Dad," she said, "that the machine is
+all right. Isn't it well that I have a taste for mechanics, even though
+I am a girl? Suppose I hadn't studied all those automobile books with
+you until I could say them backwards, and hadn't helped you over all the
+accidents--you never would have let me go on this heavenly trip, would
+you? I am going to be as careful as can be, just to show you did right
+to trust me, also not to give Aunt Sallie a chance to say, 'I told you
+so.'"
+
+Ruth had pretty, sunny, red-gold hair and big, gray-blue eyes. Though
+she wasn't exactly a beauty, her face was so frank, and her coloring so
+fresh and lovely, many people thought her very good-looking.
+
+Mr. Stuart smiled at his daughter's enthusiasm. "She's 'a chip of the
+old block,'" he said to himself. "She loves fun and adventure and
+'getting there,' like a man. I am not going to stand in her way."
+
+Mr. Stuart was feeling rather nervous about the trip this morning, but
+he didn't intend Ruth to know.
+
+To judge by the looks of the automobile, the chauffeur must have been up
+all night. The machinery was cleaned and oiled. The extra tires, in
+their dark red leather cases, were strapped to the sides of the car. A
+great box of extra rugs and wraps, rubber covers for the machine and
+mackintoshes in case of rain, was tied on the back. Between the seats
+was an open hamper for lunch, with an English tea service in one
+compartment, and cups, saucers, a teapot and a hot-water jug and alcohol
+lamp, all complete. The luncheon was to be sent down later from the
+hotel.
+
+"You are to take your meals at the inns along the way, when you prefer,"
+Mr. Stuart had explained, "but I don't mean to have you run the risk of
+starving in case you are delayed, or an accident occurs. Be sure to take
+your picnic lunch along with you, when you start out each day. What you
+don't eat, feed to the small boys along the road, who will insist on
+playing guide."
+
+Aunt Sallie was the only one of the hotel party who enjoyed breakfast.
+Grace had driven over early, and was breakfasting with Ruth in order to
+save delay. Both the girls and Mr. Stuart were too excited to take much
+interest in their bacon and eggs, but Aunt Sallie ate with a resigned
+expression that seemed to say: "Perhaps this is my last meal on earth."
+Yet, secretly, she was almost as delighted as were the girls in the
+prospect of the trip.
+
+"Now, Sallie, you are not to go if you don't wish to," Mr. Stuart had
+protested. "You must not let Ruth drag you into this trip against your
+will."
+
+But all he could persuade his sister to answer was: "If Ruth is going on
+such an extraordinary excursion, then, at least, I shall be along to see
+that nothing worse happens to her."
+
+Gladys Le Baron came into the dining-room, stopping in front of Ruth's
+table. "You dear things," she drawled in her most careful society
+manner, "how can you look so fresh so early in the morning? I hope you
+appreciate my getting up to see you off." Gladys wore a lingerie frock
+more appropriate for a party than for the breakfast room.
+
+But Ruth answered good naturedly. "I do appreciate it, if it is such an
+effort for you. Did you know Mr. Townsend is going to ride over to the
+Thurston's with us to see us start? He tells me you and he are both to
+be in Newport while we are there."
+
+"Yes," Gladys declared with more airs than before. "Mrs. Erwin has asked
+me to be one of the house-party she's to have for her ball. She told me
+I could bring a friend along, and I have asked Mr. Townsend."
+
+"Wonderful! We won't expect you to associate with us!" laughed Grace.
+
+"Gladys," Ruth asked, "would you like to drive over to Mrs. Thurston's
+with us? Father is going, and the carriage will be there to bring him
+back."
+
+"I would like to go," murmured Gladys, "if I didn't have on this old
+frock. I don't know Mollie and Barbara very well, but I suppose I shall
+have to see a great deal of them, now you have taken them up. I wonder
+how they will behave at Newport? They have hardly been out of
+Kingsbridge before."
+
+Grace and Ruth both looked angry, and Mr. Stuart broke in, quite curtly:
+"I am sure we can depend on their behaving becomingly, which is all that
+is necessary at Newport or any other place." Ruth's father was a
+business acquaintance of Gladys's father, and had known her mother when
+the latter was a girl, but the airs of Mrs. Le Baron and her society
+daughter were too much for his western common sense. Only Aunt Sallie
+was impressed by their imposing manner.
+
+Ruth was very popular at the big summer hotel, and a number of the
+guests had assembled to see her off. But Ruth let her father run the car
+and sat quietly by his side. "You'll turn over the command to me,
+captain, won't you, when the trip really commences?" and she squeezed
+his arm with a little movement of affection.
+
+"Yes, lieutenant," Mr. Stuart said quietly.
+
+"Oh, Miss Ruth," called Mr. Townsend from the back seat, "do show all
+these people how you can handle your car!" But she only shook her head.
+
+"Goodness me, what are all those people doing on Mrs. Thurston's porch?"
+Ruth asked, in alarm. "I hope nothing has happened." But, as the car
+neared the quiet little house, which stood midway between the hotel and
+the New York high road, she saw the party of young people gathered on
+the front lawn.
+
+"It's only their friends, come to say good-bye to them," Harry
+volunteered. In answer to "What a bore!" from Gladys, he continued: "I
+don't know why you should think it a bore. Miss Stuart enjoys her
+friends's popularity." Mr. Townsend had been trying, for several weeks,
+to make himself equally agreeable to Ruth and Gladys. They were both
+very wealthy, and it seemed wise to him to associate with rich people.
+But as Ruth was not easily impressed with what she called "just
+foolishness," he had become very intimate with Gladys Le Baron.
+
+When Mr. Stuart tooted the horn to announce their approach to the
+cottage a chorus of tin horns answered him from Mrs. Thurston's front
+garden. As the car drew up to the gate, the boys and girls began to
+sing, "See the Conquering Hero Comes," while Barbara ran down to the car
+and Mollie urged her friends to be quieter. "I just don't know what Miss
+Stuart and Mr. Stuart will think of us!" she blushingly remonstrated.
+
+But Aunt Sallie and Mr. Stuart were in for all the fun going this
+morning. Barbara was invited to call her seven friends who had come to
+give the girls a send-off, down to meet the occupants of the car. Even
+Gladys, as she was forced to get out of the automobile to let the other
+travelers in, was condescending enough to permit Harold Smith to assist
+her. Harold was an old friend of Barbara's, and one of the cleverest
+boys in the village.
+
+Mr. Stuart went into the house for the suit cases and satchels, which
+were all the girls were to take with them, as they were to manage with
+as few clothes as possible. It had been arranged that extra luggage was
+to be expressed to them along the way.
+
+Barbara had caught Mollie storing away a sample package of cold cream
+among her most treasured possessions.
+
+"I am sure I don't see why you should laugh so," Mollie urged quite
+seriously. "It reads on the label 'especially adapted for automobile
+travelers to remove dust and tan from the face after the drive.' Aren't
+we going to be automobile travelers?"
+
+"Sure and we a'ire," said Bab, imitating the old Irish washerwoman, "and
+it shall put grease on its nose if it likes."
+
+"Come, daughter," said Mr. Stuart finally, as Ruth was trying to explain
+to a group of admiring boys the first principles of running an
+automobile. She talked as familiarly of an emergency brake and a
+steering wheel, of horse power and speed-transmission, as most girls
+talk of frills and furbelows.
+
+"It's ten-thirty," Mr. Stuart continued, "and, if this party is to be a
+strictly on time affair, you must be off! You couldn't have a more
+wonderful day."
+
+It was late in the month of June. The summer clouds were sailing
+overhead, great bubbles of white foam thrown up into the blue depth of
+the sky. The sun shone brightly and the whole atmosphere was perfumed
+with the bloom of the honeysuckle, that hung in yellow clusters from
+Mrs. Thurston's porch.
+
+Barbara and Mollie flung their arms around their mother until she was
+completely enveloped in their embrace. Ruth kissed her father, and put
+her hand to her trim leather cap with a military salute. "It's all
+right, captain," she said; "I'll bring my crew and good ship 'Bubble'
+safely into port."
+
+Aunt Sallie was anxious to be off. She could see that Mrs. Thurston was
+on the verge of tears at the thought of parting with her daughters.
+Still the young people were laughing and talking, and storing their
+little gifts under the seats in the car, as though they had all day
+before them.
+
+"Hurry, child," Aunt Sallie urged, reaching out a hand to Mollie. "Jump
+up on the back seat with Grace and me. We will let Mistress Barbara sit
+with Ruth for the first of the journey." Aunt Sallie was very imposing
+in a violet silk traveling coat, with a veil and hat of the same shade;
+indeed, Miss Sallie had a fancy for a "touch of lavender" in everything
+she wore. With her snow-white hair, and commanding appearance, she would
+add prestige to the party, Mollie thought, no matter how dusty and
+wind-blown the rest of them might appear.
+
+The girls hopped gayly in. Toot, toot, toot! the horn blew three times.
+Chug-chug-chug! and the great machine began to breathe with deep,
+muffled roars. Mr. Stuart gave the starting crank a strong turn, and the
+car slid gracefully along the road, red, blue, pink and violet motor
+veils floating behind in the breeze.
+
+"Here's good luck to you!" shouted Harold Smith, and roses and flowers
+of every kind were flung after them. Mollie and Grace picked up those
+that fell into their laps, and turned to wave their hands and throw
+kisses for good-bye.
+
+"They look like a rainbow," said Mr. Stuart, turning to Mrs. Thurston,
+who was no longer trying to hide her tears. Then he smiled at her
+gently. She was such a tiny, girlish-looking little woman, it was hard
+to think of her as the mother of two nearly grown-up daughters. "I
+expect," he continued, "that that rainbow holds most of our promise of
+sunshine."
+
+They were still watching the car!
+
+Down to the gate, at the furthest end of the road, a baby boy, chubby
+and fat, had crawled on two round, turned-in legs. There was something
+unusual going on down the street. He could hear strange noises, but,
+though he stuck his small nose through the fence, he was still unable to
+see. Just as Ruth's car was almost in front of the house, open flew the
+stubborn old gate, and the child flung himself out in the middle of the
+road, just in front of the wonderful red thing he could see flying
+toward him. The baby was too young to understand the danger.
+
+From the watchers at Mrs. Thurston's came a cry of horror. A thrill of
+terror passed through the occupants of the car. Ruth's face turned
+white. Like a flash, she slowed a little, turned her steering wheel and
+with a wide sweep drove her motor to the far side of the road, then
+straight on out of the path of the wondering baby.
+
+Mr. Stuart's, "Bravo, daughter!" was lost in his throat. But the little
+group of waiting friends gave three cheers for the girl chauffeur, which
+Ruth heard even at such a distance. Truly "The Automobile Girls" were
+fairly started on their adventures.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI--WHAT HAPPENED THE FIRST DAY
+
+
+The car flew along by sunny meadows and farms. New York was the first
+day's goal.
+
+"Barbara," Ruth said to her next-door neighbor, "you are hereby
+appointed royal geographer and guide-extraordinary to this party! Here
+is the route-book. It will be up to you to show us which roads we are to
+take. It is a pretty hard job, as I well know from experience; but then,
+honors come hard. You don't need to worry to-day. I know this coast trip
+into New York as well as I know my A.B.C.'s. I have often come along
+this way with father. Let's have a perfectly beautiful time in New York.
+We'll make Aunt Sallie chaperon us while we do the town, or, at least, a
+part of it. Have you ever been to a roof garden?"
+
+Barbara's eyes danced. It didn't sound quite right somehow--a roof
+garden--but then they were out for experiences, and Miss Sallie wouldn't
+let them do anything really wrong.
+
+Ruth glanced out of the corner of her eye at Barbara. Miss Stuart was a
+good little chauffeur who never allowed her attention to be distracted
+from running her car, no matter what was being talked of around her, nor
+how much she was interested, but she couldn't help laughing at Barbara's
+expression; it told so plainly all that was going on inside her head.
+
+"I do assure you, Miss Barbara Thurston, that a roof garden may be a
+fairly respectable thing, quite well suited to entertaining, without
+shocking either Miss Sallie Stuart or her four charming protegees." Ruth
+called back: "Aunt Sallie, will you take us up on the Waldorf roof
+to-night? You know we are going to stay at the Waldorf Hotel, girls.
+Father said we might enjoy the experience, and it would be all right
+with Aunt Sallie for chaperon."
+
+Grace pinched Mollie's arm to express her rapture, and that little
+maiden simply gasped with delight. It was Mollie, not Barbara, of the
+two sisters, who had the greatest yearning for wealth and society, and
+the beautiful clothes and wonderful people that she believed went along
+with it. Barbara was an out-door girl, who loved tennis and all the
+sports, and could swim like a fish. An artist who spent his summers at
+Kingsbridge, once called her a brown sea-gull, when he saw her lithe
+brown body dart off the great pier to dive deep into the water.
+
+Aunt Sallie had been taking a brief cat-nap, before Ruth's question, and
+awakened in high good humor. "Why, yes, children," she answered, "it
+will be very pleasant to go up on the roof to-night, after we have had
+our baths and our dinners. I am quite disposed to let you do just what
+you like, so long as you behave yourselves."
+
+Grace Carter pressed Aunt Sallie's fat hand, as a message of thanks.
+Grace was Aunt Sallie's favorite among Ruth's friends. "She is a quiet,
+lady-like girl, who does not do unexpected things that get on one's
+nerves," Miss Sallie had once explained to Ruth. "Now, Aunt Sallie,"
+Ruth had protested, "I know I do get on your nerves sometimes, but you
+know you need me to stir you up. Think how dull you would be without
+me!" And Aunt Sallie had answered, with unexpected feeling: "I would be
+very dull, indeed, my dear."
+
+The girls were full of their plans for the evening.
+
+"That is why Ruth told us each to put a muslin dress in our suit cases!
+Ruth, are you going to think up a fresh surprise every day! It's just
+too splendid!" Mollie spoke in a tone of such fervent emotion that
+everyone in the car laughed.
+
+"I don't suppose I can manage a surprise every day, Molliekins," Ruth
+called back over her shoulder, "but I mean to think up as many as I
+possibly can. We are going to have the time of our lives, you know, and
+something must happen to make it."
+
+All this time the car had been flying faster than the girls could talk.
+"This is 'going some,'" commented Ruth, laughing.
+
+When they came into Lakewood Ruth slowed up, as she had promised her
+father not to go any faster than the law allowed. "I cross my heart and
+body, Dad," she had said. "Think of four lovely maidens and their
+handsome duenna languishing in jail instead of flying along the road to
+Newport. Honest Injun! father, I'll read every automobile sign from here
+to Jehosaphat, if we ever decide to travel that way."
+
+In Lakewood, Ruth drove her car around the wonderful pine shaded lake.
+
+"It's a winter resort," she explained to her companions. "Nearly all the
+cottages and hotels are closed in the summer, but I wanted you to have a
+smell of the pines. It will give you strength for the rest of the trip."
+
+Silence fell on the party as they skimmed out of Lakewood. After so much
+excitement it was pleasant to look at things without having to talk.
+
+Mollie had begun, once in a while, to tap the lunch basket with her
+foot. The fresh air and the long ride had made her desperately hungry.
+She really couldn't remember having eaten any breakfast in the
+excitement of getting off. But nobody said f-o-o-d! She felt she was the
+youngest member of the party and should not make suggestions before Miss
+Sallie.
+
+Ruth turned into a narrow lane; a sign post pointed the way to a
+deserted village.
+
+"Oh, dear me!" sighed Mollie to herself. "Why are we going to a deserted
+village, just as we are dying of hunger!"
+
+Ruth said never a word. She passed some tumble-down old cottages of a
+century ago, then an old iron foundry, and drew up with a great flourish
+before an old stone house, green with moss and ivy and fragrant with a
+"lovely" odor of cooking! There were little tables set out on the lawn
+and on the old-fashioned veranda, and soon the party was reveling in
+lunch.
+
+"I didn't know food could be so heavenly," whispered Mollie in Bab's
+ear, when they were back in the car, for Grace had begged for a seat by
+the chauffeur for the afternoon trip.
+
+Soon Ruth left the country behind, and came out on the sea-coast road
+that ran through Long Branch, Deal Beach, Monmouth and Seabright.
+
+From carriages and other automobiles, and along the promenades, everyone
+smiled at the crimson car full of happy, laughing girls.
+
+Ruth was driving in her best fashion, making all the speed she could,
+with the thought of town fifty miles or more ahead. "It is a sight to
+see," quoth Barbara, "the way the fairy princess handles her chariot of
+fire."
+
+It was a little after four o'clock when the car boarded the Staten
+Island ferry and finally crossed to the New York shore.
+
+"You see, Bab," Mollie said, trying to stuff her curls under her motor
+cap and to rub the dust from her rosy cheeks with a tiny pocket
+handkerchief as they sped up Broadway, "I might be dreadfully
+embarrassed arriving at the Waldorf looking the way I do, if I were not
+in a motor car, but riding in an automobile makes one feel so awfully
+swell that nothing matters. Isn't it lovely just to feel important for
+once? You know it is, Bab, and you needn't say no! It's silly to
+pretend."
+
+Miss Sallie was again on the border of slumberland, so that Mollie and
+Barbara could have their low-voiced talk.
+
+"Does Ruth know I have never even been to New York before?" asked
+Mollie. "I hope I won't seem very green about things. You must tell me
+if I do, Bab."
+
+But Bab only laughed and shook her head. "You are a foolish baby," she
+said.
+
+Two respectful porters at the Waldorf helped a dusty, crumpled party out
+of the big red touring car.
+
+The girls, a little dazed, followed Miss Sallie through a maze of palms
+and servants in livery, with handsomely dressed people strolling through
+the halls, until their suite of rooms, which Mr. Stuart had engaged by
+telegraph a few days before, was reached.
+
+The three rooms adjoined, only separated by white tile bathrooms. Miss
+Sallie, naturally, had a room to herself, and it was decided that Ruth
+and Grace were to sleep together, leaving the sisters to themselves.
+
+"Isn't it too beautiful!" sighed Mollie, standing in the midst of their
+luxurious chamber, gazing around at the single brass beds, with their
+rose-colored draperies, and the ivory-striped satin wall paper,
+garlanded in pink flowers. Ruth and Grace were equally fine in a room
+decorated in blue, and, even in the Waldorf, Miss Sallie's taste seemed
+to have been consulted, as her room was in her favorite violet shade.
+
+In some mysterious way the crumpled muslin dresses were taken downstairs
+by a maid, and came back smooth and fresh. Even Miss Sallie's elaborate
+chiffon gown looked as though it had just come home from the modiste's.
+
+"O Ruth! Ruth!" Mollie exclaimed, as the four girls made their way to
+the dining-room, Miss Sallie in the lead, "I didn't know there could be
+such a magnificent place in the world as this. I don't know what I can
+ever do to repay you, except to love you and be grateful my whole life
+long."
+
+"Well, I am sure that is all the gratitude I should ever want, Mollie,"
+laughed Ruth. "But wait until you see the houses at Newport."
+
+All eyes near the door turned to see the little automobile party enter
+the "palm room." Miss Sallie swept ahead in her black lace and chiffon,
+looking very handsome and impressive. Barbara and Grace came next;
+Barbara with her red-brown hair breaking into willful curves and waves,
+her big brown eyes glowing with pleasure, and the deep red showing in
+her olive cheeks; Grace with her look of refinement and gentle dignity.
+The blond maidens came in last. Ruth's bright gold hair and fresh
+coloring showed to best advantage in a dainty white muslin and lace
+frock. She was half a head taller than dainty Mollie, who looked like a
+flower with her yellow curls gathered in a soft cluster at the back of
+her neck and tied with a black velvet ribbon.
+
+On the Waldorf roof, Miss Stuart and the girls sat under an orange tree,
+hung in some mysterious way with golden oranges. The whole place was
+decorated with palms and evergreens and beautiful flowers. The soft,
+shaded yellow lights rivaled the moonlight that glowed above.
+
+"It's like the enchanted garden in the French fairy story, isn't it,
+Miss Sallie? Where the flowers and fruits bloomed all the year round?"
+whispered Barbara, who sat next their chaperon.
+
+Miss Sallie smiled very kindly at her enthusiasm.
+
+"I expect it is, but I am afraid I have forgotten the story. It has been
+a long time, remember, Barbara, since fairies and I have had much to say
+to each other."
+
+Barbara blushed. "Oh, I am not so young as all that, Miss Sallie; but I
+have never forgotten the fairy tales I read when I was a little girl.
+Though I must confess I liked boys' stories better. I just love
+adventures!" And Barbara's eyes shone. In a little while the music
+commenced, and she forgot everything but that.
+
+Mollie was differently occupied. What she liked best was to gaze around
+her at the women in their jewels and wonderful gowns.
+
+Just across from her on the other side of the aisle was a rarely
+beautiful woman in a white lace gown, with a string of pearls round her
+throat, and a pearl and diamond butterfly that glowed and sparkled in
+her hair.
+
+Mollie was so fascinated by her beauty that she couldn't help watching
+this stranger, and even overhearing a little of her conversation. "It
+isn't exactly eavesdropping," Mollie apologized to herself, "because I
+don't know them and they can never possibly know me." So nobody noticed,
+but Mollie, that when the woman gave a laughing toss of her head in
+answer to some question from her husband, who sat back of her, that the
+beautiful, jeweled butterfly slipped softly out of her hair, fell into
+the softer lace folds of her gown and then down--down--to the floor!
+
+The little girl waited half a minute. No one else had noticed the loss.
+At any time an usher might come down the aisle and crush the exquisite
+jewel. Mollie forgot herself and her shyness. If it had been Barbara she
+would not have minded, but Mollie was timid before strangers. She
+slipped quietly across the aisle and picked up the butterfly.
+
+"I beg your pardon," her soft voice explained, "but I saw this fall from
+your hair, and, as you did not notice it, I was afraid it might be
+crushed."
+
+The lovely woman turned in surprise. It is just as well to call her "the
+lovely lady," now, for that was Mollie's name for her ever afterwards.
+
+"My dear," she said, "I am very grateful to you. How could I have failed
+to see it? I am especially obliged to you, because I am very fond of
+this ornament."
+
+Mollie blushed rosy-red, as the people close to them had observed what
+had happened and were watching her. As she tried to slip over to her
+seat, the lady reached out and gave the child's hand a gentle squeeze of
+thanks, glancing across as she did so to see what friends the little
+girl was with, and so caught Ruth Stuart's eye.
+
+The intermission came at this minute.
+
+"Why, Ruth Stuart!" Mollie, to her surprise, heard her friend's name
+called in a low voice, and Ruth came across to them.
+
+"It's Mrs. Cartwright," she said. "I am so pleased! I didn't suppose you
+would remember me."
+
+"Of course I remember you, Ruth," Mrs. Cartwright protested. "It has
+been only two years since I saw you at my own wedding in Chicago. My
+memory is surely longer than that. Isn't that your aunt, Miss Stuart?"
+Mrs. Cartwright moved across the aisle to speak to Miss Sallie and to
+introduce her husband. When they had shaken hands, Mrs. Cartwright
+asked: "May I know what you are doing in this part of the world at this
+season?"
+
+"I am playing chaperon to my madcap niece and her three friends, who are
+doing an automobile trip to Newport without a man. Ruth is her own
+chauffeur," Miss Sallie explained, laughing.
+
+"How jolly of you, Ruth, and how clever! I am so glad you are going to
+Newport. Did you know my summer place is down there? I am only in town
+for a day or two. My husband had to come on business and I am with him.
+We shall be motoring home, soon, and may pass you if you are to take
+things slowly. Why not join me at New Haven? My husband's brother is a
+junior at Yale, and we've promised to stop there for a day. There is a
+dance on at Alumni Hall. I'd be too popular for words if I could take
+you four pretty girls along with me!"
+
+Ruth turned to her aunt with glowing eyes. "We did want to see the
+college dreadfully," she said. "I have never seen a big Eastern
+university. We didn't dream of knowing anybody who would show us around.
+Wouldn't it be too much for you to have us all on your hands?"
+
+"Certainly not," said Mrs. Cartwright, "but a most decided pleasure. I
+shall meet you in New Haven, say, day after to-morrow, and I'll
+telegraph to-night to my brother, whose name is Donald Cartwright, by
+the way, to expect us."
+
+The music was about to begin again, but, before Mrs. Cartwright went
+over to her seat, she put her hand on Mollie's curls. "I must see this
+little girl often at Newport. Then I can thank her better for saving my
+lovely butterfly for me. I hope to make all of you have a beautiful
+time." She put the jewel into her hair again, and Mollie looked at it
+thoughtfully. She was to know it again some day, under stranger
+circumstances.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII--SHOWING THEIR METTLE
+
+
+"Girls!" Aunt Sallie said solemnly next morning, as Mr. Cartwright and
+two footmen helped her into the motor car, while Barbara, Grace and
+Mollie stood around holding her extra veils, her magazines and
+pocketbook. "I feel, in my bones, that it is going to rain to-day. I
+think we had better stay in town."
+
+"Oh, Aunt Sallie!" Ruth's hand was already on the spark of her steering
+wheel, and she was bouncing up and down on her seat in her impatience to
+be off. "It's simply a splendid day! Look at the sun!" She leaned over
+to Mr. Cartwright. "Do say something to cheer Aunt Sallie up. If she
+loses her nerve now, we'll never have our trip."
+
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright both reassured her. "The paper says clear
+weather and light winds, Miss Stuart. You'll have a beautiful day of it.
+Remember we shall meet you in New Haven to-morrow, and you have promised
+to wait for us."
+
+Aunt Sallie settled herself resignedly into her violet cushions, holding
+her smelling bottle to her nose. "Very well, young people, have it your
+own way," she relented. "But, mark my words, it will rain before night.
+I have a shoulderblade that is a better weather prophet than all your
+bureaus."
+
+"You're much too handsome a woman," laughed Ruth, the other girls
+joining her, "to talk like Katisha, in the 'Mikado,' who had the famous
+shoulderblade that people came miles to see."
+
+Ruth was steering her car through Fifth Avenue, so Aunt Sallie merely
+smiled at her own expense, adding: "You're a very disrespectful niece,
+Ruth."
+
+"I'd get on my knees to apologize, Auntie," declared Ruth, "only there
+isn't room, and we'd certainly be run into, if I did."
+
+Barbara was poring over the route book. Her duty as guide to the
+automobile party really began to-day, and she was studying every inch of
+the road map. What would she do if they were lost?
+
+"You may look up from that book just once in every fifteen minutes,
+Guide Thurston," Ruth said, pretending to be serious over Barbara's
+worried look. "We promise not to eat you if you do get us a little out
+of our way. The roads are well posted. What shall we do if we meet some
+bandits?"
+
+"Leave them to me," boasted Barbara. "I suppose it's my fate to play man
+of the party."
+
+"And what of the chauffeur?" Ruth protested. "I wonder what any of us
+could do if we got into danger."
+
+The day was apparently lovely. The girls were in the wildest spirits.
+
+"I never believed until this minute," announced Mollie, "that we were
+actually going on the trip to Newport. I felt every moment something
+would happen to stop us. I even dreamed, last night, that we met a great
+giant in the road, and he roared at us, 'I never allow red motor cars
+with brass trimmings to pass along this road!' Ruth wouldn't pay the
+least attention to him, but kept straight ahead, until he picked up the
+car and started to pitch us over in a ditch. Then Ruth cried: 'Hold on
+there! If you won't let a red car pass, I'll go back to town and have
+mine painted green. I must have my trip.' Just as she turned around and
+started back, I woke up. Wasn't it awful?"
+
+"You are a goose," said Grace, rather nervously. "It isn't a sign of
+anything, is it? You ought not to tell your dreams after breakfast. You
+may make them come true."
+
+Barbara and Ruth both shouted with laughter, for Mollie answered just as
+seriously: "You're wrong, Grace; it's telling dreams before breakfast
+that makes them come true. I was particularly careful to wait."
+
+The car passed swiftly through the town in the early morning. Soon the
+spires and towers of the city were no longer visible.
+
+"Hurrah for the Boston Post Road!" sang Barbara, as the car swung into
+the famous old highway.
+
+"And hurrah for Barbara for discovering it!" teased Ruth. "Now, clear
+the track, fellow autoists and slow coach drivers! We know where we're
+going, and we're on the way!"
+
+It had been decided to make a straight trip through to New Haven, and to
+wait there for Mrs. Cartwright. Miss Sallie had insisted on some rest,
+and the girls were wild to see the college--and the college men.
+
+"It will be sure enough sport," Ruth confided, "to have one dance with
+all the partners needed to go round." Men were as scarce at the
+Kingsbridge Hotel as they were in other summer resorts, and Ruth was
+tired of Harry Townsend and his kind, who liked to stay around the
+hotel, making eyes at all the girls they saw.
+
+"Yes," said Barbara thoughtfully, "it will be fun. Yet, Ruth, suppose we
+are sticks and no one dances with us?" Barbara didn't like the thought
+of being a wall-flower. Ruth laughed and quickly replied, "Oh, Mrs.
+Cartwright is awfully jolly and popular, so we will have plenty of
+invitations to dance."
+
+"Ruth," said Miss Sallie, a little after noon, when they had passed,
+without a hitch, through a number of beautiful Connecticut towns, and
+were speeding along an open road, with a view of the waters of Long
+Island Sound to the right of them, "I have not looked at my watch
+lately, but I've an impression I am hungry. As long as we have made up
+our minds to eat the luncheon the hotel has put up for us, why not stop
+along the road here, and have a picnic?"
+
+"Good for you, Aunt Sallie!" said Grace, emphatically. "This is a beauty
+place. Ruth can leave the car right here, and we can go up under that
+elm and make tea. What larks!"
+
+The girls all piled out, carrying the big lunch hamper between them. On
+the stump of an old tree the alcohol lamp was set up and tea was quickly
+brewed. Then the girls formed a circle on the ground, while Miss Sallie,
+from her throne of violet silk pillows, gave directions about setting
+the lunch table.
+
+No one noticed how the time passed. No one could notice, all were having
+such a jolly time; even Miss Sallie was now in excellent spirits. She
+had been in Newport several times before, and the girls were full of
+questions.
+
+Mollie leaned her head against Miss Sallie's knee, so intimate had she
+grown in a day and a half with that awe-inspiring person. "Is it true,"
+she inquired in a voice of reverence, "that every person who lives in
+Newport is a millionaire?"
+
+"And are the streets paved with gold, Miss Sallie?" queried Grace. She
+was Mollie's special friend, and fond of teasing her. "I read that the
+water at Bailey's Beach is perfumed every morning before the ladies go
+in bathing, and that all the fish that come from near there taste like
+cologne."
+
+Miss Sallie laughed. "There are some people at Newport who are not
+summer people," she explained. "You must remember that it is an old New
+England town, and there are thousands of people who live there the year
+around. My brother has persuaded some old friends of ours, who used to
+be very wealthy when I was a girl, to take us to board with them. There
+are very few hotels."
+
+Several times during their talk Ruth's eyes had wandered a little
+anxiously to the sky above them. Every now and then the shadows darkened
+under the old elm where they were eating their luncheon, bringing a
+sudden coolness to the summer atmosphere.
+
+"Aunt Sallie made me nervous about the weather with that story of her
+shoulderblade," Ruth argued with herself. So she was the first to say:
+"Come, we had better be off. What a lot of time we've wasted!"
+
+"No hurry, Ruth," Aunt Sallie answered, placidly. "New Haven is no great
+distance. We shall be there before dark."
+
+It was fully half after two before the automobile girls had gathered up
+their belongings and were again comfortably disposed in the car.
+
+"It certainly is great, Ruth, the way you crank up your own car," Grace
+declared. "It must take an awful lot of strength, doesn't it?"
+
+"Yes," admitted Ruth, as she jumped back into her automobile and the car
+plunged on ahead. "But I've a strong right arm. I don't row and play
+tennis for nothing. Father says it takes skill and courage, as well as
+strength, to drive a car. I hope I'm not boasting; it's only that father
+believes girls should attempt to do things as well as boys. Girls could
+do a lot more if they tried harder. 'Sometimes,' Dad says, 'gumption
+counts for more than brute force.'"
+
+"Whew, Ruth! You talk like a suffragette," objected Grace.
+
+"Well, maybe I am one," said Ruth. "I'm from the West, where they raise
+strong-minded women. What do you say, Barbara?"
+
+"I don't know," replied Barbara. "I would not like to go to war, and I'm
+awfully afraid I'd run from a burglar in the dark."
+
+"Who'd have thought Barbara would confess to being a coward?" Grace
+broke in, just to see what Bab would say. But Bab wouldn't answer. "I
+don't know what I would do," she ended.
+
+"Anyhow," said Miss Ruth, from her position of dignity on the
+chauffeur's seat, "I should be allowed to vote on laws for motor cars,
+as long as I can run a machine without a man."
+
+"My dear Ruth," interposed Miss Sallie at last, "I beg of you, don't
+vote in my lifetime. Girls, in my day, would never have dreamed of such
+a thing."
+
+"Oh, well, Auntie," answered Ruth, "I wouldn't worry about it now. Who
+knows when I may have a chance to vote?"
+
+Ruth was worried by the clouds overhead, so she ran her machine at full
+speed. It took some time and ingenuity to make their way through
+Bridgeport, a big, bustling town with crowded streets. By this time the
+clouds had lifted, and, for the next hour, Ruth forgot the rain. She and
+Barbara were having a serious talk on the front seat. Mollie and Grace,
+with their arms around each other, were almost as quiet as Aunt Sallie;
+indeed, they were more so, for that good soul was gently snoring.
+
+"If we should have any adventures, Bab," said Ruth, "I wonder if we'd be
+equal to them? I'll wager you would be. Father says that when people are
+not too sure of themselves before a thing happens, they are likely to be
+brave at the critical minute."
+
+The car was going down a hill with a steep incline. Ruth's hand was on
+the brake. Biff! Biff! Bang! Bang! A cannon ball seemed to have exploded
+under them. Miss Sallie sat up very straight, with an expression of
+great dignity; Grace and Mollie gave little screams, and Barbara looked
+as though she were willing to be defended if anything very dreadful had
+happened.
+
+Only Ruth dared laugh. "You're not killed, girls," she said. "You might
+as well get used to that racket; it happens to the best regulated motor
+cars. It is only a bursted tire; but it might have been kind enough to
+have happened in town, instead of on this deserted country road. Oh,
+dear me!" she next ejaculated, for, before she could stop her car, it
+had skidded, and the front wheel was imbedded in a deep hole in the
+road.
+
+"Get out, please," Ruth ordered. "Grace, will you find a stone for me? I
+must try to brace this wheel. Did I say something about skill, instead
+of strength, and not needing a man?" Ruth had taken off her coat and
+rolled up her sleeves in a business-like fashion.
+
+"I have helped father with a punctured tire before." She tugged at the
+old tire, which hung limp and useless by this time. She was talking very
+cheerfully, though Aunt Sallie's woeful expression would have made any
+girl nervous. At the same time dark clouds had begun to appear overhead.
+
+"You'd better get out the rain things," Ruth conceded. "I can't get this
+fixed very soon. Queer no one passes along this way. It's a lonesome
+kind of road. I wonder if we are off the main track?"
+
+"It is a country lane, not a main road. I saw that at once," said Miss
+Sallie.
+
+"Then why didn't you tell us, Aunt Sallie?"
+
+"My eyes were closed to avoid the dust," replied Aunt Sallie firmly.
+
+Poor Ruth had a task on her hands. If only the car had not skidded into
+that ugly hole, she could have managed; but it was impossible for her,
+with the help of all the girls, to lift the car enough to slip the new
+tire over the rim.
+
+Mollie and Grace were taking Miss Sallie a little walk through the woods
+at the side of the road to try to make the time pass and to give Ruth a
+chance. Grace had winked at her slyly as they departed.
+
+"Barbara," Ruth said finally, in tragic tones, "I'm in a fix and I might
+as well confess it. I know it all comes of my boasting that I didn't
+need a man. My kingdom for one just for a few minutes! Do you suppose
+there is a farmhouse near where we could find some one to help me get
+this wheel out of the rut? I'd surrender this job to a man with
+pleasure."
+
+"I don't believe we are on the right road, Ruth, dear." Barbara felt so
+responsible that she was almost in tears. Ominous thunder clouds were
+rolling overhead, and Bab tried not to notice the large splash of rain
+that had fallen on her nose.
+
+"Don't worry Bab, dear," urged Ruth. "I should have looked out for the
+road, too. It can't be helped."
+
+"But I am going to help. You can just rely on that," announced Barbara,
+shaking her brown curls defiantly. She had taken off her hat in the
+exertion of trying to help Ruth. "We passed a sleepy-looking old farm a
+little way back, but I am going to wake it up!"
+
+She heard Miss Sallie and the girls returning to the shelter of the car,
+for the rain had suddenly come down in torrents. Down the road sped Bab,
+shaking her head like a little brown Shetland pony.
+
+Miss Sallie was in the depths of despair.
+
+"Child," she said sternly to Ruth, "get into the car out of that mud. We
+will remain here, under the shelter of the covers until morning. Then,
+if we are alive, I myself will walk to the nearest town and telegraph
+your father. We will take the next train back to New York." Miss Sallie
+spoke with the extreme severity due to a rheumatic shoulder that had
+been disregarded.
+
+"Please let me keep on trying, Aunt Sallie," pleaded Ruth. "I'll get the
+tire on, or some one will come along to help me. I am so sorry, for I
+know it is all my fault."
+
+"Never mind, Ruth; but you are to come into this car." And Ruth, covered
+with mud, was obliged to give in.
+
+"Where, I should like to know," demanded Miss Sallie, "is Barbara?"
+
+Through the rain they could hear the patter, patter of a horse's hoofs.
+
+[Illustration: On Came Barbara, Riding Bareback.]
+
+"Cheer up, Ruth, dear," whispered Grace. "What difference does a little
+rain make? Here is some one coming along the road!"
+
+Ruth's eyes were full of tears; Aunt Sallie's threat to stop their trip
+was more than she could bear; but she was soon smiling.
+
+"Why, Barbara Thurston," the girls called out together, "it can't be
+you!" On came Barbara, riding bareback astride an old horse, the
+animal's big feet clattering, its mane and tail soaked with rain.
+
+"Great heavens!" said Miss Sallie, and closed her eyes.
+
+Barbara rode up to the automobile, her hand clasped tightly in the
+horse's mane.
+
+"I'm as right as can be, Miss Sallie. I went back to that sleepy old
+farm, knocked and knocked for help, and called and called, but nobody
+would answer. Just as I gave up all hope, old Dobbin came to the porch
+and neighed, as if inquiring what I was doing on his premises. Like a
+flash I put out my hand, as though to pat him, grabbed him by the mane,
+hopped up here, and now you see the best lady bareback rider from
+Rinkhem's Circus. I led you into this mess; now I'm going to get you
+out. I shall ride old Dobbin into town and come back with help." Bab
+declaimed this, ending out of breath.
+
+"Never mind, Miss Sallie," Mollie explained, seeing her consternation.
+"Bab never rode any other way than bareback when she was a little girl.
+Do let her go!"
+
+"Very well; but she may be arrested as a horse thief. That is all I have
+to say in the matter." Miss Sallie sank back on her cushions, but
+Barbara had clattered off before she could be forbidden to go. She
+caught the words, "horse thief," as she rode as fast as old Dobbin would
+carry her.
+
+"It's Barbara to the rescue again!" Ruth shouted after her.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII--"FOR WE ARE JOLLY GOOD FELLOWS!"
+
+
+"Suppose I should be arrested!" thought Barbara uncomfortably. "It would
+be distinctly unpleasant to be hauled off to jail, while Aunt Sallie and
+the girls remain stuck in the mud, not knowing my fate, and helpless to
+save me! I may meet old Dobbin's owner at any minute!"
+
+It was after six o'clock, and, because of the heavy storm, was almost
+dusk. Barbara had decided to go to the end of the lane and find the main
+road to New Haven, hoping to sooner discover help in that direction.
+
+Before long she came to a fork in the road. By riding close to the
+sign-post she found a hand pointing: "Nine Miles to New Haven." On she
+sped through the mud and rain, slipping and sliding on the horse's back,
+but still holding tight to his mane.
+
+"Stop! Hello, there! Why, Mirandy, if that ain't my own hoss, and that
+girl astride it running off as fast as she can! Hello! Stop!" The farmer
+lashed the horse hitched to his rickety old buggy, and dashed after
+Barbara, who had ridden past without noticing them. "Stop, thief!"
+
+Down to her wet toes sank Barbara's heart. The worst she had feared had
+happened. If only she had seen their buggy in time to stop first and ask
+their help. Now, rushing by them, how could she explain? Horse thief,
+indeed.
+
+"Oh, please," she said, her voice not quite steady, "I am not exactly
+running away with your horse; I am only going for help! My friends----"
+
+The farmer grabbed the horse savagely by the mane. "Come on," he said.
+"You can tell your story at the nearest police station. I ain't got time
+fer sech foolishness. What I see, I see with my own eyes. You're plain
+running away with my hoss!"
+
+"John," pleaded the farmer's wife, "you might listen to the young lady."
+
+But Barbara's looks were against her. The rain had beaten her hair down
+over her eyes. Her clothes were wet and covered with mud from trying to
+help Ruth. What could she do? Barbara was frightened, but she kept a
+cool head. "I'll just let the old man haul me before the nearest
+magistrate. I expect _he'll_ listen to me!" She was shivering, but she
+knew that to think bravely helped to keep up one's courage. "If only it
+were not so awful for Aunt Sallie and the girls to be waiting there, I
+could stand my part," murmured Bab.
+
+For fifteen minutes captors and girl jogged on. Only the old man talked,
+savagely, under his breath. He wanted to get home to his farmhouse and
+supper, but this made him only the more determined to punish Barbara.
+
+"I suppose we'll take all night to get to town at this rate," she
+thought miserably.
+
+ For we are jolly good fellows, For we are jolly good fellows!
+
+Barbara could hear the ring of the gay song and the distant whirr of a
+motor car coming down the road. If only she could attract someone's
+attention and make them listen to her! She could now see the lights of
+the automobile bearing down upon them.
+
+Like a flash, before the farmer could guess what she was doing, Barbara
+whirled around on old Dobbin's back, and sat backwards. She put one hand
+to her lips. "Oh, stop! Stop, please!" she cried, looking like a gypsy,
+with her rain-blown hair and brown cheeks, which were crimson with
+blushes at her awkward position.
+
+On account of the rain, and the oncoming darkness, the car was going
+slowly. At the end of one of the choruses the song stopped half a
+second. One of the young fellows in the car caught sight of Barbara,
+evidently being dragged along by the irate farmer and his wife.
+
+"Hark! Stop! Look! Listen! Methinks, I see a female in distress," the
+young man called out.
+
+The car stopped almost beside the buggy, and one of the boys in the car
+roared with laughter at Barbara's appearance, but the friend nearest him
+gave a warning prod.
+
+"Hold on there!" called the first young man. "Where are you dragging
+this young lady against her will?"
+
+"She's a hoss thief!" said the old man sullenly.
+
+"I am no such thing," answered Barbara indignantly. Then, without any
+warning, Barbara threw back her head and laughed until the tears ran
+down her cheeks, mingling with the rain. It was absurdly funny, she
+sitting backwards on an old horse, one hand in his mane, and the farmer
+pulling them along with a rope. What must she look like to these boys?
+Barbara saw they were gentlemen, and knew she had nothing more to fear.
+
+"Do please listen, while I tell my story. I am not a horse thief! I've
+some friends up the road, stuck in the mud with a broken tire in their
+automobile. I saw this old horse in the farm-yard, and I borrowed or
+rented him, and started for help. The old man wouldn't let me explain.
+Won't you," she looked appealingly at the four boys in their motor car,
+"please go back and help my friends?"
+
+"Every man of us!" uttered one of the young fellows, springing up in his
+car. "And we'll drag this old tartar behind us with his own rope! We'll
+buy your old horse from you, if this young lady wants him as a
+souvenir."
+
+It was the farmer's turn to be frightened.
+
+"I am sure I beg your pardon, miss," he said, humbly enough now. His
+wife was in tears.
+
+"Oh, never mind him," urged Barbara. "Please go on back as fast as you
+can to my friends. You'll find them up the lane to the left. I'll ride
+the old horse back to the farm, and settle things and join you later."
+
+"Excuse me, Miss Paul Revere," disputed a tall, dark boy with a pair of
+laughing blue eyes that made him oddly handsome, "you'll do no such
+thing. Kindly turn over that fiery steed to me, take my seat in the car
+and show these knights-errant the way to the ladies in distress. I want
+to prove to you that a fellow can ride bareback as well as a girl can."
+
+But the farmer was anxious to get out of trouble.
+
+"I'll just lead the hoss back myself," he said. "No charge at all,
+miss." Evidently afraid of trouble, the farmer made a hurried start
+homeward, and was soon lost to view, while Barbara rode back to her
+friends with help.
+
+In ten minutes two motor cars were making their way into New Haven. The
+passengers had changed places. Ruth sat contentedly with her hands
+folded in her lap, by the side of a masculine chauffeur, who had
+introduced himself as Hugh Post, and turned out to be the roommate, at
+college, of Mrs. Cartwright's brother, Donald. Barbara, wrapped in
+steamer rugs, sat beside the boy with the dark hair and blue eyes, whom
+Miss Sallie had recognized as Ralph Ewing, son of the friends with whom
+they expected to board at Newport.
+
+It was arranged that Barbara and Ruth were to sleep together the first
+night at New Haven. The truth was, they wanted to talk things over, and
+there were no connecting doors between the three rooms. The hotel was an
+old one, and the rooms were big and dreary. They were connected by a
+narrow private hall, opening into the main hall by a single door, just
+opposite Ruth's and Barbara's room. The automobile girls were in a
+distant wing of the hotel, but the accommodations were the best that
+could be found.
+
+Miss Sallie bade their rescuers a prompt farewell on arrival at the
+hotel. "We shall be delighted to see you again in the morning," she
+said, "but we are too used up for anything more to-night."
+
+Barbara was promptly put to bed. She was not even allowed to go down to
+supper with the other girls, but lay snuggled in heavy covers, eating
+from a tray by her bed. Once or twice she thought she heard light
+footfalls outside in the main hall, but she had noticed a window that
+opened on a fire escape, and supposed that one of the hotel guests had
+walked down the corridor to look out of this window.
+
+In a short time Ruth came back and reported that the automobile girls,
+including Miss Sallie, were ready for bed.
+
+"I am not a bit sleepy. Are you?" Ruth asked Barbara. "I will just jump
+in here with you, so we can talk better. We've certainly had enough
+adventures for one day!"
+
+"Oh, no!" replied Barbara; "I feel quite wide awake." Five minutes later
+both girls were fast asleep.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX--ONLY GIRLS
+
+
+Barbara and Ruth both awoke with a feeling that a light had flashed over
+their faces, but neither of them spoke nor moved. How long they had
+slept they could not know. It seemed almost morning, but not a ray of
+daylight came through the closed blinds.
+
+Across the room the flash shone for an instant, then darted on like a
+will-o'-the-wisp. Both girls dimly saw the outline of a man crouching in
+the shadow along the wall. His hand slid cautiously up the sides of the
+bureau, fingering, for a moment, the toilet articles on the dresser.
+Then the search-light for an instant darted along the mantel and turned
+to the bed again. The girls were nearly fainting with terror. Ruth
+remembered that, for once, she had locked her money and her jewels in
+her trunk.
+
+The man stood absolutely still and listened. Not a sound!
+
+So quiet lay both girls that neither one knew the other had wakened.
+
+The man continued his search, but plainly this was not the room he
+sought. Still moving, his feet making absolutely no sound, the dark
+figure with the lantern crept out of the girls' room, to the front of
+the corridor, and turned down the narrow, private hallway.
+
+"Aunt Sallie!" Ruth thought with a gasp. She had said she would leave
+her door open, so she might hear if the girls called her in the night.
+And Aunt Sallie carried a large sum of money for the expenses of the
+trip, and her own jewelry as well.
+
+It may be that Ruth made a sound, anyway Barbara knew that her roommate
+was awake. Both had the same thought at just the same instant.
+
+Noiselessly, without a word, on bare feet, both girls sped down the hall
+to Miss Sallie's open door. What they would do when they got there
+neither of them knew. It was time for action, not for thought! At the
+open door they paused and knelt in the shadow. Black darkness was about
+them, save in Aunt Sallie's room, where a dark lantern flashed its
+uncanny light. The girls were alert in every faculty. Now they could see
+more distinctly the form of the man who carried the lantern. He was of
+medium height and slender. Over his face he wore a black mask through
+which gleamed his eyes, narrowed to two fine points of steel.
+
+Should the girls cry out? The man was armed and it might mean death to
+Aunt Sallie or themselves.
+
+Evidently the burglar meant to make a thorough search of the room before
+he went to the bed, where, he guessed, the valuables were probably kept;
+but he must know first. The room was bare of treasure. He walked
+cautiously to where Miss Sallie still slept in complete unconsciousness,
+this time holding his lantern down, that its light should not waken the
+sleeping woman.
+
+As he drew near her Ruth could bear the suspense no longer. She saw him
+drag out a bag from under Miss Sallie's head and could not refrain from
+uttering a low cry. It was enough. The man dashed the lantern to the
+ground and made a rush for the door.
+
+There was no time for Ruth and Barbara to plan. They were only girls;
+but as the man ran toward them in the darkness, striking out fiercely,
+Barbara seized one of his legs, Ruth the other. Together, the three of
+them went down in the blackness. The girls had not the robber's
+strength, but they had taken him by surprise and they meant to fight it
+out.
+
+He kicked violently to free himself, then turned and tore at Barbara's
+hands, but she clung to him. He raised the butt end of his pistol and
+struck with all his force. As the blow fell with a terrific thud,
+Barbara relaxed her hold, and tumbled over in the darkness.
+
+By this time Miss Sallie realized what was happening. Yet, in the
+darkness, she could only cry for help, and moan: "Let him alone, girls!
+Let him go!"
+
+With one leg free it seemed a simple task to get away. The noises were
+arousing the sleeping hotel guests. Another minute, and the burglar knew
+that he would be lost! With a violent wrench he tore himself away, and
+started down the hall, Ruth after him. If she could delay him a few
+seconds help would come!
+
+The outside door leading from their private hall into the main one was
+nearly closed; in reaching to open it there was a second's delay. Ruth
+flung herself forward, caught the man's coat and clung desperately, but
+the burglar was too clever for her. In less than a second he slipped out
+of his coat, ran quickly to the window leading to the fire escape, and
+was gone! When assistance arrived, Ruth was standing in the front hall
+holding a man's coat in her hand.
+
+"Oh, come!" she said in horror. "A light, please! Aunt Sallie has been
+robbed, and I am afraid Barbara has been killed!"
+
+Ten or twelve people came running down the hall. The hotel proprietor
+and several servants made for the fire escape. Grace and Mollie, clad in
+kimonos, had joined Ruth in the hall, and were shaking with terror.
+Neither of them had spoken a word, but Grace silently handed Ruth her
+bath robe.
+
+They turned and the three girls followed the rescuers, who were
+hastening toward Aunt Sallie's room. That elderly woman had already
+risen, struck a light and was in her kimono.
+
+Barbara was leaning against a chair, white as a sheet, but unhurt!
+
+"O Bab!" said Ruth, flying toward her, forgetting everything else in her
+relief, "I thought you were killed!"
+
+"I thought so, too," nodded Barbara, calmly smiling, as she reached for
+one of the blankets and wrapped herself in its folds, "but I wasn't.
+When the burglar raised the end of his pistol to strike me, I knew what
+was coming and ducked. He struck the side of the chair, and I tumbled
+over under it."
+
+The hotel proprietor came into the room carrying a chamois bag.
+
+"Madam," he asked, "is this your property? I found it outside here.
+Evidently the man dropped it in trying to make his escape. I cannot
+understand what has happened. The hotel is securely locked. The fire
+escape goes down into a closed court. The man could not have made his
+way down five stories, without being seen when we reached the window. It
+is incredible!"
+
+By this time the halls were swarming with frightened visitors.
+
+Grace had gone out to speak to them, and came in holding the burglar's
+coat in her hand. "How curious!" she said, handing the garment to the
+proprietor. "This is a gentleman's coat. I can tell by the lining and
+the whole appearance of it. It was not worn by a common thief!"
+
+"Ruth, my child, and Barbara," said Aunt Sallie, when everyone had left
+their apartments, "I shall never forgive you!"
+
+"Why not, Aunt Sallie?" both girls exclaimed, at once.
+
+"Because, my dears, you didn't just scream and let the wretch escape at
+once. In my day girls would never have behaved as you did!"
+
+"But, Aunt Sallie," protested Ruth, "the jewels and money are both safe,
+and neither Barbara nor I am hurt. I don't see how we could have done
+any better, even in your day."
+
+"Kiss me," said Aunt Sallie, "and go back to bed at once. It is nearly
+morning."
+
+When Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright drew up in front of the New Haven hotel, at
+a little after two o'clock next day, they found Miss Sallie and the four
+girls surrounded by a circle of college boys. With them stood a
+policeman.
+
+"What has happened?" said Mrs. Cartwright in astonishment, jumping out
+of her car, as Donald Cartwright, Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing came down to
+meet her. "Are those my girls, to whom I am to introduce you to-day?"
+
+"Goodness!" demanded Hugh. "Did you think we would wait twelve hours for
+an introduction! Do come and hear all that has happened."
+
+Miss Stuart, looking a good deal shaken by her adventures, came forward
+to meet Mrs. Cartwright. "Listen!" she said dramatically, for Barbara
+was talking to the policeman.
+
+"No, we would neither of us know him, because neither my friend nor I
+ever saw him before. It was dark and he was masked. But he was
+slight--not a big, rough kind of man--and his hands were soft, but strong
+as steel. I don't believe," she leaned over and whispered, "he could
+have been a servant, or an ordinary burglar."
+
+"We have discovered, miss, that no entrance was made from the outside.
+Any guests who left the hotel this morning will be followed and
+examined. The chief will report to you later," the policeman said, with
+a low bow to Miss Sallie.
+
+"Well, is this the way you see a nice, quiet, old college town?" Mrs.
+Cartwright inquired. "I suppose you mean to take the next train for
+home."
+
+"No such thing!" retorted Ruth, smiling, and looking as bright and fresh
+as ever. "We don't mind a few weeny adventures, do we, Aunt Sallie?"
+
+Miss Sallie held up her hands in horror. "Weeny adventures! What shall
+we expect next! However, I've promised the girls to go on. I think we
+need the trip, now, more than ever, and I want to ask Mr. Cartwright to
+keep the matter as quiet as possible. I do not wish my brother to know."
+
+"Do please come on," said Hugh Post, turning to Ruth. "We are going," he
+explained, "out to the athletic grounds in our motor cars. The girls
+came to see the university, and we haven't shown them a blooming thing."
+
+"We are going to the dance to-night, just the same," announced Mollie to
+Mrs. Cartwright. "Aunt Sallie is to rest this afternoon, so she will be
+equal to it. We wouldn't miss it for anything."
+
+Mr. and Mrs. Cartwright joined the party, and, in a few minutes, the two
+motor cars had covered the two miles between the college campus and the
+thirty acres Yale devotes to college sports. The visitors saw the
+athletic grounds thoroughly; here the football champions of the world
+had been trained, and there was the baseball diamond.
+
+"Ralph's the crack oarsman of the lot," said Donald Cartwright;
+"but--great Scott! We can't show these girls anything, after the way they
+tackled the burglar last night."
+
+"We'll get up a regatta in your honor, if you'll come again next year,
+Miss Thurston," said Ralph.
+
+Barbara only laughed at him. "Look out," she warned. "I may make you
+keep your promise."
+
+"Barbara," said Mollie that night, as they were getting ready for the
+dance which was to take place in the Old Alumni Hall, "are you sure you
+feel well enough for the ball to-night?"
+
+"Nonsense, child, why shouldn't I? I feel as fine as a fiddle. It isn't
+doing things that uses one up, even tackling a burglar; it is thinking
+about them. Ruth and I didn't have any time to think about our burglar."
+
+"Well," said Mollie, a little wistfully, smoothing the folds of her
+muslin dress, "I don't believe I am as anxious to go to the dance as I
+thought I was. Does this dress look _very_ shabby? I wouldn't go, now,
+only it seems kind of hateful of me to refuse Mrs. Cartwright's
+invitation."
+
+"Now, Molliekins," Barbara answered quite seriously, "it's your dress,
+isn't it? Of course, I have thought about mine, too. These are just
+simple muslins that we have worn before; but, when we left home, we
+neither of us dreamed we would go to a party in them. Let's just make
+the best of things. Anyhow, I've made up my mind to one thing, and I
+wish you would, too. You and I must not worry about being poor while we
+are on this trip. Let us not pretend that we are rich, because everybody
+we meet seems to be. Ruth knows we are poor, knows about our little
+cottage and not keeping a servant, and she doesn't mind. I don't believe
+really nice people care whether young girls are rich or poor, if they
+happen to like them. I don't mean to preach." Barbara put her arm around
+Mollie and waltzed her around the room. "Let us pretend we are both
+Cinderellas before the arrival of the fairy godmother."
+
+Mollie didn't answer; but she tucked some pink roses in her belt. "It
+doesn't really matter about me, anyway," she decided. "I can't expect
+these grown-up boys to dance with me. I will just stay by Miss Sallie."
+
+"All right, little Miss Wall-flower," laughed Bab, as she pinned on a
+knot of blue that Ralph Ewing had asked her to wear, as a tribute to the
+Yale colors.
+
+It was Mollie, after all, who was the belle of the party. Perhaps this
+was because the other girls whispered to their partners that Mollie was
+afraid nobody would dance with her; or, perhaps, because she was the
+youngest, and the best dancer among them all.
+
+"I am going to take this little lady under my special protection at
+Newport," Mrs. Cartwright said to Miss Stuart, late that evening. "I
+don't mean my 'butterfly girl' to be losing her beauty sleep."
+
+Mollie looked at her "lovely lady" with eyes as blue as myrtle blossoms.
+Mrs. Cartwright was so exquisite, so young and so wealthy, she seemed to
+Mollie to have stepped out of a book.
+
+Miss Sallie was vainly trying to collect her four charges all at once,
+in order to take them home.
+
+"Aunt Sallie," Hugh Post said roguishly, as that lady made a last
+determined stand, and gathered her girls together, "you know, from your
+experience yesterday, that Miss Ruth can't handle a motor car, even
+though she can tackle a burglar. So we are going to follow you in my
+automobile to-morrow and see that you get to New London all right."
+
+"Oh, no, you're not," protested Ruth. "This I will have you know is an
+automobile girls' excursion and nary a man allowed."
+
+"This one time, kindly permit us to follow you at a respectful distance,
+won't you?" Hugh urged. "It's only a short trip to New London. To tell
+you the truth, the governor's yacht is over there and I hope to be able
+to persuade you to go aboard. It is not disrespectful of me, Miss
+Stuart, to speak so of my father; he was once governor of the state, and
+he rather likes to be reminded of it. Mother has a number of friends on
+board the yacht, and we shall be cruising up to Newport in a few days. I
+think it would be jolly for father and mother to know you."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X--ENTER GLADYS AND MR. TOWNSEND
+
+
+"Why, Gladys Le Baron, this is a surprise!" gayly said Grace Carter next
+afternoon, when the two parties of girls and men had left their
+automobiles and had come aboard Governor Post's yacht, the "Penguin,"
+that lay just outside the New London harbor.
+
+Grace was awaiting her turn to be introduced to her host and hostess,
+when she spied Gladys, in a pale blue flannel suit and a cream felt hat,
+strolling down the deck, looking very much at home.
+
+"How ever did _you_ get here?" queried Grace, smiling.
+
+Gladys gave Grace's cheek an affected peck with her lips.
+
+"I have a better right to ask that question of you," Gladys pouted,
+"only I am not surprised. Harry Townsend came over from New London,
+yesterday, and told me you had arrived the night before. He went over
+with Hugh for the dance, but I didn't feel like going, so he came back
+early yesterday morning. I am amazed Hugh did not speak of it to you."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Post didn't know we had ever heard of Harry Townsend, or you
+either. We met most unexpectedly, and we had plenty of excitement of our
+own. I must tell you about it."
+
+At this moment, Hugh came over for Grace to introduce her to his mother.
+
+"This is Miss Carter, mother," he said. "Will you introduce her to Mrs.
+Erwin and father? She seems to know Gladys already."
+
+Harry Townsend had seen the newcomers, and came forward to speak to them
+with his most charming manner.
+
+"Say, Townsend," challenged Hugh, "what made you run away from us? We
+thought, of course, you'd stay over for the dance. Thought that was your
+plan in going over to New Haven."
+
+Harry turned to Miss Stuart. "I heard of your arrival in New Haven, the
+other evening," he said. "The fellows told me of your experiences; but I
+got away from the hotel too early next morning to pay my respects."
+
+"Then you didn't hear of the burglar, did you?" queried Hugh.
+
+In spite of Miss Sallie's protestations the whole story had to be gone
+over again.
+
+Barbara was talking to Ralph Ewing and had not looked at Harry Townsend
+during the conversation, until he came over to speak to her.
+
+"I have half an idea, Miss Thurston," he said, "that you do not like me,
+and I am sorry. I was looking forward to our having good times together
+at Newport, as I am to be Mrs. Erwin's guest, with your cousin Miss Le
+Baron. Mrs. Post asked us on for the yacht trip a day or two sooner than
+we expected. We are all going up to Newport together."
+
+"Mr. Townsend," said Barbara, her usually laughing, brown eyes now
+steadfast and serious, "I wonder why you think I do not like you?"
+
+"Miss Stuart," begged Mrs. Post, after the governor had conducted the
+party over his trim little craft, "you must stay and dine with us on
+board the yacht to-night. I refuse to take no for an answer. I wish I
+could keep you over until morning, but unfortunately the yacht is too
+small."
+
+Miss Sallie protested. No; they couldn't think of it. They had come
+aboard only for a call, and must get back to their hotel before night.
+But Hugh swept all her arguments aside. He was an adored only son, and
+accustomed to having his own way. To tell the truth, Miss Sallie was not
+averse to the idea of staying; it was pleasant to be meeting Newporters
+in advance. Miss Stuart was a woman who thought much of appearances, and
+of this world's goods, and their new acquaintances seemed to have plenty
+of both.
+
+"It's an ill wind," she thought to herself, "and I must say, for my
+young niece, that she has a habit of falling on her feet."
+
+But aloud Miss Sallie accepted the invitation with much decorum.
+
+On the deck aft, where the young people had gathered, there was much
+laughter.
+
+Gladys was really pleased to see Ruth. As for her cousins, they were a
+bore, but she had no idea of being openly rude to them. She simply meant
+to ignore them.
+
+It was not easy to disregard two such popular girls. Barbara and Mollie
+seemed to be well able to get on without her patronage. Barbara was
+already smiling and chattering with Governor Post, while the boys
+described her mad ride of two days before.
+
+"Father," said Hugh, "I forgot to introduce you to Miss Thurston by her
+proper title, 'Miss Paul Revere.'"
+
+"Harry," asked Gladys, as they stood on the outside of the circle,
+"don't you think it is disgusting the way that forward cousin of mine
+always manages to put herself before the public?"
+
+"Well," said Mr. Townsend--was there a little admiration in his
+tone?--"she seems to have plenty of grit."
+
+It was really Mollie, not Barbara, who saw through Gladys's treatment of
+them. Barbara was too open-hearted and boyish to notice a slight, unless
+it was very marked.
+
+Gladys had asked Ruth and Grace to her stateroom, and Mrs. Post had put
+the other two girls into her unoccupied guest chamber. It was a little
+gem of a stateroom, upholstered in pale green to relieve the glare from
+the water.
+
+"Bab," Mollie chuckled, rubbing her cheeks until they were pink, "do you
+remember the story of 'The Water Baby'?"
+
+"Yes," Bab answered absently; "I do, after a fashion. But why do you
+ask? You haven't turned into a water baby, have you, just because you
+are on board a yacht for the first time in your life?"
+
+"No," laughed Mollie. "I was thinking of the story in it of the salmon
+and the trout. Have you forgotten it?"
+
+"Of course I have," admitted Barbara.
+
+Mollie chuckled gleefully. "Our high and mighty cousin, Gladys, reminds
+me very much of the salmon, who thought the trout a very common fish,
+and disliked him all the more because he was a relation. Feel like a
+trout, Bab?"
+
+"Not at all, Mollie; but do hurry and go out on deck. That young
+freshman, who came down in the automobile with us to amuse you, is
+wandering around outside, looking frightened to death. You must go and
+talk to him."
+
+As Barbara stepped into the big salon, which was fitted up like a
+library, she saw one of the young men disappear quickly through the open
+door. Bab went over to their wraps, which they had dropped in a heap on
+a couch when they boarded the yacht, and selected her own jacket. Ruth's
+pocketbook was in full view among their belongings, and Bab covered it
+over before she went on deck.
+
+Before dinner ended the moon had risen, the pale crescent hanging like a
+slender jewel in the sky.
+
+Barbara was standing alone, for a second, when Mrs. Erwin approached
+her.
+
+"Pardon me, dear," she said, "but did you or your sister see a small pin
+on the dressing table of the guest room, when you went in there before
+dinner? I have misplaced a ruby and diamond circle of no great value. I
+went into the guest chamber this morning, while the maid was cleaning my
+room, and I thought perhaps I had laid it down in there."
+
+"No," said Bab, frowning. It did seem curious how losses were following
+them! "I didn't look, although it was probably there. I am most
+unobservant. I will ask my sister."
+
+"No, no," said Mrs. Erwin, hastily; "please don't. I shall probably find
+it again. I don't want Mrs. Post to hear."
+
+The next morning, when Grace and Ruth were donning their best motor
+veils and coats, Ruth suddenly looked surprised and began to search
+hurriedly through her pocketbook.
+
+"Grace," she said, "I can't find fifty dollars. I am sure I had it
+yesterday, because I looked carefully after that wretched burglar had
+gone, though I knew all my money was safe in my trunk. Now it's gone!"
+
+Ruth turned her pocketbook upside down. "Don't tell Aunt Sallie,
+please," she begged. "I don't know what she would say to have this item
+added to our adventures."
+
+Miss Sallie's voice was heard calling from the next room.
+
+"Girls, are we or are we not, going to Newport to-day? I, for my part,
+wish to spend no more time on the way!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI--NEWPORT AT LAST!
+
+
+The automobile girls were in a flutter of excitement. Another half hour,
+and they would arrive in Newport!
+
+"Ruth," said Miss Sallie, "slow up this car a little! Before we enter
+Newport, I must see to my appearance. To think of all I have gone
+through since I left Kingsbridge!" Miss Sallie took out a small hand
+mirror, thoughtfully surveying her own unwrinkled face. "What will you
+children get me into before we are through with this trip?"
+
+Ruth slowed down obediently.
+
+"Open my bag, Mollie," said Miss Sallie, decidedly, "and you, Grace,
+look under the seat for my other hat. We shall probably arrive in
+Newport at five o'clock, the hour for the fashionable parade. I, at
+least, shall do what I can to give our car an appearance of gentility. I
+advise you children to do the same."
+
+"Would you like a little cold cream, Miss Sallie, to wipe off your
+face?" Mollie spoke timidly, remembering how Barbara had laughed at her.
+
+"Certainly I should, my child, and very intelligent of you to have
+brought it along."
+
+"Well," said Ruth, "if you must 'fix up,' and I am to take a party of
+belles and beauties into Newport, instead of true lovers of sport, there
+are lots of new veils under my seat. Bab, take them out and pass them
+around. Only the chauffeur shall be dusty and dilapidated enough to look
+the part."
+
+Behold their dream had come true! The automobile girls were at last in
+Newport, watching the summer parade!
+
+Ruth, at the expected hour, turned her car, with a great flourish, into
+Bellevue Avenue, Newport's most fashionable thoroughfare. For a few
+minutes the girls beheld a long procession of carriages and automobiles;
+a little later, they swung round a corner and stopped in front of a
+beautiful old Colonial house, with a wide veranda running around three
+sides of it, and a hospitably open front door.
+
+Miss Sallie descended first, to be greeted by Ralph's mother, who was
+expecting them.
+
+"I don't like her. She's not a bit like Ralph," thought Barbara. Then
+she gave herself an inward shake. "There, Barbara, you know what mother
+would say to you about your sudden prejudices!"
+
+Mrs. Ewing, who had been a great beauty in her day, looked as though
+life had disagreed with her.
+
+Barbara had wondered how a private home could accommodate so many
+people, never having seen a handsome old New England house, but their
+three rooms occupied only half of one side of the long hall on the
+second floor. "And they think they are poor!" smiled Bab, to herself, as
+she looked admiringly at the handsome furniture. "I wonder what they
+would think of our little five-room cottage."
+
+"I want some clean clothes before anything else," sighed dainty Mollie,
+standing before a mirror, gazing with disdain at her own appearance. "I
+believe I have one clean shirtwaist left, but I must still wear this
+dusty old skirt."
+
+But Ruth was staggering into the room under an immense box.
+
+"Fifteen dollars express charges, mum; not a cent less! Them's my
+orders. And extry for carrying the box upstairs. It ain't my business.
+I'm too accommodating I am! Where shall I put it down, mum?"
+
+Ruth dropped the heavy bundle on the bed; she couldn't carry it a moment
+longer.
+
+"Why, Ruth Stuart!" said Mollie, dancing with glee. "It's some clothes
+for us! How did mother get them here in such a hurry? Oh, joy! oh,
+rapture! I was just fussing about having to wear this old suit
+to-night."
+
+Bab was tugging at the heavy cords.
+
+"Foolish Bab!" scoffed Ruth. "You'll never get it open that way," and
+she cut the cord in a business-like fashion with a little knife she
+always carried.
+
+"Now I'll run away and leave you," Ruth continued. "Grace is calling
+that it is time for my bath. Your turn next. I'll see the pretty things
+when I come back."
+
+Ruth would like to have stayed to see the girls open the box, but she
+had an instinctive feeling that they would prefer to be alone.
+
+"Here's a letter from mother. Let's read that first," said Bab.
+
+Inside the letter lay two crisp ten-dollar bills!
+
+"I have had a windfall, children," the letter read, "through the
+kindness of Mr. Stuart. He told me that some of my old stock that I
+thought of no value was paying a dividend again. Curiously, your Uncle
+Ralph had not mentioned it to me; but, when I wrote and told him of Mr.
+Stuart's advice, he sent it to me at once. So here's a little spending
+money. And oh, my darlings, I hope you will like your new clothes! Mr.
+Stuart is so kind to me, I am not lonely," the letter ended, "so have
+the best time you possibly can. I shall send your trunk to-morrow with
+your summer muslins and underwear."
+
+"Mollie mine, don't tear the paper in that fashion," remonstrated
+Barbara. "Let me open the box. Behold and see!" She held up two dainty
+organdie frocks, delicate and airy. Mollie's gown was white, with little
+butterfly medallions of embroidery and lace sprinkled over it.
+
+"Mollie, Mollie! How could mother have guessed your new name was 'the
+butterfly girl'? Isn't it too lovely!" Bab almost forgot to look at her
+own frock, so enraptured was she with her sister's.
+
+But Barbara's frock was just as charming, and as well suited to her. A
+circle of pink wild roses outlined the hem and encircled the yoke, which
+was of delicate pink tulle.
+
+Mollie was rummaging with impatient fingers. "Party capes, I do
+declare--the very newest style! I never reached the point of expecting
+capes even in my wildest dreams. See, yours is all white, and mine has a
+pale blue lining with a dear little 'blue riding hood cap.' Oh, won't I
+be charming?" murmured Mollie, putting the cape over her shoulders and
+pirouetting before the mirror. "Surely no sensible wolf would want to
+eat me up!"
+
+Two light flannel suits, one of cream color for Bab, and a pin-stripe of
+blue and white for Mollie, completed the glories of the box.
+
+"Now," said Bab, "what more can we want, for tennis, for rowing, for
+yachting, for driving? Are there any more entertainments that the rich
+enjoy, Mollie? Because, if there are, I should like to mention them."
+
+ Oh, the girls will all declare,
+ When they see me on the square--
+ Here comes a millionaire,
+ Mollie darling!
+
+"What do you think of that for poetry made while you wait? You don't
+half appreciate my talents, Miss Mollie Thurston," ended Bab, with a
+final hug.
+
+"Hurry, children," called Miss Sallie, appearing at their door. "You
+know we are to meet Mrs. Cartwright at the Casino to-night. She wants to
+introduce us to the place where a large part of Newport's gayety
+occurs."
+
+"What is the 'Casino'?" whispered Mollie, when Miss Sallie had
+disappeared.
+
+"Oh, it's only a big club, where you play tennis and have dances, and
+any sort of entertainments. Nearly all the nicest people in Newport
+belong to it. Mrs. Cartwright says we'll have most of our fun over
+there."
+
+Bab put her arm round her sister, as they walked downstairs.
+
+"Mollie," she said, "I have the queerest feeling. I am so happy, it
+frightens me. I never had such a good time before. I wonder how it will
+all turn out?"
+
+Barbara could not guess that there were to be tears for her, as well as
+joys, at Newport. It was as well she did not know, or her pleasure would
+have been marred.
+
+The girls finished dinner as quickly as possible.
+
+"There's time for a stroll on the cliffs, isn't there, before eight?"
+inquired Ruth. "Do you feel equal to exercise, Aunt Sallie? Everyone
+takes the cliff walk the first thing after arrival in Newport."
+
+"Certainly," Miss Sallie agreed. "I suppose I can manage it, though I
+have ridden so far that I may have lost the use of my limbs. However, I
+can sit down if I grow tired, and you children can go on without me.
+It's perfectly safe, isn't it, Mrs. Ewing?"
+
+"Oh, yes," Mrs. Ewing replied; "though it looks fairly dangerous, the
+cliffs are so high, the highest on the Atlantic Coast from Cape Ann to
+Yucatan. But very few accidents have occurred there--so far."
+
+Ruth and Barbara led the way. They could hear the sea booming and
+pounding below them. From the edge of the cliff they looked down a
+hundred feet at the sea, washing in on the level stretch of beach.
+
+Ruth shivered and turned pale. "Oh," she shuddered, "it makes me
+horribly nervous! I am ashamed of it, so I don't often mention it, but I
+simply can't look down from great heights. It even makes me a little
+sick to look out of a high window, and I'm a miserable climber, I get so
+dizzy. Let us go back. Do you mind, Bab?"
+
+"No, Ruth," Bab answered. "I suppose I am a tomboy; I used to play hare
+and hounds with the boys at school, and I learned to climb like a goat
+over the rocks at Kingsbridge; but these Newport cliffs are a different
+matter."
+
+Barbara's powers were to be tested, but neither she nor Ruth thought
+anything more of their talk. Miss Sallie and the other two girls had
+joined them, and they made their way along the narrow, winding path that
+dipped in hollows and curves, and stretched for two miles ahead of them.
+
+"How hard it is," said Miss Sallie, "to tell which view is the more
+beautiful!"
+
+On the inland side of the cliffs, beautiful, shaded lawns, luxuriant
+with flowers, ran down to the edge of the path. Set in their midst were
+the marble palaces of Newport's millionaires. Toward the sea, great
+points of land jutted out into the harbor, where the water was violet
+with the shadows of the closing day.
+
+"Miss Stuart! Miss Stuart!" Aunt Sallie heard a gay voice calling her.
+
+Running across the lawn, and waving her scarf at them, came Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+
+"Were you coming to see me first?" she asked.
+
+Miss Stuart confessed that she had not the shadow of an idea which house
+belonged to Mrs. Cartwright.
+
+"You must see it for a minute, since you are already here," urged Mrs.
+Cartwright, and led the way up the graveled path to her veranda.
+
+"Mollie," she said, addressing the young girl, "I think it is peculiarly
+appropriate for my butterfly girl to be introduced to my piazza. It is
+made to look like a Japanese teahouse," she explained to Miss Sallie.
+
+The sides of Mrs. Cartwright's veranda were of heavy Japanese paper
+stretched on bamboo poles which opened and closed at will. The paper had
+been painted by a famous Japanese artist to represent springtime in
+Japan. There were whole rows of cherry trees in full blossom, with
+little Japanese children playing beneath them. Opposite this scene was
+another painting--a marshy lake, surrounded by queer Japanese birds.
+
+The veranda was lighted by a hundred tiny shaded lamps. Japanese matting
+covered the floor, while the tea tables were set with tea services
+bought in old Japan. The girls had never seen anything so lovely.
+
+"You are officially invited to have tea with me here, any or every
+afternoon you are in Newport. Now I will run and get Mr. Cartwright,"
+added their hostess, "and we will go over to the Casino."
+
+Outside, the Casino looked like a rambling, old Dutch mansion, with
+peaked gables and overhanging eaves.
+
+"We've a Dutch house, English lawns and a French chef," Mr. Cartwright
+laughingly explained to Miss Sallie as they entered.
+
+"And we've dozens of tennis courts," added Mrs. Cartwright. "We are
+working dreadfully hard, now, for the tournament that is to take place
+in a few weeks. It is really the social event of the whole year at
+Newport. Is there a star player among you girls? Why not enter the
+tournament and compete for the championship? We are to have a special
+match game, this year, played by the young people. Let us keep these
+tennis courts busy for a while. You'll come over, too, Miss Stuart,
+won't you, and play bridge while we work. Or you'll work at bridge,
+while we play tennis. Perhaps you think that is the way I should have
+put it."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII--A WEEK LATER
+
+
+"Barbara, I wouldn't play tennis with Gladys and Harry Townsend, if I
+were you," said Mollie to her sister, one morning a week later. "They
+were horrid to you yesterday. Didn't you notice, when you called to Hugh
+and Ruth that their last ball had gone over the line, Gladys just
+shrugged her shoulders, and gave a sneery kind of smile to that Townsend
+fellow, and he lifted his eyebrows! Is your score the best, or Ruth's? I
+know you're both ahead of Gladys and Grace. I am sure Gladys doesn't
+play a bit better than I do; so she needn't have been so high and
+mighty."
+
+Mollie shrugged her dainty shoulders. "You see, she told me, the first
+day she arrived, that, of course, I didn't play in the class with the
+others, so you had just the right eight for the two courts--four girls
+and four men."
+
+"Why, Mollie!" Bab looked surprised. "I thought you said you didn't want
+to play. You can take my place any time."
+
+Mollie smiled. "No," she answered; "I don't want to play. It's not that.
+But it annoys me when you let Gladys Le Baron, cousin or no cousin, snub
+us all the time, and you not notice it. Ralph certainly wouldn't like to
+have me play with him now, when you're in for a match game."
+
+"Mollie," said Bab, tying her tennis shoe, "I _do_ notice how rude
+Gladys is. She left me standing all alone the other afternoon, when Ruth
+and Grace had gone into the club house to speak to Aunt Sallie. Friends
+of Gladys's came up, and she deliberately turned her back on me and
+didn't introduce me. I felt so out of it! Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin soon
+joined them, and they shook hands with me. I found the other people were
+some guests who had come down for Mrs. Erwin's ball, next week, and were
+staying at her house.
+
+"I know," she continued, "Gladys is furious that we are invited to the
+dance. Mrs. Erwin was so cordial and nice. She said, right before me,
+that though the ball was a grown-up affair, she knew Gladys would want
+her cousins and friends, and she had invited us on her account. Wasn't
+it funny? Miss Gladys couldn't say a word. Goodness knows, _she_ doesn't
+want us. She has been lording it over us, for days, because she and
+Harry were to be the only very young people invited. Gladys imagines
+herself a woman of society, and is in reality merely a foolish little
+girl," said Barbara. Then she added reflectively: "Miss Sallie says we
+are all too young to 'go out,' and she doubts the propriety of allowing
+us to attend Mrs. Erwin's ball. Last night she told Ruth she had almost
+decided against our going. Ruth championed our cause on the strength of
+the shortness of our stay in Newport, also that we should be permitted
+to go as a special favor to our hostess. You know Miss Sallie hates to
+refuse Ruth anything. Consequently we will be 'among those present' at
+Mrs. Erwin's ball whether Miss Gladys approves or not."
+
+"I just wish I could tell my lovely Mrs. Cartwright how mean Gladys is,"
+said Mollie. "She would not ask her to her charity fair."
+
+"Please don't say anything, Mollie," pleaded Barbara, taking her tennis
+racquet from the bed. She had already answered Ralph's impatient whistle
+from the garden below. "It won't do any good for us to be horrid to
+Gladys in return; it will only make us seem as hateful as she is. Things
+will come around, somehow. I don't mind her--so very much."
+
+"Well, I do," answered Mollie. "But you haven't told me how your score
+and Ruth's stand."
+
+"Oh, I think we are pretty nearly even." Barbara was half way out the
+door. "Be careful, Molliekins," she urged, "if you go rowing with that
+freshman this afternoon. Why do you want to know about Ruth's score and
+mine? It's a week before the game, and anything may happen before then.
+We all play pretty evenly; Hugh Post and Ralph Ewing, too."
+
+"Oh, I didn't mean anything, Bab," Mollie said, thoughtfully. "Only
+Ruth's awfully anxious to play in the tournament. She's just crazy about
+it."
+
+"Of course she is, child. So are we all, for that matter," answered Bab.
+"You don't mean----"
+
+"I don't mean a single thing, Bab Thurston!" said Mollie, a little
+indignantly.
+
+"Yes, I am coming, at last, Ralph," Barbara sang softly over the
+banisters. She had not overcome her awe of Mrs. Ewing. Ralph's mother
+was by no means pleased with the idea that her adored Ralph preferred
+Barbara to any of the other girls.
+
+"It's like Ralph," she complained to his father, "to pick out the
+poorest girl of the lot, when the rich ones are so much more charming. A
+great way for him to retrieve the family fortunes!"
+
+"We will hope," said Ralph's father quietly, "that Ralph will not try to
+restore our fortunes by marrying for money."
+
+As Barbara walked down to meet Ralph she looked grave, and her face was
+flushed. Ruth _did_ want to play in the tournament, but so did she, for
+that matter! Could she resign in Ruth's favor? Then Barbara laughed to
+herself. "Catch a girl like Ruth letting me give up to her! I wonder if
+it would be fair of me to disappoint Ralph?"
+
+"Come on, Miss Day-dreamer," ordered Ralph, hurrying her along. "The
+others have been waiting for us for fifteen minutes down at the Casino
+courts. Do you know that there is a party on for the afternoon? Ruth and
+Hugh are to pile as many of us as they can into their motor cars, and
+take us ten miles out the Ocean Drive. We are to stop at Mrs. Duffy's
+English tea place on our way back."
+
+Bab was certainly not playing in good form today. She even missed one of
+Gladys's serves, which were usually too soft to count. When the
+morning's practice was over, Ruth's and Hugh's score was two points
+ahead.
+
+"Who is going to play in the tournament from these courts?" asked Mrs.
+Cartwright, crossing the lawn, her tennis racquet swinging in her hand.
+Mollie was close beside her, also "that freshman," who followed Mollie
+wherever she went.
+
+"Bab," answered Ruth, coming up to smile at Mrs. Cartwright, who was
+looking prettier than usual in her tennis blouse of pale pink madras
+with a linen skirt of the same shade.
+
+"What a funny Gladys!" Mrs. Cartwright laughed as the other girls joined
+her. "You are following our latest Newport fad, are you not, of having
+your head wrapped in a chiffon veil while you play tennis. You look like
+a Turkish girl, with only your eyes peeping out."
+
+Gladys had tied up her head in a pale blue chiffon veil, with a fetching
+bow just over the ear. The other women who were playing on the courts,
+with the exception of Mrs. Cartwright and the automobile girls, were
+draped in the same fashion.
+
+"That suggests a game to me," continued Mrs. Cartwright. "You must come
+to my veranda some night and we will play it. It is called 'eyeology.' I
+won't tell you anything more about it now. Just you wait! But to go back
+to my first question. Then I am to enter Barbara for the tournament?"
+
+"I should say not, Mrs. Cartwright," said Barbara, who was standing
+near. This time she would not let Ruth speak.
+
+"Ruth is certainly the best player among us," drawled Gladys; "she and
+Mr. Post; but," she went on in insinuating tones, "you know there are
+strange things that can happen in tennis!"
+
+"If you mean, Gladys, that I cheated the other day," broke out Barbara
+fiercely, "I simply won't bear it! I know it is horrid of me to make a
+scene," she turned to Ruth with her eyes full of tears, "but this is the
+second time."
+
+"Please don't get excited, Miss Thurston," cried Gladys scornfully. "I
+have not said you cheated. It looks a little bit like a case of guilty
+conscience."
+
+Harry Townsend smiled knowingly.
+
+Bab, nearly in tears, couldn't answer, but Ralph and Hugh Post both
+protested indignantly.
+
+"Please don't discuss a thing of this kind here," said Mrs. Cartwright,
+angrily. "We don't allow quarreling on the Casino courts. I am surprised
+at you, Barbara. You were accused of nothing."
+
+Mollie's eyes were black, instead of their usual lovely blue. She was
+very indignant, but she was always more of a diplomat than Barbara.
+
+"Lovely lady," she said, putting her hand in Mrs. Cartwright's as they
+moved away, "Gladys did mean that Bab cheated. This is the second time
+she has said it. Wouldn't you answer back if you were accused of not
+playing fair with your very best friend?"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright gave Mollie's hand a squeeze. "Tell Barbara I am sorry
+if I was too hard on her, but I don't like scenes!"
+
+"I wish I could get an excuse to pummel that Harry Townsend!" muttered
+Ralph indignantly to Hugh, when the girls had gone home. "I can't take
+it out on Gladys, for she's a girl. That Townsend fellow's nothing but a
+sneak. He just stands round and smiles and says nothing, until he puts
+me in a rage!"
+
+"Oh, don't fight, Ralph," Hugh protested. "I hate that Townsend man,
+though, as much as you do. He is too infernally polite, for one thing,
+and he walks on his tiptoes. He comes right up behind you, and you never
+know where he is until he speaks. I believe he wears rubber soles on his
+shoes!"
+
+That afternoon, when the automobile parties had finished drinking their
+tea, Barbara asked Ralph to take a little walk with her in the woods.
+She wanted to ask him something.
+
+"Ralph," she began, "if I should fall down in my tennis, in the next few
+days, would you and Hugh play a test game to see which of you is the
+better man to help Ruth out in the tournament?"
+
+Ralph shook his head. "No," he answered. "You are not losing your nerve,
+are you, Bab? Ruth and Hugh are wonderfully good players, but we are as
+good as the rest of 'em. I'll take my chances with you."
+
+"Would you be very, very much disappointed if we lost?"
+
+"Oh, yes," said Ralph, cheerily, "but I could bear it all right." He
+looked hard at Barbara for a minute. Then he said: "Go ahead, Barbara; I
+think I understand. I am game. And I'll never breathe it to a soul. Hugh
+and Ruth would never forgive us, if they found out!"
+
+"Well, Ralph," said Barbara, "I don't think there's going to be any
+reason for my trying to let Ruth win; she's a better player than I am,
+and she will win anyhow, but, in case she shouldn't, Ruth has been a
+perfect dear to Mollie and me!"
+
+"Gladys," said Ruth that night, when the young people were having an
+informal dance at the Casino, "I shall never forgive you for accusing
+Barbara of cheating, as you did today. Barbara is perfectly incapable of
+cheating. I can't understand why you don't like her."
+
+Ruth's frank face clouded. She was incapable of understanding the petty
+meannesses in Gladys's nature.
+
+"Mr. Townsend and I thought differently concerning Miss Thurston,"
+Gladys replied, "but I have made no accusations, and will make none. You
+will find things out for yourself, though, when it is too late!"
+
+Mollie was very sympathetic with Barbara that night. Things had not been
+going well with Bab for several days; she had an unfortunate habit of
+speaking her mind without thinking, and this trait had gotten her into
+trouble with Miss Sallie several times. That lady had a profound respect
+for the rich, while Barbara had been heard to say that some of the most
+fashionable ideas of Newport were "just nonsense."
+
+"Bab," comforted Mollie, "Mrs. Cartwright told me to say she was sorry
+she had been cross to you. She wants you to be the gypsy fortune-teller
+at her bazaar. She says you are very clever, and would do it better than
+anyone else; besides, she thinks no one would know you. She has lots of
+gypsy things to dress up in."
+
+"I would much rather be a waitress, like you girls," Bab declared.
+
+"But you will do what Mrs. Cartwright wants you to, won't you?" urged
+Mollie.
+
+"I'll see," said Bab.
+
+The automobile girls were seeing Newport indeed! Mrs. Erwin and Mrs.
+Cartwright were both leaders in society. The girls had not only been
+invited to Mrs. Erwin's ball, but to the big dance which took place
+after the tennis tournament, and Mrs. Cartwright was arranging for a
+Charity Fair, which was to be the most original entertainment of the
+Newport season.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII--THE NIGHT OF THE BALL
+
+
+"Yes, Hugh," Barbara said, as the last strains of the Merry Widow waltz
+died away, "I should like to rest here a minute." Barbara sank down on
+the low, rose-colored divan shaded by magnificent palms in Mrs. Erwin's
+conservatory. "I would love an ice, too," she added.
+
+It was the night of Mrs. Erwin's famous white and gold ball, long
+remembered in the history of splendid entertainments in Newport.
+
+Barbara truly wanted a minute to think. She had come to the ball under
+Miss Sallie's excellent chaperonage, early in the evening, and had been
+dancing hard ever since. The little girl from Kingsbridge, who had never
+before seen anything finer than a village entertainment, felt almost
+overcome by the splendor and magnificence of everything about her.
+
+Mrs. Erwin's ballroom was built out from the side of her handsome villa
+like a Greek portico. The conservatory joined it at one end, forming an
+inner triangular court. This court was filled with rare trees which
+threw their branches out over a miniature artificial lake. The guests
+could pass from the ballroom into this open garden, or they could enter
+it through the conservatory.
+
+The walls of the wonderful ballroom were covered with a white silk
+brocade, and on this night Mrs. Erwin had allowed only yellow flowers to
+be used as decorations. Great bowls of yellow roses perfumed the air,
+and golden orchids looked like troops of butterflies just poising before
+they took flight.
+
+"Now I know," said Mollie, with a catch in her breath, as she first came
+into the magnificent ballroom, "what King Midas's garden must have
+looked like, when he went round and caressed all the flowers in it with
+the golden touch."
+
+"Clever Mollie!" laughed Ruth. "I expect it is the golden touch that has
+been round this ballroom, or the touch of golden dollars, anyway."
+
+Mollie blushed. "I didn't mean that," she said.
+
+Barbara leaned her head against the rose-colored cushion, just the color
+of the jeweled spray in her hair; she was wearing the coral jewelry her
+mother had given her. Fortunately the two girls had saved their best
+party dresses for this ball, having been content to wear their summer
+muslins at the informal dances at the Casino.
+
+Barbara, in her dainty pink flowered organdie, with her cheeks flushed
+to match it in color, resembled a lovely wild rose.
+
+Curiously enough, amid all this elegance, Bab felt a little homesick.
+She kept thinking of her mother and the little cottage.
+
+"It's a wonderful experience for Mollie and me," she said to herself. "I
+hope I can tell mother exactly what it looks like. I am sure fairyland
+can't be half so gorgeous; fairies wear only dewdrops for jewels; but
+here, I believe, there must be nearly all the jewels in the world."
+
+Barbara did not know how big the world really is, nor how many people
+and jewels, both real and paste, there are in it. After all, artificial
+people are no better than paste jewels!
+
+Earlier in the evening Mollie and Barbara had stood with their hands
+tight together, watching the men and women enter the great reception
+room to speak to their host and hostess.
+
+"Diamonds," whispered Mollie to Bab, "seem as plentiful as the
+strawberries we gathered for the hotel people this summer. We didn't
+dream, then, that we were coming to Newport! Isn't my Mrs. Cartwright
+the most beautiful of them all?" wound up the loyal child.
+
+Mrs. Cartwright wore a white satin gown, with a diamond star in the
+tulle of her bodice. In her hair was a spray of diamonds, mounted to
+look like a single stalk of lilies of the valley, each jewel hanging
+from the slender stem like a tiny floweret.
+
+The conservatory was almost empty while Bab rested and waited.
+
+During the intermission in the dance nearly all the guests had wandered
+into the dining-room or into the moonlit garden.
+
+Barbara realized that she was almost completely hidden by the great palm
+trees that formed an arch over her head and drooped their long arms down
+over her. She had crept into this seat in order that she might see
+without being seen.
+
+Yet in spite of the quiet, Barbara was not resting. Her heart was
+beating fast with the excitement of this wonderful evening, and her tiny
+feet in the pink silk slippers still kept time to the last waltz she had
+danced with Hugh.
+
+The conservatory door, leading into the garden, was open. Barbara saw
+Mrs. Post, Governor Post, Harry Townsend and a woman in a gold-colored
+brocade enter the conservatory and stop to talk for a few minutes. They
+had not noticed Barbara nor did she feel it was quite proper to
+interrupt them, as she did not know the strange woman who was with them.
+
+Governor Post bowed in military fashion to the ladies.
+
+"Now," he said, "I'll go, and leave the young man to do the
+entertaining. We old fellows must make ourselves useful when our
+ornamental days are over. Mr. Townsend will look after you here, and I
+shall find a waiter and have him bring you something to eat."
+
+Barbara saw Harry Townsend talking in his most impressive manner to the
+two women.
+
+"It is curious," Bab thought, to herself, "what a society man Harry
+Townsend is. Gladys says he is only twenty-two. I wonder where he comes
+from. Nobody seems to know. Oh, yes; Gladys said he was educated in
+Paris. She met him on shipboard."
+
+The little girl from her green bower was an interested watcher. It was
+fascinating to be able to see all that was going on, without being seen.
+Bab sat as quiet as a mouse, taking no part in the conversation.
+
+Mrs. Post was a handsome woman of about fifty, who looked rather stern
+to the girls; but Hugh assured them that she was "dead easy," once you
+got on the right side of her. Her husband was a prominent lawyer in
+Washington, and their winters were usually spent in the capital.
+
+Mrs. Post's gown was nearly covered by a long, light-colored chiffon
+wrap, with a high collar lined with a curious ornamental embroidery.
+
+"Harry," she said, turning to the young man with her, "it is warm in
+here with these tropical plants; will you be kind enough to remove my
+wrap?"
+
+The conservatory was dimly lighted. Barbara sat in the shadow. Between
+her and the party she was watching was a central row of flowers and
+evergreens, dividing the long room into two aisles.
+
+She saw Harry rise and lean over Mrs. Post, who only half rose from her
+chair. Deftly and with wonderful ease and swiftness, Townsend undid the
+clasp at her throat; but, for a moment, the embroidery from the collar
+seemed to have caught in her hair.
+
+Barbara's eyes grew wide and staring with surprise. As the coat slipped
+back from Mrs. Post's shoulders, she saw a string like a tiny green
+serpent glide with magic smoothness and swiftness from her throat, and
+drop into the shrubbery back of her, or--into Harry Townsend's hand?
+
+What should she do? Announce that she had seen her string of emeralds
+disappear? Mrs. Post was talking and laughing gayly with her friend in
+the gold-colored dress. Harry was smiling quietly by them. Barbara
+rubbed her eyes. Surely she was mistaken. She had been dazzled by the
+wonderful sights she had seen that night. While she hesitated her
+opportunity passed.
+
+Governor Post returned, saying to his wife: "Come, my dear, I have found
+Miss Stuart and a friend. They have a table out in the garden, and want
+us to join them."
+
+Mrs. Post again drew her wrap over her shoulders and turned to leave the
+conservatory. As she rose she saw Barbara.
+
+"You there, my child?" she said in a friendly way. "Why didn't you speak
+to me?"
+
+Barbara could only answer her stupidly. "I was waiting for Hugh."
+
+When Hugh returned he found Barbara looking as pale as though she had
+just seen a ghost.
+
+"What's the matter?" he asked at once. "Are you ill?"
+
+But Bab shook her head. "I'll go find Miss Stuart," the young man
+suggested.
+
+"You'll do no such thing, Hugh!" Barbara had recovered her breath.
+"There's nothing much the matter with me--at least, I am not sure whether
+I ought to tell you."
+
+"Bab and Hugh! Well, I like this!" Grace's voice sounded from the
+doorway, as she and Donald Cartwright came in, followed by Ruth and
+Ralph. "Here you two have run away by yourselves, when we promised to
+stick together this evening, in order to keep up each other's courage.
+You ought to see Gladys! She's as angry as can he, and is wandering
+round with Mollie and the freshman. Harry has been gone somewhere for a
+long time, and she has no partner for the next dance."
+
+"Are you sick, Bab?" inquired Ruth. She, too, noticed that Bab was
+unusually pale. Before she received an answer, Governor and Mrs. Post
+came into the conservatory, followed by Harry Townsend, Miss Stuart and
+the woman in yellow.
+
+"You are just the fellow I want to see, Hugh," said his father, so
+quietly that no one except those near him could hear. "Your mother has
+lost her emerald necklace, and she thought she had it on when she was
+last in here. We don't want to create any excitement, or to let Mrs.
+Erwin or the servants know until we have made a thorough search. She
+very probably dropped it among these flowers. Lock the door out there,
+will you? Miss Carter, you and Donald, please keep guard at the other
+door while these young people help me look."
+
+"I thought----" said Barbara.
+
+"Why, you were in here, child, when we were. You were on the other side
+of these evergreens," said Mrs. Post. "What did you say?"
+
+"I thought it might be in these evergreens," Barbara finished, lamely,
+getting down on her knees to assist in the search. Dared she speak of
+what she thought she had seen? Dared she speak with no evidence but her
+own word? Could she have been in error? First, she would look with the
+others.
+
+Every palm, every flower, every inch of space was carefully gone over.
+No sign of the missing emeralds!
+
+"Did anyone enter the conservatory after I left, Miss Thurston?"
+inquired Mrs. Post coldly. She was worried by the loss of her jewels,
+which were of great value, as well as annoyed by the excitement she was
+causing.
+
+"Nobody came in," Bab said, "only Hugh."
+
+"I am exceedingly sorry," the governor said at last, "but Mrs. Erwin
+will have to be notified. The jewels were either lost or stolen, and
+must be found. If the servants find the necklace a liberal reward will
+induce them to return it."
+
+The older people left the conservatory.
+
+Just as the younger ones turned to leave, Barbara, whose strange
+expression had not escaped the sharp eyes of Ruth, laid her hand on
+Hugh's arm.
+
+"Ask Harry Townsend to stay here a minute with us, won't you please,
+Hugh?" said Barbara hoarsely.
+
+"Say, Townsend," Hugh called, "come back a moment. I want to speak to
+you. Or, rather, Miss Thurston does."
+
+"Mr. Townsend," said Barbara, her face pale as death, "did you not see
+Mrs. Post's necklace when you took off her wrap in here?"
+
+"No," said Harry quietly. "Did you?"
+
+"Ask him, Hugh," said Barbara, desperately, "to show you what he has in
+his pockets!"
+
+"Oh, say, Barbara!" Hugh answered. "I can't do that. It's a little too
+much."
+
+But Ralph stepped forward. "We don't know what Miss Thurston means, but
+she most certainly doesn't mean to insult Mr. Townsend unnecessarily.
+Why, then, should he mind turning out his pockets? Here Hugh," Ralph
+turned, "search me first. Then Mr. Townsend won't object to the selfsame
+process."
+
+Hugh's face was crimson, but he looked through Ralph's pockets in a
+gingerly fashion.
+
+When he finished Harry Townsend turned quietly to Barbara. "I don't know
+why you wish to insult me," he said to her, "but I am perfectly willing
+to have Mr. Post search me. You were the only person in the conservatory
+after the jewels were lost!"
+
+Hugh started his search.
+
+Barbara leaned sick and faint against her chair, expecting every moment
+to see Hugh draw the jewels forth. She kept her eyes averted while Harry
+turned his pockets wrong side out and finally opened his vest.
+
+"Barbara," said Hugh, coldly, and Bab turned around. "We owe Mr.
+Townsend an apology. He is certainly no thief!"
+
+The jewels were nowhere to be found.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV--BARBARA'S SECRET
+
+
+"Bab, Bab! What is the matter with you!" cried Mollie, for Barbara had
+thrown herself on the bed after their return from the ball, bursting
+into a torrent of tears.
+
+"Oh, I don't know," sobbed Bab. "I must be wrong, or crazy, or
+something. Yet how can people doubt their own eyes?"
+
+Mollie stopped spreading out her butterfly dress, in which she had
+looked so pretty at the party, and flung her arms round her sister.
+
+"Just tell me what is the matter, dear! Has anyone hurt your feelings?
+If it's that Gladys Le Baron I'll certainly get even with her!"
+
+But Bab didn't answer.
+
+"I'm going to call Ruth," said Mollie. "I don't want to waken Aunt
+Sallie, but you seemed queer all the way home from the ball."
+
+Bab sat up, when Ruth came in, and dried her eyes.
+
+"I am so sorry you feel so badly, Barbara, dear," said Ruth, "but, of
+course, it was a wretched mistake for you to have made. Let's try to
+forget that horrid scene. Some servant will pick up the necklace in the
+morning, and return it to Mrs. Post. Hugh and I have decided that it
+will be wise for those of us who were in the conservatory just at the
+last not to speak of what happened. You will forgive us, Mollie, dear,
+won't you, if we don't tell even you?"
+
+"No, I won't!" cried Mollie, stamping her little slippered foot. "Bab
+can't have secrets that make her cry--not from her own sister. And I
+don't see, anyway, what Bab has to do with Mrs. Post having lost her
+emerald necklace. If you think the loss is a secret, you're wrong,
+because everybody in the ballroom was whispering it about half an hour
+afterwards. I heard of it from a perfect stranger!"
+
+"Mollie," said Ruth quietly, "will you please do me a favor? Don't ask
+Barbara to tell you what happened that has worried her. It was nothing
+but an unfortunate mistake, and will all blow over in the morning."
+
+"Very well, Ruth," agreed Mollie. "I won't ask. But I am not a baby, and
+I am very sure it would be better if I were told."
+
+Thus poor Bab had no one in whom to confide, and had to bear her ugly
+secret all alone.
+
+Ruth kissed her good night, saying: "Cheer up, silly girl, and sleep
+late as you can in the morning. You know, it's to be the last day of our
+tennis practice, and you are going to beat me tomorrow!"
+
+Ruth tiptoed over to Mollie, who was undressing in silence. "Mistress
+Mollie," she said, "forgive me; do, please, like a dear. Talking about
+horrid things only makes them _horrider_!"
+
+Ruth, in the depths of her heart, thought that Barbara had been most
+unwise in her hinted accusation of Harry Townsend. For Bab's sake she
+thought it best for everyone to forget what had happened. It was a fault
+in Ruth's nature that she loved only pleasant things, and would often
+give up, even when she knew she was right, in order not to make trouble.
+
+The next morning a Barbara of heavy eyes and white cheeks joined the
+players on the tennis court.
+
+Plainly Harry had confided what had happened to Gladys, for she did not
+speak to Bab as she came up to her, but tossed her head and bit her
+lips. Gladys said nothing, however, for Harry had made her promise she
+would not breathe what he had told her.
+
+As for Mr. Townsend, he treated Barbara with cold politeness. But
+Barbara was beginning to have her eyes opened. "If I am right about
+him," she thought to herself, "then I shall have to be very careful. I
+believe he is more clever than any of us dream!"
+
+It was Hugh whose manner was most constrained. He could not forgive the
+scene of the night before, in which he had been forced to take an
+unwilling part. Not until Ruth called him over to her, and gave him a
+lecture, did he beg Bab's pardon, and ask that they all forget the
+experience of the night before.
+
+"Come on!" he called, cheerily, to the group of tennis players. "It's do
+or die to-day--the last test day for us. It will show us who is to
+represent our crowd at the tournament. The girl and the fellow who can
+beat all the rest of us stand a good chance of winning the silver cup.
+Mrs. Cartwright says she has been closely following the game of the star
+players and she thinks we have them beaten to a finish. Come on, Ruth,
+let's show 'em that we're out for blood!"
+
+Swish! Barbara's ball flew over the net and curved toward the ground at
+Hugh's left. Not too swiftly for that young gentleman; while Ruth's
+heart gave a jump of apprehension, Hugh made a left-hand swing with his
+racquet and sent the ball whizzing back.
+
+"Fifteen!" Ralph called out, in a bored tone. He had failed in his
+return.
+
+The battle raged all morning.
+
+Grace and Donald Cartwright, Gladys and Mr. Townsend were soon out of
+the running. When they had finished they sank gratefully on the ground,
+to watch the others play.
+
+The field was thus left to Barbara and Ralph, to Ruth and Hugh. The sets
+stood even, and two more games would decide.
+
+A small crowd of visitors stood around the court. Mrs. Cartwright,
+having finished her own game, came over to look on. Miss Sallie was
+trying to be impartial, but she was really deeply interested in Ruth's
+success. Mrs. Erwin, Mrs. Post, the governor, all their friends, were
+lined up to behold the battle.
+
+A subdued discussion of the lost emeralds had been going on at the
+Casino all morning. After a thorough search of every inch of Mrs.
+Erwin's house and grounds, there was still no sign of the jewels; but
+Governor Post and Mrs. Erwin had made every effort to have the scandal
+of the necklace hushed up. They had seen the Newport detectives, and had
+telegraphed to New York for two experts to be sent down to handle the
+case. In the meantime they had been advised not to talk.
+
+Now the only upright person, who could have given them any information
+had, for just a little while, forgotten all about it. Whatever Barbara
+did she did with her whole heart. Today she played tennis.
+
+"Ralph," Hugh called, "remember, now, it's two straight games to finish
+the way we stand!"
+
+There was no more conversation. Even the watchers held their breath. The
+referee sat on the ground, rapidly calling out the
+score--"forty--thirty--deuce!"
+
+"Is this game to go on forever?" Miss Sallie inquired, plaintively. "My
+girls will be wholly worn out."
+
+"Advantage in!" shouted the referee.
+
+Ralph sprang forward for his ball; his foot slipped. Barbara, who had
+been expecting him to return it, was not ready.
+
+"Game!"
+
+Ruth and Hugh shook hands with each other. But Hugh called over: "Say,
+Ralph, was this game all right? You turned your ankle, didn't you?"
+
+"Surely I did," said Ralph. "I was an idiot, but it is your game just
+the same. I'll make it up next time, Barbara--see if I don't!"
+
+"My dear Ruth," said Miss Sallie, "I cannot permit it. You will be
+exhausted."
+
+"Here, Barbara," said Mollie, "do try to get your breath, and let me fix
+up your hair."
+
+"No prinking!" Ralph called out. "This is business, ladies!"
+
+The good old Casino courts never saw a finer tennis battle. Ralph and
+Bab played as though they had forgotten their talk in the woods that day
+when they had tea at Mrs. Duffy's. Ruth and Hugh were foeman worthy of
+their best steel.
+
+The game stood forty-all, and it was Bab's serve. Bab's serves were what
+made her tennis remarkable. They were as swift and straight and true as
+a boy's.
+
+Hugh stood ready waiting. Barbara caught a look in Ruth's face, on the
+other side of the net. Her big blue eyes, frank and clear as a baby's,
+were glowing with interest, with hope, with ambition! Like a flash the
+thought of all Ruth had done for them came into Bab's mind. Did it
+weaken the force of her drive? Or was it because her mind was
+distracted? The ball fell just inside the net on her own side.
+
+"Try again, partner mine!" shouted Ralph, "show 'em what you're made
+of!"
+
+This time Barbara was plainly nervous. She felt that nearly all the
+friends around them wanted Ruth to win. They would be delighted, of
+course, with her success and kind to her, but open-hearted and
+open-handed Ruth was the favorite with them all; at least, Bab thought
+so.
+
+With returning courage, Bab hit her last ball a hard blow. It rose high
+in the air! Hugh sprang on his tiptoes to receive it and gave a mighty
+shout. The ball had fallen outside the line.
+
+Ralph and Barbara were the first to congratulate the victors. Barbara
+cleared the net with a bound, forgetting both her age and her audience.
+
+"There, Ruth, you and Hugh are the best players that ever happened!"
+Barbara spoke with a glowing face. Then she turned to Ralph: "I lost the
+game for you," she said. "I am so sorry."
+
+"Oh, no, you didn't, my lady," said Ralph. "I lost the game before this
+one, so we're even."
+
+An admiring circle had formed around Ruth and Hugh.
+
+"Your father will be delighted, I know, child," said Miss Sallie.
+
+"I haven't won the cup yet, Auntie," protested Ruth.
+
+"But you must, child," said Mrs. Cartwright, smiling. "I am betting on
+you and Hugh in the tournament, and you mustn't make me lose my box of
+candy."
+
+"Barbara," said Ralph, shyly, as they walked off toward home a little
+later, "I don't like to ask you, but did you mean to miss those last
+serves?"
+
+Barbara shook her head. "No," she said, "I don't think I meant to. I
+don't know. But they were the best players, weren't they, Ralph?"
+
+"Certainly," Ralph answered.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV--RUTH IN DANGER
+
+
+Hugh, looking much embarrassed, came up early next morning to see Ruth.
+
+"I have an invitation to deliver to you, Ruth, but I am rather ashamed
+to do it, for I am afraid you will be angry. Mother told me to come over
+and ask Miss Stuart and yourself and the girls--except Barbara--to come
+out with us for the day on the yacht."
+
+"Why, Hugh Post!" cried Ruth. "What do you mean?"
+
+"Well, it's like this," Hugh said, desperately; "mother told me to
+explain to you exactly how things stand, so you will not think her rude.
+You see, mother is visiting Mrs. Erwin, and of course Mrs. Erwin,
+Gladys, and her devoted Harry Townsend have to go along on the yacht
+with us. Well, Gladys told mother that neither she nor Mr. Townsend
+could go if Barbara went. Gladys would not tell mother why, and, as you
+told me to keep that scene in the conservatory a secret, I didn't know
+what it was wisest for me to do."
+
+"Thank you," Ruth answered; "but tell your mother that none of us can
+accept."
+
+"O Ruth!" exclaimed Hugh. "I am fearfully disappointed, and mother I
+know will be angry."
+
+"I am afraid I don't care, Hugh," was Ruth's reply. "I don't like your
+mother's inviting any of us, if she had to leave Bab out."
+
+As Hugh turned to leave the front porch, where he had found Ruth alone,
+she called after him: "Wait a minute, please. I don't know what to tell
+Aunt Sallie. Your mother will be sure to speak to her of her invitation,
+and Auntie will think I should have let her refuse for herself. Oh, I
+know!"
+
+Ruth's face cleared. "I will go tell Aunt Sallie that she and Grace and
+Mollie are asked. I'll stay with my dear Bab," she finished a little
+defiantly. "If I am also left out of the party, no one will think
+anything of it."
+
+"Oh, I say, Ruth," Hugh urged, "please come."
+
+"Sorry," she said, shaking her head decidedly.
+
+"I expect you're right," Hugh replied.
+
+Miss Sallie, Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post's invitation with
+pleasure. As Mrs. Post's yacht was small, they did not think it strange
+that the other two girls were left out.
+
+How angry Mollie would have been, had she guessed the truth. Not a step
+would she have gone. As it was, she begged Barbara to go in her place.
+
+But Bab was too clever. She understood what had happened, and was glad
+to be left out of the party. She put her arm around Ruth's waist,
+whispering coaxingly: "Do go along with the others, old story-teller.
+You know you were asked."
+
+Ruth shook her head decidedly. "Not on your life," she slangily
+retorted. Fortunately, Miss Sallie did not hear her.
+
+"What shall we do this afternoon, Bab?" inquired Ruth after luncheon.
+"Suppose you and I go for a long walk?"
+
+"Don't think I am a lazy good-for-nothing, Ruth," Barbara begged, "but I
+have a little headache, and I must write to mother. Mollie and I have
+been neglecting her shamefully of late. I haven't even written her about
+the wonderful ball."
+
+"Are you going to tell her what happened, Bab?" Ruth inquired.
+
+"I suppose so," sighed Bab. She was half inclined to discuss the
+unfortunate affair with Ruth, but changed her mind.
+
+"Well, Bab," Ruth declared, "I shall go for the walk 'all by my
+lonesomes.' I'll be back in time for dinner. The others are to dine on
+the yacht, so we need not look for them until bedtime. I think I'll take
+the cliff walk, for the sea is so splendid to-day."
+
+Left alone, Barbara got out her writing materials and sat down by the
+window, but she did not begin to write.
+
+"I wonder," she asked herself, "why we have been mixed up in burglaries
+ever since Ruth began talking about our trip to Newport? First, our poor
+little twenty-dollar gold-pieces disappear; then we have that dreadful
+robber at New Haven. Now Mrs. Post's emerald necklace is stolen! It
+could not all have been Mr. Townsend!" Barbara sat with her hands
+clenched.
+
+"If it is true," she went on, "and I saw the necklace disappear with my
+own eyes, then we have another Raffles to deal with. Mr. Raffles, the
+second! I believe I am the only person that suspects him. Well, Mr.
+Harry Townsend!" Barbara's red lips tightened, "you are successful now,
+but we shall see whose wits are better, yours or mine!"
+
+Barbara's face turned a deep crimson. "I understood. He wanted to
+suggest I was the thief. Only he didn't dare to accuse me openly the
+other night. I won't tell mother," Barbara at last decided. "I'll just
+watch--and wait!"
+
+Barbara wrote her mother a long, happy letter, without a hint of the
+troubles she began to feel closing in on her. Then she straightened her
+own and Mollie's bureau drawers and arranged their clothes in the two
+closets. Still Ruth did not come.
+
+Twice Barbara went into her room. It was half past five--six--Mrs. Ewing's
+early dinner was served at half after six.
+
+"Mrs. Ewing," Barbara said, knocking timidly at her door. "Have you seen
+anything of Ruth? She has been gone such a long time that I am worried
+about her."
+
+But Mrs. Ewing knew nothing of her.
+
+"I believe I'll go to meet her," said Barbara, "and hurry her along. She
+must be on her way home." Ralph was on the yacht with Hugh, or Barbara
+would have asked him to accompany her.
+
+For the first half mile along the cliff walk Barbara strolled slowly,
+expecting every moment to see Ruth hurrying along. As the walk dipped
+down into hollows and rose again in the high places, it was difficult to
+see any distance ahead.
+
+The walk was entirely deserted, and Bab's heart commenced to beat faster
+as the darkness began to gather.
+
+"I suppose," thought Barbara, "Ruth has gone somewhere to make a visit,
+and has stayed late without thinking. She's probably at home, now,
+waiting for me, so I'll get the scolding from Mrs. Ewing for being late
+to dinner. I believe I'll go on back home." Barbara actually turned and
+started in the opposite direction.
+
+Something within her seemed to call: "Bab! Bab!" The voice was so urgent
+she was frightened. "Ruth needs you," it seemed to say.
+
+Bab began calling aloud, "Ruth! Ruth!" Her voice sounded high and shrill
+in her own ears; but only the echo answered her, and the noise of the
+waves pounding against the shore. She could see the distant lights in
+the houses along the way, but Barbara dared not stop to ask for help
+while that inner voice urged her on.
+
+Barbara was running, now, along the narrow, difficult path. "O Ruth,
+dear Ruth!" she cried. "Why don't you answer me? Are you anywhere,
+needing me?" She heard a low sound and stopped. Nothing but her own
+imagination! There were always queer noises along the cliff shore, where
+the water swirled into little eddies and gurgled out again.
+
+Barbara waited. She heard nothing more, so she plunged on. Suddenly she
+drew back with a gasp of horror. Part of the cliff walk had disappeared!
+Where a bridge of stone had spanned a narrow chasm there was a terrible,
+yawning hole. Jutting out their vicious arms were rocks, rocks, forming
+a sheer drop of seventy feet to the beach below.
+
+Involuntarily, Barbara had flung herself down on her hands and knees to
+keep from falling over into the abyss.
+
+"Ruth couldn't have," she thought. "No, no!" But hark! Was that again
+the low moaning sound of the waters? Barbara lay flat on the rocks,
+stretching her head over the embankment. There, in a cleft between two
+great rocks, fifteen feet below her, a dark object hung!
+
+"Ruth! Ruth!" Bab called, her voice coming from her throat in a hoarse
+cry. Again she heard the faint moan. This time she knew the sound. It
+was Ruth! What could she do? Run for help? Any second, Bab realized,
+Ruth's strength might fail, and she would let go her grasp. Barbara
+could not bear to think of the horrible end.
+
+As far as she could see, Ruth's feet rested on a narrow ledge of rock,
+while she clung with her hands to a cliff that jutted out overhead.
+"Ruth! Ruth!" Barbara called again, but this time her voice was clear
+and strong. "It is Bab! Do you understand? Hold on a little longer. I am
+coming."
+
+Swiftly a prayer came into Barbara's mind: "Lord, show me the way." Yet
+even while she prayed she acted. "Help, help!" Bab called out.
+
+[Illustration: Barbara Lay Flat on the Rocks.]
+
+She tore off the long woolen shawl which she had wrapped round her when
+she came out to seek Ruth. With hands that seemed to gain a superhuman
+strength Bab tore it into three, four strips. She dared not make the
+strips narrower for fear they would not hold. Then she took off her
+skirt of light wool and wrenched it into broad bands. How, Barbara never
+knew. She felt that the power was given her.
+
+Growing out from a rock between Bab and the moaning figure on the cliff
+below was a small tree, its roots deeply imbedded in the hard soil. Ruth
+had evidently reached out to grasp this tree as the cliff bridge gave
+way beneath her feet; but, missing it, her feet had touched a ledge of
+rock and she had flung out her arms and clasped the stone above her. How
+much longer would her failing strength serve her?
+
+Bab again lay down and measured the length of her queer rope. She found
+that by reaching the tree she could tie the rope to it and it would then
+be long enough to extend to Ruth. Removing her shoes, Barbara slowly,
+and with infinite caution, crawled down the jagged rocks, clinging with
+her hands and toes. Finally she arrived at the tree, and fastened her
+rope securely around it, only to find it dangled just above Ruth's head.
+Yet what was the use? If Ruth for an instant let go the rock to which
+she clung her feet would slip from the ledge, and Bab's poor woolen
+strings could never hold her.
+
+But Barbara understood this. She was face to face with the great moment
+of her life, and, though she was only a simple country girl, neither her
+brains nor her strength failed her.
+
+Did she stop at the tree after the rope was tied? No! Still clinging,
+sliding, her hands bruised and bleeding, Barbara was making her way to
+where Ruth hung. Bab had said truly that she could climb. Never had a
+girl a better opportunity to prove her boast! There were moments when
+she believed she could not go on. Then the thought of Ruth renewed her
+courage.
+
+Just above Ruth's head, on the left side of her, was a great boulder
+with a curved, smooth surface. It was to this rock Bab made her way. She
+was so close to Ruth now that she could lean over and touch her.
+"Courage, dear," she whispered, and she thought she saw Ruth's pale lips
+smile. She had not fainted; for this, Barbara was grateful.
+
+When Barbara was a little girl her mother had been ashamed of her tomboy
+ways; but she had given in, with a gentle sigh, when Bab grew and
+flourished by playing boys' games, by learning various boyish arts;
+among them was the knack of tying a sailor knot.
+
+Edging closer and closer to Ruth she managed to reach out and catch hold
+of the rope she had fastened to the tree. With one hand on her own rock,
+with the other she drew the cord about Ruth, fastening it firmly under
+her arms. The rope was not strong enough to draw Ruth up to safety, but
+it would steady her should her hands give way.
+
+Somehow, in some way, Barbara must get further help.
+
+Now that her first duty was over, she began to call loudly: "Help,
+help!" Her shouts roused Ruth, who joined feebly in the cry. No sound
+answered them. Only the seagulls swept over them, uttering their hoarse
+call.
+
+Barbara felt her own strength going. She tried to crawl up the slippery
+rock again, but her power was gone. She, too, felt herself--slipping,
+slipping! With one wild cry she caught at her rock, and all was still!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI--HELP ARRIVES
+
+
+Mr. Cartwright was dining alone on his Japanese veranda, as his wife was
+with the yachting party, and was not expected to dinner.
+
+Jones, the butler, came in softly, placing the soup in front of his
+master. As he put down the plate his hand shook. Surely he heard a cry!
+
+At the same moment Mr. Cartwright started up. "Jones, what was that?"
+They both stood still. There was no further sound.
+
+"Must 'ave been children playing, sir," suggested Jones, and Mr.
+Cartwright continued his dinner.
+
+"Help, help!" The sound came from afar off, loud and shrill. This time
+there was no mistake.
+
+"Coming!" Mr. Cartwright shouted. "Coming!" As he ran across the lawn,
+closely followed by Jones, he snatched a heavy coil of rope left by the
+workmen who had been swinging hammocks and arranging for Mrs.
+Cartwright's outdoor bazaar.
+
+"Call again, if you can," Mr. Cartwright yelled. Faintly, a voice seemed
+to come up out of the earth. "Help, help! Oh, please!"
+
+Mr. Cartwright caught the direction of the voice, and ran along the
+cliffs. In a moment he espied the fallen bridge and guessed what had
+happened; then he and Jones saw the two girls in their perilous
+position.
+
+Leaning over, he called: "Can you hear me?"
+
+Bab answered, "Yes."
+
+"Then keep still," shouted Mr. Cartwright, "and I'll have you up here in
+a moment."
+
+Quickly he knotted the rope around Jones's waist; then, some yards
+farther on, he tied it round his own. "Go back," he said to his butler,
+"and lie down." Jones was large and heavy; Mr. Cartwright was a tall
+man, thin, but strong.
+
+Slowly he lowered himself to the tree where Bab had tied her poor rope,
+and flung an improvised lasso over to Bab. "Not me," said Barbara,
+forgetting her grammar. "Ruth first."
+
+"Can she climb with the help of the rope?" asked their rescuer.
+
+Ruth had not spoken, but she opened her eyes, gave a shudder and
+fainted.
+
+Like a flash Bab had thrown the lasso over her shoulders, and Ruth hung
+swaying in the air! Fortunately her feet were still on the ledge of the
+rock. Mr. Cartwright caught his rope round the tree, at the same time
+calling to Jones, "Throw me another coil!" He then clambered down and
+half carried, half dragged the fainting Ruth to the top of the cliff.
+
+Once above, he dropped his burden, and again flung the lasso over the
+edge of the rocks to Barbara, who, crawling and being pulled by turns,
+came up in safety. When she had reached the top, and stood by the side
+of the fainting Ruth, Bab's courage deserted her, and she burst into
+tears.
+
+"Get the young ladies to the house at once," ordered Mr. Cartwright, far
+more frightened than he had been while playing rescuer.
+
+How fared the yachting party? They did not have a good day. Hugh was in
+a bad humor because Ruth had not come; Ralph missed Barbara, and, try as
+they might to avoid it, the conversation would drift back to the lost
+emeralds.
+
+"I shall never understand it," said Mrs. Erwin to Aunt Sallie, in
+subdued tones. "The detectives say they have made a thorough search of
+my servants' quarters, have watched their movements ever since the night
+of the theft, and they can find none of them of whom they are even
+suspicious. They do say"--this time Mrs. Erwin dropped her voice to a
+whisper, for the woman who was with Mrs. Post at the time of the robbery
+was approaching them--"they say that the burglar was probably--one of the
+guests!"
+
+This woman, who had worn a gold-colored brocade, was an American, who
+had married a Frenchman, but her husband was supposed to have been dead
+several years. She had come to Newport, this season, with letters of
+introduction, and was already very popular.
+
+"Do you know," she inquired, "where Miss Le Baron and Mr. Townsend are?
+No one has seen them recently."
+
+"Oh," laughed Mrs. Erwin, "we leave those two young people alone. I
+believe they have an affair of their own. Have you known Mr. Townsend
+before this meeting?"
+
+"Oh, no," replied the woman, in a curious tone; "at least, I have met
+him once or twice. I can't say I know him."
+
+"Ladies," Governor Post said, coming up to them, "I believe I will cheat
+you of part of your sail today. There are ugly clouds gathering, and I
+think it better to put into harbor. We can go ashore, or not, as we feel
+inclined."
+
+As the yacht neared the shore, Miss Sallie grew restless. It was the
+first time since the beginning of their trip that she had been separated
+from any of her girls. As soon as dinner was over she begged Governor
+Post to put herself, Grace and Mollie ashore. Immediately the rest of
+the party agreed to disembark with her.
+
+Ralph and the two girls followed Aunt Sallie home. For once, she hurried
+on before them, urged by a kind of foreboding.
+
+She found Mrs. Ewing, white and frightened, walking up and down in front
+of her gate. Mr. Ewing and the maids had left the house, half an hour
+before, to search for the lost girls.
+
+Thoughtlessly Mrs. Ewing rushed up to Miss Stuart. "Have Ruth and
+Barbara joined you?" she asked.
+
+"Why, no," replied the two girls in amazement. Ralph stared in surprise;
+but Miss Sallie spoke firmly. "Tell me, at once, what has happened." In
+the midst of real danger Miss Stuart was a different woman, as Mr.
+Stuart well knew when he allowed her to chaperon the automobile girls.
+
+Mrs. Ewing had nothing to tell. All she knew was that the girls had gone
+out for a long walk, and, at eight o'clock, had not come back.
+
+"Come with me, Ralph," Miss Sallie demanded. Grace and Mollie followed
+them.
+
+"Don't be frightened, Mollie," Grace begged, trying to talk cheerfully,
+though she was trembling violently. "Rely upon Ruth and Bab to get
+safely out of a scrape."
+
+Just as they reached the end of the street that turned into the cliff
+walk, Miss Sallie espied a servant of the Cartwrights running in their
+direction. "Stop him!" she commanded Ralph.
+
+"Sure, mum, I am to tell you," the gardener's boy said, "the young
+ladies was not killed."
+
+"Not killed!" the girls cried, in horror. Ralph took hold of Mollie's
+hand.
+
+"That is what I was to say, mum," said the boy, evidently much excited.
+"They is not much hurt and will be home soon."
+
+"Take me to them, at once," ordered Miss Sallie, asking no further
+questions. The gardener's boy led the way.
+
+When the party arrived, Mrs. Cartwright, still in her yachting suit, ran
+out to meet them. Ruth came to the door, walking a little stiffly.
+Barbara followed her, and straightway begged Mollie not to cry.
+
+"It's all over, silly little Mollie," she whispered, "and neither Ruth
+nor I am hurt. We are just a little scratched, and very dirty, and we
+want to go to bed."
+
+"Mr. Cartwright has already had the doctor in to see us, Auntie," said
+Ruth. "He is in the drawing room now. We have no broken bones or
+strains, though my shoulders ache rather badly."
+
+Mollie and Grace were both crying, just because there was nothing, now,
+for them to cry about.
+
+Miss Sallie made Ruth sit down again, as her niece was almost too weak
+to stand. After listening in silence to Ruth's story, Aunt Sallie held
+out her hand to Mr. Cartwright. "My brother and I can never thank you,
+and I shall not attempt it. Ruth means all our world." Then she turned
+to Barbara, and gathered her in her arms. "My child," she said, "you are
+the bravest girl I ever knew." Miss Stuart choked, and could say no
+more.
+
+"Do you remember, Bab," asked Mollie, when Barbara was safe in her own
+bed, "how once you said you would one day repay Ruth and Mr. Stuart for
+their kindness to us? Well, I think, and I know they will think, that
+you have kept your promise. Yes; I'm going to let her go to sleep, Miss
+Sallie," Mollie called back, in answer to Miss Stuart's remonstrance.
+
+Ruth and Barbara were utterly worn out, and had been put into warm baths
+and rubbed down with alcohol. "I am not even going to give two such
+sensible girls doses of aromatic spirits of ammonia," declared the
+doctor, who had driven over from Mrs. Cartwright's with them and had
+seen the girls safely in bed. "They will be all right in a day or two,"
+he assured Miss Sallie, "as soon as they get over the nervous shock."
+
+It took six telegrams to Mr. Stuart and Mrs. Thurston to persuade them
+the girls were unhurt and able to remain in Newport.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII--THE FORTUNE-TELLERS
+
+
+"My dears," said Mrs. Cartwright, two days after the accident, coming
+into the sitting-room, where Ruth and Bab were idling, "I suppose you
+know that you are the heroines of Newport. No one is talking about
+anything but your accident. You have almost put the jewel robbery out of
+our minds. How do you feel this morning?"
+
+"Oh, as fit as anything," smiled Ruth, though she still looked a little
+pale. "I have just written a long letter to father, to assure him that I
+shall be well enough to play in the tournament next week."
+
+"That is fine," declared Mrs. Cartwright. "And you, Bab?"
+
+"There never was much the matter with me," Bab answered.
+
+"Then you are just the girls I am looking for," said Mrs. Cartwright,
+clapping her hands. "You know, I asked you, Bab, to play gypsy
+fortune-teller at my bazaar; now I want to ask Ruth to join you.
+Everyone thinks you are both laid up from your accident, and no one will
+suspect who you are. The plans for the bazaar are going splendidly. I
+think I shall make lots of money for my poor sailors. I shall have it as
+simple and attractive as I can--a real country fair, with booths and
+lemonade stands. I am going to give these jaded Newport people a taste
+of the simple life. Do say you will help me."
+
+Both girls shook their heads. "We do not know how to tell fortunes,"
+they protested.
+
+"Oh, it's only fun," argued Mrs. Cartwright. "You can make up any
+foolishness you like as you go along. I'll show you how to run the
+cards, as they call it. Has either of you ever seen anyone do it?"
+
+Bab confessed she had watched "Granny Ann." Suddenly she left her chair,
+and came hobbling over to Mrs. Cartwright, saying, in Granny Ann's own
+high-pitched, whining voice: "Lovely lady, would you know the future,
+grave or gay, cross my hand with a silver piece and list to what I say."
+
+Gravely, Mrs. Cartwright extracted a dollar from her silver purse, and
+made the gypsy sign on Bab's outstretched hand. Barbara immediately told
+her such a nonsensical fortune, in a perfectly grave voice, that she and
+Ruth both screamed with laughter.
+
+"You'll do, Bab," said Mrs. Cartwright. "Won't you join her, Ruth?"
+
+"Well," said Ruth, "I never desert Mrs. Micawber these days, or, to put
+it plainly, Miss Bab Thurston. So I'm game."
+
+"Thursday, then, remember, and this is Tuesday," said Mrs. Cartwright.
+"I am the busiest woman in Newport, so I must run away now. You should
+see my house and lawn. They are full of workmen. The fair is to begin
+promptly at four, and will last until midnight. We shall have dancing on
+the lawn, but I want you girls and a few friends to come into the house
+after supper. When you finish playing fortune-tellers you can slip up to
+my room and dress. Nobody must guess, when you come down, that you have
+not just arrived. Now, I positively must be off. Tell Mollie and Grace I
+am depending on them to act as waitresses. Gladys isn't willing to help.
+She wants all her time for Harry Townsend."
+
+"Ruth," said Aunt Sallie, the afternoon of the bazaar, "I really cannot
+permit you to go anywhere, looking as you do, even if you are wearing a
+disguise. You are too horrible!"
+
+"Come and see Barbara," Grace called from the next room. "I am sure she
+must look worse. Why," she asked, laughing, "do you and Ruth want to
+disguise yourselves as such dreadful-looking gypsies. You might just as
+easily have arranged to look like young and charming ones."
+
+"Oh, no," said Bab. "We want to look like the real thing, not like stage
+gypsies." Barbara had arranged to appear as much like "Granny Ann" as
+she possibly could. A red and yellow handkerchief was bound around her
+head almost to her eyebrows, her face was stained to a deep brown, with
+lines and heavy seams drawn over it; even her hands were made up to look
+old and weather beaten.
+
+"Remember, you have never seen nor heard of these extraordinary
+fortune-tellers before," warned Ruth. "And don't forget, Barbara and
+Ruth are at home at Mrs. Ewing's, but they may feel well enough to come
+to the fair in the evening." Ruth caught Bab's arm, and together they
+made a low curtsey.
+
+"Beautiful ones," Ruth went on, pointing to Miss Sallie, who was looking
+handsome in a gown of pale gray crepe, with a violet hat and sunshade,
+and to Mollie and Grace, who were dressed like Swiss peasant girls,
+"your fortunes I would like to tell before you go to the Fair. Easy it
+is for my wise eyes to perceive that you will be the belles and beauties
+of the entertainment. Now, farewell!"
+
+The "gypsies" were to drive over early to Mrs. Cartwright's in a closed
+carriage. Ralph was to take Miss Sallie, Grace and Mollie in the motor
+car later on.
+
+"Granny Ann" and "old Meg" slipped inside the gypsy tent before any of
+the guests had arrived at the bazaar. They had gazed in wonder at Mrs.
+Cartwright's beautiful lawn, changed to look like a country fair. It was
+hung with bunting and flags, and had small tables and chairs under the
+trees; also a May-pole strung with long streamers of different colored
+ribbons. Mrs. Cartwright had planned a May-pole dance as one of the
+chief features of the afternoon, and Mollie and Grace were both to take
+part.
+
+For the gypsies, life was a serious matter. The tent was divided by a
+red curtain; on a low wooden table burned a round iron pot filled with
+charcoal and curious odorous herbs; a pack of dirty cards lay near it.
+"The cards must be dirty," argued Ruth, "or no one would believe we were
+the real thing in gypsies." Two rough stools stood by the table, and the
+only daylight shone through the tent flap. On the other side of the
+curtain, Mrs. Cartwright had been kinder to her gypsies. Here were a
+wicker couch and big chairs, where they could rest and talk; also a
+table for refreshments, "for," laughed Mrs. Cartwright, as she left the
+tent to welcome her first guests, "I have always heard that gypsies are
+a particularly hungry race of people."
+
+Mrs. Cartwright's fair was a huge success. The most fashionable "set" in
+Newport were present, entering into the spirit of the occasion with
+great zest.
+
+Gladys and Harry Townsend were seen everywhere together; but to-day
+there was often a third person with them, the Countess Bertouche, the
+woman of the gold-colored brocade, but lately introduced in Newport
+society.
+
+"I believe Gladys is engaged to Harry Townsend," whispered Grace to
+Mollie, when she had observed Harry bending over Miss Le Baron and
+talking to her in a more devoted manner than usual.
+
+"Well," retorted pretty Mollie, with a toss of her head, "I am sure I do
+not envy either one of them."
+
+All afternoon the gypsy tent had been flooded with visitors. Barbara and
+Ruth had the time of their lives. No one recognized the two automobile
+girls in the aged crones who mumbled and told strange fortunes in hoarse
+tones.
+
+It was growing late, and the gypsy tent was for the time deserted. Ruth
+was resting on the couch in the back of the tent, while Bab sat near
+her, talking over their experiences of the afternoon.
+
+Suddenly the tent flap opened, and Grace and Mollie rushed in. Before
+either of them spoke, they turned and fastened the flap down again
+securely, so no one could enter without their knowing it.
+
+"What's the matter?" asked Ruth and Bab at once, for it was plain to see
+their visitors were greatly excited.
+
+Grace and Mollie started talking together. "Mrs. Cartwright's diamond
+butterfly----" then they both stopped. "Are you sure no one can hear?
+Mollie, you tell," finished Grace.
+
+"The butterfly has gone, vanished right off Mrs. Cartwright's frock,
+this afternoon, while she was talking to her visitors. You know, she
+changed the ornament she wore in her hair into a brooch. She showed it
+to me early this afternoon, when I first came, and now--it is gone! I
+tell you, girls, there's a thief among these Newport people. I think it,
+and so does Mrs. Cartwright, and ever so many others. Promise you'll
+never tell," went on Mollie, "but there are two detectives here watching
+all the guests! I'd like to find the thief myself. I'd know Mrs.
+Cartwright's butterfly anywhere."
+
+There were noises at the tent door.
+
+Barbara heard Gladys's high, querulous voice, saying, coquettishly: "I
+don't want my fortune told, Harry. I would much rather you told it to me
+any way." But Mr. Townsend insisted.
+
+"Fly, girls--do, please! They are coming in!" said Barbara. "No; you
+can't get out, but you must stay perfectly still behind this curtain,
+and not breathe a single word."
+
+It was almost entirely dark in the gypsy tent, the only light coming
+from the burning pot of fire on the table. Barbara stooped low, when she
+opened the door to allow Harry, Gladys and the Countess Bertouche to
+come in.
+
+"It groweth late," Bab began, croakingly. "Evil may come. No good
+fortunes fall between dusk and darkness. Beware!"
+
+Gladys shuddered. "Let's not go in," she urged.
+
+But Harry Townsend only laughed. "Don't let the old hag frighten you,"
+he retorted, lightly. "Here," he turned to the gypsy and spoke in a
+voice no one of the girls had ever heard him use, "here, you old
+swindler, speak out! What kind of fate do you read for me in the stars?"
+
+Barbara picked up the pack of dirty cards, and began to shuffle them
+slowly. An idea was revolving in her head. Dared she do it? But Barbara
+was a girl who was not easily daunted.
+
+[Illustration: Harry Townsend's Face Grew Livid.]
+
+After a minute of silence she shook her head. "What I see I dare not
+reveal," she whined. "All black, dark, dark mystery!"
+
+"Oh, stuff!" jeered Mr. Townsend. "Don't try that dodge on me. Tell what
+you know."
+
+Barbara flung down the cards and blew three puffs into the smouldering
+pot of fire. Ashes and tiny flames shot up from it. She started back,
+then pointing a finger, she hissed: "Something is moving toward you,
+curving and coiling and twisting round you. Mercy!" she cried. "It is a
+green snake, and its fangs have struck into your soul!"
+
+Harry Townsend's face grew livid. In a moment the look of youth vanished
+from his face, his lips turned blue, and his eyes narrowed to two fine
+points.
+
+The Countess Bertouche came forward. "Harry," she said, "come away. You
+forget yourself. Don't listen to such nonsense."
+
+"Harry!" thought Gladys to herself, angrily. "She certainly presumes on
+a short acquaintance! Harry, indeed!"
+
+But Barbara had not finished.
+
+"Stay!" she said, holding up a warning finger. "Another messenger
+appears. It is a beautiful, bright thing, sparkling and darting toward
+you. Why," she added, quickly, "it is lighting on your coat. It has
+flown inside--a beautiful butterfly, born of summer time and flowers.
+Or"--this time Barbara leaned over and whispered in his ear--"or it may be
+made of diamonds and come from a jeweler's shop."
+
+For an instant, Harry Townsend's hand flew to his vest pocket. He rose,
+saying quietly to his companions: "Come away from here. Did you ever see
+such a stupid old fraud? A snake and a butterfly--a curious fortune
+indeed!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII--A WORD TO THE WISE
+
+
+Barbara's suspicion was now a certainty. Another person might not have
+been much wiser from Harry Townsend's behavior during the telling of his
+fortune. But Barbara's eyes were keen. The thief the detectives were
+seeking, the "Raffles" who was bowing and smiling his way through
+Newport society was none other than "Harry Townsend." How to prove it?
+That was another matter.
+
+"Bab," said the other girls, appearing on her side of the tent, "what a
+string of nonsense you did put off on poor Harry Townsend. What on earth
+made you tell him about a butterfly and a snake? I suppose you had
+butterfly on the brain, since we had just told you of the robbery."
+
+"That is true," assented Bab.
+
+"Ruth!" Barbara turned to her quickly. "I am tired of my job. I want to
+quit this fortune-telling business at once. Let's desert and go up to
+Mrs. Cartwright's room and change our clothes. Do hurry!" she urged, a
+little impatiently.
+
+"Oh, all right, Bab," Ruth agreed. She stared at Barbara curiously. What
+had come over her friend? Harry Townsend always seemed to have such a
+strange effect upon her.
+
+Barbara was thinking. How could she find the detectives, to tell them of
+her suspicions, while Harry Townsend still had in his pocket the jewel
+he had stolen?
+
+"I want to ask you something, Mollie," Bab announced, as the girls
+started for the house. "You'll excuse a family secret, won't you?" she
+asked of Grace and Ruth. "Mollie," Bab whispered, "don't speak out loud.
+Do you think you can discover who the two detectives are, and let me
+know as soon as I come downstairs? Don't ask questions, please; only, I
+must know."
+
+Mollie shut her lips close together. "Yes, I'll find out for you," she
+promised.
+
+Half an hour later, as the guests were being served with supper under
+the trees, Ruth and Barbara made their appearance.
+
+"We just couldn't keep away any longer," they explained to their
+friends. "Oh, yes, we are feeling perfectly well again."
+
+Barbara called Mrs. Cartwright aside for a minute. "Is it true," she
+asked, "that your diamond butterfly has disappeared?"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright's face clouded. "Yes," she replied. "It has gone within
+the last hour or so. I had it fastened here on my dress with a long pin.
+If it was stolen by a guest, which I am coming to believe, then it was
+not such a difficult theft. I have been leaning over, laughing and
+talking, and any light-fingered--woman--or man--could easily have taken it
+out of my dress."
+
+Mrs. Cartwright shivered and turned pale, as she looked at the gay
+parties of people out on her lawn. "Isn't it dreadful," she said,
+plaintively, "to think that there may be a thief right over there among
+all my friends! But run along, now, child, and enjoy yourself. You and
+Ruth were the success of the afternoon. Everyone has asked me where I
+found my clever gypsies."
+
+Barbara wandered off alone. Before she had gone more than a few steps,
+Ralph Ewing joined her. "Please don't come with me, Ralph," she begged.
+"I want to find Mollie."
+
+"Well, why should that prevent my coming along, too?" Ralph asked. "I'd
+like to find Mollie myself. She hasn't paid the slightest attention to
+me all afternoon."
+
+"I don't want to be horrid, Ralph," Barbara protested, nervously, "but
+please let me find her by myself."
+
+"Oh, certainly," assented Ralph, walking quickly away.
+
+Over by one of the lemonade stands that had been deserted at supper time
+Bab found Mollie.
+
+"Bab," she said, pulling her sister to one side, "do you see that tall,
+blond man, with the little, curly mustache? He is one of the detectives.
+I can't find out where the other one is."
+
+A little later Ralph Ewing, who was still strolling around by himself,
+felt his face flush, partly with wounded pride, partly with anger.
+Barbara was not talking to Mollie. She was standing some distance off
+from the other guests, having an earnest conversation with a man whom
+Ralph knew to be a stranger in Newport.
+
+Ralph was too proud to linger near them, since Bab had said so plainly
+she wanted none of his society. If he could have heard what she was
+saying he would have been even more horrified.
+
+"Yes," Barbara promised, "if you will come somewhere near us, when we
+are all together, this evening, I will give you a signal to show you the
+man I mean. His name is Townsend. He looks very young, is slender and is
+of medium height. Suppose, when you see us, I bow my head slowly in the
+direction of the man I mean? If you understand me, you can return my
+bow. Can you search him before he leaves the grounds?"
+
+"No, miss." The detective shook his head. "It would be impossible. He
+hasn't the jewel on him now. If he's the man we think he is, he is too
+smooth for that. He must have a confederate. If we search him here, and
+find no proof of his guilt, he will know all about us and our
+suspicions. Can't you see, then, he would just clear out and leave us
+here to whistle for our pains?"
+
+"Yes, I see," said Bab.
+
+"Thank you, miss, for telling us," the detective continued. "I must say
+that emerald story sounds like the real thing. You've only guessed about
+the butterfly theft; but I think you've guessed right. Now we must go
+easy. If there is a Raffles, here in Newport, he is out for more
+plunder. He'll make another bold attempt, and that will be our chance."
+
+"Well, I must go on back now to my friends," murmured Barbara, uneasily.
+It seemed strange to be taken into confidence by the detective, as
+though she were in the same line of business. "I suppose you and the
+other detective can manage, now, to secure the thief. I would rather not
+have anything more to do with the matter." Barbara gave a little shiver
+of repulsion.
+
+"Oh, now, young lady," protested the detective, "you mustn't go back on
+us, just as the game commences. To catch a society thief we must have
+help from the inside. The best detective in the service can't get on
+without it."
+
+"Where have you been, Bab?" inquired Miss Sallie, anxiously, when
+Barbara joined her friends a few minutes later. "I was beginning to get
+uneasy about you. Mrs. Cartwright wants us to come into the house for an
+informal dance. Do you feel well enough to go? I don't think you look
+very well, child."
+
+Harry Townsend and Gladys came up at this minute. Harry had promised to
+take Miss Stuart indoors to watch the dancing. There was a curious,
+restless look in the man's eyes, but his manners were as charming as
+ever.
+
+This was Barbara's chance. She lagged behind the others, and bowed her
+head slowly in the direction of Miss Sallie's escort. A strange, blond
+man, with a curly light mustache, standing some distance off, returned
+her bow.
+
+All evening Ralph did not come near Barbara. He devoted himself to
+Grace, who was wise enough to guess that Bab and Ralph must have had a
+quarrel. But Barbara did not understand. Not having realized that Ralph
+had felt snubbed when she dismissed him a little while before, she
+supposed he had grown tired of her.
+
+To tell the truth, Barbara was dull. All the merry, sparkling fun had
+gone out of her for this one evening. Whether she danced, or talked or
+rested quietly, she saw Harry Townsend's face as it had looked at her
+for a single minute in the gypsy tent. "I am not a coward," thought
+Barbara, "but I shall have to be careful if he discovers I was the gypsy
+who told his fortune this afternoon."
+
+Barbara was right.
+
+Harry Townsend knew there was just one person in Newport who suspected
+him of being a thief; this person must be put out of the way. The fine
+Raffles preferred not to use violence, but at any cost he must win.
+
+Harry Townsend had not recognized Bab in the gypsy tent, which served,
+for the time, to avert his suspicions from her. He believed she had only
+arrived, when he met her with Miss Stuart late in the evening. Then who
+was the gypsy? Either Barbara had seen her, some time in the afternoon,
+and told her the story of the necklace, or there was some one else who
+believed he had had a part in the robberies. He must find out.
+
+"Gladys," Harry Townsend said, "don't let us dance all evening. I have
+not had any kind of chance to talk to you alone. Come out on the veranda
+with me, won't you?"
+
+Gladys and Harry seated themselves on the front porch, whence they could
+look through an open window at the dancers.
+
+"Do you know Mrs. Cartwright very intimately, Gladys?" inquired Mr.
+Townsend.
+
+"Oh, no," returned Gladys, pettishly. If Harry Townsend had brought her
+out on the veranda to talk about Mrs. Cartwright, then she might as well
+have stayed indoors. "Why do you ask?"
+
+Harry Townsend frowned, then put his hands before his eyes. Gladys was
+so silly. She had served to introduce him to her friends at Newport.
+Now, if he could only make her useful in other ways!
+
+"Are you angry?" Gladys asked after a moment, "What is it that you want
+to know about Mrs. Cartwright?"
+
+"Oh, I don't want to know anything about Mrs. Cartwright at all, Gladys.
+I am sorry I spoke of it, if the subject offends you. But I did feel a
+little curious to know where she got hold of the gypsies she had in the
+tent this afternoon. I thought you would be interested."
+
+"I am interested, Harry," declared Gladys. She was only a spoiled child,
+and could not help showing it. "But I am not a favorite of Mrs.
+Cartwright's. It's my delightful cousins that she adores--Mollie and Bab.
+I can ask one of them to inquire."
+
+"Oh, no," drawled Harry, "it is not of enough importance for that."
+
+For the next half hour Harry devoted himself to the whims of Gladys. He
+could see Barbara through the window, looking pale and tired. This gave
+all the more reason for believing that she had not recovered from the
+shock of her experience on the cliffs.
+
+The cleverest man will sometimes make a false move. Harry Townsend was
+tired of Gladys, weary of her whims and foolishness. Besides, she had
+served his purpose; he was almost through with her.
+
+"Shall we take a walk, Gladys?" he asked.
+
+As they walked down the path toward the cliff, this up-to-date Raffles,
+whose fingers were more agile than a magician's, pressed Gladys's hand
+for a moment. At the same instant, he slipped her jeweled bracelet into
+his pocket. "I don't want the bauble," he said to himself, "but she
+might as well be punished for not doing what I ask her."
+
+At the same moment a blond man stepped out from among the bushes and
+asked Harry for a light for his cigarette.
+
+Miss Stuart and her girls were saying good-night to Mrs. Cartwright.
+Hugh Post and Ralph were to escort them home. As Barbara came down the
+steps with her wraps on, some one touched her on the arm.
+
+"Miss," the detective whispered, "I know the man you pointed out to me;
+but I have got to see you again. Tell me how we can manage it."
+
+"Oh," said Barbara, hopelessly, "I don't know. Miss Sallie will be so
+angry!"
+
+"You can't quit us now," the detective urged. "Why not come out in the
+morning, before any of your folks are up."
+
+"Yes," agreed Barbara, quickly. She didn't have time to refuse. Miss
+Sallie was coming toward her, and looked in surprise at Barbara's
+strange companion. "Come on, child," she said, "it is time you and Ruth
+were both in bed."
+
+"Down the street, two turnings to the right," Barbara heard a voice
+behind her whisper, as she turned away.
+
+Gladys was crying, as she made her way to Miss Stuart for comfort. "Miss
+Stuart," she said, "I have lost my pearl bracelet. Mother told me it was
+too handsome for me to wear. Now she'll be angry with me. I didn't think
+it mattered if I wore it this one time. It was large, I suppose, and it
+slipped off my hand somewhere."
+
+"Never mind, Gladys," advised Harry Townsend, coming up to her. "If it
+is stolen, the thief is sure to be caught."
+
+"Why do you stare at us so, Barbara?" demanded Gladys, angrily. "I am
+sure you look all eyes."
+
+"I beg your pardon," murmured Barbara.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX--"EYEOLOGY"
+
+
+All night long Bab tossed and tumbled in her bed. Should she keep her
+appointment with the detective? About daylight she fell asleep and
+wakened with her mind fully made up. Whatever the danger, she was in for
+it now. A clever thief was abroad in Newport; circumstances had led to
+her discovering him; well, she would do what she could to bring him to
+bay.
+
+At six o'clock Barbara slipped quietly out of bed, without awaking
+Mollie, and stole noiselessly through the deserted halls of Mrs. Ewing's
+great house. Not even the servants were about.
+
+At the appointed place she found waiting for her two detectives instead
+of one.
+
+"We're wise to the thief," said the larger, blond man, to whom Barbara
+had talked yesterday. "I never had my eyes off of him last night, after
+you pointed him out to me. I saw him slip a bracelet from a young lady's
+arm out in the garden, just as coolly as you'd shake hands with a
+person. But it was no time to make a row then. I never let him know that
+I saw him. The fellow would have had a thousand excuses to make. I could
+see he was on pretty intimate terms with the young lady."
+
+"The truth is, miss," interrupted the other detective, whom Bab saw for
+the first time this morning, "we think you have given us the clue to a
+pretty clever customer. We've been looking for him before. He's known to
+the service as 'The Boy Raffles.' We tried to catch him two years ago
+when he played this same game at Saratoga. But he got off to Europe
+without our ever finding the goods on him. So you see, this time we've
+got to nail him. My partner and I," the wiry little dark man pointed to
+the big blond one, "have been talking matters over and we believe this
+here 'Raffles' has got what we detectives call a 'confed' with him--some
+one who receives the stolen goods. So that's why we want to ask your
+help. Have you any idea of anyone who could be playing the game along
+with him? We think he is giving the jewels to some one to keep in hiding
+for him. The gems have not been sent out of town, and we have made a
+thorough search of Mrs. Erwin's house, where Townsend is staying. There
+is nothing there."
+
+"Could the young lady I saw him in the garden with last night be a
+partner of his?" asked the blond detective.
+
+"Oh, my goodness, no!" cried Barbara, in horror. "She is my cousin,
+Gladys Le Baron."
+
+"Now, that's just it, miss. You can see we need some one like you, who's
+on the inside, to keep us off the wrong track. Can you suggest anyone
+else?"
+
+Barbara was silent. Then she shook her head. "I don't know of anyone
+now," she said. "You'll have to give me time to think and watch."
+
+"All right, miss, and thank you. You can write a note to this address if
+you have anything to communicate." One of the men handed her a card with
+the number of a Newport boarding house on it. "My name is Burton," said
+the big man, "and my assistant is Rowley. We both came up from the New
+York office, and we're at your service, miss."
+
+On the way home Barbara tried to make up her mind whether she ought to
+tell Miss Sallie what she was doing.
+
+"I don't think it best to tell her now," she concluded. "She would only
+be worried and frightened to death. What is the good? Miss Sallie would
+be sure to think that girls did not hunt for jewel thieves in her day.
+And she'd probably think they ought not to hunt for them in my day,"
+Barbara confessed to herself, honestly. "I'll just wait a while, and see
+how things develop. Now I am in this detective business, I might as well
+confess to myself that it is very interesting."
+
+Barbara walked slowly. "I wish Ruth would find out how things are
+going," she thought to herself. "She is so shrewd and she already
+guesses I have something on my mind. But Ruth was so positive I was
+wrong about Harry Townsend, at Mrs. Erwin's ball, that she would
+probably think I was wrong again. So the female detective will pursue
+her lonely way for a little while longer--and then, I just must tell some
+one," Bab ended.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls were coming down-stairs to breakfast, when Bab
+entered at the front door. Miss Stuart was plainly displeased with
+Barbara's explanation. "I couldn't sleep very well, Miss Sallie," said
+Barbara, "and I went out for a walk." "That is partly true," she
+reflected, "but half truths are not far from story-telling."
+
+"Well, I must ask you, Bab," said Miss Sallie, in firm tones, "not to
+leave the house again in the morning, unless some one is with you. I was
+most uneasy."
+
+"Didn't Mollie give you the note I left on the bureau to explain where I
+had gone?" inquired Bab.
+
+"Mollie did not see the note until we were almost ready to come
+downstairs. Naturally, we did not understand your absence."
+
+"I am so sorry, Miss Sallie," cried Bab. "I never will do it again."
+
+Barbara was beginning to understand Miss Sallie better since Ruth's
+accident. She knew that her cold exterior hid a very warm heart.
+
+As for Miss Sallie, she finally smiled on Bab and gave her a forgiving
+kiss. "I could forgive Bab anything," she thought to herself, "after her
+wonderful heroism in saving Ruth. I suppose I have to expect a girl of
+so much spirit to do erratic things sometimes."
+
+Ralph kept his eyes lowered when he said good morning and hardly spoke
+during breakfast.
+
+"Ralph is out of sorts," his mother complained, "but, man-like, he won't
+tell what is the matter with him."
+
+"Perhaps you are tired from the party last night, Ralph?" suggested
+Mollie. Then Ralph laughed a mirthless laugh. "No, I am not tired,
+Mollie," he replied.
+
+Yet all through breakfast he did not once speak to Bab.
+
+"Remember," said Grace, "that our crowd and just a few other people are
+invited over to Mrs. Cartwright's to-night. She is going to have a porch
+party, and we are to play the famous game 'eyeology' that she was
+talking of to Gladys the other day. Do you know what she means?"
+
+Nobody at the table had ever heard of it.
+
+"I begged Donald to tell me," Grace added, "but he declares he is as
+much in the dark about it as the rest of us, and Mrs. Cartwright simply
+says, 'wait and see!'"
+
+"I suppose," said Miss Sallie, "that you children never intend to rest
+again. I should think that Mrs. Cartwright would be perfectly used up
+from so much entertaining."
+
+"O Aunt Sallie," pleaded Grace, "we shall rest well enough when we are
+back in sleepy old Kingsbridge. There is too much doing in Newport. And,
+you know, we've only about a week longer to stay. What a wonderful time
+we have had!"
+
+"Let's see what we have ahead of us," pondered Mollie. "The only
+especially big things we know about are the tennis tourney and the ball
+after it. Then Miss Ruth Stuart and Mr. Hugh Post are to win a silver
+cup, in order to spread more luster upon the reputation of the
+automobile girls at Newport. Bab helped pull Ruth out of an abyss! The
+two girls held up a burglar! Ruth is a famous tennis champion! Only you
+and I are no good, Grace. What can we do for our country?" finished
+Mollie.
+
+"Nothing at all, dear!" laughed Miss Sallie, and the rest of the party.
+"Much as I admire these two clever lassies, I am very glad to have my
+other two girls of a more peaceful and quiet variety, or my hair would
+certainly turn whiter than it is now, if that were possible." Miss
+Stuart touched her snow-white hair, which was very handsome with her
+delicate skin and bright color.
+
+"Now I insist," she said, "that you girls have a quiet day if you are
+going out again this evening."
+
+"May I have a row on the bay with Ralph?" asked Barbara. "Have you
+forgotten, Ralph, that you invited me several days ago?"
+
+"I am sorry, Barbara," Ralph answered, quietly, "but I had forgotten it.
+If you will excuse me, I have something else on hand for today that I
+must attend to. Perhaps you will go with me some other time," he
+proposed, without any enthusiasm.
+
+"All right, Ralph," Bab nodded. "Of course, I do not mind. We did not
+have a real engagement, anyway." "He won't let me make up with him," Bab
+thought. "I wonder why he is so angry?"
+
+At five o'clock Barbara came down on the veranda, dressed for the
+evening. She spied Ralph walking alone down the garden path, which was
+arched with trellises of crimson and pink rambler roses. There were
+several seats along the walk, and it had formed a favorite retreat for
+the girls ever since they had arrived at Mrs. Ewing's home.
+
+Perhaps another girl than Barbara would not have tried again to make
+friends with Ralph, after his refusal to take her boating in the
+morning; but Bab was so open-hearted and sincere that she could not bear
+a misunderstanding. She was fond of Ralph, he had been kind to her, and
+his manner toward her had changed so suddenly that she felt she must
+have done something to wound him. Bab did offend people, sometimes, with
+her quick speeches and thoughtlessness, but she was always ready to say
+she was wrong and to make amends.
+
+"Ralph!" she called. "Ralph!" The boy was obliged to stop and turn
+round, as Barbara was hurrying after him.
+
+"I want to talk to you, please," she said, coaxingly. "You are not too
+angry with me to let me speak to you, are you?"
+
+"I have not said I was angry with you, Miss Thurston," replied Ralph.
+
+"Now, Ralph!" Barbara put her hand lightly on his sleeve. "You know you
+don't call me Miss Thurston. We decided weeks ago it was silly for us to
+call each other Miss and Mister when we were such intimate friends. I
+want you to do me a favor. Will you take me over to Mrs. Cartwright's
+to-night? Donald and his guest, 'the freshman,' are coming for Grace and
+Mollie. Ruth, of course, is going over with Hugh, and I could go with
+them, but I want to talk to you. I can't say what I have to say to you
+now, because already the girls are calling me. Please say you will take
+me."
+
+Barbara's eyes were so pretty and pleading that Ralph felt his anger
+already melting. Yet Ralph's feeling toward Barbara was not only anger.
+It was a much more serious thing, a growing sense of distrust. But he
+answered: "Of course, Bab, I shall be delighted to take you."
+
+Barbara and Ralph let the rest of their friends start ahead of them.
+They wanted to have their walk alone.
+
+Miss Sallie had pleaded fatigue, and remained at home. "Besides,
+children," she explained, "I am much too old to take any further
+interest in games, 'eyeology,' or any other 'ology.'"
+
+Ralph and Barbara walked in silence down the street for several minutes.
+Then Bab spoke. "Tell me, Ralph, what is the matter? If you were angry
+with a man you would tell him what the trouble was, if he asked you. It
+is not fair not to be open with me because I am a girl. If you think you
+are being more polite to me by not telling me why you are angry, then I
+don't agree with you. I think you are acting a whole lot worse."
+
+Ralph continued to go on in moody silence.
+
+"All right, then, Ralph," said Barbara; "I can't ask you any more
+questions, or beg your pardon, when I don't know what I have done to
+offend you. Only I am sorry."
+
+"Oh, it isn't that you have offended me, Bab," Ralph burst out. "Do you
+suppose I would act like such a bear if you had just thrown me down, or
+some little thing like that, when we have been such jolly good friends
+before? I didn't like your sending me off yesterday, when you went to
+look for Mollie, because--because----"
+
+"Go on, Ralph," insisted Barbara.
+
+"Very well, then, Bab; I was angry and hurt because, if you did join
+Mollie, you couldn't have stayed with her a minute. I saw you, just
+afterwards, holding a long conversation with a strange man."
+
+"Well, Ralph," argued Bab, "was that such a dreadful offense? I am sure
+I should not have been angry with you, if you had talked to any number
+of strange women." Bab's eyes were twinkling. She had made up her mind
+that she wanted a confidant. Here was Ralph, the best one she could
+have.
+
+"That's not all," Ralph continued, "I did not mean to be an
+eavesdropper, but I was standing just behind you and I could not help
+overhearing that strange man make an appointment to meet you this
+morning. Say, Bab," Ralph turned toward her, all his anger gone, "don't
+do things like meeting that man this morning without telling. It's not
+nice, and I've thought you the nicest, most straightforward girl I ever
+knew. If there is anything between you and that fellow, why should it be
+a secret? A girl can't afford to have secrets, except with other girls."
+
+"But I want to have a secret with _you_, Ralph," rejoined Barbara. "Now
+listen, while I tell you everything. I have never talked to you about
+the scene in the conservatory, the night of Mrs. Erwin's ball, though I
+did appreciate what you did to help me out when I made that strange
+request of Harry Townsend. I was not crazy. I saw Harry Townsend steal
+Mrs. Post's emerald necklace. Ralph," Barbara's voice was now so low
+that he had to bend over to hear her, "Harry Townsend is not what the
+people here think him. He is a professional thief, and a dangerous one."
+
+"Whew!" whistled Ralph. "What did you say?"
+
+Then Barbara told him the story of the three thefts, from the beginning,
+and her own part in discovering them. "The detectives are on the lookout
+now, Ralph," she added, "but they want me to keep a watch from the
+inside."
+
+"Well, you are a clever one, Bab!" declared Ralph. "Look here, I am glad
+you told me this. I appreciate it a whole lot, and I will not mention it
+to anyone until you tell me I may. But, remember one thing. I shall be
+on the watch, too, and it's Miss Barbara Thurston I'll be watching. That
+Townsend is a dangerous rogue. I've known there was something crooked
+about him from the first. Oh, it's easy to say that, now, after what you
+have told me. I am not pretending I knew his special game. Only I knew
+he was not our sort. He is a whole lot older than he pretends to be, for
+one thing."
+
+"Ralph," sighed Barbara, "do you think there is any way I could warn
+Gladys against Harry Townsend?"
+
+Ralph shook his head. "Not any way that I know of. She would just snub
+you hard, if you tried. Even if you dared to tell her the truth she
+would go right off and tell that Townsend fellow. She's been pretty
+hateful to you, Bab. I don't see why you should care."
+
+"Oh, but I do care," retorted Bab. "She has been horrid and stuck up,
+but she hasn't done Mollie and me any real harm, and she is my cousin.
+Her father is my mother's brother. Uncle Ralph has never been very fond
+of us, nor has he come to see us very much, but he looks after mother's
+money. I don't suppose," wound up Barbara, thoughtfully, "he would do us
+any wrong. I shouldn't like Gladys to get into trouble."
+
+"What has kept you children so long?" asked Grace, as Ralph and Barbara
+appeared on Mrs. Cartwright's veranda. Then she squeezed Bab's hand and
+whispered, so no one else could hear, "Made it up, Bab?" Barbara nodded,
+"yes."
+
+Mrs. Cartwright was heard speaking. "Sit down, everyone, over there
+where Jones has placed the chairs for us. Professor Cartwright," she
+bowed to show she meant herself, "will now explain to his pupils, or his
+guests, the principles of the science of 'eyeology.' Human character is
+expressed in the human eye--our love, our hate, our ambitions,
+everything. But can we read the characters of people about us as we look
+into their eyes? No! Why not? Because the rest of the face confuses our
+attention. Instead of the steadfast beacon of the eye, we see the nose,
+the mouth, the hair, all the other features, and so we fail to
+understand the story the eye would tell us if it were alone. To-night I
+intend to instruct you in the proper understanding of 'eyeology.'"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright changed to her usual manner of speaking. "Don't you
+think it would be amusing to make a test? Here Ruth," laughed the
+hostess, "be my first pupil. Go into the drawing-room and wait there
+until I send for you. I want to find out how many of your friends you
+will know, when you see only their eyes."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX--RUTH WAKES UP!
+
+
+A curious sight met Ruth's gaze when she was invited to return to the
+veranda.
+
+"Goodness!" she laughed. "It is just as well I am not afraid of ghosts.
+I've come upon a whole army of them all at once!"
+
+Mrs. Cartwright had the porch darkened, except for a single row of
+bright lights. Her visitors stood with their backs against the wall, a
+sheet drawn up on a level with their eyes. Another white cloth covered
+their heads, drawn down so low over their foreheads that even the
+eyebrows were concealed. By standing on books and stools the eyes were
+all on a level.
+
+"No giggling," said Mrs. Cartwright severely to the ghostly set in front
+of her, "or Ruth can guess who you are by the tones of your voices."
+
+Ruth looked confused. No signs of her friends remained, save a long row
+of shining eyes, black, blue, brown and gray, even the color being hard
+to distinguish in the artificial light.
+
+"Now, mademoiselle," said Mrs. Cartwright, still speaking in the voice
+of a professor, "behold before you an opportunity to prove your skill in
+the remarkable science of 'eyeology.' I have a piece of paper and a
+pencil in my hand. As you gaze into each pair of eyes, you are to reveal
+that person's identity. I will write the names down as you tell them to
+me. When you have gone through the whole list, the curtain shall be
+lifted. Then we shall discover how many of your friends you know by the
+character of their eyes. After Ruth has finished, anyone else who wishes
+may try his or her skill."
+
+"My dear Mrs. Cartwright," said Ruth, laughing and peering in front of
+her, "I tell you, right now, that I shall not guess a single name
+correctly. To tell the truth, I never saw any of these eyes before. It's
+horrid to have them all staring and blinking at me. I am frightened at
+them all! Besides, I can't see. May I have a candle and hold it up in
+front of each person as I pass along?"
+
+"Yes," said Mrs. Cartwright; "only kindly keep at a safe distance. We
+don't want to burn up any of our ghosts."
+
+Ruth started down the line. She had the privilege of staring as long and
+as hard as she liked into each pair of eyes.
+
+The company was strangely silent. They were really interested in the
+idea, and knew that any talking would spoil the whole experiment.
+
+"I've mixed the babies up, Ruth," said Mrs. Cartwright, "so you needn't
+think you can guess anyone by his choice of a next-door neighbor. No
+social preferences have been allowed in this game."
+
+Ruth tried the first pair of eyes. She looked at them intently. Then she
+turned round to Mrs. Cartwright. "I am sure I never saw those eyes
+before. You have introduced some stranger since I left the porch."
+
+"There is not a person here whom you do not know well," Mrs. Cartwright
+assured her. "Don't try to slip out of your task."
+
+Ruth kept staring. The eyes in front of her drooped, and soft, curling
+lashes for an instant swept over them. A little wistful look lay in the
+depths of them, when the lids lifted. "Why, it's Molliekins! How absurd
+of me not to know her! I was about to guess Ralph!"
+
+Mistress Ruth must have guessed wrongly next time, for there was a burst
+of laughter, afterwards, that made the white sheets shake.
+
+"Be quiet," warned Mrs. Cartwright sternly.
+
+So Ruth passed on down the line. There were about twenty people in the
+game, but Ruth knew all of them very well. Sometimes her guesses were
+right, sometimes they were wrong. Once or twice she had to confess
+herself beaten, and "gave up" with a shake of her head at Mrs.
+Cartwright.
+
+Ruth had nearly finished her task. Only a few more pairs of eyes
+remained to be investigated.
+
+"Well, I am nearly through," she said gayly. "If anyone thinks I have
+had an easy time of it, he has only to take my place and try the next
+turn. No more mistakes now, for Ruth Stuart! Who is my next victim?"
+Ruth held her candle above her head and looked up.
+
+Gleaming at her through the darkness lit by the flare from her
+candle-light was a pair of eyes that were strangely familiar.
+
+Ruth stared at them. They belonged to none of the friends she knew--yet,
+somewhere, she had seen them before.
+
+Ruth looked and looked. The eyes shifted and narrowed. Ruth still held
+her candle aloft; but she had forgotten where she was. Where had she
+seen those eyes before?
+
+"Look straight ahead of you," said Mrs. Cartwright to the gleaming eyes,
+"how can Ruth guess when your eyes are closed?" But again the eyes
+shifted.
+
+"I am going to find out to whom those eyes belong, if I stay here all
+night," said Ruth, speaking to herself.
+
+The eyes glinted, narrowed and shone like two fine points of steel.
+
+"Oh!" said Ruth. She staggered a little and the candle shook in her
+hand. "I thought I knew those eyes, but I don't. I must be mistaken. I
+beg your pardon, Mrs. Cartwright," said Ruth, "but I am tired. I don't
+think I can go on. Will some one take my place?"
+
+Ruth's expression was so peculiar that Mrs. Cartwright came up to her.
+"You foolish child!" she said, putting her hand on Ruth's shoulder, "I
+believe this game is making you nervous. Who is it sitting there with
+the eyes that Ruth remembers, yet will not reveal to us?" she called.
+
+"Harry Townsend, Harry Townsend!" the people sitting closest to him
+answered.
+
+"Harry," said Mrs. Cartwright, "you come and take Ruth's place. Let's
+see if you are a better 'eyeologist' than she is."
+
+Before Harry Townsend had slipped out from under his strange covering,
+Ruth turned to Mrs. Cartwright. "Excuse me for a minute," she begged.
+"My labors as an optician have used me up. I will be back in a little
+while."
+
+Barbara crept from under the sheet, and, without speaking to anyone, ran
+after Ruth, who was on her way upstairs to Mrs. Cartwright's boudoir.
+
+"Ruth, dear, what on earth has happened to you? Are you sick?" asked
+Barbara.
+
+"Oh, I am worse than sick, Bab!" muttered Ruth, with a shudder. "Don't
+ask me to talk until we get upstairs."
+
+The girls closed the dressing-room door.
+
+"I must be wrong, Bab, yet I don't believe I am. I saw to-night the same
+eyes that glared at us from behind a black mask the time of that
+horrible burglary at New Haven, when, for a little while, I thought you
+were killed. I have never said much about it. I wanted to forget and I
+wanted everyone else to forget it, but those eyes have followed me
+everywhere since. To-night----"
+
+Bab took Ruth's hand.
+
+"Oh, Bab," groaned Ruth, "what does it mean? I saw those eyes again
+to-night and they were Harry Townsend's. I wanted to scream right out:
+'Burglar! robber!' But I could not make a scene. I came upstairs, hardly
+knowing how I reached here."
+
+One of the maids knocked at the door. "Do the young ladies wish
+anything? Mrs. Cartwright sent me up to inquire," she said.
+
+"Nothing at all. Tell her we are all right, and will be down in a few
+minutes."
+
+"Ruth," said Barbara, "I want to tell you something. If I do, can you
+pretend that nothing has happened, and be perfectly composed for the
+rest of the evening? Now don't say 'yes' unless you feel sure."
+
+Ruth looked straight at Barbara, "Yes; tell me what it is," she urged.
+"I am beginning to guess."
+
+"The eyes you saw to-night were Harry Townsend's, and he is a burglar
+and a thief. I did not know he was the robber at New Haven; I have only
+suspected it. Now I feel sure, and you recognized him to-night. He is a
+more dangerous character than I had thought, and he must not know that
+you suspect him."
+
+"He shall know nothing from me," said Ruth, coolly. Her color had come
+back, now that she knew the truth. "It was only the shock that unnerved
+me. Why haven't you told me before, Bab?"
+
+"I was afraid you'd ask me that, Ruth, dear, and I want to explain. You
+see, I have believed Harry Townsend a thief ever since I saw him, with
+my own eyes, take the necklace from Mrs. Post's neck at Mrs. Erwin's
+ball; but you were positive I was wrong, and asked me not to talk about
+it. So I didn't know what to do. I have only watched and waited.
+To-night I told Ralph what I knew."
+
+Barbara then explained to Ruth the whole story, and the part the
+detectives had asked her to play in Townsend's apprehension. "What shall
+I do, Ruth?" she ended.
+
+"Come on downstairs, Bab," said Ruth. "Some one may suspect us if we
+don't. Do, Bab. We are going on to play the game, just as you have been
+playing it by yourself. We will say nothing, but we will do some hard
+thinking; and, when the time comes, we shall act! To tell you the truth,
+if you will never betray me to Aunt Sallie, I think playing detective
+beats nearly any fun I know."
+
+"Eyeology" was no longer amusing the guests when the two girls came
+downstairs; indeed, the company had scattered and was talking in
+separate groups. Ruth and Bab joined Mollie and Grace, who were standing
+near Mrs. Post and their new acquaintance, the Countess Bertouche.
+
+"Girls," asked Mrs. Post, "would you like to join the Countess Bertouche
+and myself Saturday afternoon? We are going to explore old Newport; the
+old town is well worth seeing. The countess tells me this is her first
+visit to Newport, so, before she goes back to Paris, I want her to see
+that we have a little of the dignity that age gives.
+
+"Why," and Mrs. Post turned smilingly to the little group, "Newport
+boasts even a haunted house! It is not occupied, and I have the
+privilege of showing you over it. A story has been written about the old
+mansion. Here a young woman lived who loved an officer in Rochambeau's
+fleet, when the gallant French sailor came over to these shores. But the
+sailor loved and sailed away, never to return. So the lady pined and
+died; but her presence still haunts the old house. You can feel her
+approaching you by a sudden perfume of mignonette. After we see all the
+sights of the town, we shall go to the old house at about dusk, so that
+we may have a better chance to discover the 'spirit lady.'"
+
+Mollie and Grace accepted Mrs. Post's invitation with enthusiasm.
+Barbara and Ruth had to decline regretfully.
+
+"You see, Mrs. Post," Barbara explained, "Ruth and Hugh have to practice
+their tennis, every hour they can manage, until the tournament on
+Monday. Ruth has become a little out of practice since her accident, and
+must work hard at her game for the next few days. Ralph and I have
+promised to help by furnishing the opposition."
+
+"You'll excuse Mollie and me from playing audience, won't you, Ruth?"
+asked Grace. "We are going home so soon after the tournament is over
+that we can't resist Mrs. Post's invitation."
+
+"Barbara," said Ruth, coming into Bab's room, just as that young woman
+was about to step into bed, "can you imagine anyone whom Harry Townsend
+can be using as a confederate?"
+
+"Sh-sh!" warned Bab. "Here comes Mollie. Don't say anything. I haven't
+the faintest idea."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI--THE CAPTURE OF THE BUTTERFLY
+
+
+Harry Townsend was not aware of the chain of suspicion that was
+tightening around him; but he was too clever not to use every
+precaution. Once or twice he had come across the small, dark detective
+who was making investigations in Mrs. Erwin's house--the large, blond
+man, named Burton, had kept in the background--but knowing that the
+servants had been under suspicion, he supposed that the search was being
+made on their account. He knew of no act of his own that could possibly
+implicate him in the robberies. He came and went among Mrs. Erwin's
+guests, and was on a friendly footing with their most fashionable
+friends at Newport. He had seen no one else during his visit, as the
+whole world was privileged to know.
+
+The only act that the detective, Rowley, was able to report to his
+superior was that Mr. Townsend mailed his own letters. In Mrs. Erwin's
+household it was the custom of her guests to place all their mail in a
+bag, which the butler sent to the postoffice at regular hours; but Mr.
+Townsend preferred to mail his own letters. This act occasioned no
+comment. Other guests, writing important business letters, had done the
+same thing.
+
+"And Townsend has mailed only letters," continued Rowley in making his
+report. "Not a single package, even of the smallest size, has gone out
+through the postoffice. The jewels are still in Newport."
+
+Mr. Townsend had already begun to discuss with his hostess the
+possibility of his soon having to leave her charming home. "I have
+presumed on your hospitality too long," he said to Mrs. Erwin, several
+times. "When the famous Casino ball is over I must be getting back to
+New York."
+
+To Gladys he explained: "My dear Gladys, my holiday time must end some
+day. I shall be able to see you often when you go back to Kingsbridge. I
+am going into a broker's office as soon as I get back to New York. I
+have been loafing around in Europe for the last two years, but I have
+decided that, even if a fellow has money enough to make him fairly
+comfortable, work is the thing for the true American!"
+
+To-day Harry Townsend walked to the post-office alone. He carried three
+letters. One of them was to a steamship company engaging passage to
+Naples for "John Brown." The steamer was due to sail the following
+Wednesday. The other two letters had New York addresses. When they
+arrived at their first destination, they were to be remailed to other
+addresses. A tall, blond man, who happened to be lounging in the
+postoffice at the time Mr. Townsend entered it, observed that the young
+gentleman was anxious to know when the letters would be delivered in the
+city.
+
+The letters posted, Townsend walked over to the Casino courts, where Bab
+and Ruth were playing tennis. He had promised Gladys to join her there.
+He still had some investigations he desired to make. But he walked
+slowly. Clever fingers must be directed by a clever brain, whether their
+work be good or evil. No matter how well he knew he could depend on his
+wonderful fingers to do their share of the work, the "boy Raffles"
+always thought out carefully the plan of his theft before he tried to
+execute it.
+
+On Monday night, at the Casino tournament ball, he planned to make his
+final theft. This accomplished, he could leave Newport feeling he had
+reaped a rich harvest, even in the summer season, when harvests are not
+supposed to be gathered.
+
+Harry Townsend, alias half a dozen other names, had seen the jewel he
+most coveted for his final effort. It was a diamond tiara belonging to
+one of the richest and most prominent women in Newport. His schemes were
+carefully laid. He was waiting for Monday night.
+
+At about three o'clock, on this same Saturday afternoon, Mrs. Post and
+the Countess Bertouche stopped in a small automobile for Grace and
+Mollie. They had no one with them except the chauffeur.
+
+It took them some time to drive through the old town of Newport. The
+ladies descended at the old Trinity church, to investigate it, and the
+girls were much interested in the ancient jail. There, they were told,
+was once kept a woman prisoner who complained because she had no lock on
+her door.
+
+Mollie and Grace were not ardent sightseers. It was really the thought
+of the haunted house that had brought them on their pilgrimage. But Mrs.
+Post and the countess insisted on poking their way down the Long Wharf,
+with its rows of sailors' houses and junk shops. Both girls were
+dreadfully bored, and secretly longed to be on the tennis courts with
+Bab and Ruth. Yet the thought of the haunted house buoyed them up.
+
+Mrs. Post was a collector. If you have ever traveled with one, you will
+understand that it means hours and hours of looking through dirt and
+trash in order to run across one treasure that a collector regards as
+"an antique."
+
+Even when Mrs. Post was through with her search she decided that it was
+not yet sufficiently late for them to visit the haunted house. "I told
+the caretaker not to meet us there until a quarter of seven. We shall
+want only a few minutes to go through the old place; but, of course, we
+must see it under conditions as romantic as possible." Mrs. Post then
+ordered the chauffeur to take them for a drive before driving them to
+the haunted house.
+
+Mollie and Grace were unusually quiet, so they noticed that the Countess
+Bertouche had little to say during the afternoon. She seemed tired and
+nervous. When Mrs. Post asked her questions about her life abroad, after
+she married, the countess replied in as few words as possible.
+
+At exactly the appointed time the automobile delivered its passengers
+before the door of the house they sought. It was an old, gray,
+Revolutionary mansion, three stories high, with a sloping roof and small
+windows with diamond-latticed panes. It was quite dark when the girls
+entered the ghostly mansion, following Mrs. Post and the countess, who
+were led by a one-eyed old caretaker carrying a smoky lamp. There was
+just enough daylight shining through the windows to see one's way about,
+but the corners of the vast old house were full of terrifying shadows.
+
+"Let us not stay too long, Mrs. Post," urged the countess. "I am not
+fond of ghosts, and I am tired." But Mrs. Post was the kind of
+sight-seer who goes on to the end, no matter who lags behind. She led
+the party up the winding steps, peering into each room as they went
+along. The house was kept furnished with a few rickety pieces of old
+furniture.
+
+When they reached the second floor, the caretaker announced that the
+middle bedroom was the sleeping apartment of the haunted lady. The
+little party searched it curiously. There was no sign of the ghostly
+inhabitant; no perfume of mignonette.
+
+"I don't see anything unusual about this room," said the countess,
+suppressing a sigh, "except that it has the most comfortable chair in
+the house. I shall sit here and rest while you take the two girls over
+the other part of the building."
+
+The three left her. The woman dropped into a chair, and a worn, nervous
+look crossed her face.
+
+As Mollie ascended the attic stairs behind Grace she called out, "If you
+will excuse me, Mrs. Post, I shall go down and join the countess."
+
+An imp of mischief had entered Mollie. Wrapped up in her handkerchief,
+carefully concealed in her purse bag, was a handful of mignonette, which
+she had gathered from Mrs. Ewing's garden only that morning. Mollie
+meant to impersonate the "spirit lady." Suddenly she had decided that
+the countess was the best one upon whom she could try her joke.
+
+Creeping down the stairs as quietly as a mouse, Mollie stole into the
+back room, adjoining the one where the countess sat. Had she looked in,
+she would hardly have played her naughty trick. The woman who sat there
+was a very different person from the gay society lady they had been
+meeting everywhere in the last few weeks. This woman looked weary and
+frightened. But Mollie was thinking only of mischief.
+
+Silently she took the mignonette out of her bag and crushed it in her
+hand. There was a sudden fragrance all about her. Then she slipped her
+hand slyly through the open doorway and dropped her bunch of mignonette
+into the room where the countess was sitting. There was no response. The
+countess had not detected the odor of the flowers and Mollie was deeply
+disappointed.
+
+Faintly, however, the countess began to be aware of the fragrance of a
+subtle perfume; but she was thinking too deeply of other things to be
+conscious of what it was. Besides, the growing darkness was making her
+nervous.
+
+Mollie gave up in despair. Her effort with the mignonette had plainly
+proved a failure. The countess refused to be frightened by the
+suggestion of the ghost.
+
+"Countess!" said Mollie, appearing suddenly in the open doorway. She
+certainly expected no result from this simple action; but the countess,
+who thought she was entirely alone, was dreadfully startled. She rose,
+with a short scream of surprise, and started forward. Her foot catching
+in a worn old rug, she stumbled. Mollie was by her side in a second,
+trying to help her to rise.
+
+"I am so sorry to have frightened you!" the child said penitently. "Wait
+a minute, you have dropped something." Mollie picked up a square chamois
+skin bag. In her excitement and embarrassment she caught hold of the
+wrong end of it. Out of it tumbled a purse, and--Mollie saw it as plainly
+as could be, though it was nearly dark in the room--Mrs. Cartwright's
+diamond butterfly!
+
+"Child!" said the countess, angrily. "See what your nonsense has done!
+This is the bag that I wear under my dress to carry my money and jewels.
+It is always securely fastened. I suppose, falling as I did, I must have
+broken the catch." She picked up the things quickly and thrust them into
+her bag. It was so dark in the room she supposed Mollie had not seen
+them. Then, holding the bag tightly in her hand, she went on downstairs,
+Mollie after her, and joined Grace and Mrs. Post, who had preceded them
+to the automobile.
+
+"Well, did anyone see the ghost?" asked Mrs. Post. "You, Mollie, my
+child, look as if you had seen something."
+
+"Oh, no," denied Mollie; "but I am afraid I frightened the countess. I
+threw some mignonette in the room, trying to make her think I was the
+ghost, but she didn't notice it. Then, when I spoke to her to tell her
+it was time to come downstairs, she was dreadfully startled."
+
+Mrs. Post ordered the chauffeur to drive home first, as she and the
+countess had a dinner engagement; the two girls being later taken to
+Mrs. Ewing's.
+
+The two women had barely left the car before Mollie put her lips near
+Grace's ear and whispered: "Grace Carter, the Countess Bertouche has
+stolen Mrs. Cartwright's butterfly! I saw it with my own eyes. She
+dropped it out of a bag on the floor, when she fell down."
+
+"Goose!" smiled Grace. "What are you talking about? Don't you suppose a
+countess may have a jeweled butterfly of her own?"
+
+"Not like that one," retorted Mollie, firmly. "I would know it among a
+thousand. You needn't believe me, but it's as true as that my name is
+Mollie Thurston. I am going to tell Ruth and Bab, as soon as I get home.
+I know they will believe me."
+
+"I do believe you, only I am so dumfounded I can't take it in," said
+Grace.
+
+"What on earth is the matter with you, Mollie?" asked Bab of her sister,
+as soon as they had finished dinner. "You look awfully excited."
+
+"Bab," whispered Mollie, "call Ruth and Grace right away. Don't let
+anyone else come. Let's go down to the end of the garden. I have
+something I must tell you, this minute!"
+
+Grace had already found Ruth, and the two came hurrying along. "No,
+Ralph," ordered Grace, "you can't come. This is strictly a girl's
+party."
+
+"Bab," began Mollie, "you will believe me, won't you? I do know what I
+am talking about. This afternoon I saw the Countess Bertouche with Mrs.
+Cartwright's diamond butterfly. She dropped it, right before my eyes,
+out of the same kind of bag that Miss Sallie uses to keep her jewelry
+in. What can it mean?"
+
+"Ruth!" gasped Bab. "Bab!" uttered Ruth.
+
+The two girls looked at each other in silence. Then Bab exclaimed: "It
+took my Mollie to make the discovery, after all!"
+
+"What are you talking about, Barbara Thurston? What discovery have I
+made?" demanded Mollie.
+
+"Ruth, do you think I had better tell the girls?" asked Bab.
+
+Ruth nodded, and Barbara related the principal facts of the jewel
+robbery. She also told the girls that she and Ruth suspected that Harry
+Townsend had been the robber who frightened them at New Haven. "You
+remember," Bab continued, "he was a guest at the hotel the same night we
+were, and left early the next morning. If he had one of the rooms under
+us, he could have climbed down the fire escape and into his own room
+before anyone could discover him."
+
+But Bab kept to herself that she and Ruth were expecting another
+burglary, and that she, Bab, was to play a part in bringing the thief to
+bay. Mollie and Grace would both be terribly frightened at the thought,
+but it was just as well that they knew enough not to be surprised at
+what was to follow.
+
+Barbara went upstairs and wrote a note to the address in Newport that
+the detectives had given to her. It told the story just recited by
+Mollie.
+
+"Ralph," requested Barbara, sauntering slowly through the hall, "will
+you mail this at once with your own hands? Little Mollie has done the
+deed, after all. She has found the woman who receives Harry Townsend's
+stolen goods!"
+
+Ralph took the letter with an exclamation of surprise and hurried off to
+the post.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII--THE TENNIS TOURNAMENT
+
+
+The girls were dressing for the tennis tournament. The games were to
+begin at noon, and continue until six o'clock. Three hours later the
+annual tennis ball took place at the Casino.
+
+"You know, Ruth," said Bab, fixing a pin in her friend's collar, as they
+stood before the mirror, "that the really most important thing in our
+whole stay at Newport is your winning the silver cup in the tournament
+to-day."
+
+"Oh!" cried Ruth. "Don't be quite so energetic, Bab. You jabbed that pin
+right into my neck. I believe I am going to win. I can't imagine a good
+soldier going into battle with the idea that he is going to be beaten.
+Why, an idea like that would take all the fight out of a man, or a girl
+either, for that matter. No, Hugh and I are going to do everything we
+possibly can to come out winners. But, if we do, Bab, Hugh and I will
+think we owe it to you and Ralph. You have been such trumps about
+keeping us up to the mark with your fine playing."
+
+"Nonsense, Ruth!" retorted Bab, decidedly. "All Ralph and I ask this
+afternoon is a chance to do some shouting for the winners. What time is
+the tourney on for the 'eighteen-year-olds'?"
+
+"Just after lunch; about two o'clock, I believe. Bab, are you nervous
+about to-night?" Ruth asked. "Do you think there is going to be a scene
+at the ball? The detectives will be watching Mr. Townsend closely. They
+suspect that he means to make another big attempt, don't they?"
+
+"I really don't know, Ruth," Barbara answered. "I had a short note from
+Mr. Burton this morning. I meant to show it to you, but I did not have a
+chance. It simply said: 'Thanks. The game is ours. Keep a sharp
+lookout!' But I want to forget the whole burglary business to-day.
+Tennis is the only really important thing. Hurrah for Miss Ruth Stuart,
+the famous girl champion!" cried Barbara, then suddenly sobered down.
+The two girls had been in the wildest spirits all day. Indeed, Miss
+Sallie had sent them into the same room to dress, in order to get rid of
+them.
+
+"What is the matter, Bab?" said Ruth, turning round to look into her
+friend's face.
+
+"I've a confession to make to you. In my heart of hearts, way down
+underneath, I am kind of sneakingly sorry for Harry Townsend. I know he
+is a rogue and everything that's wicked. When I think of him in that way
+I am not sorry for him a bit. Then the thought comes of the man who has
+been around with us for weeks, playing tennis with us and going to our
+parties, and I can't quite take it in."
+
+"I know just what you mean, Bab," replied Ruth, reflectively. "Don't you
+think it must be the same idea as Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde? Everyone has
+a good and a bad side. We can't help being sorry for the good part of a
+person, when the evil gets ahead of it. But, then, you and I have never
+really liked even the good side of Harry Townsend much. So I wonder why
+we both feel sorry."
+
+"It's the woman in us, I suppose," sighed Bab.
+
+"Ruth, come in here and let me see how you look," called Miss Sallie.
+She had sent up to New York for a special tennis costume for Ruth. The
+suit was a light-weight white serge skirt with an embroidered blouse of
+handkerchief linen, and the only color was Ruth's pale blue necktie and
+the snood on her hair, which was carefully braided and securely fastened
+to the back of her head.
+
+Gowns were an important part of tournament days; indeed, the New York
+Horse Show seldom shows more elaborate dressing than does the annual
+tennis tournament at the Newport Casino.
+
+Mollie and Barbara were the proud owners of two new gowns made by their
+mother for this special occasion. Bab's frock was a simple yellow
+dimity, and she wore a big white hat with a wreath of yellow roses round
+it.
+
+"You're a baby blue, Mollie, aren't you?" asked Grace standing and
+admiring her little friend. Grace had on a lingerie frock of lavender
+muslin and lace, and a big hat trimmed in lavender plumes.
+
+"Well," said Mollie, making her a low bow, "lucky am I to be dressed in
+blue, if it means I may sit near so lovely a person as you. Fortunately,
+lavender and blue make a pretty color combination."
+
+Miss Stuart had a box for the tennis tournament.
+
+When she and the girls entered it, they found it nearly filled with
+roses. There were no cards except a single one inscribed: "For the
+Automobile Girls," for Miss Sallie was as much an automobile girl as any
+of the others. The girls selected the bunches of flowers that seemed
+most suited to their costumes. Miss Sallie and Grace immediately decided
+on the white roses, Mollie chose the pink ones, looking in her pale blue
+dress and hat like a little Dresden shepherdess.
+
+In some one's garden a yellow rose bush of the old-fashioned kind must
+have bloomed for Bab. "Why!" uttered Miss Sallie, holding up Bab's
+flowers, from which streamed a long yellow satin bow, "I have not seen
+these little yellow garden roses since I was a girl. See how they open
+out their hearts to everyone! Is that like you, Bab? Be careful how you
+hold them," teased Miss Sallie; "they have a few thorns underneath, and
+must be gently handled."
+
+Ruth half suspected Hugh had been the anonymous giver of the flowers, as
+soon as she discovered her own bunch. They formed a big ball of pale
+blue hydrangeas, tied with Ruth's especial shade of blue ribbon.
+
+"See!" said Ruth, laughing, and holding them up for the other girls to
+admire. "Hugh was not discouraged by the fact that blue flowers are so
+hard to find. I wouldn't have dreamed that hydrangeas could look so
+lovely, except on the bush."
+
+Ruth sat in the front of the box, waiting for her name to be called for
+her tennis match. She was one of the most popular visitors in Newport;
+nearly everyone who passed her box stopped to wish good luck to her and
+to Hugh.
+
+"I have seen a good many sights, in my day," said Miss Sallie, gazing
+around through her lorgnette, "but never one more beautiful than this."
+
+The grass of the wide lawns was so perfectly trimmed that it looked like
+a carpet of moss. Over the green there swept a crowd of laughing, happy
+people, the women in frocks of every delicate color. Even the sober note
+that men's clothes generally make in a gay throng was missing to-day,
+for the boys, young and old, wore white flannels and light shirts that
+rivaled the dresses of the girls in the brightness of their hues.
+
+Tier upon tier of seats rose up around the tennis courts; before the
+first game was called every one was filled.
+
+"Give me my smelling salts, Grace," said Miss Sallie, when Ruth and Hugh
+were called out to commence their game. "I shall not look at them until
+the set is over."
+
+"O Miss Sallie!" declared Ralph, who had quietly slipped into Ruth's
+place next Barbara. "I am ashamed of you for not having more courage. I
+am certain they will win. We shall have two silver cups in this box in
+the next hour or so."
+
+Over the heads of the great crowd Barbara could see the Countess
+Bertouche. She was standing near Mr. and Mrs. Erwin's box, in which sat
+Governor and Mrs. Post, Gladys and Harry Townsend.
+
+For the first time in her acquaintance with them, Barbara saw Harry
+Townsend leave his seat and walk across the lawn with the countess.
+Evidently she had made some request of him. Not far off Barbara could
+also see a tall, blond man, with a curly, light mustache, who followed
+the pair with his eyes and then moved nonchalantly in their direction.
+
+But Harry Townsend was back with his friends in a minute. He had only
+taken the countess to her place, so that she need not be alone in the
+crowd.
+
+Ruth and Hugh were easy winners. They had no such tennis battle as they
+fought the day they earned the right to represent their crowd over the
+heads of Ralph and Barbara.
+
+"Hurrah! Hurrah! Hurrah!" shouted the crowd.
+
+Ruth and Hugh were standing near each other in front of the judges'
+stand, where the prizes were awarded.
+
+With a low bow, Mr. Cartwright presented Ruth with a beautiful silver
+cup and to Hugh another of the same kind. On the outside of each cup was
+engraved a design of two racquets crossing each other, with the word
+"champion" below.
+
+Barbara and Ruth had given up all their interest and thought to the
+tennis match during the day; but Ruth having won her cup, both girls'
+minds turned to the jewel robbery.
+
+Except for the note Bab had received in the morning, she had had no sign
+nor signal from the two detectives. The Countess Bertouche, apparently
+as calm and undisturbed as any of the other guests, had been an
+interested watcher of the tournament.
+
+The girls were late in arriving at the ball. Miss Stuart had insisted on
+their resting an hour after dinner, and the affair was in full swing
+when they entered the beautiful Casino ballroom.
+
+"You're just in time for the barn dance, all of you," called Mrs.
+Cartwright. "We are going to be informal for the next half hour, at
+least. Come, Ruth, I insist on you and Hugh leading off. You are our
+special tennis champions. Wasn't it hard luck that I didn't win, when my
+husband was a judge?"
+
+"Miss Thurston," said Harry Townsend, turning suddenly to Barbara,
+"won't you dance with me?"
+
+Barbara's hands turned cold as ice and her cheeks suddenly flamed. She
+hated to dance with a man whom she knew to be of the character of Harry
+Townsend. Yet how could she refuse?
+
+He looked at her coolly, and Bab saw a mocking smile curl the corners of
+his lips. But he was as smooth and courteous as usual.
+
+"He is the prince of actors," thought Bab. "I was a goose to let him see
+how I felt. I will show him that I know how to act as well as he does,
+when I am forced to it."
+
+Barbara accepted the invitation quietly. They took their places with the
+two long rows of dancers extending down the whole length of the great
+ballroom.
+
+The barn dance, with its merry, unconventional movement, its swinging
+music and grace, was generally the greatest joy to Bab. But tonight, in
+spite of her pretense at acting, her feet lagged. She dared not look
+into the face of her partner. He was as gay and debonair as usual.
+
+When the dance was over, Townsend asked Bab to walk out on the lawn with
+him.
+
+As Ruth saw Harry and Barbara walk out at the door, she turned suddenly
+to the stranger with whom she was talking. "Will you," she said to him,
+"tell Ralph Ewing I would like to speak to him at once? I want to tell
+him something that is very important. Please forgive my asking you, but
+I must see him. I will wait right here until you find him." It was
+five--ten minutes, before Ralph was found.
+
+Harry Townsend meant to discover what Barbara Thurston knew. She was a
+young girl, still at school. He was a man approaching thirty, with a
+record behind him of nearly ten years of successful villainy.
+
+Would Barbara betray herself? Would she "give the game away?"
+
+"Miss Thurston," began Harry Townsend, politely, "as I shall be going
+away from Newport very soon, I want to have a talk with you. I must
+confess, that, since the night of Mrs. Erwin's ball, I have been very
+angry with you. No high-minded man could endure the suggestion you made
+against my honor, when you asked Hugh Post to search me, so soon after
+his mother's jewels had disappeared. But time has passed, and I do not
+now feel so wounded. Before I go away, would you mind telling me why you
+made such an accusation against me?"
+
+"Mr. Townsend," said Barbara, biting her lips, but keeping cool and
+collected, "is it necessary for you to ask me why I made such an
+accusation? If it is, then, I beg your pardon. The jewels were not in
+your possession, certainly, when the search was made. I own I was most
+unwise."
+
+"Then you withdraw the accusation?" Townsend was puzzled. He had
+expected Barbara to defy him, to insist he had stolen the jewels, that
+she had seen him in the act of doing it. He was wise enough to know
+that, if he could once make her angry, she would betray what she knew.
+He had still to discover who the gypsy was that had so strangely
+revealed to him her knowledge of his crimes.
+
+Barbara's heart was beating like a sledgehammer.
+
+There was a slight movement in the nearby shrubbery. Harry Townsend
+wheeled like a flash. Barbara turned at the same instant. It was only a
+stranger who had wandered across the lawn and mistaken the path, but
+Barbara knew that his presence there meant eternal vigilance.
+
+"O Mr. Townsend," she said, "the music is commencing. I would rather
+return to the ballroom. I have an engagement for this dance."
+
+Harry Townsend realized he must manage to entice Barbara to a more
+secluded part of the Casino grounds before he could have a satisfactory
+talk with her.
+
+"No," he said, "we will not go back yet, I want to talk to you. We must
+understand each other better, before the night is over. Come!" He spoke
+in a voice as cold and hard as ice and took Barbara by the wrist.
+
+Barbara could not jerk away or call for help. She decided it was best to
+follow him.
+
+"You are not running away, are you, Miss Thurston?" It was Ralph's voice
+calling. "I am sure Mr. Townsend will excuse you, as you have a previous
+engagement with me."
+
+"Oh, certainly," said Harry Townsend, pleasantly, "sorry as I am to lose
+Miss Thurston's society." As Barbara and Ralph walked away, he bit his
+lips savagely. Then he decided to follow the tall man he had seen moving
+about in the shrubbery. It might be that the man suspected something.
+But Townsend found him ten minutes later in the smoking-room, quietly
+moving around among the men.
+
+"Bab," Ruth had a chance to whisper to her later in the evening, "is it
+all right with you? I was desperately frightened when I saw you
+disappear outside with Harry Townsend. Have you noticed something?"
+
+"What?" said Bab, gazing searchingly about her.
+
+"Only," Ruth answered, "that the Countess Bertouche is not here this
+evening."
+
+Both realized that the first card in the game had been played.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII--BROUGHT TO BAY
+
+
+One other person had noticed, with even greater interest than had Ruth
+and Bab, that the Countess Bertouche had failed to appear at the ball.
+That person was the jewel thief, Harry Townsend. He was filled with a
+silent rage. How dared she fail him this night of all others?
+
+All the fellow's plans were carefully laid. The woman with the jewels he
+coveted sat in the ballroom; large and slow witted, she would not be
+quick either to discover her loss or to raise an alarm. And Harry
+Townsend was on friendly terms with her. Once she decided to leave the
+brightly lighted halls for the darkness of the grounds outside, lifting
+the tiara would be an easy matter. But Townsend never kept the jewels he
+stole in his possession ten minutes after their theft. How was he to get
+rid of them to-night?
+
+It was after midnight. Many of the guests had withdrawn to the veranda;
+the lawns were filled with people walking about. Now Harry Townsend
+stood back of a row of lights that cast a deep shadow. He was talking to
+some acquaintances. The women were elegantly gowned, and one of them
+wore a beautiful diamond tiara.
+
+Bab was standing alone in the door of the girls' dressing-room. Miss
+Sallie had called her in, after supper, to smooth her hair. The other
+girls had been with her, but they had returned to join the dancers. Bab
+was resting and thinking. Mollie and Grace knew nothing of what she and
+Ruth had on their minds. The younger girls knew that Harry Townsend and
+the Countess Bertouche were suspected as thieves, but they did not know
+that the detectives were on the alert, and that the arrest might come
+to-night.
+
+Barbara was wondering if she ought to tell Gladys Le Baron what she
+knew. After all, Gladys was her cousin; and, as she had told Ralph, the
+other day, Bab felt that there ought to be a certain loyalty among
+people of the same blood, even when they were not fond of one another.
+
+To-night Gladys Le Baron had been more conspicuous with Harry Townsend
+than ever before. Not only was she seen with him constantly, but she
+wore an air of conscious pride, as if to say, "See what a prize I have
+won!"
+
+Gladys had passed Bab two or three times during the evening, but had
+pretended not to see her. Now she was coming in at the dressing-room
+door.
+
+"Gladys," said Bab, timidly.
+
+Gladys turned to her haughtily. "I would rather," she said, "that you
+did not speak to me. We cannot have much to say to each other. Harry
+Townsend told me"--Gladys spoke so passionately and with such deep anger
+in her tones that Barbara stared at her aghast--"of the accusation you
+made against him. He made me promise not to speak of it, but I will
+speak of it to you. I want you to know that I shall never forgive you as
+long as I live, and that I shall get even with you some day. You are
+jealous and envious of me because we have more money, and because Harry
+Townsend likes me. I want you never to talk to me."
+
+"O Gladys!" said Barbara. She was angry and hurt, but she was more
+frightened by the real feeling her cousin showed. Did she care for Mr.
+Townsend so much? Gladys was nearly eighteen, and Bab knew that ever
+since she was a girl of fourteen she had been brought up to think she
+was a young lady.
+
+"Gladys," said Bab, firmly, "listen to me! Be quiet. I cannot tell you
+what I wish to say in this ballroom, to-night, among all these people,
+but I have something to tell you that you simply must know. Do you
+understand? Come to my house in the morning, and don't fail." Barbara's
+tones were so new and commanding that Gladys could only stare at her in
+silent amazement.
+
+"Yes," she said, meekly; "I will come."
+
+Bab's eyes were burning, and her cheeks stung with the shame of the
+scene between herself and Gladys. In order to be alone in the fresh air,
+she slipped out of the dressing-room door which opened into a side yard.
+This yard had a double hedge of althea bushes which led into the back
+part of the Casino grounds. At the same instant that Bab left the
+dressing-room door, a man passed her on the other side of the hedge. He
+was going into the back part of the garden.
+
+The show grounds of the Casino were in a central court. In the rear,
+back of the kitchens, was a long arbor covered with heavy grapevines.
+The man Bab followed slipped into this arbor.
+
+When Barbara glanced into it a second later--she dared not move quickly,
+for fear of making a noise--there was no human figure in sight. "He has
+gone on down through the arbor and slipped over the fence," she thought
+to herself.
+
+She was feeling her way along, trying to keep in the center path. The
+night was dark, and there were few stars overhead.
+
+Suddenly, Bab gave a little shriek of terror and started back. Crouching
+in the darkness was a man. His back was turned to Barbara, and, if the
+darkness was not deceiving her, he was digging in the earth.
+
+But Barbara's shriek roused him. "You, again!" he cried. He leaped at
+her, and, before she could call for help, his hand covered her mouth,
+and her head was pressed back.
+
+"Don't make a noise," another voice said quietly. "My instructions were
+not to make a scene."
+
+Townsend felt his own arms seized and drawn down to his sides. The big,
+blond man, who had interrupted his tete-a-tete with Barbara earlier in
+the evening, was again by his side. A smaller, dark man stood near him.
+
+"Well, we have got you this time with the goods on you, or pretty close
+to you," said the smaller detective, striking a match and looking down
+at his feet. Just near where they stood, only partially concealed by the
+dirt, which had been hastily dug up, something brilliant flashed and
+sparkled.
+
+"Did you think, Mr. Townsend," laughed Detective Burton quietly, "that
+you were the only clever person in Newport? These jewels you have just
+stolen are hardly worth the risk you ran. You might get about
+twenty-five dollars for the lot. I suppose you didn't know, since it has
+become the fashion to have a jewel thief in Newport, it has also become
+the fashion to wear paste jewels." The man held the tiara in his hand.
+"But I will restore them to the rightful owner," he said. "Mrs. Oliver
+informed me they were gone, two minutes after you slipped them out of
+her hair."
+
+Townsend had not spoken. "Don't," he now said, with a shudder, "put
+those handcuffs on my hands. I will go quietly. I see the game is
+up--thanks to you!" He turned to Barbara with a snarl. But Ruth and Ralph
+were standing close by her side.
+
+Barbara was much shaken and frightened by her encounter, but she tried
+to summon a little of her old spirit. "You do me too much honor, Mr.
+Townsend," she answered quietly.
+
+"Where is the Countess Bertouche?" asked Townsend stolidly.
+
+"She is ready to leave Newport with you to-night. Only we persuaded her
+to get ready a little earlier; indeed, we called upon her this
+afternoon, while she was at the tournament, and were waiting for her
+when she got back. She had two or three little trinkets in her
+possession, which she was holding for you, that we wished to return to
+their rightful owners. The lady will be able to travel as soon as you
+are. We think it best not to have any excitement in Newport. By the
+way," went on the detective--the three young people were listening
+breathlessly--"the lady is not such a cool customer as you are. She
+confessed that she was not a countess, but a poor newspaper woman out of
+a job, whom you enticed down here to help you. She explained that you
+had been mailing letters of instruction to her by sending them on to New
+York and having them remailed to her here. A poor business it has been
+for both of you, I am thinking."
+
+"Ruth," said Barbara, quickly, "it's too awful! Let us go back to Miss
+Sallie!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV--GOOD-BYE TO NEWPORT
+
+
+Early next morning Ruth and Barbara made full confession to Miss Sallie.
+Mollie and Grace were not surprised, for they had been told enough of
+the circumstances to expect the outcome. But imagine Miss Sallie!
+
+"You mean to tell me, Ruth and Bab," she gasped, dropping limply into
+the nearest chair, "that Harry Townsend is the jewel thief, the Newport
+Raffles? Why, you girls have walked with him, talked with him, played
+tennis with him! And Barbara has suspected him all the time! My
+heavens!" she wailed, in despair. "Did it never dawn on you, Barbara,
+that you might have been killed?"
+
+Miss Stuart was overcome. "Ruth Stuart, my own niece, do you mean to
+tell me that you lately discovered that 'this Townsend' was the thief
+who tried to rob us in New Haven? Why was I not told at once? But then,
+I am grateful I was not. And you, Mollie, fourteen-year-old Mollie, you
+found out this wretch's accomplice, and discovered Mrs. Cartwright's
+stolen butterfly! I never would have thought it of you!"
+
+"But I didn't mean to, Miss Sallie. It was all an accident. I am awfully
+sorry for that poor woman," answered Mollie.
+
+"Nonsense, child!" said Miss Sallie. "I am grateful enough that such
+dangerous people are out of the way."
+
+The girls were standing in a circle round her. "Come to my arms," she
+demanded of Grace. "Thank heavens, child, you have not turned detective,
+and can be relied on to keep me company!"
+
+"But it was just as much Grace's fault as it was mine that I discovered
+the butterfly," argued Mollie, who could not see that Miss Sallie was
+joking. "She was with me when I found it out." Everyone joined in the
+laugh at Mollie's expense.
+
+"Some one to see you in the library, miss," announced Susan, the parlor
+maid. "She says she'd like to see you alone, first, and she'd rather not
+give her name."
+
+"Then you are not to go one step, Barbara Thurston," said Miss Stuart in
+the voice the girls knew had to be obeyed. "There is no telling who it
+is waiting for you, nor what her intentions may be toward you. You'd go
+if you thought you'd be murdered the next minute. I never saw a girl
+like you. I will go myself," announced Miss Sallie.
+
+"Oh, no," said the girls, all pulling together at her skirts.
+
+Miss Sallie had to pause. "If you think, young ladies," she said,
+calmly, "that, because I have not unearthed a jewel robber, nor attacked
+a burglar in the dark, I am therefore more of a coward than a parcel of
+silly girls, you are vastly mistaken. Let go of me!" Miss Sallie marched
+majestically forward.
+
+"Susan, _I_ will go down."
+
+"Oh, no'm," pleaded Susan, giggling. She had no idea what all the fuss
+was about, but she knew it was most unnecessary. "Please'm, let me
+whisper to you. It's only that Miss Gladys Le Baron, but I promised not
+to give her name. I am sure she means no harm, miss. She looks like she
+was worried and had been crying a bit, ma'am."
+
+"It is all right, Barbara," said Miss Sallie. "From what Susan tells me
+you may go downstairs alone."
+
+Bab had not the faintest idea who could be waiting for her. In all the
+excitement, she had entirely forgotten that she had told Gladys Le Baron
+to come to see her this morning without fail. As soon as she opened the
+library door, she remembered. "Good morning," she said, coldly.
+
+But Gladys flung her arms about her neck and burst into a torrent of
+tears. "I know it all, all!" she said. "Mrs. Post and Mrs. Erwin called
+me into their rooms last night, and told me everything. I had expected
+Harry Townsend to take me home from the ball, and, when he didn't put in
+his appearance, I was so angry and behaved so badly Mrs. Post said I had
+to be told at once. Mrs. Erwin wanted to wait until morning. O Bab, I
+didn't sleep a wink last night!"
+
+"I am sorry," said Bab, but she didn't really show a great deal of
+feeling.
+
+"Bab," Gladys went on, "I simply can't believe it! And to think you knew
+it almost all the time! Mrs. Post says I have to believe it, now,
+because the whole story is out. She says she was completely deceived,
+too, and can understand why I thought Townsend was a gentleman. Father
+seemed to think he was all right. He told us all about his being an
+orphan, and who his rich relations were. Mrs. Erwin is so good. She just
+says she is sorry for me, and hasn't uttered a word of blame. Only
+think, I brought that dreadful wretch to her house, and I am responsible
+for all the trouble! O Barbara, I can never face it!" Gladys wiped her
+eyes again with her handkerchief, which was already wet with her tears.
+
+"I want to go home to mother to-day, but Mrs. Erwin says I have to stay
+with her a little while longer. She says that, if I rush right off now,
+if I disappear the very same day Harry Townsend and that woman leave,
+people will believe there is more between us than there really is. There
+wasn't anything exactly serious, though I did like him. I am sure I
+shall never hold up my head again."
+
+"I wanted to warn you sooner, Gladys; believe me, I did," answered
+Barbara; "but I knew you wouldn't listen to me, and would not believe a
+word I said."
+
+"I know, Barbara," said Gladys, humbly. "I have been a horrid stuck-up
+goose. I know, now, if you hadn't seen him steal the necklace at Mrs.
+Erwin's, we might never have found out who the thief was. Then I don't
+know what dreadful thing might have happened to me, if I had gone on
+seeing him and never understood his true nature. Do you think he could
+have stolen my bracelet?"
+
+"I know he did," Bab answered.
+
+"The horrid, hateful thing!" cried Gladys, with a fresh burst of tears.
+"Barbara, I want to ask you a favor. Will you beg Ruth to let me go back
+to Kingsbridge in the automobile with you? I suppose I ask you because I
+have been more hateful to you than to anyone else. I know if you will
+forgive me the other girls will. Ruth will do anything you ask her."
+
+"But I can't ask Ruth such a favor as that, Gladys," argued Barbara.
+"There wouldn't be room in the car, for one thing."
+
+"Oh, I could sit on the little seat and I would be as nice and give as
+little trouble as I possibly could, if you will only ask her. I somehow
+feel that if you girls will stick by me, now, other people will not
+think so badly of me. They will know I have been a goose, and have been
+dreadfully deceived by Harry Townsend, but they'll understand that I
+never meant any wrong, and am not really bad. You see, Bab, you and
+Mollie are my cousins. Everyone is sure to find out you helped to expose
+the awful villain; so, if I am seen with you now, it will show that you
+take my part, and that you knew I had only been deceived."
+
+"Don't you think it is a good deal to ask of me, Gladys?" said Barbara,
+speaking very slowly. She was thinking of every snub, every cruel thrust
+Gladys had given her since they were children.
+
+Gladys did not answer at first. Then she shook her head, and rose to go.
+"Yes, Barbara," she said; "I know I don't deserve a bit of kindness at
+your hands. I have been perfectly hateful to you, always. Good-bye."
+
+"Oh, stay, Gladys," begged Bab, penitent in an instant. "I didn't mean
+that. Of course we will all stand by you. Indeed, I shall ask Ruth if
+you may go back in the automobile with us, and I am sure, if Miss Stuart
+thinks there is room enough, Ruth will be delighted to have you. She is
+always the dearest, most generous girl in the world," said Bab, her face
+glowing with the enthusiasm she always felt in speaking of Ruth.
+
+"Now," she continued, "do come on upstairs and take off your hat. You
+must stay to lunch with us. Oh, no; you needn't be afraid of Miss
+Stuart. She won't be unkind to you; she's a perfect dear! She'll just be
+awfully sorry for you, when you tell her how badly you feel. Come on,
+Gladys." Bab took hold of her hand.
+
+"Won't you call Ruth down first?" urged Gladys. "I feel too much ashamed
+to go right on up there among all of you."
+
+Ruth and Bab, between them, persuaded Gladys to go to their rooms. To
+their surprise, Mistress Mollie was the one to be appeased. She was not
+so ready to kiss and make up as Bab had been, yet even Mollie's "hard"
+little heart softened when she saw what a changed and chastened Gladys
+the girls brought upstairs with them.
+
+"You'll see I am going to be different," Gladys said to Bab, "and if
+ever there's a chance for me to prove how I appreciate your being so
+kind to me now, I shall do it. Of course, I don't expect you to have
+much faith in me yet."
+
+"Miss Barbara Thurston is requested to spend her last day in Newport as
+the guest of honor of Governor and Mrs. Post on board their yacht, the
+'Penguin,' which is at this instant awaiting her answer outside in
+Narragansett Bay," said Ruth, with a flourish of a letter she held in
+her hand and a low bow to Barbara.
+
+"Goose!" shot Barbara at Ruth. "But are we all invited for a sail? How
+jolly!"
+
+"I am no goose, madam," retorted Ruth. "I mean what I say. Read this."
+
+She handed Barbara a letter which Miss Stuart had received from Mrs.
+Post only a few minutes before, and which read:
+
+ My Dear Miss Stuart,
+
+ We want, in some quiet fashion, to show our appreciation of, and
+ thanks to, the little girl who so patiently and cleverly kept her own
+ counsel, and so materially aided in the discovery of the jewel thief.
+ I feel that I did not do her justice. Governor Post and I both believe
+ that it is to her wit and courage that I owe the return of my emerald
+ necklace. I have talked matters over with Hugh, and, with your
+ consent, I should like to give a luncheon, in her honor, on board the
+ yacht at one o'clock to-morrow. We will spend the afternoon sailing in
+ the bay. Only our intimate friends will be invited and we feel that no
+ party could be complete, at Newport, without the presence of "The
+ Automobile Girls."
+
+ Faithfully yours,
+ Katherine Post.
+
+
+"What larks!" cried Barbara, blushing with pleasure. "Has Miss Sallie
+said we could go?"
+
+"Certainly she has," rejoined Ruth. "I told Hugh so at once."
+
+ Columbia, the gem of the ocean,
+ The home of the brave and the free,
+ The shrine of each patriot's devotion----
+
+The young people were in the bow of the yacht when the music commenced.
+"Why, Hugh," Bab whispered to him in an undertone, "have we a band on
+board? How perfectly delightful!"
+
+"Young Miss America," Hugh answered, "you needn't think, for one minute,
+that this party on the 'Penguin' is going to enjoy any ordinary
+entertainment to-day. The band is not half. Just you wait, and see all
+the remarkable things that are to take place on this blessed boat
+excursion."
+
+Earlier in the day, when Ruth and Grace first came aboard, they passed
+through the salon on their way to the upper deck. Grace caught hold of
+Ruth's sleeve and drew her back to whisper to her: "Has it ever occurred
+to you that Harry Townsend might have stolen your fifty dollars that
+disappeared after we spent our first day on the yacht? I have been
+thinking that he must have been dreadfully hard up, or he never would
+have tried the robbery at New Haven, or have stolen such a small sum
+from you afterwards."
+
+"Yes, I have thought about it," said Ruth, shaking her head, with a
+forlorn gesture. "Isn't it too dreadful? Let's forget all about him
+to-day."
+
+The luncheon was announced promptly at one.
+
+"'The Automobile Girls,' including Miss Sallie, will kindly stay on deck
+until they are summoned," called Mrs. Post, sweeping on ahead, followed
+by her other guests.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls waited in some excitement. The sun was shining
+gayly on the deck of the little ship, which sailed through the water
+like a white bird. All the flags were flying in Barbara's honor, as the
+governor explained, when she came on board.
+
+Suddenly Hugh's smiling face appeared at the open door. "Come in, now,"
+he requested.
+
+Miss Sallie and the girls marched into the long salon dining-room, while
+the band played "Liberty Bell."
+
+In the center of the luncheon table, raised on a moss-covered stand, was
+a miniature automobile. In it sat five dolls wearing automobile veils of
+different colors and long dust coats. Two of the dolls were blondes, the
+other two were brunettes. But the stateliest and handsomest doll of the
+lot had soft, white hair and reclined against a violet cushion. A pale
+blue flag flew over the car. It bore the inscription: "The Automobile
+Girls--Long May They Flourish!"
+
+At either end of the table stood Hugh's and Ruth's silver cups, won at
+the tennis tournament.
+
+As Miss Sallie and the four girls took their places, Hugh raised one
+cup, his mother the other. "We will drink from these loving cups," he
+said, "to the health of our guests of honor, 'The Automobile Girls.'" He
+then passed the cups, filled with a fruit punch, around the table.
+
+At the close of the luncheon, Hugh again rose to his feet.
+
+"Ladies and gentlemen," he announced, "I am going to make a speech."
+
+"Don't do it, Hugh," laughed Ralph.
+
+"All right, Ralph," said Hugh; "I won't. Barbara," Hugh leaned over to
+attract her attention, and Barbara turned a rosy red, "here's a souvenir
+of Newport for you. I guess it's a gift from us all." He motioned to his
+friends around the table and handed to Bab a small green velvet box.
+"For the girl who is always on the watch," he ended.
+
+Barbara's eyes were full of tears. They came partly from embarrassment,
+but most of all from pleasure. Inside the velvet case was a tiny gold
+watch, set in a circle of small emeralds.
+
+But Mollie was calling Bab to look at her gift. Mrs. Cartwright, who sat
+next her favorite of the girls, had pinned a little, pearl butterfly in
+the lace yoke of Mollie's gown. Ruth and Grace were each rejoicing in
+their gifts, silver pins representing tennis racquets, their souvenirs
+of the luncheon and their month's stay in Newport.
+
+"It has been just too lovely!" said Mollie to Mrs. Post, as she bade her
+good-night. "Yes, we start for home the first thing in the morning. In a
+few days there will be no more 'Automobile Girls,'" she ended with a
+sigh.
+
+"Oh," said Ruth, laughing and coming up beside her, "who knows? You
+never can tell! Good-bye, everyone," she said, taking hold of Bab's
+hand. "We have had the time of our lives, just as we hoped we would.
+Till we meet again," she finished with a smile.
+
+The four girls ran down the gangplank and rejoined Miss Sallie.
+
+As many of our readers will guess, the return to Kingsbridge did not
+bring an end to the adventures of the natural and charming girls in
+their automobile. Further adventures and a host of new things remain to
+be told, but these must be deferred for narration in the next volume,
+which will be entitled, "The Automobile Girls in the Berkshires; or, The
+Ghost of Lost Man's Trail."
+
+
+ [The End]
+
+ * * * * *
+
+HENRY ALTEMUS COMPANY'S
+
+Best and Least Expensive
+
+Books for Boys and Girls
+
+The Motor Boat Club Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The keynote of these books is manliness. The stories are wonderfully
+entertaining, and they are at the same time sound and wholesome. No boy
+will willingly lay down an unfinished book in this series.
+
+ 1 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB OF THE KENNEBEC; Or,
+ The Secret of Smugglers' Island.
+ 2 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AT NANTUCKET; Or, The
+ Mystery of the Dunstan Heir.
+ 3 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB OFF LONG ISLAND; Or, A
+ Daring Marine Game at Racing Speed.
+ 4 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AND THE WIRELESS; Or,
+ The Dot, Dash and Dare Cruise.
+ 5 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB IN FLORIDA; Or, Laying
+ the Ghost of Alligator Swamp.
+ 6 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB AT THE GOLDEN GATE;
+ Or, A Thrilling Capture in the Great Fog.
+ 7 THE MOTOR BOAT CLUB ON THE GREAT LAKES;
+ Or, The Flying Dutchman of the Big Fresh Water.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+Sold by all booksellers or sent postpaid on receipt of price.
+
+Henry Altemus Company
+
+1326-1336 Vine Street, Philadelphia
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Battleship Boys Series
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+These stories throb with the life of young Americans on to-day's huge
+drab Dreadnaughts.
+
+ 1 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS AT SEA; Or, Two Apprentices
+ in Uncle Sam's Navy.
+ 2 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS' FIRST STEP UPWARD; Or,
+ Winning Their Grades as Petty Officers.
+ 3 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN FOREIGN SERVICE; Or,
+ Earning New Ratings in European Seas.
+ 4 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN THE TROPICS; Or, Upholding
+ the American Flag in a Honduras Revolution.
+ 5 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS UNDER FIRE; Or, The Dash for
+ the Besieged Kam Shau Mission.
+ 6 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS IN THE WARDROOM; Or,
+ Winning their Commissions as Line Officers.
+ 7 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS WITH THE ADRIATIC CHASERS;
+ Or, Blocking the Path of the Undersea Raiders.
+ 8 THE BATTLESHIP BOYS' SKY PATROL; Or, Fighting
+ the Hun from Above the Clouds.
+
+Price, $1.00 each
+
+
+The Range and Grange Hustlers
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+Have you any idea of the excitements, the glories of life on great
+ranches in the West? Any bright boy will "devour" the books of this
+series, once he has made a start with the first volume.
+
+ 1 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS ON THE RANCH;
+ Or, The Boy Shepherds of the Great Divide.
+ 2 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS' GREATEST ROUND-UP;
+ Or, Pitting Their Wits Against a Packers' Combine.
+ 3 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS ON THE PLAINS;
+ Or, Following the Steam Plows Across the Prairie.
+ 4 THE RANGE AND GRANGE HUSTLERS AT CHICAGO;
+ Or, The Conspiracy of the Wheat Pit.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Submarine Boys Series
+
+By VICTOR G. DURHAM
+
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS ON DUTY;
+ Or, Life on a Diving Torpedo Boat.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS' TRIAL TRIP;
+ Or, "Making Good" as Young Experts.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE MIDDIES;
+ Or, The Prize Detail at Annapolis.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE SPIES;
+ Or, Dodging the Sharks of the Deep.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS' LIGHTNING CRUISE;
+ Or, The Young Kings of the Deep.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS FOR THE FLAG;
+ Or, Deeding Their Lives to Uncle Sam.
+ THE SUBMARINE BOYS AND THE SMUGGLERS;
+ Or, Breaking Up the New Jersey Customs Frauds.
+
+
+Grace Harlowe Overseas Series
+
+ GRACE HARLOWE OVERSEAS.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE RED CROSS IN FRANCE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE MARINES AT CHATEAU THIERRY.
+ GRACE HARLOWE WITH THE AMERICAN ARMY IN THE ARGONNE.
+
+
+The College Girls Series
+
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S FIRST YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S SECOND YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S THIRD YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S FOURTH YEAR AT OVERTON COLLEGE.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S RETURN TO OVERTON CAMPUS.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S PROBLEM.
+ GRACE HARLOWE'S GOLDEN SUMMER.
+
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid on receipt
+of only $1.00 each.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Pony Rider Boys Series
+
+By FRANK GEE PATCHIN
+
+These tales may be aptly described the best books for boys and girls.
+
+ 1 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE ROCKIES;
+ Or, The Secret of the Lost Claim.
+ 2 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN TEXAS;
+ Or, The Veiled Riddle of the Plains.
+ 3 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN MONTANA;
+ Or, The Mystery of the Old Custer Trail.
+ 4 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE OZARKS;
+ Or, The Secret of Ruby Mountain.
+ 5 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE ALKALI;
+ Or, Finding a Key to the Desert Maze.
+ 6 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN NEW MEXICO;
+ Or, The End of the Silver Trail.
+ 7 THE PONY RIDER BOYS IN THE GRAND CANYON;
+ Or, The Mystery of Bright Angel Gulch.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Boys of Steel Series
+
+By JAMES R. MEARS
+
+Each book presents a vivid picture of this great industry. Each story is
+full of adventure and fascination.
+
+ 1 THE IRON BOYS IN THE MINES;
+ Or, Starting at the Bottom of the Shaft.
+ 2 THE IRON BOYS AS FOREMEN;
+ Or, Heading the Diamond Drill Shift.
+ 3 THE IRON BOYS ON THE ORE BOATS;
+ Or, Roughing It on the Great Lakes.
+ 4 THE IRON BOYS IN THE STEEL MILLS;
+ Or, Beginning Anew in the Cinder Pits.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Madge Morton Books
+
+By AMY D. V. CHALMERS
+
+ 1 MADGE MORTON--CAPTAIN OF THE MERRY MAID.
+ 2 MADGE MORTON'S SECRET.
+ 3 MADGE MORTON'S TRUST.
+ 4 MADGE MORTON'S VICTORY.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+West Point Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The principal characters in these narratives are manly, young Americans
+whose doings will inspire all boy readers.
+
+ 1 DICK PRESCOTT'S FIRST YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Two Chums in the Cadet Gray.
+ 2 DICK PRESCOTT'S SECOND YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Finding the Glory of the Soldier's Life.
+ 3 DICK PRESCOTT'S THIRD YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Standing Firm for Flag and Honor.
+ 4 DICK PRESCOTT'S FOURTH YEAR AT WEST POINT; Or,
+ Ready to Drop the Gray for Shoulder Straps.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+Annapolis Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The Spirit of the new Navy is delightfully and truthfully depicted in
+these volumes.
+
+ 1 DAVE DARRIN'S FIRST YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or, Two
+ Plebe Midshipmen at the U. S. Naval Academy.
+ 2 DAVE DARRIN'S SECOND YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or,
+ Two Midshipmen as Naval Academy "Youngsters."
+ 3 DAVE DARRIN'S THIRD YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or, Leaders
+ of the Second Class Midshipmen.
+ 4 DAVE DARRIN'S FOURTH YEAR AT ANNAPOLIS; Or,
+ Headed for Graduation and the Big Cruise.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Young Engineers Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+The heroes of these stories are known to readers of the High School Boys
+Series. In this new series Tom Reade and Harry Hazelton prove worthy of
+all the traditions of Dick & Co.
+
+ 1 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN COLORADO; Or, At Railroad
+ Building in Earnest.
+ 2 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN ARIZONA; Or, Laying Tracks
+ on the "Man-Killer" Quicksand.
+ 3 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN NEVADA; Or, Seeking Fortune
+ on the Turn of a Pick.
+ 4 THE YOUNG ENGINEERS IN MEXICO; Or, Fighting the
+ Mine Swindlers.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Boys of the Army Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+These books breathe the life and spirit of the United States Army of
+to-day, and the life, just as it is, is described by a master pen.
+
+ 1 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS IN THE RANKS; Or, Two Recruits
+ in the United States Army.
+ 2 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS ON FIELD DUTY; Or, Winning
+ Corporal's Chevrons.
+ 3 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS AS SERGEANTS; Or, Handling
+ Their First Real Commands.
+ 4 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS IN THE PHILIPPINES; Or, Following
+ the Flag Against the Moros.
+ 6 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS AS LIEUTENANTS; Or, Serving
+ Old Glory as Line Officers.
+ 7 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS WITH PERSHING; Or, Dick Prescott
+ at Grips with the Boche.
+ 8 UNCLE SAM'S BOYS SMASH THE GERMANS; Or, Winding
+ Up the Great War.
+
+
+Dave Darrin Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+ 1 DAVE DARRIN AT VERA CRUZ;
+ Or, Fighting With the U. S. Navy in Mexico.
+ 2 DAVE DARRIN ON MEDITERRANEAN SERVICE.
+ 3 DAVE DARRIN'S SOUTH AMERICAN CRUISE.
+ 4 DAVE DARRIN ON THE ASIATIC STATION.
+ 5 DAVE DARRIN AND THE GERMAN SUBMARINES.
+ 6 DAVE DARRIN AFTER THE MINE LAYERS;
+ Or, Hitting the Enemy a Hard Naval Blow.
+
+
+The Meadow-Brook Girls Series
+
+By JANET ALDRIDGE
+
+ 1 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS UNDER CANVAS.
+ 2 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS ACROSS COUNTRY.
+ 3 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS AFLOAT.
+ 4 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS IN THE HILLS.
+ 5 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS BY THE SEA.
+ 6 THE MEADOW-BROOK GIRLS ON THE TENNIS COURTS.
+
+All these books are bound in Cloth and will be sent post-paid on receipt
+of only $1.00 each.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+High School Boys Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+In this series of bright, crisp books a new note has been struck.
+
+Boys of every age under sixty will be interested in these fascinating
+volumes.
+
+ 1 THE HIGH SCHOOL FRESHMEN; Or, Dick & Co.'s First
+ Year Pranks and Sports.
+ 2 THE HIGH SCHOOL PITCHER; Or, Dick & Co. on the
+ Gridley Diamond.
+ 3 THE HIGH SCHOOL LEFT END; Or, Dick & Co. Grilling on
+ the Football Gridiron.
+ 4 THE HIGH SCHOOL CAPTAIN OF THE TEAM; Or, Dick &
+ Co. Leading the Athletic Vanguard.
+
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+Grammar School Boys Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+This series of stories, based on the actual doings of grammar school
+boys, comes near to the heart of the average American boy.
+
+ 1 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS OF GRIDLEY;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Start Things Moving.
+ 2 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS SNOWBOUND;
+ Or, Dick & Co. at Winter Sports.
+ 3 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS IN THE WOODS;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Trail Fun and Knowledge.
+ 4 THE GRAMMAR SCHOOL BOYS IN SUMMER ATHLETICS;
+ Or, Dick & Co. Make Their Fame Secure.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+High School Boys' Vacation Series
+
+By H. IRVING HANCOCK
+
+"Give us more Dick Prescott books!"
+
+This has been the burden of the cry from young readers of the country
+over. Almost numberless letters have been received by the publishers,
+making this eager demand; for Dick Prescott, Dave Darrin, Tom Reade, and
+the other members of Dick & Co. are the most popular high school boys in
+the land. Boys will alternately thrill and chuckle when reading these
+splendid narratives.
+
+ 1 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS' CANOE CLUB; Or, Dick & Co.'s
+ Rivals on Lake Pleasant.
+ 2 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS IN SUMMER CAMP; Or, The
+ Dick Prescott Six Training for the Gridley Eleven.
+ 3 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS' FISHING TRIP; Or, Dick & Co.
+ in the Wilderness.
+ 4 THE HIGH SCHOOL BOYS' TRAINING HIKE; Or, Dick &
+ Co. Making Themselves "Hard as Nails."
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+ * * * * *
+
+The Circus Boys Series
+
+By EDGAR B. P. DARLINGTON
+
+Mr. Darlington's books breathe forth every phase of an intensely
+interesting and exciting life.
+
+ 1 THE CIRCUS BOYS ON THE FLYING RINGS; Or, Making
+ the Start in the Sawdust Life.
+ 2 THE CIRCUS BOYS ACROSS THE CONTINENT; Or, Winning
+ New Laurels on the Tanbark.
+ 3 THE CIRCUS BOYS IN DIXIE LAND; Or, Winning the
+ Plaudits of the Sunny South.
+ 4 THE CIRCUS BOYS ON THE MISSISSIPPI; Or, Afloat with
+ the Big Show on the Big River.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The High School Girls Series
+
+By JESSIE GRAHAM FLOWER, A.M.
+
+These breezy stories of the American High School Girl take the reader
+fairly by storm.
+
+ 1 GRACE HARLOWE'S PLEBE YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Merry Doings of the Oakdale Freshman Girls.
+ 2 GRACE HARLOWE'S SOPHOMORE YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Record of the Girl Chums in Work and Athletics.
+ 3 GRACE HARLOWE'S JUNIOR YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, Fast Friends in the Sororities.
+ 4 GRACE HARLOWE'S SENIOR YEAR AT HIGH SCHOOL;
+ Or, The Parting of the Ways.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+The Automobile Girls Series
+
+By LAURA DENT CRANE
+
+No girl's library--no family book-case can be considered at all complete
+unless it contains these sparkling twentieth-century books.
+
+ 1 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT;
+ Or, Watching the Summer Parade.
+ 2 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS IN THE BERKSHIRES;
+ Or, The Ghost of Lost Man's Trail.
+ 3 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS ALONG THE HUDSON;
+ Or, Fighting Fire in Sleepy Hollow.
+ 4 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT CHICAGO;
+ Or, Winning Out Against Heavy Odds.
+ 5 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT PALM BEACH;
+ Or, Proving Their Mettle Under Southern Skies.
+ 6 THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT WASHINGTON;
+ Or, Checkmating the Plots of Foreign Spies.
+
+Cloth, Illustrated--Price, per Volume, $1.00
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Automobile Girls at Newport, by
+Laura Dent Crane
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE AUTOMOBILE GIRLS AT NEWPORT ***
+
+***** This file should be named 36273.txt or 36273.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ http://www.gutenberg.org/3/6/2/7/36273/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/36273.zip b/36273.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..19f2aec
--- /dev/null
+++ b/36273.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0e47314
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #36273 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/36273)